[][][][][][][][][][]

From an Original Picture in the Poſseſsion of Iohn Taylor Eſq—Engrav'd by Balston.

William Oldys Esqr.
[]

THE BRITISH LIBRARIAN: Exhibiting a COMPENDIOUS REVIEW OR ABSTRACT Of our moſt Scarce, Uſeful, and Valuable BOOKS IN ALL SCIENCES, AS WELL IN MANUSCRIPT AS IN PRINT: With many CHARACTERS, Hiſtorical and Critical, OF THE AUTHORS, their ANTAGONISTS, &c. In a Manner never before attempted, And Uſeful to all READERS. With a Complete INDEX to the Volume.

Multa renaſcentur quae jam cecidere.
Hor.

LONDON: Printed for T. OSBORNE, in Gray's-Inn. M.DCC.XXXVIII.

THE INTRODUCTION.

[]

THE vaſt Number of Books which the Pen and Preſs have produced, has made all Lovers of Literature deſirous of knowing, by ſome compendious Methods, what has been written in the ſeveral Sciences to which they have appropriated their Studies: And this Deſire grows more importunate, as the Difficulty encreaſes of ſatisfying it; the Works of the Learned multiplying ſo much beyond the Accounts which are given of them, and our Attention being engroſſed to the Regard only of ſome few Writers, by thoſe very means, which might be uſed to give us a tolerable notice of all, who any ways deſerve it.

For ſeveral Attempts have indeed been made, in many Countries, to gratify in ſome meaſure, this univerſal Curioſity; but in England, eſpecially, by ſuch narrow and circumſcribed Schemes, as have left many Impediments to the Advancement of human Knowledge unremov'd. For thro' the Defect of ſuch Intelligence, in its proper Extent; how many AUTHORS have we, who are conſuming their Time, their Quiet and their Wits, in ſearching after that which is either paſt finding, or already found? In admiring at the Penetrations themſelves have made, tho' to the Rind only, in thoſe very Branches of Science which their Forefathers have pierced to the Pith? And how many, who would be Authors, as excellent as ever appear'd, had they but ſuch Plans or Models laid before them, as might induce them to marſhal their Thoughts into a regular Order; or did they but know where to meet with Concurrence of Opinion, with Arguments, Authorities or Examples, to corroborate and ripen their teeming Conceptions?

Again, had ſuch Intelligence been diſperſed in its due Scope and Latitude, how many BOOKSELLERS, who would neither be impos'd upon themſelves, with mere Tranſcripts [ii] of obſolete and obſcure Works, for modern Compoſitions, nor impoſe upon others, ſo much to the Diſcredit of their Trade, and, in the main, to their own Diſadvantage, either ſuch injudicious Valuations of ſome old Books, or ſo many immature Publications of new ones; when the ſame Subjects are already more ſignificantly handled at their very Elbows, but mourning in a kind of Sackloth and Aſhes, for that Revival, they might at a much eaſier Expence, be preferr'd to; knew the Poſſeſſors but where, even in their own Shops to find them? Nor yet would they impoſe upon themſelves the Loſſes they often ſo voluntarily do, of turning thoſe very Pieces to Waſte-paper, which to ſome Reader or other would be moſt acceptable, knew the one how to communicate, and the other, how to compaſs the Contents thereof.

Laſtly, how many READERS, who would not be glad of attaining to Knowledge the ſhorteſt way, ſeeing the Orb thereof is ſwoln to ſuch a Magnitude, and Life but ſuch a Span to graſp it? How many, who have not ſome Curioſity to know the Foundations of thoſe Tenets upon which they ſo ſecurely truſt their Underſtandings? Or where the Footſteps of thoſe Precepts and Precedents may be found, which have given Direction to ſo many modern Performances? Who would not embrace the moſt likely means to detect the vile Grievance of Plagiariſm, and deter ſo many diſadvantageous Repetitions of the ſame thing? What Reader would not think it convenient to be apprized of the Worth of Authors, before he gave them place in his Study or Eſteem, by ſome previous Characters or little Analyſis of what is comprized in them? And who would not find it commodious to have the opportunity of reviſing the Library of which he is, he has been, or may be poſſeſs'd, in faithful Portraits thereof, at ſuch Times and Places in which he cannot come at the Originals? In a word, if he be ignorant, who would not covet to enlarge his Knowledge? If he be knowing, who would not willingly refreſh his Memory? And yet all the Expedients we have to accommodate the Curious with ſo many Deſiderata, are only ſome ſuperficial Catalogues, either of Authors, rather than their Works, or of the Works of Authors only, in ſome one peculiar place of Education, or in ſome ſingle Science; or elſe, thoſe which have been moſt curſorily taken of ſome particular Libraries; and alſo a few Extracts, limited to the Recommendation only of ſome modern Writers.

[iii]As for our CATALOGUES of Books, they are generally, and indeed neceſſarily, thro' the great Charge and Hurry which attend the making and printing them at proper Junctures, ſo ſhort and defective, that we cannot often underſtand, by the two or three Words they beſtow upon a Volume, the very Title, nor ſometimes the Size, nor frequently the Time when it was printed, much leſs the Matter treated of therein: So that many Gentlemen, who live remote from the Places where our Sales and Auctions are made, are, by the blind and doubtful Informations which theſe Catalogues afford them, both led to over-look ſome Books which they have moſt occaſion for, and to give Commiſſions for the Purchaſe of others, by which they are utterly diſappointed, as anſwering in no wiſe their Expectation. Nay, many who have Opportunities even of being preſent where ſuch Libraries are diſpoſed of, do ſtill, after Examination, commonly meet with no leſs Diſappointment. For the bare and naked Titles of Books, eſpecially ſo contracted, are inſufficient to explain them at beſt, or when their Contents are ingenuouſly deſign'd to be ſignified by the Titles; but, on the contrary, the Titles of many are often mere Paradoxes, Enigmas, and even Contrarieties to the Subjects or Arguments maintained in them; and are ſo diſguiſed, many times, thro' Artifice, by the Authors, Editors, and Bookſellers themſelves, to deceive the Purchaſer, and catch him by the Purſe. This Deceit will laſt as long as Books, if the other Expedient of Extracts is not more effectually put in execution, than it has hitherto been done.

For EXTRACTS indeed would have prevented all theſe Inconveniencies, had they been employ'd in a Scheme, only as comprehenſive, as it is obvious to be ſuggeſted. But tho' it is above fifty Years ſince ſuch Extracts of Books were firſt publiſh'd in England, yet do all, or the greateſt part which have been here made, reſpect only the Works of a few contemporary Writers; as if it were a ſhame not to be ungrateful, and trample thoſe Predeceſſors into Oblivion, by the help of whoſe Learning and Abilities, the Moderns have improved their own. But this is a very partial and pernicious kind of Flattery, ſo to celebrate and compliment the Learning and Genius of the preſent Times, that Poſterity may not believe any before them worthy of their notice: For thoſe who extend not their Knowledge beyond their own Age, muſt not only loſe the nobleſt Inheritance of their Anceſtors, but inſtruct their Succeſſors to imitate their Example, and deal [iv] the ſame meaſure to the preſent, which theſe have dealt to the paſt.

For theſe Reaſons, and many others, in which an intelligent Reader might foreſtall us, we think it high time to begin with an Undertaking which may include both thoſe Expedients to their full Advantage, in a Catalogue more complete, as to the Titles of Books, which alone would be no inconſiderable Improvement upon what has been done, and an Extract more unlimited, as to the Times in which they were written, than have hitherto appear'd among us; ſo as to facilitate the moſt uſeful Reſearches of the Living, by a general Regiſter of, or Directory to the moſt notable Particulars in the Labours of the Dead.

And the more directly to proſecute this Attempt, it is comprehended under the Title of the BRITISH LIBRARIAN: For not only becauſe Matters of our own Obſervation are generally moſt applicable to us, or becauſe the running into Books of all Countries, would make it a Work of which we could never hope to ſee any End, or tolerable Progreſs; but chiefly becauſe our Pains and Reſpect are principally due to our own Country; becauſe alſo ſuch Service thereunto has been moſt neglected; and becauſe the Language thereof is moſt extenſively uſeful to our own People, we ſhall confine ourſelves to our own Authors; and ſome indeed of thoſe Foreigners likewiſe, who are either become as it were naturaliz'd among us, by Tranſlations, or have deſerved to be ſo, by treating of Engliſh Affairs.

By calling this Work of our LIBRARIAN a compendious Review or Abſtract, we propoſe not always a minute and entire Epitome of every Book, which would make a Scheme of this Compaſs ſo tedious and voluminous, that we know not whether our Readers or ourſelves would be firſt wearied in going thro' it. Beſides, excellent Authors, ſo ſerv'd, would never ſatisfy curious Readers; and thoſe Authors who cannot claim that Character, would either not deſerve ſuch diſtinction, or not be ſuffer'd, by the Attention which others, equally deſerving, would alſo demand, to exact ſuch particular Cognizance, in a Work of ſuch a general Nature. Our Buſineſs therefore cannot be ſo much to delight Readers with the Flowers of Books, or ſatisfy them with a ſmooth Contexture of all the Reaſons and Arguments in them, as to point out thoſe Heads or Topicks, which, like ſo many Streams and Rivulets that ſeverally ariſe in the Provinces of Literature, may beſt direct them to the Fountains themſelves, [v] where every Reader will extract thoſe Parts, and thoſe Proportions, which no Epitomiſt can do for him. So that by this Compendium of Hints and Advertiſements concerning the moſt obſervable Perſons and Places, Times and Things, which have been ſpoken of in the Writings of Men, is intended a Promptuary only, to the Search of thoſe Writings, as the moſt ready means to expedite the Attainment of what every one is ſeeking. For as the excellent Lord Bacon complains, ‘"*learned Men want ſuch Inventories of every thing in Art and Nature, as rich Men have of their Eſtates."’ Here then, we hope to ſupply that Want, by giving not only ſuch Inventories of all thoſe things, but, at the ſame time, a Reference to the Obſervations in their Authors which have been further made on them; and not only that, but oftentimes what has been obſerved even of the Authors alſo. And this more expreſly, after preſenting firſt of all their Titles, commonly at length, in a manner as agreeably diverſified as the Authors will conveniently permit; ſometimes with Reaſons for the Choice of them; a tranſient View of the Drift or Deſign, and Contents of thoſe we revive; ſome Notice of their Vouchers and Authorities; ſome Sketches of their chief Arguments or Examples; ſome Indication of their Method, and Inſtances of their Stile, occaſionally, as they yield Matter moſt likely to be ſerviceable; with Characters alſo ſometimes ſubjoin'd, which others have given of them. And in this treatment of good old Authors, we hope for the ſame effect, as in the pruning of good old Trees, in which the Gardener does not pride himſelf with the Twigs which he cuts off, or throws together, but expects that the Operation will be a means of making the Stocks themſelves, from whence they grew, ſhoot forth with freſh Vigour, and reward, with better Fruits, the Hands that ſhall gather them.

By our moſt Scarce, Uſeful, and Valuable Books in all Sciences, we intend the moſt conſiderable of all Times, from the moſt Ancient we can procure, to the moſt Modern, in all Sizes, even Pamphlets as well as bound Volumes. And here our Scheme is ſo copious as to admit not only of many which have been long buried in Darkneſs by their great Age, but ſome, in a manner ſo young, as never yet to have ſeen the Light of Publication, being only in the Preſs, or but going to it; and that, in a Method, as may be hence gather'd, more ſatisfactory than they are uſually notified to the Publick. [vi] And becauſe we have received hopes from ſome eminent and judicious Perſons, who approve of this Undertaking, that we ſhall be favour'd from time to time with ſeveral uſeful Manuſcripts which have long lain diſregarded, we propoſe to enrich our Collections with a ſhort Account alſo of one or more in every Number.

For as to the Method of Publication, we find it moſt commodious, that we may better admit the Communications of ſuch as pleaſe to oblige us with their Correſpondence, that it ſhould be Monthly, and in ſuch a miſcellaneous manner as may yield the greateſt Variety; ſo that every Number may be a little Pocket-Library, deſcribing Folio's, Quarto's, Octavo's, Pamphlets and Manuſcripts: By which different Sizes, Readers, of different Circumſtances, may be the eaſier ſuited in the Purchaſes they are inclin'd to. Then alſo, as much, generally, as Opportunity will allow, of the various Sciences in every Number, for the like Reaſon, that Readers of different Studies may the ſooner be inform'd of what they are enquiring after. For a Publication Topically digeſted, or Chronologically, would be impracticable, unleſs a Man had all the Books in the Kingdom together at once, to methodize, before he ſet out: And then it would be very inconvenient, by attracting only one Set of Readers to that one Branch, and making all the reſt wait till the Courſe of their reſpective Studies aroſe; by which they would yet loſe many pertinent Digreſſions upon their own Subjects, which would occur in the different Sciences; for they interchange, and ſome Subjects are often to be found in Books of all Sciences, while other Books would be denied admiſſion under any one of them, becauſe they do not diſtinctly profeſs any, or directly treat of all. Moreover, the Sale of ſome Sciences would, in that caſe, be ſo unproportionable to others, that it would be a great Diſcouragement to the Undertaking, and render the Edition of the whole, in many parts, incomplete. Beſides, this abſtracted Revival of Books, independent of each other, as to the Subjects, was never objected to any other Schemes of Abridgment, which have been, or are carried on, in Latin, French, or Engliſh; the Readers well knowing, how eaſily they may be directed to what they want, by Tables and Indexes annexed to every Volume.

Thus we are not under any Anxiety about what Authors we ſhall commence with, or with whom we ſhall conclude, ſince that which is look'd for in this Number, may ariſe in [vii] the next: Nor are we under any Apprehenſion of being miſconſtrued to pledge our own Judgment for the Merits of all the Authors we ſhall revive, ſince whatever they are eſſentially, 'tis the Application of them, the Uſe to which they are converted, that makes them effectually good or bad; wherefore, it is in the Readers Power to make few Authors unworthy of ſuch Revival. However, we ſhall uſe our beſt Endeavours to pleaſe them, and always be ſubmiſſive to better Judgments: So that if any Improvement of our Undertaking ſhall come to hand, we ſhall gratefully acknowledge, and cheerfully purſue it; if not, and the Encouragement of the Publick ſhall be proportionable to the Induſtry we beſtow upon this Scheme, we hope that any Imperfections in our execution thereof, will bear no proportion to the Benefits which may univerſally flow from it.

[]
The CONTENTS of No 1.
  • I. GILDAS his Epiſtle to the Britains, lamenting their Ruin, thro' the Vices of their Princes and their Paſtors: Written above Eleven Hundred Years ſince. Octavo.
  • II. WILLIAM of OCCHAM's Dialogue concerning the Spiritual and Temporal Power: Written above Four Hundred Years ſince. Printed on the black Letter. Octavo.
  • III. W. PRYNNE's Chronological Vindication of our Kings Supream Eccleſiaſtical Juriſdiction, from the Reign of Lucius to the Death of K. Richard I. Folio.
  • IV. The ſecond Tome of his Chronological Vindication, &c. from the firſt of K. John to the Death of K. Henry III. Folio.
  • V. The Hiſtory of K. John, K. Henry III. and K. Edward I. or Third Tome, which completes the ſaid Chronological Vindication. Folio.
  • VI. JOHN WICLIFFE's Poor Caitif: A fair MS. on Vellum, illuminated, and compoſed above Three Hundred and fifty Years ſince. Octavo.
  • VII. RICHARD ARNOLDE's Chronicle; or the Cuſtoms of LONDON. Printed in the old Engliſh Letter. Folio.
  • VIII. DR. WILLIAM CUNINGHAM's Coſmographical Glaſſe, containing the Principles of Coſmography, Geography, and Hydrography: Being the firſt Book publiſh'd on this Subject in England: Adorn'd with Maps, Tables, &c. Folio.
  • IX. DR. JOHN COTTA's Diſcovery of the Dangers of ignorant Practiſers of Phyſick in England; in three Books. Quarto.
  • X. DR. THOMAS POWELL's Human Induſtry, or Hiſtory of Manual Arts; under twelve Heads. Octavo
  • XI. M. KEMPII Bibliotheca ANGLORUM Theologica, cum Appendice, De Regia Societate LONDINENSI. Quarto.
  • XII. An Hiſtorical Account of the ENGLISH STAGE, ſhewing the ancient Uſe of our Dramatic Repreſentations. Octavo.

N.B. The Second Number, to be publiſh'd next Month, will contain a greater Variety of Books: And the Communications of ſuch choice Pieces, either in MS. or Print, as we have been, or ſhall be favour'd with, will be diſtinctly and gratefully acknowledg'd in the laſt Number of the Volume.

The CONTENTS of No II.
  • XIII. EARL RIVERS his Tranſlation of The Dictes or Sayings of the Philoſophers. Printed by CAXTON. Folio.
  • XIV. Sir JOHN FROSSART's Chronicles of England, France, Spain, &c. during the Reigns of King EDWARD III. and King RICHARD II. Tranſlated by Sir JOHN BOURCHIER, Lord BERNERS, &c. Folio. With a large Account of the Author.
  • XV. JOHN BALE's Acts of ENGLISH VOTARIES; comprehending their unchaſte Practices and Examples for 1200 Years. Octavo.
  • XVI. WILLIAM WEBEE's Diſcourſe of ENGLISH POETRY; with his Judgment for reforming our VERSE, and Character of our POETS, down to the middle of Queen ELIZABETH's Reign. Quarto.
  • XVII. Dr. L'ESPAGNOL's Notable Hiſtory of the CONVERSION of the ENGLISH, under the LIFE of St. WALBURG the Virgin Abbeſs, and Daughter of St. RICHARD the King. Written in French. Octavo.
  • XVIII. GERARD MALYNES Maintenance of FREE TRADE, according to the Three Eſſential Parts of Traffic. Octavo.
  • XIX. JOHN TILESON's HONOUR'S GENEALOGY: or the Arms of the Ancient and late Kings of ENGLAND. With the ſeveral Degrees of all our Nobility, their Creation, Succeſſion, Matches, Iſſues and Arms, in their proper Colours, from the Entrance of WILLIAM the CONQUEROR to the latter End of King CHARLES I. A fair Manuſcript. Folio.
  • XX. JONH WEBSTER's EXAMINATION of ACADEMIES; ſetting forth the Inſufficiency of Scholaſtic Learning, and Expedients for reforming the ſame. Quarto.
  • XXI. Dr. JOSEPH GLANVILL's PLUS ULTRA, or Advancement of KNOWLEDGE ſince the Days of ARISTOTLE; giving a particular Account of many Modern Improvements therein. Octavo.
  • XXII. ELIAS ASHMOLE's Inſtitution, Laws and Ceremonies of the moſt NOBLE ORDER of the GARTER; adorned with many curious Cuts. Folio. With ſome Account of his further Deſigns in Honour of the ſaid Order, from a MS. of his own, never printed.
The CONTENTS of No III.
  • XXIII. WILLIAM CAXTON's Tranſlation of VIRGIL's AENEIDOS. Folio. Inſcribed by him to Prince ARTHUR.
  • XXIV. HUMPHRY LHOYD's Tranſlation of the HISTORY of WALES, augmented and publiſhed by Dr. DAVID POWEL, and dedicated to Sir PHILIP SIDNEY. Quarto.
  • XXV. RICHARD HACKLUYT's Voyages, Traffics and Diſcoveries of the ENGLISH NATION; in Three Volumes. Fol.
  • XXVI. EDWARD BREREWOOD's Enquiries touching the DIVERSITY of LANGUAGES and RELIGIONS, through the chief Parts of the World. Quarto.
  • XXVII. Sir JOHN FINETT's Obſervations touching the Reception, Precedence, Treatment, Punctilios, Conteſts, &c. of FOREIGN AMBASSADORS in ENGLAND. Octavo.
  • XXVIII. Sir WILLIAM DUGDALE's ORIGINES JURIDICIALES: or, Hiſtorical Memorials of the Engliſh Laws, Courts of Juſtice, Inns of Court, Law-Writers, &c. With a CHRONOLOGY of the Lord Chancellors, Juſtices, &c. Folio.
  • XXIX. Dr. ROBERT PLOT's NATURAL HISTORY of STAFFORDSHIRE. Folio.
  • XXX. A COLLECTION of ROYAL GRANTS from the Beginning of King HENRY VIII. to the latter End of King WILLIAM III. A fair MS. in Folio.
  • XXXI. Mr. THOMAS HEARNE's Collection of Curious DISCOURSES, written by eminent ANTIQUARIES upon ſeveral Heads in our ENGLISH ANTIQUITIES. Octavo.
The CONTENTS of No IV.
  • XXXII. WILLIAM CAXTON's Tranſlation of the ORDER of KNIGHTHOOD, Inſcrib'd to King RICHARD III. Quarto.
  • XXXIII. Sir THOMAS MORE's Engliſh WORKS. Dedicated to Queen MARY. Folio.
  • XXXIV. THOMAS TWYNE's Tranſlation of H. LHUYD's Breviary of BRITAIN. 8vo.
  • XXXV. Dr. THOMAS JAMES his CORRUPTION of SCRIPTURE, COUNCILS and FATHERS by the CHURCH of ROME, &c. Quarto.
  • []XXXVI. The YOUNGER BROTHER's APOLOGY: or a Father's free Power diſputed, for the Diſpoſition of his Lands to any of his Children. Quarto.
  • XXXVII. REGINALD SCOT's Diſcovery of WITCHCRAFT, and many other like Impoſtures, for the Undeceiving of Judges, Juſtices, Juries, &c. Quarto.
  • XXXVIII. The VALE-ROYAL of ENGLAND: or County Palatine of CHESTER, illuſtrated by W. SMITH, W. WEBB, and publiſh'd by D. KING, with Sculptures. Alſo Mr. CHALONER's Account of the ISLE of MAN.
  • XXXIX. Sir THOMAS BODLEY's LIFE, LETTERS and STATUTES, for the Foundation of the Public LIBRARY at OXFORD. 8vo.
  • XL. The Lord Chancellor FORTESCUE's Difference between Abſolute and Limited MONARCHY. Publiſh'd by the preſent Judge FORTESCUE, with his Learned NOTES. 8vo.
  • XLI. The Antiquities and Practice of the Courts of EXCHEQUER, MS. by the Lord Chief Baron GILBERT. Quarto.
The CONTENTS of No V.
  • XLII. CICERO's Book of Old AGE and FRIENDSHIP; with the Declaration wherein true HONOUR conſiſts: Tranſlated by the EARL of WORCESTER: Printed by CAXTON, and dedicated to King EDWARD IV. Fol.
  • XLIII. Sir THOMAS ELYOT's Book, named the GOVERNOR: Dedicated to King HENRY VIII. With new Remarks upon the Author, and ſome Notes upon his remarkable Story of Judge GASCOIGNE's committing the PRINCE of WALES to Priſon.
  • XLIV. HENRY Earl of DERBY's HISTORICAL and POLITICAL COLLECTIONS, relating to ſome Years of Queen ELIZABETH's Reign; copiouſly extracted from the MS. Volume in Folio, 1589. To which is added, an Abſtract of Queen JANE's Letter to GEO. BOOTH Eſq declaring her ſafe Delivery of Prince EDWARD.
  • XLV. WILLIAM BURTON's Deſcription of LEICESTERSHIRE: Dedicated to GEORGE Marqueſſe of BUCKINGHAM. With ſome Remarks upon the Neglect of Authors in regard to this County.
  • XLVI. RICHARD VERSTEGAN's RESTITUTION of decayed INTELLIGENCE in ANTIQUITIES; concerning the moſt noble and renowned ENGLISH NATION: Dedicated to [] King JAMES I. With ſome Admonitions recommended to the next Editor of this Book.
  • XLVII. The FOUNDATION of the UNIVERSITY of OXFORD: With an Account of the FOUNDERS and BENEFACTORS of the COLLEGES; the TIMES when they were founded; NUMBER of the STUDENTS, &c.
  • XLVIII. The FOUNDATION of the UNIVERSITY of CAMBRIDGE: With an Account of the FOUNDERS and BENEFACTORS of the COLLEGES; TIMES when they were founded; NUNBER of the STUDENTS, &c.
The CONTENTS of No VI.
  • XLIX. SIR THOMAS WRIOTHESLY's COLLECTIONS: Containing the Inſtitution, Arms, and Characters of the KNIGHTS of the GARTER. With Draughts of the ancient Ceremonies uſed in the ORDER of the BATH. Adorn'd with the Pourtraits of ſeveral NOBLE PERSONAGES, &c. Folio. MS.
  • L. The EARL of NORTHAMPTON's Defenſative againſt the Poyſon of ſuppoſed PROPHESIES; grounded, either on Dreams, Oracles, Revelations, Invocations, Judicial Aſtrology, &c. to the great Diſorder of the Common-Wealth. Dedicated to Sir FRA. WALSINGHAM. Quarto.
  • LI. JOHN WEEVER's ancient FUNERAL MONUMENTS in GREAT BRITAIN, &c. With the diſſolved MONASTERIES therein; Their FOUNDERS, &c. Alſo the Death and Burial of certain of the ROYAL BLOOD, the NOBILITY and GENTRY of theſe Kingdoms, &c. Illuſtrated with Hiſtorical Obſervations. With a Diſcourſe perfix'd, on Funeral Monuments, in ſeveral Chapters. Folio.
  • LII. Dr. JOHN BULWER's ARTIFICIAL CHANGELING, hiſtorically preſenting the FASHIONS and CUSTOMS of all NATIONS, in altering and diſguiſing the BODIES of MANKIND: Enliven'd with Figures of ſuch affected Deformations: With an Appendix of the Pedigree of the ENGLISH GALLANT. Quarto.

POSTSCRIPT, containing the Author's Acknowledgements for ſeveral curious Pieces both in Print and MS. deſcrib'd in this Collection.

A copious INDEX to the whole Volume.

[]THE BRITISH LIBRARIAN.

No I. for JANUARY, 1737.

I. A Deſcription of the State of Great Britain; written Eleven Hundred Years ſince, by that Ancient and Famous Author, GILDAS, ſurnamed the WISE; and for the Excellency of the Work tranſlated into Engliſh, &c. with a Picture of the Author prefix'd, W. Marſhal, ſculp. Printed by John Hancock, 12o. 1652. pages 327. beſides the Introduction, &c.

THIS being the moſt ancient Britiſh Hiſtorian extant, demands the firſt Place in our Britiſh Library. Some Particulars relating to the Author, with the different Editions and Character of his Work, we refer to the bottom of the Page*. But the Subject Matter of this [2] Epiſtle to the Britains, and his Method of handling it, may be beſt gathered from the Arguments he briefly touches upon, under diſtinct Heads in the following Order.

1. Of the Iſland, its Situation and Extent; the number of its Cities, the Magnificence of its Buildings, and Fertility of its Soil. 2. The Diſobedience of the People, both in Religion and Government; their monſtrous Idols before the Introduction of Chriſtianity, and their Character by Porphiry, for their deteſtable Tyrants. Then he propoſes to recount their Sufferings under the Roman Emperors, not from the Britiſh Authors, they being deſtroyed by their Foes, or tranſported by their Exiles; but from foreign Accounts. So paſſes to, 3. The Subjection of the Iſland, and how tamely ſhe received the foreign Yoke. 4. Of her Rebellion under Queen Boadicia; her neglect to ſecure her Conqueſts by Sea and Land; and final Overthrow; which introduced, 5. Her ſecond Subjection and dreadful Slavery, till, 6. Her ſecond Relief by Chriſtianity; which produced 7. Her Perſecution under Diocleſian; and, 8. Many holy Martyrs; as, Alban of Verolam, with Aaron and Julius of Carlile, beſides many others not here named: alſo of their triumphant State till, 9. The Arian Hereſy; and 10. The Uſurpation and Tyranny of Maximus, followed by, 11. The Invaſion of the Scots and Picts. 12. Their Expulſion by the Romans; 13. The Re-invaſion by thoſe Neighbours; 14. And ſecond Deliverance by the Romans, who having taught the Britains to arm themſelves, and fortify their Country, take their laſt Farewell. 15. Of the third [3] waſtful Spoil by the aforeſaid Enemy. 16. And by a devouring Famine. 17. Of their pitiful but fruitleſs Addreſs to the Roman Conſul Agitius. 18. Of the brave Reſiſtance to which ſome of them were driven by Neceſſity; and the Victory they obtained againſt their Enemies, by whom they were forſaken, tho' not by their Iniquities. Therefore, 19. Of their Vices, and the Licentiouſneſs which followed their Peace and Plenty: Their Choice of wicked Princes, and the Corruption of their Paſtors. 20. The ſudden Alarm of their inveterate Enemies. 21. And new Calamities by Peſtilence. 22. Of their Councils to redreſs themſelves. 23. And Invitation of their far moſt cruel Enemy the Saxons to aid them againſt the Northern Powers. 24. Who totally waſte and ſpoil the Country. 25. The miſerable State of the fugitive Britains; their gathering head under Aurelius Ambroſius; Battle with and Victory over the Saxons. 26. Of the laſt Victory obtained by the Britains againſt them at the Siege of the Mountain of Bath (or Badon-Hill) forty four Years and one Month after the landing of the Saxons, and alſo the Time of my Nativity, ſays Gildas. In this Article, the moſt obſervable of all the reſt, as being now enter'd into the times of his own Knowledge, our Author firſt bewails, and ſharply reproves the Depravity of the Britiſh Rulers in general; next, gives particular Characters of five of them; beginning with the Tyrant Conſtantine then living, his Perfidiouſneſs, the Murders he committed under the Habit of the Saintly Amphabale, his Adulteries and other Impieties. Then proceeds to Aurelius Conanus, whom he reproaches in like manner: With equal Severity he ſcourges Vortiper, a wicked Son of a good King. Nor does he leſs chaſtiſe Cuneglaſſe, that golden Butcher, as his Name inports; and concludes with the like Execrations againſt that Dragon of the Iſland, Maglocune, who ſurpaſſed many Tyrants, as in Power, ſo in Miſchief. Here he ſubjoins the Menaces denounced againſt theſe and ſuch like wicked Princes, by the ſacred Oracles of Holy Scripture. After which follows a Tranſition from the Civil to the Eccleſiaſtical Corruptions; and here he inveighs againſt the Vices of the Clergy no leſs freely than he had done againſt thoſe in the State; which, with ſeveral Examples from the New Teſtament and ſome Fathers of the Church, concludes this his Epiſtle to the Britains.

This Tranſlation of the ſaid Epiſtle, appears to have been made near the firſt Entrance of the Scottiſh Line upon the [4] Throne of England *, as the Editor tells us, and while the Tranſlator was under ſome Confinement, as he informs us himſelf in his large Introduction to the Inhabitants of the Iſland; which further contains, chiefly ſome Apologies for Gildas, as to his uſing ſo much Scripture Application, and that, not according to the vulgar Verſion, as Polydore Virgil has obſerv'd; with an Anſwer alſo to this Author's erroneous Obſervation upon the Diocleſian Perſecution from Gildas himſelf. Then he ſtrives more favourably to interpret the Invectives wherewith Gildas has been accuſed to have aſperſed the Britains by Sir John Price; as that our Author having already recorded their praiſe-worthy Deeds in his Chronicle, cited by Henry of Huntington, intended now to admoniſh them of their reproveable Actions only in this Epiſtle, according to what Gildas ſays in his own Prologue to it: ‘"That he does not now determine ſo much to report the Dangers of the bloody Battles of moſt valiant Soldiers, as the Perils of ſlothful Men."’ In like manner, the Tranſlator excuſes the Character of ſo much Barbarity given to the Scotch, Picts, and Iriſh by our Author, as alſo his hard Cenſures of the Saxons and Engliſh; ſo deſcends from the ancient Union of theſe Nations, to that which was then on foot between the Engliſh (including the Britiſh) and the Scotch; and becauſe of K. James's Deſcent from the Blood Royal of theſe three Nations, concludes with a Motion to unite alſo the Titles of his Dominions under the general Name of GREAT BRITAIN.

II. A Dialogue betwene a Knyght and a Clerke, concernynge the Power Spiritual and Temporal. Imprinted at London in Flete-Strete, in the Houſe of Tho. Berthelet, near to the Cundite, at the Sign of Lucrece: cum Privilegio: without Date or Name of the Author. 52 Pages 8vo*.

[5]

THis notable little Tract was written to ſilence the Clergy, and anſwer their unreaſonable Expectations, that the Pope might exerciſe a Juriſdiction over the Temporalities of [6] Princes, and the Church be exempted from contributing of its Riches in time of need, either for the Relief of the Poor or the Security of the Nation where they abide; as may appear by the following Abſtract thereof.

CLERICUS begins with complaining how much the Eccleſiaſtical Rights are invaded, and what wrongs the Clergy endure againſt all Law. MILES asks him, what Law is? And he anſwers; the Ordinances of the Popes, and Decrees of the Fathers. MILES allows that what they have heretofore ordain'd in Matters of Temporality, may be Law to the Clergy, but not to the Laity; none having power to ordain Statutes of Things, over which they have no Lordſhip; therefore, that he, lately, laugh'd heartily, when he heard that Pope Boniface VIII. had made a new Statute, that he himſelf ſhould be above all ſecular Princes and Kingdoms; and that he needed but to put it into Writing, and all things were his: If he would have my Caſtle, my Town, my Field, my Money, or the like, he need but to will, to write, and decree it, and he's entitled to thoſe Things. Then CLERICUS would derive this Authority from Chriſt himſelf: To whom it is ſaid in the Pſalms, Ask of me and I will give Nations to thine Heritage, and all the World about to thy Poſſeſſion: And of whom it is written, 1 Tim. 2. That he is King of Kings, and Lord of Lords. Then he argues from the Faith of Holy Church, that Peter was ordain'd Chriſt's full Vicar for himſelf and Succeſſors, ſo has the ſame Power over Temporalities as Chriſt had. But here MILES diſtinguiſhes two States of Chriſt; one of his Humility, the other of his Power and Majeſty: The former, from the Time that he took Fleſh and Blood to his Paſſion; the latter, after his Reſurrection; when he ſaid, All Power is given to me in Heaven and Earth: That Peter was ordain'd Chriſt's Vicar for the State of his Humility, and to follow him in thoſe Things which he did in that State, or to exerciſe that Power which [7] he, as mortal Man, did; and not that which after his Glorification he receiv'd. Here it is proved from Scripture that Chriſt neither had, nor pretended to a temporal Kingdom; and that Peter had not by his Commiſſion the Keys of the Kingdom of Earth given him, but of Heaven; that he was Chriſt's Vicar in the Godly Kingdom of Souls, and not in Temporal Lordſhip of Caſtles and Lands: And this again is proved out of St. Paul. Then CLERICUS flies to another Argument; for ſeeing it allow'd that Holy Church may correct Sins, he infers, that he who has to do in the knowledge of Sin, muſt know and deem in Right and Wrong; and ſince there is Right and Wrong in Temporal Matters, the Pope ought conſequently to rule and deem in Temporal Cauſes. But MILES having ſhew'd the Abſurdity of this Sophiſm, and that Right and Wrong in Temporal Matters, are to be judg'd by Temporal Laws, proves this alſo out of Scripture; where even in caſe of the People's Diſobedience to thoſe Laws, it appears the Clergy are only to admoniſh and warn them that they be ſubject to Princes, and in another Place that every Soul ſhall be ſubject to the higher Powers; which excepts not the Clergy themſelves. ‘"And if you will needs be knowing in ſuch Cauſes, ſays he, becauſe Wrong and Sin are link'd together; it belongs to you to know and deem in Cauſes of Wedlock; I pray will you therefore ſay it follows, that you ſhall know and deem of all that belongeth thereto, for the knitting of the Deed?"’ So adviſes him not to intermeddle in the Judgment of Things which concern Temporality; ‘"For ſo much as ye uſurp and take upon you that which belongs to others, it is right mete that ye ſuffer as ye do."’ Then CLERICUS asks if he can deny that the Temporal Power ſhould be ſerviceable to the Spiritual? MILES allows the Temporality ſhould be ſo far ſerviceable to them, as to find thoſe who worſhip and ſerve God all that is neceſſary for them; that in the old Law they were handſomely provided for, but not thereby ordain'd any Temporal Kingdom or Lordſhip; for what kind of Lordſhip was appointed the Miniſtry, may appear from four or five Places of Scripture here quoted: from whence it is demanded, ‘"Lo to whom doth Chriſt and his Apoſtle Paul liken you? To Workmen, to hired Men, and Oxen; and not to Kings. I pray you, be Workmen, and hired Men, Lords of Things? Then it ſeemeth that Temporalities are granted you to help your Living, and for Charge of Spiritual Adminiſtration, [8] and not for Lordſhip: And of the Spiritual, it is written in the Law of Moſes; there ye be likened to an Ox that threſhes; for which it is enough to take his Meat, though he fill all the Barn with his Travail."’ A little farther CLERICUS is for allowing Princes to enjoy their Temporalities, ‘"And let them ſuffer us, ſays he, in Peace with ours."’ But MILES cannot allow this to be any ways reaſonable. For, ſays he, we are to ſee the Wills of our Forefathers fulfill'd, who gave you theſe Temporalities ſo plentifully, that you ſhould diſpoſe both of them and yourſelves to charitable Purpoſes, to the Health of our Souls and the Honour of God, to praying for the Dead and relieving the Wants of the Living; ‘"But ye do nothing ſo; ye ſpend away your Temporality in ſinful Deeds and Vanity; ye recke not for Honeſty, no nor for your own Law, nor for Dedes of Mercy and Charity, but in folly, and bobance, and in liking of this World, ye diſpend all that was given you for an holy Intent. Shall not his Wages be ſtopped who will not do Deeds of Knighthood? He that holdeth of another, and doth not his due Office and Service, he ſhall loſe and forgo his Fee."’ Here he brings in the Example of K. Joas, who would not let Joidas receive any more of the Eccleſiaſtical Revenue, but apply it to the Reparation of God's Houſe; and concludes this Argument with obſerving, ‘"That ye have received all ſuch Lordſhips and Riches as the Wages of holy Chivalry, and to the Intent to have Cloth and Food; with which two, the Apoſtle ſaith, he held him paid; and all the over-plus, beſides Cloth and Food, ye ought to ſpend in Deeds of Mercy and Piety, as on poor People, that have need, and on ſuch as be ſick and diſeaſed, and oppreſſed with Miſery: And if ye do not ſo, then muſt we have to do therewith; for then it falleth to us to take heed of your Temporality, that ye beguile not and deceive the Quick and the Dead."’ CLERICUS obſerves, that King Joas did not apply the Money to his own Uſe, but to that of Holy Church. ‘"But now-a-days ye take our Goods, which ye ſpend not to the Uſe of Holy Church, but on your buſy and unruly Soldiers, and on Ships and Engines of War."’ MILES anſwers, ‘"That neither does the King apply it to his own Uſe, but for your Safeguard, the Defence of Holy Church, and of your Goods and Chattels. That if the King's Power ſhould fail, the Gentry, ſuch as are needy and had prodigally conſumed their Subſtance, [9] would turn to yours, and deſtroy all you have; therefore that the King's Strength is to you as a ſtrong Wall, and his Peace is your Peace: That by giving a little Portion to him, you buy your own Safeguard: But as ye have always been unkind for the Goodneſs he hath done, ſo now ye complain againſt what is your own Profit: That if Kings at their own Coſts and Peril are to defend you, and you to reſt, in Idleneſs and Luxury, eating, drinking, and ſolacing yourſelves, then you only are Kings, and they your Slaves."’ Then he proves from Scripture again, that the Church, or Riches of it, ſhould not be ſpared when Chriſtian People are in Danger; ‘"The Ghoſtly Temple, which is Mankind, being of more worth than the Temple that is made of Lime and Stone."’ CLERICUS objects that if thoſe things which are once given to God may be taken away again, then all Vows may be made void. But MILES diſtinguiſhes, that what he has ſaid is not to withdraw ſuch Gifts, but to apply them to thoſe Uſes for which they were firſt given. Then CLERICUS would allude from the Words of our Saviour, how free the Clergy were from paying Tribute to Princes. But MILES argues, that the Example he produces, and the anſwer therein given, was for Chriſt, and not for you; however grants, that Clerks in their own Perſons ſhould be free, but not ſuch as lead their Lives as lewd Men. Yet, tho' ſome may be thus freed in their Perſon by the Privilege of Princes, ſhall your Fields have now the ſame Freedom? And he who had before a yearly Tribute from them, loſe it afterwards in you? The Commonwealth muſt be defended at the Coſt of the Commonalty; and whatever Part thereof enjoys this Defence, 'tis moſt agreeing with right, that he ſet his Shoulder and help to bear the Burden: Then if Poſſeſſions are as rightly ſubject to the common Charge as to the yearly Rent, he ſhall be under Charge whoever owns them. If ye talk of Preſcription; we anſwer, in as much longer as this Freedom, or Exemption has been allow'd by the Benignity of Princes, ſo much the ſooner ye ſhould be ready to pay your Part where need requires it; but both holy Writ and civil Powers aboliſh this Preſcription, as appears by Examples here cited. CLERICUS thinks it hard that Kings ſhould reſume the Privileges granted by their Predeceſſors. But MILES urges that any particular Privilege, however long or firmly granted, muſt ſubmit to general Occaſions; and, if it be found hurtful to the Commonwealth, may be repeal'd [10] in time of need, as Solomon, in ſome Matters of Theft, changed ſomewhat even of God's Law CLERICUS would inſinuate, that it was Emperors who eſtabliſh'd theſe Things, and that they might guide the Reins of the Law, but not Kings. MILES looks upon this as a kind of Blaſphemy, proceeding either from Ignorance or Envy; ſo draws an Inſtance from France and the Empire, ſhewing how diſtinctly and independently the one exerciſes its Power from the other. That as the Emperor may make Laws over all his Empire, and add or diminiſh as he thinks good; ſo may the King of France either utterly repel the Emperor's Laws, or change, or clearly baniſh them, and at his Pleaſure ordain new ones. This he concludes with ſeveral Examples from Scripture, proving the Subjection of the Clergy to their Princes; as how by anointing, they acknowledg'd them to be their Princes and Rulers, how they guarded, attended on, and pray'd for them as ſuch, inſomuch that CLERICUS cannot forbear breaking off the Conference, with obſerving that it was drawing towards Night, but he'd anſwer it all in the Morning.

AFTER this manner ends this ancient and remarkable Treatiſe, thus publiſh'd in Engliſh, with expreſs Priviledge, by K. Henry's Printer, no doubt to forward and ſtrengthen the Reformation then in its Infancy. But if the Reader would ſee this Argument, on the King's Eccleſiaſtical Supremacy, as it more particularly regards the Engliſh Nation, deduced from a vaſt Variety of our moſt authentic Inſtruments and Records, we muſt refer him to Mr. Prynne's voluminous Collections on that Head, in three Volumes Folio, of which we ſhall here next take a ſhort Survey, becauſe of the Affinity of the Subject, and its being traced from the earlieſt times; however the Author is thereby ranged in this Number before ſome others who were earlier Writers.

III. The firſt Tome of an exact Chronological Vindication and Hiſtorical Demonſtration of our Britiſh, Roman, Saxon, Daniſh, Norman, Engliſh Kings ſupreme Eccleſiaſtical Juriſdiction in, and over all Spiritual or Religious Affairs, Cauſes, Perſons, as well as Temporal, within their Realms of England, Scotland, Ireland, and other Dominions; from the original Planting of Chriſtian Religion therein, and Reign of Lucius our firſt Chriſtian King, till the Death of King Richard I. A. D. 1199, &c. By William Prynne Eſq a Bencher and Reader of the Honourable Society of Lincoln's-Inn. Printed for the Author, by Tho. Radcliffe, Fol. 1666. Pages 1251, beſides Dedication, &c.

[11]

IT has a large graved Frontiſpiece, wherein the Author appears preſenting his Book to K. Charles II. and the Pope with his Miter falling, &c. with abundance more of Figures attending on them, that take up an Explanation of two Pages.

Then follows a Copious Dedication to the King, wherein the Author acknowledges, that his Obligations to his Majeſty, his Father and Grandfather, by virtue of the Oaths of Supremacy and Allegiance, together with his Majeſty's conferring on him without his Sollicitation, the Office of Keeper of the Records in the Tower with an honourary Penſion, as alſo his Majeſty's Encouragement and that of ſome honourable Lords, engaged him in this Herculean Task.

After this, we have his Epiſtle to the Readers, eſpecially of the Long Robe, wherein he ſays, I here preſent you with the firſt Tome (tho' not firſt Book, by way of Introduction to the whole Work, reſerv'd till laſt) of an exact Chronological Vindication, &c.

In this firſt Tome or ſecond Book, the Author has chronologically ſet forth, 1. The original preaching and planting of Chriſtian Religion in our Iſland. 2. King Lucius his Converſion to Chriſtianity, with his ſupreme Exerciſe of Eccleſiaſtical Juriſdiction. 3. The Roman Emperors Claim and Adminiſtration thereof while they govern'd this Iſle, [12] eſpecially Conſtantine the Great, Son of Helen, the firſt Chriſtian Queen, and of the Pope's forged Donation from that Emperor. 4. The ſame ſupreme Eccleſiaſtical Juriſdiction exerciſed by our Britiſh Kings upon all emergent Occaſions after the Deſertion of the Romans, till the Expulſion of the Britains by the Saxons. 5. The Converſion of our Saxon Kings to Chriſtianity by Auguſtine the Monk, by whom the Pope began his Encroachments upon our Britiſh Biſhops, Kings, and Churches, with their Reſiſtance thereof; alſo the Claim and Practice of the ſaid Eccleſiaſtical Juriſdiction by our Saxon Chriſtian Kings, till ſupplanted by the Danes. 6. The like claimed and exerciſed by the Danes; likewiſe by Edward the Confeſſor, and Harold, with their Oppoſition of Papal Impoſitions. 7. The ſaid Sovereign Ecceſiaſtical Authority claimed and executed by our firſt Norman Kings, till the end of King Richard I. wherewith the Author concludes this Tome, including many Oppoſitions made againſt the Popes and their Inſtruments, particularly, Anſelm, and Tho. Becket; with the Practices of other Popiſh Prelates againſt their Kings. 8. Alſo the Inſtitution of Arch-Biſhopricks and Biſhopricks in England, Ireland, and Scotland; the Subordination of thoſe in Ireland and Scotland to thoſe of Canterbury and York, with the Conteſts of theſe two Primacies againſt each other. 9. Inſtances of the Popes, Cardinals, Arch-Biſhops, Biſhops, Prieſts, Monks, Nuns, &c. their Pride, Covetouſneſs, Ambition, Worldlineſs, Simony, Perjury, Treachery, Hatred, Malice, Bribery, Injuſtice, Corruptions, Incontinency, Abuſes of Excommunications, and other Eccleſiaſtical Cenſures; their great Neglect of all religious Duties, Contempts of their own Canons, Bulls, Decretals, during theſe Kings Reigns, with the Endeavours uſed to redreſs them. 10. The Attempts of Popes and Prelates to introduce their Canon Laws and Decretal, to advance their Authority, and trample down our Municipal Laws, Kings Prerogatives, and People's Liberties, with the Baniſhment thereof out of the Realm. 11. A Vindication of the Right of our Kings to the Sovereign Feodal Dominion of England, Ireland, and Scotland, and Refutation of the forged Claims thereto by the Popes, &c. 12. The Bulls, Letters, of ſeveral Popes and Legates, to our own and other Princes, to advance their Authority, oppreſs, fleece, and invade their Realms, under pretence of relieving the Holy Land againſt the Saracins; to tax, cenſure, command, or abſolve at Pleaſure, and wreek [13] their Malice on thoſe who comply'd not with their Impoſitions. 13. Their canonizing Anſelm, Becket, and other Prelates, as Saints, Martyrs, &c. and adoring them more than God or Chriſt himſelf, for their Treaſons againſt their Princes, to advance the Miter above the Crown, and encourage the like Rebellions by the Examples of theſe ſainted Traitors, and the Pilgrimages to their Shrines. 14. The intolerable Pride, Inſolence, Oppreſſions, Rapines, &c. of our Popiſh Arch-Biſhops, Biſhops, and Clergymen, when promoted to the higheſt Secular Offices, and truſted with the Temporal and Spiritual Sword, which made them double Tyrants; with the Canons of the Popes and Cenſures of Popiſh Writers againſt ſuch their worldly Employments in former Ages. 15. The true original Ground of erecting moſt Monaſteries by our Kings and others, to expiate their Adulteries, Rapes, Murders, or Impieties, merit Salvation, ſave or redeem their Souls from Purgatory. With the Uncleanneſs, Whoredoms, Adulteries of Popiſh Prelates, Prieſts, Monks, Nuns, thro' the Prohibition of Marriages; and of the ancient Suppreſſion of Monaſteries (for ſuch Impurities) by our Kings. 16. The Grievances and Complaints of foreign Princes againſt Popes and their Legates Uſurpations, Extortions, unjuſt Sentences, Excommunications, Interdicts, Deprivations relating to our Kings, or regiſtred in our Hiſtories. 17. Tranſcripts of many Laws and Charters of Chriſtian Princes, evidencing their Sovereign Prerogative over all Eccleſiaſtical Affairs and Perſons, as exemplified in the Chartae Antiquae, and other Rolls in the Tower of London; all other their Records and Writs before King John relating to their Eccleſiaſtical or Civil Government being long ſince periſhed, except ſome Copies of them in ſome old Leiger-Books, belonging to Monaſteries or Hiſtorians already printed. Wherefore, this firſt Tome conſiſts chiefly of Hiſtorical and other Collections, and ſome Charters of our Kings not formerly printed: whereas, all ſucceeding it (eſpecially 3, 4, 5,) will be almoſt wholly made up of uſeful, pertinent, and rare Records, not hitherto publiſhed, unknown to moſt Antiquaries and Lawyers; ‘"which, thro' God's Aſſiſtance, by your kind Acceptation, ſays our Author, of the Tomes now publiſhed, I ſhall be encouraged to communicate to the World with all poſſible Expedition, for the Honour of our King, Kingdoms, Church and Religion."’

[14]At the End of this Volume is an Advertiſement to the Reader, intimating that the late dreadful Fire (of London) having in three Days ſpace turned 88 Pariſhes and their Churches, with the Cathedral-Church of this glorious City, to Aſhes; and among other Loſſes and Miſchiefs to the ſeveral Companies of the City, moſt of all endamaged the Company of Printers and Stationers, moſt of whoſe Habitations, Storehouſes, Shops, Stocks and Books were not only conſumed, but their Aſhes and ſcorch'd Leaves conveyed aloft and diſperſed by the Wind to Places above 16 Miles diſtant, to the Admiration of Beholders; and that among Millions of other Books thus ſuddenly deſtroy'd, while our Author was buſy in ſecuring the publick Records of the Kingdom, his Printer's Houſe with moſt of the printed Copies of this Tome, then finiſh'd at the Preſs (all except the Tables to it) as likewiſe the ſecond Tome formerly publiſhed, and of the firſt Book, and third Tome (wherein he had made ſome Progreſs) were there burnt together with it; not above 70 of them being reſcued from the Fire, to the Author's Damage near 2000 l. wherefore he did not print his intended Tables for ſo few Copies of this Tome, till God ſhould enable him to re-print it, eſpecially ſince the Pages of the re-printed Volume (by reaſon of ſome Additions) will vary from theſe already printed, ſo make the Tables unſuitable thereto.

IV. The ſecond Tome of an exact Chronological Vindication and Hiſtorical Demonſtration of our Kings Supreme Eccleſiaſtical Juriſdiction, &c. from the firſt of King John 1199, to the Death of King Henry III. 1273. By W. Prynne, &c. Printed for the Author, by Thomas Radcliffe. Fol. 1665, with the ſame Cut as before. This Vol. has 1070 Pages, (allowing 224 which it begins at, wanting or miſ-printed,) beſides an Appendix.

THis ſecond Volume, which was firſt printed, is dedicated to Edward Earl of Clarendon, Lord Chancellor of England, &c. who appears therein to have been a principal Encourager of this Work.

The Author has prefix'd to this Tome a brief neceſſary Introduction of 80 Pages, to ſupply the want of his larger Introduction [15] compriſed in the firſt Book of the firſt Tome, not yet compleated, and over-large to be annexed to this, as he at firſt deſign'd.

This Tome, as thoſe intended to ſucceed it, principally conſiſts of memorable Records (in the Tower of London) not formerly publiſhed, intermixed with Hiſtorical Paſſages out of our moſt ancient Hiſtorians of the Romiſh Religion writing in or neareſt theſe Times. They are printed in their proper Dialects, the better to be communicated to foreign Countries, and prevent all Cavils againſt their Tranſlations. All the ſaid Records are carefully compar'd by the Author himſelf with the Originals, which may ſerve to correct, ratify and illuſtrate many obſcure Paſſages in our Hiſtorians, Chronologers, and King John's printed Charter, and ſupply many obſervable Defects of Bulls, Patents, Writs, Records, Tranſactions, relating to the Eccleſiaſtical Supremacy of our Kings.

In his Preface to his Readers, he ſpeaks of others who had curſorily handled the Subject, as, Sir Ed. Coke, Sir John Davis, Sir Chriſtopher Sybthorp, and his learned Friend Sir Roger Twiſden; but never before chronologically and hiſtorically vindicated and demonſtrated by any Lawyers, Antiquaries, Hiſtorians, Chronologers, or Divines. Then he gives his Reaſons for praeponing this ſecond Volume, in point of Publication before the firſt. The Uſes and Benefits of it to our Kings and their Officers of State, Prelates, Divines, Judges, Lawyers, Nobility and Gentry in both Kingdoms, and all Profeſſors of the Proteſtant Faith, or Romiſh Religion.

The brief neceſſary Introduction ſets forth, what Sovereign Eccleſiaſtical Juriſdiction is; the Claims of Popes and Biſhops of Rome; their fictitious Titles; their Practices and Doctrines; the pretended Monarchy of St. Peter, and the imaginary Succeſſion of the Popes, with their Claims, and the Grounds refuted from their own Practices, and Aſſertions of their own Writers.

The Contents of this ſecond Tome beginning Book 3. Cap. 1, p. 227. are, many Evidences of King John's Eccleſiaſtical Supremacy, with his ſtrenuous Defence of the Rights of his Crown againſt Papal and Prelatical Uſurpations till 15 Years of his Reign.

Of his unworthy Proſtitution of his Rights, his Crown, and Himſelf, after ſo many glorious Conteſts, to the Uſurpations of Pope Innocent, and his own traytorous Clergy. [16] Of his reſigning his Kingdoms by a Charter to the Pope, with the Validity thereof; his Oath of Homage and Fealty to the Pope. His Oppoſition of his encroaching Biſhops and rebellious Clergy, who ſtirred up the Barons Wars againſt him, after they had forc'd him to reſign his Crown and proteſted againſt his Unkingly Actions, tho' the Effect of their Procurement, &c.

The Succeſſion of King Henry III. His Coronation, Oath, Homage, and Compliance with the Pope againſt his own Will and his Nobles. Their Complaints againſt the Popes and Clergy's Exactions both in England and Ireland; with the chief Ecleſiaſtical Tranſactions therein, during the firſt 20 Years of his Reign.

Many Records, Patents, and Hiſtorical Teſtimonies of this King's Supreme Juriſdiction in all Eccleſiaſtical Affairs in England and Ireland. The intolerable Proceedings of Popes and their Agents to the Prejudice of the King and his Realms. Encroachments of the Engliſh and Iriſh Prelates upon the King's Temporal Courts, Rights, Dignity, and Liberties; with the principal Eccleſiaſtical Affairs of England and Ireland, from the 21ſt to the End of the 40th of the ſaid King Henry III.

Evidences from Law-Books and Records, manifeſting this King's Eccleſiaſtical as well as Temporal Supremacy. The Pope's Encroachments on his Prerogatives and his Subjects Properties, with their Oppoſitions; with the illegal Uſurpations of our Popiſh Prelates and Eccleſiaſtical Synods upon the King's Temporal Rights, Courts, Crown, Dignity, and People's Privileges; with the Prohibitions, Writs, and Mandates iſſued to reſtrain them; and other eccleſiaſtical Tranſactions between the King, Pope and Court of Rome, from the End of the 40th of Henry III. till the Expiration of his Reign, A. D. 1272.

Then follow ſeveral large Indexes; 1. Of Authors quoted in this Tome. 2. Of the Engliſh and other Abbies, Priories, &c. 3. Of Engliſh and Welſh Arch-Biſhopricks, Biſhopricks, &c. Elections, Actions, Treaſons, and all things relating to them in this Tome. 4. Of the Iriſh. 5. Of foreign Arch-Biſhopricks, Biſhopricks, &c. herein mentioned. 6. Of the Engliſh, Iriſh, and other Archdeaconries, Deaneries, Archdeacons, Deans. 7. Of the Engliſh and other Earls. 8. Of Chief Officers of State in England and Ireland. 9. Barons, Knights, and other principal Perſons. 10. Popes of Rome. 11. Romiſh Cardinals. 12. Legates, Nuncio's, Agents in [17] England and Ireland, or other Dominions. 13. Cities, Caſtles, Churches, Pariſhes, &c. 14. Of the principal Matters, with the Names and Actions of our own and other Kings, Emperors, &c. 15. Of ſacred Texts occaſionally abuſed by the Pontificans, or uſed to refute their Corruptions.

V. The Hiſtory of King John, King Henry III. and the moſt illuſtrious King Edward I. wherein the ancient Sovereign Dominion of the Kings of England, Scotland, France, and Ireland, over all Perſons in all Cauſes, is aſſerted and vindicated, againſt all Incroachments and Innovations whatſoever. The Miſtakes in ſome printed Statutes, Canoniſts, Law-Books, Hiſtories, and other Matters of Moment are rectified and reſcued from Oblivion. Collected out of the Ancient Records in the Tower of London, and now publiſhed for the better Advancement of Learning, Maintenance of the King's Supremacy, the Subjects Liberties, and the Laws of the Realm. By William Prynne Eſq a late Bencher, and Reader of Lincoln's-Inne, and Keeper of his Majeſty's Records in the Tower of London. And finiſhed a little before his Death. London, printed by T. Radcliffe, &c. Fol. 1670.

THE Dedication, by the Author himſelf, to the Earl of Angleſey, Sir Harbottle Grimſton, Sir Matthew Hale, Sir Edw. Atkins, Sir Wadham Windham, Sir Richard Ramſford, Sir Robert Atkins, and the reſt of the Worſhipful Readers of Lincoln's-Inne, is dated from his Study in Lincoln's-Inne, July 28. 1668.

In which he calls this third Tome by the ſame Title with the former; and prefixes what concerns the Reigns of King John and King Henry III. but by way of Appendix to his ſecond Tome. But the principal or chief Subject Matter of this Volume compriſes the Reign of glorious King Edward I. The whole conſiſts, chiefly, of ſuch Records, Writs, Prohibitions, Bulls, Patents, Epiſtles, Procurations, and Negociations during their Reigns, not formerly publiſhed, as are proper for the reſpective Cognizance of the ſaid Patrons, and may aſſiſt them in the Diſcharge of their honourable Places, and Truſts of Judicature, to which they are moſt of [18] them advanced thro' his Majeſty's Favour, for their Defence of his Supreme Eccleſiaſtical Authority. After this he apologizes to them for his Delay of this Volume, and ſome ſeeming Redundancies. Then gives them an Account what Rolls he had read in the Pipe-Office, and other Treaſuries of Records in the Exchequer; particularly the Great Rolls in the Pipe-Office, from 29 to 34 incluſive of K. Henry II. ſoon after the Murder of that Arch-Rebel, as well as Archbiſhop Thomas Becket, and diſcovering ſeveral Fines, impoſed by the Judges on ſundry Perſons, eſtreated into the Exchequer, being the ancienteſt Records of this kind, and not before taken notice of, he here preſents them in his Dedication, &c.

Next follows, as in his former Volumes, his Addreſs to the ingenious Readers, eſpecially Profeſſors and Students of the Common Law and Engliſh Antiquities, in near twelve Sheets; dated from his Chamber in the Tower, Aug. 18, 1668. And this is follow'd by a Table of the Chapters and their Contents in this third Tome: Which is again ſucceeded by a ſhort Prologue; wherein having ſhewn the Cauſes of his omitting in his ſecond Tome, and Appendix, ſundry pertinent Records, during the Reigns of King John and King Henry the Third; he here preſents them in a diſtinct Chapter, before he proceeds to the Reign of King Edward the Firſt, with brief Obſervations on, and from ſome of them; therefore begins with

Book V. Chap. I. Which contains ſundry Records, Bulls, Writs, Prohibitions, Attachments for Suits in Courts Chriſtian, not formerly printed; and ſome Hiſtorical Paſſages during the Reigns of King John and Henry III. relating to their Eccleſiaſtical Juriſdiction in England and Ireland, their Tranſactions with Popes, their Legates, Nuncio's, Delegates, Prelates; with their Attempts againſt Regal Rights, Prerogatives, Liberties, Properties; and the Oppoſitions of theſe Kings, their Nobles, Parliaments, Councils, and Judges againſt them, beginning thus;—Tome 2. Page 227. Line 3. after Chriſtians, inſert—King John was no ſooner poſſeſs'd of the Realm of England, &c.

This additional Part of King John ends Page 37. And there commences the like Additions of King Henry III. which begin thus—Tome 2. Page 370. Line 43. after Videbant, inſert—Upon the untimely Death of King John by Poiſon, Anno 1216, &c. which ends Folio 133. b. In the next Page begins

[19]Chap II. containing ſeveral Records and Hiſtorical Paſſages, evidencing the Eccleſiaſtical Supremacy of our renowned King Edward I. in, and over all Perſons, Cauſes Spiritual, as well as Temporal, in England, Ireland, and other his Dominions. His Oppoſitions againſt the Papal, Prelatical Uſurpations on the Rights of his Crown, Laws, Subjects Liberties, &c. The chief Tranſactions, Bulls, Letters, between him and the Pope's Court of Rome, from the beginning of the firſt to the End of the tenth Year of his Reign; with ſome other Particulars to the End of p. 297. The next Page begins

Chap. III. comprizing ſeveral Evidences out of our Records and Hiſtories of King Edward I. his Sovereign Eccleſiaſtical Juriſdiction, &c. in England, Ireland, and Scotland, and his other Dominions, with the Popes and Biſhops various Encroachments thereon, and the Oppoſitions made by himſelf, Parliaments, Councils, Judges, &c. With the Negotiations between him and the Popes, Cardinals, Court of Rome; and the Succeſſions of Biſhops in England, Ireland, and the Popes in Rome, from the beginning of the eleventh to the End of the twentieth Year of his Reign, to p. 548. The next Page begins with

Chap. IV. containing King Edward I. his Claim and Exerciſe of Sovereign Eccleſiaſtical Juriſdiction, over all Perſons and Cauſes, within England, &c. His Oppoſitions, Prohibitions, Edicts againſt the Popes, Biſhops, and other Clergymen's Uſurpations thereon; eſpecially Pope Boniface the Eighth, his Conſtitutions prohibiting all Clergymen under Pain of Excommunication, to grant or pay Taxes or Subſidies to any King, and for Kings to demand or receive them without the Pope's precedent Licence: And his Bulls concerning his Sovereign Dominion, Title to the Realm of Scotland, and other Kingdoms. The Negotiations between King Edward, the Popes, and the Court of Rome; with the Succeſſions of Popes, Engliſh and Iriſh Biſhops, and other Church and State-Affairs, faithfully collected out of the Records and Hiſtories, from the beginning of the twenty-firſt to the End of the thirtieth Year of his Reign, ending p. 979. The next Page begins

Chap. V. containing the Impriſonment and Death of Pope Boniface the Eighth. The Letters, Bulls, Negotiations between King Edward I. and that Pope's Succeſſors, with their Succeſſion in the See of Rome. This King's Acts of Eccleſiaſtical Juriſdiction over the Churches, Prelates, Clergy of [20] England, &c. His Prohibitions, Statutes, Edicts againſt papal Proviſions, Exactions, and prelatical Uſurpations upon the Rights of his Crown and Temporal Courts. The Succeſſion of Archbiſhops, Biſhops, Abbots, and other Prelates in England, &c. with other Particulars relating to their publick Affairs, from the beginning of the thirty-firſt Year of King Edward I. till his Death in the thirty-fifth Year of his Reign. Collected out of the Records of thoſe Years, and other Hiſtorians, ending p. 1203.

Then follows (p. 1204.) a ſupplemental Appendix to the Reign of King Edward I. in which is recited ſuch Writs of Prohibition, Epiſtles, Bulls, and other Records, as the Author diſcover'd too late to be inſerted in their proper Places of this Hiſtorical Vindication; which are here ranged in an Hiſtorical Order, and each referr'd to its proper Place in the ſaid laſt Reign, according as their Dates, or other Circumſtances directed him, together with the Pages and Lines where they moſt properly may be inſerted in the next Edition. With this Supplement the whole Work finiſhes at Page 1307. Then comes an Advertiſement to the Readers, informing us of fourteen ſeveral Tables he had made to this third Tome, in an Alphabetical and Chronological Method, after the Manner of the preceeding Volume: And we are referr'd to ſuch Tables in this laſt Volume alſo, at the End of its Table of Contents. But ſuch Tables or Indexes were omitted, at leaſt in a very fair Set of theſe ſcarce and elaborate Books, whence this ſhort View of them is extracted*.

VI. Here bigynneth a Tretys that ſuffiſith to ech Chreſten Man to lyven after. MS. on Vellum, containing 119 Leaves, 8vo.

THis Work is introduced by the Author in the following Words; ‘This Tretys compilid of a pore Caitif, and nedi of gooſtli Help of alle Criſten Peple, bi the greet Merci and Help of God, ſchal teche ſymple Men and Wommen, of good Wille, the riȝt wey to hevene; if thei wole biſie hem to have it in mynde, and worche yere after; withoute Multiplication of manye Bookis, &c.

After this Preface, follows a Diſcourſe on Belief, introducing the Apoſtle's Creed, which is commented upon; next the Ten Commandments, with a Comment alſo, and the Charge of them; to which is prefix'd the Author's Prologue. Then the Pater-noſter, with its Prologue and Comment. This is follow'd by The Council of Chriſt; the Virtue of Patience; a Treatiſe of Temptation; the Charter of Heaven; of Ghoſtly Battle; the Name of Jeſu; the Love of Jeſu; of Meekneſs; the Effect of Will; active and contemplative Life; the Mirror of Maidens, in five Chapters, with the Prologue of Chaſtity: At the Concluſion of which Mirror are theſe Words; ‘Here eendyth this Book that is clepid the Pore Caitif. And here, by a kind of Prologue on the Contrariety [22] between God and the World, is introduced a ſhort Treatiſe of Four Errors, that is, Worldlineſs, Fleſhly Luſt, Falſe Covetouſneſs, and Vain Glory. This is ſucceeded by the Mirror of Sinners, with a Treatiſe How every Man ſhould comfort and ſtrengthen his Soul by ſeven Gifts of the Holy Ghoſt; after which we have the Seven Deadly Sins and Seven Virtues againſt them, and the whole concludes with the Mirror of Matrimony *.

VII. In this Boke is conteined the Names of the Baylyfs, Cuſtoſe, Mayers, and Sherefs of the Cyte of London, from the Tyme of Kynge Richard the Fyrſt; and alſo the Artycles of the Chartour and Lybartyes of the ſame Cyte; and of the Chartour and Lybartyes of England: with other dyvers Maters, good and neceſſary for every Cytezen to underſtond and know, &c. Fol.

THis Book cannot be better deſcrib'd than by a recital of the ſeveral Chapters in the Table or Kalendar prefix'd; only [23] we ſhall abridge ſome which are clogg'd with a Superfluity of Expreſſion, cuſtomary in the Times when it was written, and enlarge others with ſome Particulars from the Body of the Work itſelf: And ſo the Contents will appear as follows.

The Names of the Baylyfs, Cuſtos, Mayres, and Sherifs of the Cyte of London, from the Tyme of Kynge Rycharde the Fyrſt.—The Artycles of the Charter and Liberties of the Cite of London, being 112.—Copy of the hole Charter of London, of the firſt Graunt, and of the Confirmacion of diveſs Kyngis.—The Acte for Correccyon of the Errours and wrong Judgmentis in London.—The Act for Trees above 20 Yeres growying to pay no Tythys.—The Charge of every Ward in London at a Fyveten.—The Ordynaunce for Aſſyſe of Brede in London.—Copy of Pope Nicholas his Bulle for the Offryng to the Curatts of the Paryſſhens of the Cite of London, in Latyn and in Engliſh, 1453.—Pope Innocent's Letter for the ſame.—The Compoſycyon of all Offryng in London and Suburbys, 1457.—The Ordynaunce for Brokers ocupyeng in London.—The Nombre and Names [24] of all the Parys Chirches, and all other Chirches in London and Suburbes.—The Ordynaunce for wullen Clothe in London.—Articles deſired by the Comouns of London for Reformacyon of Thyngys to the ſame.—The Charge of the Queſt of Warmot in every Warde.—Artycles of the good Governaunce of the Cite of London.—Artycles of Preeſters and other Mounkes in the Cyte of London.—Agaynſt the Perel of Fyer.—The Othe of the Bedel of the Warde,—of the Conſtables,—of the Sherefs Sergeauntys,—of Frankpledg of Foryners,—of the Scavangers,—of every Free-Man made in the Cyte.—For Brokers in London.—Ordynance for the Aſſyſe of tall Wood and Bellet in London.—Marchaundyſes whereof Scavage ought to be taken in London.—Theſe Thyngis that longyth to Tronage and Poundage of the Kynge in the Cyte of London.—The Fourme of makynge Oblygacyons in divers Maners.—Of makyng Quytauncys in divers Maner.—Byllys of Payment in dyverſe Maner.—Letters of Atorne.—Endentures.—Letters of Lycens.—Of Sale.—Of Exchange.—Of Awarde by Arbytrement.—Copy of the Kyngys Proteccyon Ryall.—Another Form.—Copy of the Kyngys Chartour grauntyd for Offences.—Fourmes of Supplycacyons to the Kynge and other Lordys.—Of Complayntes to the Kyng, &c.—The Ordynaunce of the Cyte for Tenauntes of Houſes, what Thynges they ſhal not remove at theyr departynge.—Copy of the Othe gyven to the Mayre and Aldyrmen, &c. the Tyme of Kynge Herry VI.—The Nombre of Paris Chirches Townes and Byſhop Chyrches and Sherys in England, and the Compaſſe of the Lande.—Copy of a Carte compaſyng the Circuite of the Worlde and the Compace of every yland comprehendyd in the ſame.—The hole Pardon of Rome graunted by dyvers Popes.—The vii Ages of the Worlde from Adam.—The vii Ages of Man.—Copy of a Letter ſent out of the Lande of Meſſye into the Land of Garnade before the Conqueſt thereof 1486.—Copy of a Letter from the Soudane of Babylon to the Pope 1488.—The Oracyon of the Meſſanger to the Pope.—The Crafte of Graffynge and Plantynge of Trees and alterynge of Frutys as well in Colours as in Taſte.—A Treatyſe of the 4 Elementys and 4 Seaſons &c. and of the canyculare Dayes.—The Crafte to make a Watter to have Spottys out of wullen Cloth—The Fourme and Meſur to mete Lande by.—The general Curſe to be declared 4 Tymes in the Yere.—The Article in the Bull of Pope Nicholas 1453, for the Oblacyons in [25] London every Offeryng-Day.—A Provyſion by Acte of Parlement to brynge Kynge Herry VI. out of Dett 382000l. (herein it appears the King's Livelihood was but 5000l. per ann. and that the yearly Expence of his Houſhold was 24000.)—The Craft to make Corke for Dyars.—To make Ypocras, Clarey, Braket.—Gunpowder.—Orchell.—Pygell to kepe Sturgen.—Veneger ſhortely—Percely to growe in an Our ſpace.—The Meſours and Reckenyng of Rennyſhe Wyne in Antwarpe and Dordreyght and Burdeux, with the Gawge of the ſame.—The Weyght and Maner of beynge of Irne and the Dyfference of the Weyghtes in England.—The Acte of Parlement to compelle the Jugis of Spyrituall Lawe to graunt ony Party the Copy of the Lybell for ony Cauſe.—The Rate of the Kyngis Cuſtume and Subſyde of Marchaundyſes regyſtred in the Eſcheker.—The Compoſicyon betwayne the Marchaunts of England and the Towne of Antwarp for the Coſtis of there Marchaundyſys brought to the ſayd Towne, and havyng thens.—A Ballade of the Notbrowne Mayde. [Note, this curious old Ballad has been reviv'd by Mr. Prior.]—The Rekenynge to bey Wares in Flaunders.—The Offyce that belongeth to a Biſhop or to a Preyſt.—Copy of the Chartour of the Foreſt of England.—The Artycles of the Chartour and Lybarties of England call'd Magna Carta.—Narracion of them that ben ſhreven and not contryte.—The Valewe and Stynt of the Benefyce of Saynt Magnus at London Bridge yerely to the Perſon An. 1494.—Copy of a Save-Conduyte.—Copys of Certificats in dyvers Maners.—The Copy of Spycery (Drugs, &c. and the ſeveral Prices.)—The Rekenynge for Grocery Ware.—The Crafte to make Ynk.—The Servycys (or Courſes and Bill of Fare in the Feaſt) at the Stallacyon of the Byſſhop of Ely, Morton.—The Waye from Calyce to Rome through Fraunce.—The Copy of a Teſtament 1473.—The Crafte to make Soepe.—To brewe Beer.—The Patrons of all the Beneficis in London.—The Temperalities of dyvers Deanryes Archedekenys and other Placys of Religion.—The Corodyes in all the Abbeys of England.—The Weyght of Eſſex Cheſe, and of Suffolke, in England, and the Weyght in Antwarpe and Barough.—The Charge and Coſte of makynge Heryng and Sprots at the Coeſte.—Copy of a Letter to my Lord Cardynall.—The Lawes and Belyve of the Saraſyns (from Sir J. Mandevyle.)—The yerly Rentes of London Brydge.—The Artycles upon whiche to enquyre in the Viſitacyons of Ordynaryes of Chirchys.—The Artycles found [26] by the Inquyſytours at the Viſitacyon laſt done in the Chirche of Saynt Magnus.—A Compleynte made to Kynge Herry the VIth by the Duke of Glouceſter upon the Cardynal of Wynceſter.—Artycles that the Kyngis Counſell conceyved of the Grefe that my Lorde of Glouceſter had ſurmyſed upon my Lord of Wyncheſter Chauncheler of England.—The Anſwere of my Lorde of Wyncheſter unto the Grefe of my Lorde of Glouceſter.—Copy of the Reconyſaunce by which bothe Lordis were bounden to abyde the Arbytrement of the Kyngis Counſayle, An. 4 Hen. VI.

VIII. The COSMOGRAPHICAL GLASSE, conteinyng the pleaſant Principles of Coſmographie, Geographie, Hydrographie, or Navigation. Compiled by William Cuningham, Doctor in Phyſicke. Excuſſum Londini in Officina Joan. Daii, Typographi. Anno 1559. Folio, pages 202. beſides Dedication, Preface, and Index; with many curious wooden Cuts.

THis ſcarce and learned old Treatiſe, ſo remarkable both in Beauty of the Print and Ornaments, and Rarity of the Subject, for a Book of ſuch Antiquity, has a Frontiſpiece from a neat wooden Cut, wherein thoſe Sciences, leading to the Studies here treated of, are repreſented, with ſome of the Ancients who were eminent therein: And at the Bottom of the ſaid Title are theſe ſix Lines;

In this Glaſſe, if you will beholde
The ſterry Skie, and Yearth ſo wide;
The Seas alſo, with Windes ſo colde;
Yea and thyſelfe, all theſe to guide:
What this Type meane, firſt learne a right;
So ſhall the gayne thy Travaill quight.

In his Dedication to Robert Duddeley, of the mooſte noble Order of the Garter Knight, Maiſter of the Horſe to the Quene's mooſte excellente Majeſtye, &c. he tells his Lordſhip, that Men may behold, in this Glaſs, the Heavens with her Planets and Stars, the Earth with her beautiful Regions, and the Seas with her merveilous Increaſe; and that [27] if his Lordſhip will take this Work into his Tuition, he ſhall be boulden'd to preſent him with others of his Labours, the particular Titles of ſeven whereof he here recites*.

After this Dedication, follow ſome Latin Verſes by Dr. Gilbert Barckley, and Tho. Langley of Cambridge, in Praiſe of the Author and his Work: At the Back of which is a wooden Print of the Author in his Doctor's Habit.

Then follows his Preface, ſetting forth the Benefits of theſe Coſmographical Studies. Herein he tells us, they are daily more and more perceiv'd; for what Country or Iſland is not in our Age ſearch'd out? So exemplifies in Veſputius Americus. And concludes the ſaid Preface with obſerving, that by this Glaſs, ‘"ſuch as are delighted in travailing as well by Land as Water, ſhall receive no ſmall Comfort; and the other ſort, by it may alſo protract and ſet out particular Cards for any Countrye, Region or Province, or elſe the univerſal Face of the Earth in a generale Map. And that the Precepts might ſeme facile and plaine, I have (ſays he) reduced it into the Forme of a Dialoge; the Names of the Perſonages indede fained, but yet moſt aptly ſerving our Inſtitution. In which SPONDAEUS (repreſenting the Scholar) maketh Doubtes, asketh Queſtions, objecteth; yea and, ſometyme, digreſſeth not from the Imaginations of the groſſe witted. Unto which, PHILONICUS (ſupplying the Office of a Teacher) anſwereth to all Objections and giveth Praecepts. What Diligence I have given in time of the Printing, to the Correction hereof; and alſo in deviſing ſundry newe Tables, Pictures, Demonſtrations, and Praecepts; that you may eaſily judge by readyng of the ſame Worke. Alſo what Charges the Printer hath ſuſteined, that his good Will might not be wanting, that ſhall be evident, conferrying his beautiful Pictures and Letters with ſuch Workes as herto hath bene publiſh'd. And thus I leave the with [28] my COSMOGRAPHICALL GLASS; requirying that theſe my Travayles and Labours be not rewarded with Ingratitude or ill Reporte. And if for the Difficultie of the Worke, any Errour eſcape; remember I am the firſte that ever in our Tongue have written of this Argument, and therefore am conſtrained to find out the Pathe, &c."’ At Norwich, the 18th of July, 1559.

The whole Work is divided into five Books, in the firſt whereof, after ſome general Heads, leading to that Knowledge in Arithmetic and Geometry, which is requiſite for this Art, he defines Coſmography and Geometry: Then gives you three Figures or Pictures; the firſt repreſenting Coſmography, by a Globe of the Heavens, containing the Earth; the ſecond, Geography, repreſenting the Earth and Waters only; and the laſt, Chorography, or the Repreſentation of ſome one Town or City, which he illuſtrates by an accurate Map of the excellent City of NORWYCHE, as the Forme of it is, ſays he, at this preſent 1558; with many Alphabetical References to an Explanation, at the bottom, of the principal Places ſet forth in the ſame, (which Map has been look'd upon as a very great Curioſity:) Hence he proceeds to define what the World is, and to ſhew that it is made of two Parts. The Number alſo of the Heavens; with the Errors of ſome Ancients. That only eight Heavens were found out by the Egyptians, that Ptolemy found out the ninth, and Alphonſus the tenth: So gives us a Figure of the Coeleſtial Sphere. Next he deſcribes what a Centre is, what the Axis, and what a Diameter; what the Poles are, what an oblique Sphere, how a Sphere differs from a Circle. The Number of Circles in a Sphere, what the Horizon is, the Diviſion of it, with Figures of the ſeveral ſorts; what the Meridian is, the Zenith, Antipodes, the Equinoctial; with the Uſe of the Horizon, Meridian, and Equinoctial Circles: What the Zodiac is, and the Ecliptic, what a Sign is, what a Degree, and what a Minute; with the Septentrional Signes, Meridional Signes, and the Uſe of the Zodiac. A Table of many notable fixed Stars, with their ſeveral Names, their true Longitude, Latitude, and Declination, faithfully rectified unto the Year 1559, profitable for finding out the Latitude of any Country or Place. Then we have the two Declinations of every Planet diſtinguiſh'd, with the Diverſity of the Sun's Declination from Ptolemy's Time to ours, and the Manner how to find out, by a Quadrant, the Sun's Declination. After which we have a Table, in two [29] Parts, of Declination of the Ecliptic, in Degrees, Minutes, and Seconds, from the Equinoctial; anſwering to the Sun's greateſt Declination, 23 Degrees, 28 Minutes; being the true Declination of the Sun in this (our Author's) Age, which Table is more copiouſly uſeful than Orontius, or Doctor Record's Table, and yet not ſo prolix as Eraſmus Reignholt's. Next we have the Poles of the Zodiac explain'd, what the Summer Tropic, and what the Winter is. Whence the four Seaſons of the Year are derived, what the two Colures are, the Artick Circle, and the Antartick defin'd, from Proclus, as moſt of the other Diſtinctions are. Thus PHILONICUS having learn'd his Scholar what the ſix greater Circles of the Sphere are, and what the four leſſer, gives him the reaſon why they are ſo diſtinguiſh'd from John de Sacro-Boſco. Then repreſenting theſe ſeveral Parts together in one Figure or Picture, he concludes his Account of the Celeſtial Sphere, and ſo proceeds to that which comprehends the Elementary Region, obſerving why it can conſiſt but of four Elements; their Order and Situation, the Diviſion of the Air, where Comets, Hail and Snow are engendred, what the Earth is, Diverſity of Opinions touching its Form, Objections againſt its Rotundity anſwer'd from Cleomedes, alſo from the Example of two Eclipſes of the Moon, and Obſervation of ſome Stars, with Reference for further Proof to Ptolemy, Philo, Ariſtotle, Reignholt, Orontius, John de Sacro-Boſco, and Maſter Recorde; who does almoſt repeat all their Arguments, in his Caſtle of Knowledge. Here, joining together all the Parts which have been ſeverally before treated of, in one Type or Figure of a compleat Sphere, repreſenting both the Heavens and the Earth, he concludes with making his Scholar give him a Recapitulation of what he had learnt in this firſt Book; ſo proceeds to

The ſecond Book, &c. in which is plainly expreſſed the Order and Number of Zones, Parallels and Climates; alſo ſundry ways for the exact finding out of the Meridian Line, the Longitude and Latitude of Places, with many other Precepts belonging to the making of a Carte or Mappe. After an ingenious Introduction of this Book, and Repetition of what is taught in it, the Author, ſeeing the Matter thereof chiefly depends upon Dimenſion and Menſuration, firſt ſhews what Dimenſion is; what a Point, what a Line, what a Platform, and what a Body is. Then gives us a Table of Meaſure; the quantity of Helvetian and of Engliſh Miles; the different Signification of Longitude, both in Aſtronomy and Coſmography; [30] what Latitude is; how to find out the Circuit of the Earth and the Vertical Point, with the Diverſity of Opinions about the Circuit of the Earth: Then, of what Parts are habitable, and what not. Of the Zones, and the Error of Polybius; the Objection of ſome being uninhabitable anſwered; of the Inhabitants, who are diſtinguiſhed by the Diverſity of their Shadows, as, the Amphiſcii, or double-ſhadowed; the Aſcii, or People without Shadows; the Heteroſcii, or thoſe who have their Shadows on one Side, as we who have our Shadow directly North, and the Antipodes, who have theirs to the South; laſtly, the Periſcii, who have their Shadow going about the Horizon. Here follows a Table of Shadows, ſhewing their Proportion to the Gnomon (it being divided into 60 parts) for every Degree of the Sun's Altitude; and alſo the quantity of the Shadow in every Country, Region and City, thro' the univerſal Earth, when the Sun is in the Equinoxial and Solſticial Points. Then returning to the Zones, he ſhews how they differ from Climates, with Ptolemy's Diviſion of Climates; next, what Parallels are, exemplified in a Figure. The number of Climates, alſo in a Figure; and Quantity both of them and Parallels; with a Table containing the number of Parallels and Climates, with the Elevation of the Pole-Artic, and Quantity of the longeſt Day and Night anſwering hereto. Of South Parallels, and the Reaſon why Avicenne thought the Air moſt temperate under the Equinoxial; which introduces a Conjecture where Paradiſe was ſeated, and Lyra's Interpretation that the Fiery Sword was the burning Zone, with a Conjecture where Hell is ſeated. After which, we have Glarian's Manner of finding out the Noon-Stead or Meridian Line, and four other Methods alſo of finding the ſame. The Order of finding the Height of any Planet or fix'd Star in the Noonſtead Line by Night. Then follows a Table of the Sun's Meridian Altitude above the Horizon, calculated for every Degree in the Zodiac, reſpecting the Elevation of the Pole-Artic, at Norwich 52 Degrees 10 Min. and the Sun's Declination 23 Deg. 28 Min. The manner to find out the Elevation of the Pole above the Horizon, and the Latitude of any Region, City or Town, ſeveral ways; eſpecially by the Aſtronomy-Ring. Of finding the Longitude of any Place, according to the Ancients, by Eclipſes of the Moon. That Atreus found out the time of Eclipſes. The Cauſe of the Moon's Eclipſe. A Calculation of ſuch Eclipſes of the Moon as ſhall happen from the Year 1560 till 1605; applying [31] the Time of their Beginning in Years, Days, Hours and Minutes, unto the Meridian of Norwich exactly, which is 22 Degrees and 30 Minutes, from the Canary Iſlands: with the Figures of all the ſaid Eclipſes. How to find the Longitude of Regions by an Eclipſe. How to turn the Hours of the Day into Degrees and Minutes of the Equinoxial, with a Table for that purpoſe. Apian's Way of finding out the Longitude of Places by the Jacob's Staff, &c. The Method to be taken when the Moon is Weſt, or Eaſt of the Star; further illuſtrated by an Example of finding the Longitude of Norwich. Another Method of finding the Longitude of any Region in every Place as well by Day as Night, and at every Hour, by means of a little Clock, ſuch as they uſed to wear in the faſhion of a Tablet; whereof were then made as excellent without Temple-Bar as any which were brought from Flanders: with the Particulars of this Experiment ends this ſecond Book.

In the third Book is expreſs'd the making and Portraiture of the Face of the Earth, both in Cartes particular, and alſo univerſal: with divers Things incident thereto. Here having ſhewn what a chief Requiſite the Art of Drawing or Delineating is in the Study of Coſmography, and what noble Rewards the Ancients had in ſtore for the Inventors of Science; when they not only gave them abundance of Treaſure, but alſo deified them for the ſame: The Author deſcends to explain what an Iſland is; what a Peninſula; an Iſthmus; a Continent; then exhibits them all in a Map together; with an Anſwer to an Objection againſt the Form of the Terreſtrial Globe; ſo begins with teaching the Manner of making a particular Carte for any Region, and here draws up a Table of the Quantity and Proportion of the Equinoxial, or any great Circle, to every Parallel, North and South therefrom. Hence we are led to a particular Example, containing the whole Proceſs in making a Map of England, and ſhewing how the Work chiefly depends on the Meridian Line, appointing thereby the Longitudes; and by Parallels of Climates, whoſe uſe in a Carte is to limit the Latitude from the Equinoxial: This is illuſtrated by a Draught or Figure. From hence we are taught how to deſcribe three or four Regions in one Map, or as many as are contained in one eighth Part of the Earth; and after the particular Inſtructions for this Operation, we have the Form alſo thereof delineated to the Eye. So we proceed to the Compoſition of a Map for one half of the Earth, whereof alſo we have a [32] Draught. And this is followed by the Method of making a Map for the whole Earth, which we are again further acquainted with by lineal Repreſentations: And here we have a Table of the Segments and Parts of the Equinoxial, drawn in a plain Platform, anſwering to the Circumference of Parallels. A little further is another Table of Regions and Cities ſubject to the Signs and Planets. Then we have the Figure of an Inſtrument, ſerving to make a Map, without knowing Longitude or Latitude, which is here called a Geographical Plain Sphere, by which not only the Diſtance of one Place from another may be found in the Map, but of the Places themſelves, in Miles alſo from one another; as by a Demonſtration here figured out appears: And with this Experiment ends the third Book.

The Fourth Book lays down ſuch neceſſary Principles and Rules as are to be obſerved in Hydrography, and Navigation. Herein it is propoſed not to ſhew the minute Difference of one Veſſel from another, nor their Names, nor their Burden, but how to correct the Errors in guiding and directing them. And firſt, we have a Diviſion of the Waters, from the general Name of the Ocean, down to Lakes and Ponds. The Cauſe of Spring and Ebb Tides. Cauſe of Ebbing and Flowing. How to find the Age of the Moon at all times. The Epact, with a Table to find it. A Table of the Sun's riſing and going down throughout the Year; whereby to find how long the Moon ſhines every Night. A Table ſhewing how long the Moon ſhines in our Horizon. Another ſhewing in what Places, chiefly on the Engliſh Shore, the Moon makes full Seas. How to know the exact Time of Ebbing and Flowing, with a Table for finding out Ebbs and Floods in the Coaſts of England, Scotland, Ireland, Dutchland, and France. A Deſcription of the Wind. The Number, Diviſion, and Nature of the Winds. The new Diviſion of the Horizon into 32 Parts, by the learned Hydrographers, ſeemingly in our Author's Time; who here diſpoſes them into a Type or Figure. Of the Mariners Compaſs, unknown to the Ancients, found out by Gemma, and a Draught of it. The Praiſe of the Needle; the Obſervations of Jofrancus in what Places it has erred. How to correct the Needle in Day-time, by help of the Sun; in the Night, by ſome fixed Star. Of the Errors in deſcribing the Shipman's Chart, and the way how to ſail by Longitudes and Latitudes. How to direct a Ship to any Port. How to know the Form of the Lode-Star; and to know in what Place they are who are driven [33] from their Courſe. With theſe Diſcoveries and Directions in Coſmography, Geography, and Navigation, our Author ends this fourth Book.

The Fifth Book deſcribes the Parts of the Earth, particularly according to late Obſervations; with the Longitudes and Latitudes of Regions, Provinces, Iſlands, Cities, Towns, Villages, and Hills: Alſo the Commodities, Natures, Laws, Rights, and Cuſtoms of many Countries, and their Inhabitants. This begins with a particular Deſcription of Europe, containing Chriſtendom and part of Turky; beginning with Ireland, as Ptolemy does: In which, after a ſhort Account of the Products and Character of the People, and Dimenſions of the Iſland, he notes the chief Places, with their Longitude and Latitude: So proceeds to England, which is treated of in the ſame manner. Then Scotland, Iceland, Corſica, Sicily, Sardinia, Majorca and Minorca, Gades, Euboea, Crete, the Cyclades and Sporades. In ſuch like particular manner alſo, of Spain, France, and Germany, both higher * and lower; beſides Italy, Rome, &c. So ends this Chapter of Europe with a particular Deſcription of Greece. Then follows the like Deſcription of Africa, and the principal Places therein. Aſia, after the ſame manner, is next deſcribed; and laſtly, ſuch parts of America as are by Travail found out, which concludes the whole Work. After the Index follows an Extract of the Queen's Licence to John Day and his Aſſigns, for the Term of his Life, for the ſole Printing this Book; as alſo, for the ſpace of ſeven Years, all ſuch Books as he has printed, or ſhall print. But we have not yet met with any more of this Author's Writing, printed by him, how many ſoever he had ready for the Preſs; which perhaps may be accounted for, from the Emblem in the laſt Page of this Book, which ſhews us the Figure of Death on a Monument, and Virtue in the Shape of a Tree, flouriſhing out of it.

IX. A ſhort Diſcovery of the unobſerved Dangers of ſeveral ſorts of ignorant and unconſiderate Practiſers of Phyſicke in England: profitable not only for the deceived Multitude, and eaſie for their mean Capacities, but raiſing reformed and more adviſed Thoughts in the beſt Underſtandings: with Directions for the ſafeſt Election of a Phyſician in Neceſſitie. By John Cotta of Northampton, Dr. in Phyſicke, 4to. 1612. pages 135.

[34]

THIS Tract was the Product chiefly of that ten Years Obſervation and Experience which our Author had in Northamptonſhire, as he informs us in his Dedication to the Gentry thereof, among whom he was firſt introduced by his honoured Friend, Sir William Tate, as therein alſo appears. Not but the ſaid Frauds and Corruptions in Phyſick were epidemical enough to have mov'd him to the like Animadverſions, had he reſided in any other part of the Nation. For as he ſays, in his Epiſtle to the Reader; ‘"So infinitely do the numbers of barbarous and unlearned Counſellors of Health at this time overſpread all Corners of this Kingdom, that their confuſed Swarms do not only every where cover and eclipſe the Sun-ſhine of all true Learning and Underſtanding, but generally darken and extinguiſh the very Light of common Senſe and Reaſon."’ Therefore, both in duty to the common Good, and to the Sollicitations of his Friends, he preſents us with ‘"this needful Detection of harmful Succours, and neceſſary Council for ſafe Supply."’ He propoſes to ſuit the meaneſt Readers with the Plainneſs and Simplicity of a familiar Stile; and to keep the Current of the Text clear from all Quotation of ancient Languages, referring only the learned to the Margin; which latter, he has obſerved through every Page. His Method further, is to illuſtrate his general Cautions and Rules with particular Caſes and Reports, drawn chiefly from thoſe Parts where he now practiſed and reſided, as an Inducement to read, and an Enticement to continue, Example being neither leaſt pleaſing nor leaſt profitable to the Vulgar.

[35]The Work itſelf is open'd with an Introduction, ſhewing, how deſirable, but how difficult it is, to meet with an able Phyſician, thro' the variety of Cauſes and Circumſtances to be conſider'd in Diſeaſes, and the Application of Remedies; with the ill Conſequences of the common Neglect and Ignorance herein, and the monopolizing of Cures to the Prerogative of this or that Secret, to the Contempt of the due Permutation of Medicines and the Increaſe of Diſeaſes, both beyond their own Nature, and the Conſtitutions of the Sick. Here, among thoſe Things, the indiſcriminate uſe of which he diſcommends, are mention'd Tobacco, and Quickſilver, and even Caſſia, and Rhubarb, which being indiſcreetly, out of time and place diſpenced, bring Miſchief inſtead of Good; with other Inſtances here produced, both of internal and external Remedies, moſt ſovereign and renowned in themſelves, which yet do bring forth effects unworthy of themſelves, and all becauſe ſuch a promiſcuous and unskilful Rabble of the meaneſt Mechanicks, Women, Prieſts, Witches, Conjurers, Jugglers, and Fortune-Tellers, are ſuffer'd to become Medicine-Mongers, and make a gainful Traffic of Homicide it ſelf. That not only the Simple but thoſe alſo of better Sort are deluded to encourage ſuch Pretenders, on account of ſome caſual Succeſs; but, ſays our Author, ‘"As in Military Deſigns, oft-times a bold and fool-hardy Enterprize, above and beſide Reaſon, and beyond Expectation, produceth an excellent and admir'd Good in the happy Iſſue; yet it is not commended, or in any caſe permitted, as being very dangerous in ordinary Practice, or Cuſtom of Warfare: ſo likewiſe, divers Events of Medicines prove good, whoſe bold Uſe and raſh Preſcription is dangerous and unskilful"’ He concludes this Chapter with obſerving, That as improper Remedies are, for the moſt part, worſe than Diſeaſes, and unlearned Phyſicians, of all bad Cauſes of Diſeaſes, are themſelves the worſt; it is not therefore a needleſs Learning, more ſtudiouſly to know the Good from Ill and Ill from Good; beginning with the laſt firſt, in

Chap. 2. Of the Emperick. Herein is deſcribed, what an Emperick is; in what his Defects conſiſt. The Aſſiſtance of Invention; of Experience, and what a circumſcribed Guide of it ſelf. ‘"For as it is with the Soldier in the Field, let his own ſpecial Experience in Arms be never ſo ancient, ſo true, ſo ſound, yet without a more general Underſtanding or Theory, and a more enlarged Knowledge than his particular and limited Experience can bring forth, [36] he muſt be lamely fitted to many ſudden and oft before unforeſeen Occurrents, which the perpetual Mutability and Change of Circumſtances in Warfare muſt needs produce. The Field, the Enemy, the Time (not always the ſame) require a divers and oft a contrary Conſultation, Deſign, and Manner, wherein one particular Experience by it ſelf, cannot but be much wanting, becauſe the ſame Thing or Action ſeldom or never happens again the ſame in all Circumſtances; and one Circumſtance alone commonly altering the whole Condition. As it is in Military Affairs, ſo is it in the Aſſaults of Diſeaſes, where the Fight and Wreſtling of Nature is not always in the ſame Part, nor in the ſame Form or Manner, nor with the ſame Diſeaſe, nor of the ſame Period: All which Circumſtances in the ſame Subject cannot happen always to any Sight or Senſe the ſame, which makes Experience; yet are ever preſent in the general Notions of the Underſtanding, whereby the prudent and wiſe Man doth make ſupply, tho' Experience fail."’ Beſides, many Diſeaſes ariſe in the Body of Man which are ſcarce ſeen in a Man's Life, and in which, Experience can give no Preſcription. Here are mentioned, the French Diſeaſe and the Scurvy, ſtrange to us once, and the Engliſh Sweating-Sickneſs, ſo now. To theſe are added, ſome more ſingular and uncommon Accidents, as Rulandus his Report of the Golden Tooth which grew naturally in the Mouth of a Child. Alſo another Child, in Hollerus, who thruſt its hand out of its Mother's Navel for 15 Days, and was afterwards born alive, and the Mother ſafe. Alſo, Braſavola's Cure of the Soldier who had almoſt half his Head cut away with part of his Brains. Hence he deſcends to ſeveral Examples and Caſes of his own Obſervation in Northamptonſhire; and concludes, from them, that every Day almoſt, may poſe bare and naked Experience, eſpecially when Empericks apply it to ſimilar Appearances: ‘"For, with the Wiſe, the like, is much unlike the ſame; and it is a chief Point in all Learning, truly to diſcern between differing Similitudes and like Differences. Many Accidents fall out ſeeming alike, yet have no Affinity; and again, in Shew the ſame, yet indeed, contrary. Contraries have oft, in many things, Likeneſs; and Likeneſs, Contraries, eaſily deceiving the Unwotting and Unlearned."’ This again is proved by many Inſtances, tending to demonſtrate the Imperfections of their Practice, who uſe no light of Judgment or Reaſon, [37] but the only Senſe of their own Experience. With regard alſo to whom, our Author ſays a little further, ‘"I wou'd it were a Slander, in theſe days, that Good-Will and excellent Medicines, put to death more Lives than open Murder;" and thinks "it would be happy, if at length, the common Inconvenience and publick Scandal might beget a Law, and Law bring forth Reſtraint."’ Here alſo we have many Inſtances how helpleſs or hurtful good Medicines are, when apply'd without Diſtinction of proper Circumſtances, Concomitancies, &c. intended to caution us againſt putting any confidence in the Excellency of any Remedies, without Advice for the right Diſpenſation of them, and conſequently, againſt relying upon the many Books of Phyſical Receipts and Apothecaries Shops in print, which were then divulged in all Places; wiſe and diſcreet Men knowing, that Things without Reaſon in themſelves, are by Reaſon and Wiſdom to be guided.

Chap. 3. is Of the Practice of Women about the Sick; common-viſiting Counſellors, and Commenders of Medicines. Wherein, as vulgar Pretenders were before exclaimed againſt, for want of proper Education and Knowledge, Patients are, for the ſame Reaſon, warned againſt conſulting with Petticoat Practitioners; who are rather adviſed to preſcribe Rules of Conduct to themſelves, than Phyſick to their Friends; as what would free them from the Unhappineſs of having their Hands ſo commonly in others Miſhaps, to the Diſhonour of their own Sex; by intimidating the Sick with Doubts, and diſſuading them, if not from Phyſick abſolutely, yet from the regular Compoſition and Uſe of it; from all that is not of their own making, or of which they have not had Tryal; as their own Ointments, Plaiſters, Cear-Cloths, &c. often beguiling them with the dangerous Flattery of harmleſs and palatable Medicines, proving, that old Eve will never be worn out of Adam's Children; and not ſeldom rendring it incredible that ſuch mean ſort of People can get acquaintance with ſuch dangerous Medicines as are here alſo ſpecified; but that Quackſalvers, Bankrupt Apothecaries, and fugitive Surgeons, who every where overſpread the Kingdom, are compelled for gain, to communicate ſuch Secrets, whereby deſperate Ingredients and Experiments grow vulgar Medicaments. Therefore,

Chap. 4. Treats of Fugitives, Workers of Juggling Wonders, and Quackſalvers. Under this Head, we have a running Deſcription of the Impoſtors here named. ‘"Among theſe [38] Men, ſays he, "credulous Minds may ſee Things inviſible, Beggars are enabled to ſell Gold to drink, that want Silver to make them eat. Aurum Potabile *, the Natural Balſamum, the Philoſopher's Stone, diſſolved Pearl, and the like ineſtimable Glories and Pride of Art and Nature are their profeſſed ordinary Creatures, and the Workmanſhip of their Hands; in whoſe hands are nothing but Idleneſs, Theft, and Beggary."’ He concludes this Head with intimating, that Pretenders to ſuch uncommon Performances, are to be ſuſpected of wanting even common Sufficiency. That God has not ordain'd Wonders and Miracles to give ſupply to our common Needs, or to anſwer the ordinary Occaſions of Life; nor do Truth and Sufficiency receive their juſt Trial by rare Works, or caſual Events, but by an habitual and continual Proof and Exerciſe in their daily, ordinary, and proper Subjects and Occurrents.

Chap. 5. is, Of Surgeons; and ſuch as eſteeming well of themſelves for the Exerciſe of their Hands in Wounds, Amputations, &c. arrogate a Privilege in the Practice of Phyſick; and even undertake to educate and inſtitute Phyſicians, as an Undergrowth to themſelves; and that thus alſo the World is furniſhed with Factors for the Grave. Hereof he produces Examples, manifeſting, by the Practice of theſe Barber-Surgeons, how confident Ignorance will be, and how powerfully it will infatuate the Diſtreſſed. And here again is arraign'd, the Cuſtom of giving the ſame Medicine to different Conſtitutions. Whence, ſays our Author, ‘"How can he who conſiders the Diſeaſe and not the Perſon, in curing the one, but in danger the other?"’ A little farther he lays down the plain and uncontrolled Difference between the Learned and the Unlearned in the Faculty; and ſhews how the Learned has a Prerogative in three Parts to himſelf, and an equal Part with the Unlearned, in the fourth; yet allows, that in many deſperate Caſes, the Ignorant by their Blindneſs, their Boldneſs, and their Luck, may be the only fit Inſtruments. Here we have alſo Examples how wonderous Good oft iſſues out of deviliſh and dangerous Acts; yet if the Unskilful fail, the hopeful Uſe of any [39] other Means is commonly thereby over-run, and the Happineſs of After-health by better Council, fruſtrated. Hence we are led to

Chap. 6. Of Apothecaries: To whom thus much is allow'd; That if any may have Prerogative to be Phyſicians by the Excellence and rare Choice of Medicines, it is moſt proper unto them. Nay, 'tis further allow'd, that for the excellent Preparation and Knowledge of Medicines, they ſometimes may excel ſome Phyſicians themſelves. ‘"But above and beyond the Preparation; the right and judicious Diſpenſation is truly worthy, commanding and directing therein ſafe and prudent Uſe. This Skill requires an Underſtanding able to raiſe itſelf above both the Medicine and the Maker, unto the Great Maker of them both, and from his general Decree and Council in the Adminiſtration of all things in Nature, to levy and limit Circumſtances, Proportion, Time, Place, Quantity, and Quality, according to the manifold Purpoſes and infinite Uſes for the Preſervation, Conſervation, and Continuance of Health and Life to Mankind."’ So far as the Apothecaries keep within their own proper Bounds, they cannot be denied a worthy Eſteem; but if the Pride and Maſterſhip of the Medicine ſtir once in them the Ambition of Medication, they will be juſtly condemned. A little further the Queſtion is propoſed, whether a Phyſician ſhould be both Surgeon and Apothecary himſelf. And it is allow'd that in Judgment, Skill, Knowledge, and Ability of Direction, it may be requiſite; but the particular Execution ſhould be divided to others, whoſe continual Exerciſe therein makes them fitter for it; and this Chapter is concluded with ſome further Remarks to the ſame Purpoſe.

Chap. 7. Of Practiſers by Spells. Among the Arguments here uſed againſt theſe Deluders, is this, ‘"If the faithful and devout Prayer of Holy Men, to which the Promiſe of God and Bleſſings of Men are annexed, has no ſuch Aſſurance or Succeſs of neceſſary Conſequent, without laborious Induſtry and the uſe of good Means, how can Religion or Reaſon ſuffer Men who are not void of both to give ſuch impious Credit unto an inſignificant and ſenſeleſs Mumbling of idle Words, contrary to Reaſon, without Precedent of any truly wiſe or learned, and juſtly ſuſpected of all ſenſibe Men?"’

Chap. 8. Of Witchcraft in the Sick, &c. Herein are various Arguments advanced, to prove there are many things [40] whereof few Men, many whereof no Man can attain the Reaſon, yet every Man knoweth to have a Reaſon in Nature. That Caſualty oft apts Conſequences to Dreams, yet it is no Proof of Truth to truſt in them. That Women in their Sleep have foreſeen or foretold many Things which have come to paſs, but this makes their Dreams no Oracles; and many vain Men have confidently predicted ſuch Things as have happen'd, yet are not taken for Prophets. In like manner, ſome who have poſſeſs'd themſelves with Witchcraft and the Opinion thereof, have ſeemed to know Things above their Knowledge, and That Knowledge above and beyond all Reaſon hath been true. Yet neither is this any Diſpoſſeſſion of themſelves of this Spirit of Folly, nor juſt Proof or Accuſation of any one to be a Witch. Our Author does not deny or defend deviliſh Practices of Men and Women, but deſires only ‘"to moderate the general Madneſs of this Age, which aſcribes to Witchcraft whatſoever falls out unknown or ſtrange to a vulgar Senſe."’ Therefore, concerning Diſeaſes, there are here ſet forth ſome ſtrange and particular Caſes, which had undergone unjuſt Imputations of this kind; and one eſpecially, of a Gentlewoman, whom certain Witches, lately executed for Sorcery, confeſs'd to have bewitch'd; tho' her Malady was only a natural Complication of divers Diſorders, chiefly convulſive, which produced a Concourſe of Accidents, ſeeming of monſtrous and wondered Shapes. Upon this, ſays our Author, I grant the voluntary and uncompelled, or duly and truly evicted Confeſſion of a Witch, to be ſufficient Condemnation of herſelf, and therefore, juſtly hath the Law laid their Blood upon their own Heads; but their Confeſſion, I cannot conceive ſufficient Eviction of the Witchcraft itſelf; and this Topic is conluded with Arguments and Cautions further to the ſame Purpoſe.

Chap. 9. Of Wiſards. Theſe are deſcribed to be a ſort of Practitioners, whom our Cuſtom and Country call Wiſe Men, and Wiſe Women, reputed a kind of honeſt harmleſs Witches or Wiſards, who, by good Words, hallowed Herbs, Salves, and other ſuperſtitious Ceremonies, promiſe to allay and calm Devils, Practices of other Witches, and the Force of many Diſeaſes. But theſe being much of the ſame Nature with thoſe before mentioned to uſe Spells, are referred unto them, and diſmiſs'd with a ſhort Hiſtory of our Author's Obſervation.

Chap. 10. Of Servants to Phyſicians and miniſtring Helpers. Our Author concludes his Number and Diſtinction [41] of Empericks with this Tribe; who are ſuch as either by oft ſerving Phyſicians, or converſing with them and viewing their Practice, or by Employment from their Directions, or by Attendance about the Sick, engroſs to themſelves ſuppoſed ſpecial Obſervations and choice Remedies; and with ſuch ſmall Ware, taken upon credit, ſet up for themſelves. Here the Inſufficiency of ſuch apiſh Imitation is deſcanted upon, and this kind of ſecond-hand Uſe of other People's Practice; ſhewing, in ſeveral Aphoriſtical Obſervations how unſafe ſuch Experience in Phyſick is; as ‘"how neceſſary it is, That Man ſhould be in himſelf a Maſter of Knowledge and ſincere Judgment, who ſhall be able truely to make right Uſe of another's Experience."’ And even ‘"That which Experience has once, or oft times known and found to do good, muſt not therefore, in neceſſity, ſtill do the ſame good, except the ſame Reaſon of the good, do, in each Circumſtance, again commend and command it; which only they can judge and examine who are wiſe and learned."’ With other like Reflections therefore on this prepoſterous Practice; and a Detail of ſuch Abilities and Application as are requiſite for attaining a ſufficiency in this Profeſſion, our Author concludes this Chapter, and therewith the Firſt Book of this Treatiſe: The foregoing Extracts from which, being ſufficient to give a Taſte of the Performance, we ſhall, for brevity ſake, only give the Titles of the two enſuing Books, which are as follows.

Book II. Chapter 1. The Methodian learned Deceiver, or Heretick Phyſician. Chapter 2. Of Beneficed Practiſers. Chapter 3. Of Aſtrologers and Ephemerides Maſters. Chapter 4. Of Conjectors by Urine. Chapter 5. Of Travellers. Which ends this Book.

Book III. The true Artiſt, his right Deſcription and Election. In two Chapters, which concludes the whole.

X. Human Induſtry: or a HISTORY of moſt MANUAL ARTS; deducing the Original, Progreſs, and Improvement of them. Furniſh'd with variety of Inſtances and Examples, ſhewing forth the Excellency of Human Wit. Printed for H. Herringman, 1661, in 8vo. 188 pages.

[42]

THE Author of this learned Book has, with great Labour, join'd many diſperſed Rarities of Art under ſeveral Heads; with much Modeſty, brought a great deal of Reading into a little Compaſs; and, withall, omitted to prefix his Name to it. Yet, in juſtice to his Memory, we have been obliged with it by another Hand*. There is a ſhort Preface or Advertiſement to the Reader, ſeemingly by the Bookſeller, in Commendation of the Work; wherein he ſays, You will imagine yourſelf, even among the Mechanic Arts, to be converſant in the Liberal. Tho' from the Defect of the alphabetical Catalogue, intended at the beginning, of the principal Authors mention'd in this Work; with ſome Errors in the Table of Contents, and the Omiſſions in the Index of any Reference to the Pages; we might, alone, without any other Knowledge of the Author, or the time when he died, have preſumed he did not ſuperviſe the Preſs, yet are thoſe Imperfections of little moment, becauſe the Work is conciſe.

The Book itſelf is divided into twelve Chapters, in the following Order.

I. Of the Invention of Dials, Clocks, Watches, and other Time-Tellers. Here, ſpeaking of the Diviſion of Time, he tells you, whence the Name of Horae or Hours, was derived according to Macrobius, and how the Day was divided into twenty-four Hours according to the Egyptians; of the Clypſidrae or Water-glaſſes; of the Way to make the Motion of Time viſible and audible, firſt by the Invention of Sun-Dials; with an Obſervation from Busbequius, that the Turks [43] have no Diſtinction of Miles or Hours; and that among the Perſians, their Bellies were their Dials; upon what Defects the Invention of Engines by the Trochilic Art, or that of Wheels aroſe, and that Severinus Boetius was the firſt who contrived any Engine of this ſort. Then as to their Variety; ſome being mute, ſome vocal, ſome ſo ſmall as to be worn in Rings, for making whereof, in Italy, our Countryman George Whitehead is celebrated by Schottus in his Itinerary. Then of Andrew Alciat's Clock, which was both Larum and Tinder-Box. Of Aſtronomical Clocks; that at Prague, ſerving alſo as an Almanac: That at Strasburgh, more particularly deſcrib'd in Coriat's Travels. The ſtrange alphabetical Globe of our Countryman Linne, a Jeſuit of Liege, which in a Water-glaſs would turn to an Index every Hour, according to the Accounts of Kercher, de magnete, and Gaſſendus in the Life of Peiriſcus. The no leſs ſtrange Cork of the ſaid Kercher, which, with Seeds of the Heliotrope in it, would alſo in Water keep Courſe with the Sun. He gives us one more Deſcription of a Saddle-Clock, at Dreſden, from Moryſin's Travels: So concludes this Head with a Latin Epigram, by Tho. Campian, on a Watch, with the Tranſlation by H.V. i. e. Vaughan. And an Obſervation from Tycho Brahe on a Defect in all Clocks and Watches; in Watches, for that the firſt half Hour goes faſter than the laſt, becauſe Springs, wound up, move faſter in the beginning; and in Clocks, the laſt half Hour is faſter than the firſt, becauſe their Weights move flower at firſt, and accelerate as they draw nearer the Earth.

II. Of ſome curious Spheres, and Repreſentations of the World. This Chapter is introduced with a Praiſe of Archimedes, and Claudian's Epigram on his Coeleſtial Sphere, with a Tranſlation of it by Mr. Nath. Carpenter. Of King Sapor's Glaſs-Sphere. The Emperor Ferdinand's ſilver Heaven, which he preſented to Solyman, as mention'd by Paul Jovius Sabellicus, and Dubartas. Among the Moderns, Cornelius Van Drebble of Alcmar, is much admir'd: He liv'd in England, had a gold Chain ſent him by the Emperor, and was Regi Jacobo à Mechanicis, King James his Engineer: He preſented that King with a Perpetual Motion, which is here deſcrib'd; and a Draught or Figure of it, referr'd to in Mr. Tho. Tims's Philoſophical Dialogue. He is praiſed by Marcellus Vrankheim, in an Epiſtle, and his ſaid Microcoſm by Grotius, in a Latin Epigram, which you have here recited with Vaughan's Tranſlation: So concludes [42] [...] [43] [...] [44] with an Account of Eraſmus his gold Ring, which had a Coeleſtial Sphere in it, and ſome Devices of Janellus Turrianus of Cremona, with which he uſed to recreate the Emperor Charles V. as his brazen Heavens, his little Armies of Horſe and Foot, his wooden Sparrows, Iron-Mill that turn'd itſelf, and would grind as much Wheat in a Day as would ſuffice eight Perſons, with his Water-Works, whereby he drew up the River Tagus to the top of the Mountain of Toledo, as we have it in Strada's Hiſtory of the Low-Country Wars.

III. Of ſundry Machines, and artificial Motions by Water and Air. In this, having admir'd the wonderful Creation of the greater World and the leſſer, and inſtanced how many uſeful Machines and artificial Motions have been framed after thoſe two primary Automata that God himſelf made, he enumerates ſeveral Engineers, ancient and modern, who have been famous for ſuch Works; then proceeds to treat, firſt, of Wind-Motions, whereof, after mentioning what Baptiſta Porta and Marinus Merſennus had written upon this Subject, he gives Examples in the wooden Dove of Architas, the wooden Eagle of Regiomontanus, and his Iron Fly, the ſailing Chariot of Simon Stevinius, which would carry eight or nine Perſons above forty Miles in two Hours. 'Twas in the faſhion of a Boat, with four Wheels and two Sails. It was much admir'd by Peireskius according to Gaſſendus; and here are two Epigrams of Grotius upon it, with their Tranſlations. Then we have Accounts of Statues, walking and ſpeaking, and the artificial Animals which Luitprandus ſaw at Conſtantinople; the Statue of Albert Magnus, Friar Bacon's brazen Head, and the vocal Image in King Richard the Second's Reign, whereof Sir R. Baker ſpeaks: Then of Cornelius Van Drebble's Organ, which would play of itſelf, in the open Air and clear Sunſhine, but be ſilent in the Shade: The Mill that would ſaw Boards without Hands, at Dantzick; and ſuch another, which Dr. John Dee ſaw at Prague, as he mentions himſelf. Then he ſpeaks of the Wind-Guns, Aeolii Scopoli, to diſcharge without Powder, and Aeoliae Pilae or Wind-Balls, to blow up or kindle Fires; and Wind-Spits, according to the Account of Cardan. Then he comes to Water-Motions, and here mentions the curious Mills at Thoulouſe and Dantzick, from the Accounts of Golnitz and Moriſon; alſo the Mint at Segovia, which perform'd the ſeveral Operations of coining by a Water-Engine, as Sir K. Digby relates; the Statues [45] in the Duke of Florence's Garden, with their various Motions and Harmony, alſo the Birds at Tivoli which ſing by the ſame Hydraulic Art. Of Water-Organs, and the vaſt Scenery of Woods, Beaſts, Waters, and Shipping in the Roman Amphitheatres. The Verſatile Dining-Rooms, where every Courſe is eaten in a different Chamber, the Gueſts never removing from their Seats. Next is mentioned the portable Palace, carried to France for the Interview between Henry VIII. and Francis I. which ſo many Writers have ſpoken of (tho' we think not that it is here placed under its proper Head) and laſtly a more diſtinct Account of Memnon's Statue, its muſical Property, even when it was broke; and the Conjecture of Kircher that it was made by Taliſmanic Art*, tho' he ſhews that ſuch Effects might be produced by Mathematical Contrivance in his Oedipus, where more Examples may be ſeen of Pneumatical Devices among the Aegyptians in their Temples.

IV. Of the Art and Myſtery of Writing, with the Inſtruments.

This he begins with ſhewing what a vaſt number of different ways the Alphabet may be joined according to Clavius. That the Chineſe have 40000 Letters according to Purchas, and that the Indians admir'd this dumb Commerce, ſo as to believe that Letters were Spirits, or a kind of Internuncii between the Correſpondents; and to this ſenſe quotes Tho. Readi Inventa adeſpota. Of the Invention attributed to Cadmus by the Phoenicians, as we have it in Auſonius and Hermannus Hugo. Of the admirable Perfection which the ancient Librarians arrived to in the Art of Writing, and ſeveral Examples of their Performance in Miniature, particularly that of Fra. Alumnus, according to the Teſtimony of Genebrand and Sim. Maiolus. Pliny's Account of Homer's Iliad in a Nut-ſhell, and Cicero's Confirmation, however Lancelotti reckons it among his Farfalloni. Of Tho. Sweicker, the Dutch Writer with his Feet, and how choicely ſome Copies of his ſaid Writing are kept, according to Fel. Platerus; and of an Engliſh Woman who wrote in the ſame manner. Of Brachygraphy or Short-hand for Speed and Privacy; invented by Mecaenas according to Dion, and uſed by Cicero. Of Julius Caeſar's invention, which was a kind of Cryptography, by Tranſpoſure of the Alphabet. That the Inſtruments are active and paſſive; being thoſe wherewith and thoſe whereon we write. And firſt, of thoſe whereon we write, as Stone, [46] on which the old Jewiſh Law was wrote, and ſome antique Daniſh Records, as mentioned by Selden in Marmora Arundell. Then on Leaves of Trees, as the Sybils Books and the Indians, whence the word Folio. On Lead, as in Job, and the Poems of Heſiod in Pauſanias, and on the inner Rhind of Trees, whence the words Liber, Caudex and Codex. On Papyr Reeds, as in Iſaiah, whence Paper; which Reed was called Biblus, whence Biblia. On Tables of Braſs, as the Roman Laws; on Waxen Tables, whence Tabellarii or Letter-Carriers; which Tables are mentioned in St. Luke and in Iſaiah; and in the Septuagint called Box-Tables, alſo ſometimes made of Cedar-Wood. Of the Invention of Vellum and Parchment by Eumenes King of Pergamus. And laſtly, of our modern Paper, with Lord Bacon's Obſervations on the Excellence of the ſaid Invention. Of the Cotton Paper in Mexico, and Silk Paper in the Eaſt-Indies. Next of the Active Inſtruments, as the Finger of God on the Tables of Stone; Graving Tools for Metals, and Diamonds for Glaſs; the Stylus for Waxen Tables; the Reed, called Calamus Scriptorius and Arundo, for writing on the Papyr Seggs about Memphis, as mentioned in Martial; and laſtly, the Quill of a Bird's Wing for Parchment and Paper, called by Auſonius, Fiſſipes, from the Slit made in it to let down the Ink; and four Lines in its Praiſe by Barlaeus de Penna; with the notice taken of theſe three laſt in an old Chronicle. Of writing with corroding Waters, by the Cutlers of Damaſcus, on the Turkiſh Scimeters, and of the long laſting of a Pen, in the Example of Dr. Holland's the Phyſician of Coventry, wherewith he tranſlated all Pliny's Natural Hiſtory into Engliſh; which therefore was preſerved by a Lady, as a great Rarity in a Silver Caſe; and Ovid's Silver Pen, which being found in ſome Ruins, was given to the Queen of Hungary in 1540, according to Mr. Sandys, in the Life of that Poet.

V. Of Printing and Printing-Preſſes. Here we have the Commendations of Pol. Virgil, Cardan, and Read before mentioned, in Proſe and Verſe, of this Art. The Contention of higher and lower Germany for the Invention of it. The general Voice for Mentz, and John Guttemberg, or Fuſt *, about the Year 1440, according to Polydore. The [47] Evidence of the Tully's Offices cited by Salmuth upon Pancirollus, another Inſtance from the Library at Francfort; with the Oppoſition of Adrian Junius, who would carry it from the High Dutch, and make the Town of Harlem its Birth-place, and Laurence-John (Coſter) the Inventor, from his Rudiments thereof carved out of the Barks of Trees, which Junius ſaw in that Town; with his Account how John Fauſtus ſtole away Coſter's Letters and Utenſils, and ſettling at Mentz printed the Doctrinal of Alex. Gallus 1440. Alſo the Deſcription over Coſter's Houſe, juſtifying the ſame, and Pet. Scriverius his Confirmation thereof, with Jo. Scaliger's Account of the firſt Printing from Wooden Tables. That the Chineſe may plead Antiquity for the Invention, according to P. Maffaeus, and that they have practiſed the Art above 500 Years, as Trigaultius affirms, but differently from the Europeans; for they do not compoſe by Letters, but make for every Leaf a Table, with Characters on both ſides, as Gonſalvo Mendoza obſerves. So that the Invention of the modern manner may ſtill be allowed in honour of the Germans. Our Author then mentions a Latin Poem written in praiſe of this Art (which it well deſerves, being the Preſerver of all other Arts) by Mrs. Joan. Elizabeth Weſton, one of the Muſes of England. And laſtly gives a deſcription of Chriſtopher Plantin's Printing-Houſe, his twelve Preſſes, and near 100 ſorts of Characters, beſides Frontiſpieces, &c. and tells us that the firſt Printing-Preſs in England was ſet up in Weſtminſter-Abbey, by Simon Iſlip, An. 1471. where William Caxton firſt practiſed the Art, as Stow affirms in his Survey of London.

VI. Of the Art of Limning and Painting. This Chapter commences with Praiſes of the Art by Sir Henry Wotton, St Gregory, &c. The Reaſon why Death's Dance was painted in the Church at Baſil. How ſimple the Art was at firſt, according to Aelian, but encreaſed to ten Colours, as Bulenger obſerves; who it was added the Ethick part of Painting, and firſt expreſſed the Paſſions. The Excellence of Apelles and Protogenes, Zeuxes and Parrhaſius, the Virgin Lala and Renè King of Sicily. Of ſome modern Rarities; as, the repreſenting in one Piece ſeveral Faces according to different Poſition or Standing, by pleated Paper, and indenting or folding of the Table; others that ſhewed the Head of a Spaniard one way, another way, that of an Aſs; a [48] third in the Chancellor of France's Cabinet, which preſented many little Faces, his Anceſtors, to the vulgar Eye; but, thro' a Perſpective, the ſingle Portrait only of the Owner, according to Sir Rich. Fanſhaw in the Epiſt. before his Tranſlat. of Paſtor Fido. Of Painting in Oil; with the Art of Sculpture and Engraving. Of other Perſpective Pieces. The Art of Myron, and Imagery of Lyſippus. Of Michael Angelo and his three Perfections; Albert Durer, Vandick, ſo famous in London, who attain'd to great Wealth by his Art; and Paul Rubens, whoſe Table of the Laſt Judgment was valued at five thouſand Florins. Of Annealing or painting in Glaſs, and Bulenger's erroneous Opinion that it was known to the Ancients, from a Diſtich in Martial. Of the Aegyptian Pictures ſtain'd in Linnen Cloth. Pictures woven in Cloth, as in Carpets and Tapeſtry-Work, firſt taught by the Babylonians, according to Pol. Virgil, and rival'd by the Arras-Workers in Flanders. Of Moſaick Work, with coloured Stones, Metals, and Glaſs, in all Figures, known to the Ancients according to Pliny and Bulenger de Pictura & Statuaria. Laſtly, of the Picture of Laoco mentioned in Virgil and Pliny, preſerved in the Palace at Rome, and admired by M. Angelo.

VII. Of the Art of Spinning and Weaving, with the ſeveral Materials of Garments. After a Word or two on the Invention of this Art aſcribed to Minerva, we are inform'd of a rare ſelf-moving Engine at Dantzick, which would weave four or five Webs at a time, and without human help work night and day; which, yet in favour of the poor Weavers, was ſuppreſſed, and the Inventor ſecretly deſtroy'd, according to Lancelotti. He next ſpeaks of the primitive Attire of Fig-leaves, and Paul the Hermit's Suit of Palm-leaves; the Skins of Beaſts; Arachne's Excellence in Spinning; the ſeveral ſorts of Materials whereof Cloth is woven, as the Nettle-Cloth, that of the Palm-leaves, of the Bark of the Maguei among the Mexicans, which bears the Coco, here deſcrib'd from Du Bartas; and of the Pumpion brought from Mecha, whereof Peireskius had a kind of Silk woven, as Gaſſendus relates in his Life, beſides which there is no Sericum Vegetabile, according to our Author; for that Silk properly is made by and from the Silk-Worm, as Julius Scaliger againſt Cardan ſhews; of which Pliny inſerts many a moral Leſſon among his Obſervations. It is next obſerved, that Pamphilia firſt wove Silks; that the Emperor M. Aurel. Antoninus firſt wore them in Europe; and that [49] the Worm was firſt brought into this Quarter by certain Monks in Juſtinian's Time. That in the Summer-Iſlands there are large beautiful-colour'd Spiders, which ſpin perfect raw Silk, as Oviedo and Captain Smith relate. Of other Garments, made with Hair, ſuch as the Prophets wore: Grograms of Goat's Hair; whereof Busbequius gives a more particular Account; and Chamlets of Camel's Hair, as we may further read in Aelian. Of Flax and Hemp; that they were firſt dreſs'd in Egypt, and that the Egyptian and Jewiſh Prieſts wore their Veſtments thereof; alſo of Cotton which grows in Balls on certain Shrubs. Next of the fine Linnen made in Holland and Cambray, whence called Hollands and Cambricks, which Adrian Junius deſcribes to be as white as ſnow, as fine as Lawn, and as dear as Silk. Of the Sea-Wool, ſpoken of by Tertullian, as fine as Silk according to La Cerda, which is made of the downy Subſtance growing out of the large Shell-fiſh call'd Pinna. Alſo a kind of Stone-Cloth made from certain Stones here named, which are beaten into ſmall Fibres or Hairs, and ſo woven; it is call'd by Langius, Salamander's Wool, having the property of reſiſting Fire. Ferdinand Imperatus had of it in his Muſeum, and Callimachus hung up a Taper of it in the Temple of Minerva, according to Salmaſius. But there is a Vegetable of the ſame property call'd by the Greeks Asbaſtos, which Pliny calls Linum vivum or incombuſtible Flax, and ſays the Carcaſſes of Kings were wrapt in it, when they were to be burn'd, to preſerve their Aſhes for the Urns. Podocatter, who wrote de Rebus Cypriis in 1566, had of this Cloth, which was ſeen by Tho. Porcacchius as he relates in his Funeral Rites. Ludovicus Vives ſaw the like at Lovain, as he alſo relates, and Baptiſta Porta, at Venice, as may be read in his Nat. Magia. Mettals were alſo wrought into Cloth: ſuch were the Attalic Garments, call'd by the Italians, Veſte di Brocato di Oro; and when the marble Coffin of Mary, the Wife of the Emperor Honorius, was dug up at Rome in 1544, tho' her Body was conſumed and turned to duſt, all but her Teeth and Bones, her golden Apparel was freſh; out of which, was extracted 36 Pound weight of pure Gold, as Aldrovand records in his Muſaeum Metallicum. The Sidonians had alſo ſuch Veſtments, as may be ſeen in Virgil, Aen. xi. But the ſtrangeſt of all, was that kind of Wool mention'd by St. Hierom and Paulus Diaconus to have rained down from the Clouds about Artois in Flanders, whereof Cloth was ſpun to the great Enrichment of the Country: [50] So that as there was once Coelum eſcatile, as Salvian ſpeaks of the wonderful Manna, in like manner there was now Coelum textile, as we may term it; the Sky affording both Food and Rayment. To this Chapter is join'd an Appendix of The Plumary Art. Here it is obſerv'd to what Perfection this Art was arrived in Florida, and other Parts of the Weſt-Indies; where ſuch Birds of Orient Plumage abound, as the Phenicopter, Parrot, and Tomincio: With the manner how they ſtrip the Quills, and paſte on the Feathers in all Shapes and Shades. What delicate Works of this kind Ferdinand Cortez, ſaw in the Emperor Motizuma's Palace at Mexico. That Cardinal Paleotti had the Picture of St. Hierom of this Workmanſhip; and that certain Fryers had learnt the Art. That it was not unknown even to the Ancients. That St. Hierom mentions it; alſo Julius Fermicus, Prudentius, and Seneca. That theſe Plumes ſurpaſs all the Beauties of the Pencil, not only in Luſtre but Duration, and foil the Art of Painting.

VIII. Of the Art of Muſick, with the Inſtruments, &c. From the Pythagorean Notion of Muſick in the Spheres, the Delight of Man's Soul in Harmony is here accounted for, according to Macrobius; alſo from the Body of Man, which is a living Organ, and Life itſelf, the Leſſon which his Soul plays thereon. That vocal Muſick is moſt delightful. That Pan deviſed the Imitation of this muſical Pipe in the Throat of Man, with a Syringe or Reed, tho' Lucretius aſcribes it to the whiſtling of the Zephyrs in the Reeds. That in Imitation of them the Shank-bones of Cranes were uſed, whence came the Flute: Not but muſical Inſtruments were in the World before Pan's Time; Jubal being the Inventor of the Harp and Organ. That the Egyptian Mercury invented the Lyre or Lute, by a Tortoiſe-ſhell he found on the Nile-ſide, to which ſome Nerves hung, reaching from end to end, whereof Du Bartas has taken notice. That Terpander encreaſed the Lyre from three Strings to ſeven, Simonides added an eighth, and David mentions a ten-ſtring'd Inſtrument, who invented many ſorts; but all are divided into ſuch as are founded either by the Breath or Hand. Since his Time many have been the Improvements. Leander Alberti in his Deſcription of Italy relates that he ſaw a pair of Organs, in which, Men would think they heard Boys and Men diſtinctly ſing their Parts in Concert; and another Pair in the Duke of Mantua's Court, made all of Alabaſter, which gave a loud and full Sound; alſo another very [51] muſical Pair at Venice, made all of Glaſs, which are mention'd by Moryſon in his Travels. Pope Sylveſter the Second made a Pair that would play without any other Organiſt than warm Water: Such Hydraulics, frequent in Italy, are ſounded alſo with cold Water. Gaudentius Merula, de Mirab. Mundi, mentions an Organ at Milan; the Pipes whereof were made of various Materials, as Wood, Braſs, Whitelead, and imitated various muſical Inſtruments. Speaking next of vocal Muſick, natural and artificial, the Scarcity of good natural Singers is obſerv'd, occaſioning the Supply of muſical Inſtruments for Delight, and to appeaſe the Cares of Life. Hence we are led to an Appendix, Of the Power and Efficacy of Muſick. The Commendations of Orpheus by Horace and Claudian, and of Silenus by Virgil; with Tho. Randolph's Exhortation to Muſick, finely illuſtrating the Force thereof upon Rocks and Trees. Thus leaving things inanimate, he proceeds to Inſtances of the Regency of Muſick over Creatures, rational and irrational; among other Authorities he produces that of Henry Stephens, who ſays (in Pref. ad Herod.) that he ſaw a Lion at London, which would forſake his Food to hear Muſick. The Delight which Deer and Elephants take therein; and that the Aſs only is not pleaſed with it. That Birds likewiſe are affected with Muſick, and Hawks tamed therewith. That it rules alſo in the Water, as in the famous Story of Arion and the Dolphin; and was expected to prevail over Hell itſelf, as in the attempt made for the Recovery of Eurydice, with a Compliment to Spenſer out of W. Brown's Paſtorals, atteſting that if Orpheus had been but half his equal, he had not left her in thoſe infernal Regions. Then for rational Creatures, here are many Examples produced to ſhew, how Muſick has all our Paſſions at Command; how Courage and Fear have been raiſed by it; how Anger has been ſtirr'd up, and allay'd by it; how it exhilarates and enlivens the Spirits, inſpires Devotion, Chaſtity, and Civility; with an Inſtance of the effect of Dactyls and Spondaics. That Muſick has alſo power over the Body, to keep it from drooping and wearineſs, and cure it of Maladies; of this latter we have many particulars, as the Cure of the Plague in Homer by Muſick; of the Frenſy, by Zenocrates; of the Sciatica, from the Experience of Theophraſtus; and ſome Aches, as reported in France: The poiſonous Bite of the Tarantula in Italy; that kind of Frenſy, call'd St. Vitus his Dance, in Germany, in which, upon hearing of a Fiddle, the Patient dances till he is tired [52] and cured; as Skenkius obſerves. Hence we proceed to the Muſick of Speech and Eloquence: Of the Grecian Orators, who had the power of Fire and Water, to inflame and extinguiſh; to make Peace and War. Then of ſome Moderns, as Savanorola, who managed the Commonwealth with his Tongue, and Ugolin the Friar, who, by a Sermon, moved his Audience to beat their Enemies. And if plain Speech has ſuch power, how much more muſt Words join'd with Harmony and Numbers? Here we have a Summary of all the foremention'd Effects of Muſick in ſome Verſes of Du Bartas; which is follow'd by Baptiſta Porta's nice Attempt to aſcribe the wonderful Effects of Muſick to the Vertues of the ſeveral ſorts of Trees, whereof the Inſtruments are made, which, ſays he, have a ſecret Property to cure Diſeaſes more than the Sounds that are made of them. But our Author thinks him miſtaken, becauſe bare Words have power over Men's Minds and Spirits; ſo ſhews us, more diſtinctly, from Scaliger, how the Vibration or trembling of the Air, by Muſick, affects the Spirits of Man. This is further ſtrengthen'd by the affinity between the Soul and Muſick, obſerv'd by Ariſtotle and Macrobius, and the Argument of its being no wonder that every Creature, which has a living Soul, ſhould be taken with Muſick, ſince the Soul of the Univerſe, whereof every particular Soul is a Part, is made of Harmony. This Head is concluded with an Example of the Force of Eloquence in Pericles from Val. Maximus, and in the Philoſopher Hegeſias, who ſo pathetically ſet forth the Evils of Life, that his Auditors reſolv'd to kill themſelves, according to Cicero.

IX. Of the Invention of Glaſs, and Glaſs-Works. We are here inform'd of the Ingredients whereof Glaſs is made; by what Accident it was invented, from Pliny and Joſephus; the Properties of it, how fluid and ductile while hot, how hard, clean, and clear when cold; how broken by Poiſons, exceſſive Cold, or Heat. How Art in forming of it imitates the Creation, it being made with the Breath of the Mouth. How preciouſly it is eſteem'd of in ſome Countries, where it is exchanged for Gold, according to Pigafetta. Where the beſt are made, near Venice, and how. Tho' ours is ſo brittle, that an Artiſt at Rome, in Tiberius his Time, could make it malleable and flexible, and that he was ſecretly made away, leſt the Knowledge of his Art ſhould make Gold contemptible. Then we come to the Uſes of Glaſs in Cups and Veſſels, Looking-Glaſſes, Teleſcopes, [53] Microſcopes, Thermometers, Spheres, Spectacles, whereby old Eyes become young, ſmall Objects are magnified, things inviſible ſeen, and things behind us brought before, and thoſe done in our Neighbour's Houſes, or Enemy's Tents, brought to our Knowledge without the help of Magic; for which we are referr'd to Baptiſta Porta. Then we advance more to Particulars, as that Cornelius Van Drebble, that rare Engineer of Alcmar, who liv'd here in K. James's Court, invented the Microſcopes, whereby we diſcover the ſubtileſt Objects, and the ſmalleſt: And that Sanctorius, a famous Phyſician of Padua, invented the Thermometers, which, in a Man's Chamber, diſcover the Temper of the Air, whether hot or cold, moiſt or dry, or inclining to either. That Teleſcopes, for diſcovering things a-far off, were invented by Jacobus Metius of Alcmar, as Des Cartes tells us, and perfected by Gallileo Gallilei the Florentine; which will repreſent Objects thirty times bigger than the apparent Quantity, and a hundred times nearer than the apparent Diſtance. By theſe, new Stars have been diſcover'd, and new Worlds in them; the Moon brought down to Examination, and found to be another America. By theſe Teleſius has given us his Selenographia, or Deſcription of the Countries and Provinces there; and Van Drebble ſaw not only the Hills and Plains, but the Foreſts, Cities and Buildings in this Lunary World; as Gaſſendi has written in his Life of Peiresk. And as for Burning-Glaſſes, we have here the Account of the Roman Ships fired by Archimedes at Syracuſe, from Plutarch's Life of Marcellus; and thoſe of Vitalianus fired by Proclus with ſuch Glaſſes; who thereby defended Conſtantinople as Zonaras records; and thoſe wherewith our learned Countryman Roger Bacon * offer'd the Pope to annoy the Turks more than all the Galleys of Italy, or an Army of a Hundred Thouſand Men could do, as Gaffarel from others relates. Kircher indeed could never hit upon the Experiment, or hear of Glaſſes that would burn above fifteen Paces diſtance; but Baptiſta Porta declares there is a way to make Glaſſes that would burn things at any diſtance, and Dr. John Dee, in the Preface to his Monas Hieroglyphica, that it may be made to calcine Stones and reduce them to powder. After this we come to a Remark or two on the Spheres of Archimedes, which repreſented the Motion of the [54] heavenly Bodies, and is deſcribed by Claudian; with the Diſtinction of Kircher, that the outſide only was of Glaſs; yet Peter Ramus ſpeaks of two Glaſs Spheres at Paris, like thoſe of Archimedes. Next we have an Obſervation on the Amphitheatre of Glaſs in Pliny, which was a kind of Foſſile, or Obſidian Glaſs found in Aethiopia, black, tranſparent, and eaſily wrought; of which was built the ſtately Tomb in Alexandria, by Ptolemy, for Alexander, as Strabo relates. Herodotus alſo tells us this kind of Glaſs was wrought hollow, to caſe or enſhrine dead Bodies, that they might be ſeen. The ſpecular Stone was of this kind but brighter, and like Cryſtal: It was alſo uſed to ſhelter Fruits from blighting Colds. But this kind of Stone is return'd by Pancirollus, inter non inventa. Leander mentions a compleat Galley of Glaſs at Venice, and Glaſs Organs: James Howel ſaw ſuch a Galley at the Murano, as he writes in his Hiſtory of Venice. As Glaſs is diaphanous and paſſive to Objects, ſo it is alſo reflective, and beats back the Objects which fall upon it, when the backſide is lin'd with Tinſoil, or Leaf of Tin-ſilver, or other Metal; and thus Looking-Glaſſes are made, wherewith many ſtrange Feats may be perform'd, even to the Suſpicion of Magic and unlawful Arts.

X. The Invention of Shipping, Sailing, and the Mariner's Compaſs. This Invention of riding on the blue Roads with wooden Horſes, as the old comic Poet phraſes it, was highly bold as Horace expreſſes it, and no leſs uſeful as all the World have found it. The Motives to ſuch Hazard are ſhewn from the Book of Wiſdom, to be Deſire of Gain in Man, and a Willingneſs in God, that the Works of his Wiſdom ſhould not lie idle. But we ſhall admire ſuch Boldneſs the more, in conſidering the Simplicity of Sailing in the firſt Ages, when the Aegyptians made their Boats of Reeds and Ruſhes, according to Pliny and Lucan; ſuch was that in which Moſes was preſerv'd, ſuch is ſpoken of in Iſaiah; alſo among the Indians, according to Herodotus. The old Britains had their Naves Vitiles, ſays Pliny; the Iriſh their Corraghes, being made of Wicker cover'd with Leather, not much bigger than a Basket; ſuch Strabo ſays he ſail'd to Egypt in; ſuch were thoſe which Caeſar learnt to make of the Britains; and ſuch were uſed by the Babylonians, as teſtifies Herodotus: And they were ſo light that the Maſter could carry them on Shore, as they carried him at Sea, like the Arabian Fiſherman, whoſe Tortoiſe-Shell was his Shallop by Water, and his Houſe by Land, as Dubartas has it [55] from a Latin Epigram. Such like alſo, for lightneſs, the Aegyptians uſe on the Nile, and Boterus mentions ſuch again in the Weſt-Indies, where they have alſo their Balſa's, or Bulruſhes rafted together, and row to fiſh in the main Sea upon them, as may be read in Acoſta. The Indians have likewiſe their Canoes made out of one Tree hollowed, and in Greenland, Boats ſhaped like a Shuttle, covered with Seal-Skins, and rib'd with Bones of Fiſhes, as Purchas deſcribes. Pet. Gellius in his Deſcription of the Thracian Boſphorus, ſpeaks of a Ship he ſaw, laden with Arabian Merchandize, which had no Iron in it, but was ſewed together with Cords, covered with Roſin of the Frankincence-Tree, and her Tackling made of the Tree which bears the Indian Nut, which Mr. Geo. Herbert deſcribes. But the Tyrians are reputed the firſt who improved Shipping with Maſts, Sails, &c. and Ovid tells us that Jaſon was the firſt Contriver of Ships, and that his famous Argo was ſtellified by Aſtronomers. The Shell-Fiſh called Nautilus, gave the firſt Hint of framing a Ship, according to Pliny, as the flying of the Kite did of the Stern; afterwards they were magnificently made, as that Cedar Galley built by Caligula, which had Halls, Rooms, and Gardens in it: and that of Ptolemaeus Philopater, who built one two hundred eighty Cubits long, fifty two Cubits from the Bottom to the upper Decks; had four hundred Banks for four thouſand Rowers, with Gardens and Orchards at top of it, as Plutarch relates in his Life of Demetrius. But the Improvement of Navigation without Sails or Oars, ſo as never to be wind-bound, was more commendable. We have the Account in Vitruvius that for this end the Ancients had in their Ships three Wheels on each ſide, with eight radii, a Span long, projecting from each Wheel, and ſix Oxen within turning the ſame, which caſting the Water backward, moved the Ship on with great Speed. They had alſo an Inſtrument in thoſe Ships, called Carrum, dividing the Hours of the Day. Lord Bacon, in his Novum Organum, ſpeaks of Boats in England to ſail under Water; and Julius Scaliger, of a Ship he could make that would ſteer herſelf. This Chapter ends with the famous Repreſentation of a Naval Fight in Claudius Caeſar's time, mentioned by Suetonius, and Juvenal's Account of the Earthen Boats uſed in Aegypt. So we proceed to the Appendix, of the Mariners Compaſs, wherein we are inform'd that John Goia, or Flavius Goia of Amalphi in Campania in the Kingdom of Naples, firſt invented the Compaſs, who is therefore [56] celebrated by Du Bartas. By what Stars Pilots were directed before the ſaid Invention, and Travellers in the Deſerts of Arabia, and how they were oblig'd to ſtop when the Sky was clouded, therefore our Author ſays of the Loadſtone, as Rablais of the Milſtone, that 'tis the moſt precious of all others. Then follows Claudian's Deſcription of the Magnet, its two Properties of Attraction and Direction, which gave Invention to the Mariners Compaſs, whoſe Needle, touched therewith, points its Lilly-Hand to the North, in any part of the World. The Inhabitants of Taprobana having not the Pole-Star to ſail by, carried certain Birds on board, which being ſet at liberty, flew by natural Inſtinct to the Shore; ſo gave direction to the Sailors, according to Pliny. The Syrians and the Bactrians, according to Curtius, travelled by the Guidance of Stars; but the Arabians, ſays Lud. Bartema, in certain Wooden Boxes on their Camels, have the Loadſtone like the Compaſs, to ſteer their Courſe by over the Deſarts. Some aſcribe this Invention to the Chineſe; and Dr. Gilbert, de Magnete, lib. 1. affirms that Paulus Venetus brought it firſt into Italy, An. 1260, having learnt it from them. Ludovicus Vertomanus reports, that he ſaw about the Year 1500, the Indian Pilot of his Ship, ſailing in Java, ſteer by a Compaſs, made as in Europe. This Head is concluded with a Remark, that our Compaſs is not yet brought to due Perfection, for that the Magnetic Needle does not yet point exactly to the North in all Meridians, to the cauſe of much Error in Navigation. Van Helmont profeſſes a way to rectify this Inconvenience, which, tho' ſomewhat fanciful, as appears by our Author's Account of it, 'tis yet to be wiſh'd ſome Devices might be found to amend that Imperfection.

XI. The Art of Cicuration and taming of wild Beaſts. It appears by the Introduction of this Chapter, that we have not the ſame Title to this Book which our Author intended, and that he had call'd it Hiſtoria Naturae Subactae; therefore thinks this Chapter no Digreſſion. He begins with a Quotation from the New Teſtament, ſhewing, that every kind of Beaſt is tamed by Mankind; gives ſeveval Examples of the Elephant, and refers to many Stories of their Officiouſneſs and Docility in one of Lipſius his Epiſtles; and of the Lion out of Pliny; that Tygers drew the Coach of Bacchus, from Silius Italicus; and that of Heliogabalus, as Lampridius relates. Martial mentions the ſame in Domitian's time; that the fierce Byſon, and Stag were taught to do the ſame; and [57] at Walton upon Thames, our Author ſaw four Stags draw a ſmall Coach. Lipſius in his Notes upon Tacitus, ſpeaks of Dogs drawing a Chariot at Rome; and Textor, of Oſtriches that drew the Coach of the Emperor Firmus. The Emperor Maximilian the ſecond, had a Deer which would receive a Bridle and a Rider, and run againſt the fleeteſt Horſe, as Mich. Neander relates. Martial mentions alſo a Deer uſed to a Bridle, and Camden in his Annals of Q. Elizabeth, that Sir Hierom Bowes brought from Muſcovia certain Does of admirable Swiftneſs, which being yoked and coupled in a Coach, would carry a Man with great Speed. Next we have an Account of tame Panthers, Leopards, and Lions to hunt with, as the King of Cambala's, which Aelian mentions, and Scaliger; and Mr. Moryſon ſpeaks of Leopards ſo tame, that they would leap up behind the Huntſman on his Horſe, and ſit like a Dog, and ſoon diſpatch a Hart, which ſhews the Excellence of Man's Abilities to ſubdue other Creatures; but as Xenophon obſerves, it is far eaſier taming any Creature than Man; and Seneca has a Reflection to the ſame purpoſe, that no Creature is ſo wayward, fierce, and untractable as Man. We have next an Account from Strabo, of a Crocodile that had been tamed, and Dragons mentioned by Seneca to have crept tamely upon Men's Tables, among their Cups; and of a four-legged Serpent in Cairo, grown familiar and harmleſs. Many Inſtances of Birds; as, Oſtriches drawing a Coach; Eagles enured to fly at Fowl like Hawks; a Crow taught to fly at Partridges, and Wild-Ducks made Decoys. Of Sea-Animals; the Mannti, or Sea-Cow is inſtanced, from Peter Martyr; the Sea-Horſe, from Leo Afer; and the Fiſh called Reverſus, by which the Indians caught others, as is related by Bodin, in his Theatrum Naturae, alſo by Purchas and P. Martyr. Pliny's Dolphins, which would ſuffer Correction like Setting-Dogs, as Oppian alſo teſtifies, and of Otters taught to drive Fiſh into the Net, according to Cardan. Alſo ſeveral Examples of Wild Beaſts tamed for Sport and Pleaſure, as well as Service; ſuch were the Dancing Camels which Leo ſaw, and the Elephants which danced on the Ropes, in Seneca, with the manner of teaching them upon a hot Floor, from Sandys in his Travels. The Elephant Busbequius ſaw at Conſtantinople, which danced and play'd at Ball. The Bear which danced to the Muſick of his own Tabor, and then begg'd for Reward, ſeen by Neander. The Dance of Horſes at the Marriage of the Duke of Florence, atteſted by Sir K. Digby; and the Aſs ſeen by Leo in Africa, which would [58] vie Feats with Banks his Horſe, that rare Maſter of the Caballiſtic Art. Here we have a Story of the dangerous Effects of ſuch Dancing Horſes among the Sabarites, when their Enemies the Crotonians brought Muſick into the Field of Battle, from Diodorus Siculus, Aelian, and Pliny. To ſhew that a Baboon has play'd upon the Guittar, and a Monky at Cheſs, we are referr'd to Balt. Caſtilione. Of Birds, are mentioned the Talking Starlings, Pyes and Crows at Rome; Cardinal Aſcanio's Parrot would ſay the Creed, and another in Spain which would ſing the Gamut, as John Barnes an Engliſh Frier relates, in his learned Book de Aequivocatione. Many of theſe Examples are ſum'd up by Martial in his Book of Shows, Epig. 105 which is here recited, with a Tranſlation. Laſtly, it is obſerved how Animals will learn the Language of their Country, ſo far as is neceſſary for their Direction, as Elephants, Horſes, and Mules, which Claudian has taken notice of; and that Dogs have been trained for the Wars by the old Britons and Gauls, as Strabo and Camden relate; ſo have Bulls, Bears, and Lions, according to Lucretius, here cited. This, with ſome other Citations from Grotius, Plutarch, and Origen, ſhewing that the Wit and Reaſon of Man reduces all other Creatures to his Service and Subjection, concludes this Chapter.

XII. Of certain Sports and Extravagancies of Art. In this laſt Chapter of the Book, it is ſet forth, that as Nature has her Ludicra, ſo has Art; and that Art as well as Nature is never more wonderful than in ſmaller Works: That St. Auguſtine admired as much at the Tooth of a Moth as that of an Elephant. So we deſcend to Particulars, as the Ivory Ants of Callicrates; the little Ivory Chariot, Horſes and Driver of Myrmecides, to be cover'd with the Wings of a Fly; and the Ship with all her Tackling, which a Bee could hide, according to Pliny and Aelian. Next are Vulcan's Nets, mentioned out of Ovid. The Waggon and Oxen of Glaſs, which might be concealed by a Fly, in Cardan; and the neat little Wooden Lock, mentioned by Leander Alberti; which introduces the rare Workmanſhip of Mark Scaliot a Blackſmith of London, in his Iron Lock and Key and Gold Chain of forty three Links, all drawn by a Flea, and all, with the Flea, weighing but one Grain and a half; as witneſſes John Stow in his Annals, who ſaw it. Scaliger alſo mentions a Flea with a Gold Chain, and Leo Afer ſuch a Chain, for which the Artiſt had a Suit of Cloth of Gold beſtowed upon him by the Sultan. Hadr. Junius ſaw at Mechlin, a [59] Basket made of a Cherry-Stone, which held fourteen pair of Dice, whoſe Spots were viſible. Then we have notice taken of the precious Stone in a Ring, repreſenting Phaeton, his Chariot and Steeds, tumbling into the River, as mention'd in Galen; and Geo. Whitehead's Ship, with all her Tackling, moving of itſelf on a Table, with Rowers, a Woman playing on the Lute, a Whelp howling, &c. as affirmed by Schottus, in Itin. Italiae; alſo, Gafferell's Account, in his Unheard of Curioſities, of the Clock at Leghorn, which had on it a Company of Shepherds playing on the Bagpipes, with others dancing by Couples thereto, in Time and Meaſure. Here is alſo mentioned the Chain, in Cardan, ſo little and ſo light, that when it fell to the Ground, it would not break, tho' made of Glaſs; and the Iron Spider in Walchius's ninth Fable; to which our Author applies the Verſes in Dubartas, celebrating the Iron Fly of Regiomontanus; alſo the Bear and Lion of Gold (preſented to the Landgrave of Heſſe) each a Middle-Finger's Length, and both weighing but a French Crown, for which the Artiſt was rewarded with three thouſand Crowns. This is followed with Claudian's Epigram de Quadriga Marmorea, and the Tranſlation; and the whole Book concludes with a Reference to many more Inſtances of the like nature, in John Tradeſcant's Ark at Lambeth, and the Archives of ſeveral Princes and private Perſons, who have their Pinacotheca's and Technematophylacia to preſerve all Rarities; more particularly that of Bernard Paludanus a Phyſician in Holland, upon which here is an Epigram quoted, and Information of another among Grotius's Poems to the ſame purpoſe.

XI. Chariſmatum Sacrorum Trias; ſive BIBLIOTHECA ANGLORUM THEOLOGICA, &c. Lib. III. cum Appendice, DE REGIA SOCIETATE LONDINENSI. Labore & Studio M. MARTINI KEMPII, &c. 410. Regiomont. 1677. Pages 668.

THis Engliſh Theological Library may well recommend itſelf to the Notice of the Britiſh Librarian, ſeeing the Author, who was Hiſtoriographer to the Elector of Brandenburg, [60] has ſo ſincerely intended therein the Honour of the Britiſh Nation, and has common-placed, ſo ſuccinctly and, for the generality, ſo methodically, above ſixteen Hundred Writers of Divinity in England, Scotland, and Ireland, under ſome of the moſt conſiderable Heads. But being written in Latin and printed abroad, at Koningsberg in Pruſſia, it ſeems not to have yet made ſufficiently its way among ſome of our Readers, to whom it might have been uſeful in ſeveral reſpects; and poſſibly that, among the reſt, of inſpiring an Ambition to give us a more enlarged and perfect Plan upon this Subject: For, ſtrictly ſpeaking, tho' ſuch a ſpiritual Army, of all ranks; is here muſter'd up, many who were eminent among us are omitted, and ſeveral enliſted who little deſerve ſuch Diſtinction; ſome alſo, who were Writers in different Sciences, are not very properly perhaps introduced here; and, of moſt, we have only the bare Names, with the ſhorteſt Reference to thoſe Parts of their Works, which concern the reſpective Topics, under which they are aſſembled. But the Author's Aim was Variety and Diſpatch; and rather to bring a great number of Writers into a little Compaſs, than either to appear ſeverely ſcrupulous in his Choice, and always diſtinctly acquainted with their Characters, or to make his Readers conſtantly ſo with the Editions of their Works. The Book will however be very ſerviceable to any Reader or Writer upon the Subjects herein treated of. It will yield Matter of Recollection to thoſe who are even moſt converſant in our Theological Authors, and to thoſe who are moſt inquiſitive after them, continual Directions for further Satisfaction. The Author neglected no Advantages to render it thus far uſeful; he ſeems to have conſulted our Catalogues very diligently, which ſpecify thoſe Engliſh Authors who have written upon the ſeveral Parts of Scripture, and other Points of Divinity; and further, for his purpoſe, to have made good Uſe of his Time while he was in the Library at Oxford, among ſeveral of the Books themſelves which they refer to, as alſo of the Converſation he had with Mr. Boyle, and other learned Men in England, particularly Dr. Thomas Barlow, afterwards Biſhop of Lincoln, who was himſelf an Eccleſiaſtical Library.

As for the Method and Contents more particularly of this Work; after the Author's Dedication to the Elector aforeſaid, and a learned Epiſtle to the Reader, he opens it with a copious Preface, concerning the different Verſions and Editions of the Bible in England, with notice of thoſe among [61] us who have written any Diſcourſes thereon, or Books to explain it, as Annotations, Lexicons, Criticiſms, Chronologies, Chorographies, and the like. Then he begins his firſt Book with the Engliſh Commentators on the Old Teſtament; goes diſtinctly through all the Parts or Books thereof, and through all the Chapters of every Book; and therein tells us, what Engliſh Author has written upon any of the ſaid Books, Chapters, or Verſes in them. The like he does in his ſecond Book by all the Engliſh Commentaries, Obſervations, and Sermons on the New Teſtament; compriſing a Book in every Chapter, and the Writers on each Chapter in a Paragraph. Thus having got over near half the Volume we come to the laſt Book, which is divided into Twenty-one Chapters; the firſt Six of which, comprehend chiefly his Syſtema Theologiae Poſitivae, and the Engliſh Authors treating of the ſeveral Branches therein; which, for brevity, we ſhall refer to. Then we come, in the Seventh, to thoſe Engliſhmen who have written of the Church and its Government, Ordination, Repreſentatives, Revenues, Polity, Schiſms, Ceremonies, Feſtivals, Sabbath, Muſick, and oeconomic State; particularly, Matrimony, Polygamy, and Education. The 8th is of the Writers on the four laſt Things. 9. Thoſe who have wrote of Polemical Divinity. 10. Againſt Atheiſts, Jews, Turks, and Infidels. 11. Againſt Popery. 12. Againſt the Socinians, Anabaptiſts, &c. 13. Againſt Enthuſiaſts, Libertines, Antinomians, and Arminians. 14. Againſt the Engliſh Sectaries, Puritans, Separatiſts, Browniſts, Independents, Fanaticks, Presbyterians, &c. 15. Againſt the Quakers. 16. On School-Divinity. 17. On Practical Divinity. 18. On Caſuiſtical Divinity. 19. Of the improved Editions of the Fathers in England. 20. Of our Politico-Eccleſiaſtical Hiſtorians. And laſtly, 21, of the Engliſh Councils.

Then follows the Appendix, containing an epiſtolary Diſcourſe upon the Royal Society, written in his native Tongue; no Author having publiſh'd, in Germany, any thing upon the Inſtitution, Progreſs, and Purpoſe of that laudable Order: With a Liſt of the Fellows of the ſaid Society; and Verſes at the end.

XII. HISTORIA HISTRIONICA: An Hiſtorical Account of the ENGLISH STAGE; ſhewing the ancient Uſe, Improvement, and Perfection of DRAMATIC Repreſentations in this Nation. In a Dialogue of PLAYS and PLAYERS. 8vo. 1699. pages 32.

[62]

WHen this Pamphlet was publiſh'd, there was a Controverſy on foot about the Stage; and while others wrote to ſhew what it then was, our Author, as a Topic not touch'd upon, obſerves what it had been. He apologizes to thoſe who may imagine his Subject trivial, by producing a Player, who was a Saint; and referring to Examples of Merit in the Diſcourſe itſelf: ‘"If the major Part of them (as he concludes his Preface) fall under a different Character, it is the general Unhappineſs of Mankind, that the moſt are the worſt."’

The Dialogue is held between Lovewit and Truman an old Cavalier, who knew the Stage in the Reign of K. Charles I. From theſe we learn, how much the Actors before the Civil Wars ſurpaſſed their Succeſſors: Why they did not now revive Ben Johnſon's Plays. Where, before the Wars, the Town ſupported five Play-houſes at once; and in which of them they always acted by Day-light: That now the Plays in two Houſes only, would hardly draw an Audience, without a Signior Fideli or a Monſieur L'Abbe. That Edward Allen built a Play-houſe, alſo Dulwich College in 1619. Then we have a little Hiſtory of the Actors during the Rebellion; ſhewing how honourably they ſerved in the King's Army. Next, how they return'd to acting, but privately; and, in Oliver's Time, at Holland-Houſe. How the Companies reviv'd after the Reſtoration. Where Scenes were introduced by Sir W. Davenant. When Women firſt acted. A Character of Mr. Collier's Book againſt the Stage. That our ancient Plays were of religious Subjects, in many Examples from Stow, Sir W. Dugdale, Fitz-Stephens, Lord Bacon, the Play of the Pardoner and Frene, &c. When Queen Elizabeth firſt had Players, and of Noblemen's Companies. The firſt Comedy that looks like regular. Sir George Buck's Encomium on acting of Plays in his Time. When Theatres were firſt erected in London. Of the Prohibition of Plays from Hollinſhed; and Statutes for their Regulation, 39 Eliz. cap. 4. and 3 Jac. 1. cap. 21. The two Ordinances of the Long Parliament, Octob. 22, 1647. and Feb. 11. the ſame Year, to ſuppreſs them. That Cock-fighting was alſo prohibited by one of Oliver's Acts, March 31, 1654. But the Old Cavalier not allowing theſe as Laws, takes leave of his Correſpondent, and ſo concludes the Dialogue.

The End of Number I.
[63]

XIII. The Dictes or Sayengis of the Philoſophres: Tranſlated out of Frenſhe by ANTONE Erle of RYVYERS, &c. Enprynted by William Caxton at Weſtmeſtre. Folio, 1477. 75 Leaves*.

THE firſt Page of this Book begins with the Earl's Preface or Introduction. Herein he obſerves, that every human Creature is ſubject to the Storms of Fortune, and perplex'd [64] with worldly Adverſity, of which he had largely had his Part; but having been reliev'd by the Goodneſs of God, he was exhorted to diſpoſe his recover'd Life to his Service. And underſtanding there was to be a Jubilee and Pardon at St. James's in Spain, an. 1473. he determin'd upon a Voyage thither: ſo in July the ſame Year, ſet ſail from Southampton; when, a worſhipful Gentleman in his Company, named Lowys de Bretaylles, lent him to paſs over the Time, this Book of the Sayings of the Philoſophers, in French, which had been tranſlated from the Latin by Meſſire Johan de Teonville, Provoſt of Paris. The Earl was very much affected with the wholeſome and ſweet Sayings therein of the Paynems; and finding how ‘"it ſpeaketh univerſally to the Example, Weel, and Doctryne of alle Kynges, Prynces, and to People of every Eſtate; lawdes Vertu and Science, blames Vices and Ignorance;"’ tho' he could not then, nor in all that Pilgrimage, overſee it well at his Pleaſure, thro' [65] the Diſpoſitions that belong to the Taker of a Jubilee and Pardon, and the great Acquaintance he found there of worſhipful Folks, he intended at a more convenient Time to be better acquainted with it. Remaining in this Opinion after the King commanded him to attend upon the Prince, and having then leiſure, he tranſlated it into Engliſh, which had not been before done: But as there were divers Copies of this Book, differing from each other, he concludes with intimating his hopes, that he ſhall not be cenſured for that which he has follow'd; or his Tranſlation judg'd of by thoſe which vary from it.

The Work itſelf opens with the Sayings of Sedechias; ſo goes on with thoſe of many eminent Ancients, as Homer, Solon, Hyppocrates, Pythagoras, Diogenes, Socrates, Plato, Ariſtotle, Alexander, Ptolemy, Seneca, St. Gregory, Galen, and ſome few others; all whom have a Chapter a-piece beſtow'd upon their Sayings. But the concluding Chapter comprehends the Sayings of ſeveral Perſons; firſt, of thoſe whoſe Names are remember'd, and laſtly, ſuch as are anonymous; from which, as the Apopthegms of moſt of thoſe Ancients are now more directly tranſlated from the original Languages, in which they were deliver'd, we ſhall only give this one Example.. ‘"Ther cam byfore a Kyng thre Wyſemen; the one was a Greke, the other a Jewe, and the therde a Saraſyn; of whom the ſayd Kyng deſirid, that ych of them wold utter ſom good and notable Sentence. Then the Greke ſayd, I may wele correcte and amende my Thoughtis, but not my Wordes: Then the Jewe ſayd, I have mervayll of them that ſaye thinges prejudicial, where Silence were more prouffitable: And the Saraſyn ſayd, I am Mayſter over my Wordes, or it be pronounced; but when it is ſpoken, I am Servaunt thereto. And it was asked one of them; Who might be called a Kyng? And he anſwerd, He that is not ſubgett to his owne Will.’

At the end of the Tranſlation of this Work, there is a remarkable Chapter added of three Leaves (which concludes the whole Volume) by William Caxton, or in his Name: For, as it contains a Tranſlation from the French, of thoſe Sarcaſms of Socrates, againſt the female Sex, which our noble Tranſlator of the reſt, had purpoſely paſs'd over, in the proper Place, under the Chapter of that Philoſopher; the Reader is left to judge, if the ſaid Earl ſeriouſly intended to [66] favour the Fair, by ſuch an Omiſſion, in the middle of his Book, whether his Printer would probably make ſo free as to publiſh it, of his own accord, tho' in his own Name, more conſpicuouſly at the end of it. If it is a piece of Fineſſe, it is artfully enough conducted, to expoſe them more notoriouſly, under the Notion of forbearing to do it at all. We never read that the Caſe has been ſo interpreted, nor can ſay, in what Vein or Air Maiſter Caxton's Apology for the ſaid Addition was written, or is to be read; but there are in it the following Expreſſions. ‘"I fynde that my ſaide Lord hath left out certayn and dyverce Concluſions towchyng Women! wherein I mervaylle that my ſayd Lord hath not wreton them, ne what hath mevyd him ſo to do, ne what cauſe he hadde at that Tyme: But I ſuppoſe that ſome fayr Lady hath deſired hym to leve it out of his Booke; or ellys he was amerous on ſomme noble Lady, for whos Love he wold not ſette it in his Book; or ellys for the very Affectyon, Love and good Wylle that he hath unto alle Ladyes and Gentylwomen, he thought that Socrates ſpared the Sothe, and wrote of Women more than Trouthe. For if he had made fawte in wryting of Women, he ought not, ne ſhold not be belevyd in his other Dyctes and Sayinges. But I apperceyve that my ſayd Lord knoweth veryly, that ſuche Defautes ben not had ne founden in the Women born and dwellyng in theſe Partyes, ne Regyons of the World. Socrates was a Greke, boren in a ferre Contre from hens, whyche Contre is alle of othre Condycions than this is; and Men and Women of other Nature than they ben here in this Contre; for I wote wel, of what ſomever condicion Women ben in Grece, the Women of this Contre ben right good, wiſe, playſant, humble, diſcrete, ſobre, chaſt, obedient to their Husbondis, trewe, ſecrete, ſtedfaſt, ever beſy, and never idle, attemperat in ſpeking and vertuous in alle their Workis, or at leaſt, ſholde be ſoo. For whiche Cauſes ſo evydent, my ſayd Lord, as I ſuppoſe, thoughte it was not of neceſſite to ſette in his Book the Saiengis of his Auctor Socrates touchyng Women. But for as moche as I had commandement of my ſayd Lord to correcte and amende whereas I ſholde fynde fawte; and other fynde I none, ſauf that he hath left out theſe Dictes and Saynges of the Women of Grece; therefore in accompliſhing his Commandement, for as moche as I am not in certayn wheder [67] it was in my Lordis Copye or not*, or ellis peradventure that the Wynde had blowe over the Leef, at the tyme of Tranſlacion of his Booke, I purpoſe to wryte the ſame Saynges of that Greke, Socrates, whiche wrote of the Women of Grece, and nothyng of them of this Royame, whom I ſuppoſe he never knewe; for if he had, I dar plainly ſaye, that he wold have reſerved them ineſpeciall in his ſaid Dictes. Alway not preſumyng to put and ſette them in my ſayd Lordes Book, but in the Ende, aparte, in the Reherſayll of the Werkis, humbly requiryng all them that ſhal rede this Lytyl Reherſayll, that yf they fynde ony Faulte, tarrette it to Socrates, and not to me, &c."’ Thus much may ſuffice of the Apology for the Addition aforeſaid, which at the ſame time gives an Example of the Language or Manner of Expreſſion in thoſe Times.

XIV. Here begynnith the firſte Volum of Syr JOHN FROYSSART; of the Cronycles of Englande, France, Spayne, Portyngale, Scotlande, Bretaine, Flaundres, and other Places adjoyndinge. Tranſlated oute of Frenche into oure maternall Englyſhe Tongue by JOHN BOUCHIER Knyghte, Lord Berners; at the Commandement of oure moſte hyghe, redouted Soveraygne Lord, Kynge HENRYE the VIII. King of England, &c.

AT the Concluſion of this Volume 'tis ſaid, ‘"Thus endeth the firſt Volume of Sir John Froiſſart of the Chronicles of England, &c. Tranſlated by Johan Bourcher Knt. Lord Berners, &c. Imprinted at London in Fleteſtrete, by Richarde Pynſon Printer to the Kynges Noble Grace; and ended the 28th Day of Jan. 1523."’ In the laſt Page of which Volume is a wooden Print of the Tranſlator's Coat of Arms. And the ſaid Volume contains 322 Leaves, beſides the Tranſlator's Preface, and Table of Contents, being [68] 451 Chapters. Herewith is uſually bound the Continuation of the ſaid Chronicle; having this Title: Here begynneth the thirde and fourthe Boke of Sir JOHN FROISSART, of the Chronycles of England, &c. Tranſlated, &c. by JOHAN BOURCHIER Knt. Lord Berners, Deputie Generall of the Kynge's Town of Calais, and Marcheſſe of the ſame; at the Commandement, &c. of Kyng HENRY VIII. &c. With a Print of the King's Arms at the back of the ſaid Title-page.’

This Volume concludes with theſe Words, ‘"Thus endeth the third and fourth Boke of Sir John Froiſſart of the Cronycles of England, &c. Tranſlated out of French, &c. by John Bourchier Knt. Lord Berners, Deputie General of Calais, &c. at the hyghe Commaundement of K. Henry VIII. &c. which two Bokes be compyled into one Volume, and fynyſſhed in the ſaid Towne of Calais the 10th Day of Marche, in the 16th Yere of our ſaid Soverayne Lordes Raigne. Imprinted at London in Fleteſtrete, by Rycharde Pynſon Printer to the Kynges Mooſt Noble Grace: And ended the laſt Day of Auguſt, the Yere of our Lorde God 1525."’ In the laſt Page alſo of this Volume is the like Print of the Tranſlator's Arms. It contains 319 Leaves, beſides the Tranſlator's Preface and Table of Contents, being 249 Chapters: The whole together, being printed on a large black Letter, makes a thick Volume in Folio.

The Tranſlator, in his Preface to the firſt Volume, having ſpoken much in Commendation of Hiſtory, and having among the reſt diligently read the four Volumes of Sir John Froiſſart, he judg'd them neceſſary and proper to be render'd into Engliſh, ſince they treat of the famous Acts done in our Parts, &c. and ſpecially redound to the Honour of Engliſhmen; which Chronicle begins at the Reign of K. Edward III. and continues to the beginning of K. Henry IV. containing the Space of threeſcore and fourteen Years, that is from 1326 to 1400. He then beſpeaks the favourable Reception of his Labour as to his not following his Author word for word, ſince he truſts that he has kept to the true Sentence (or Senſe) of the Matter, and for naming all Perſons, Countries, Cities, Towns, Rivers, or Fields, as he found them in French. And tho' he has not given every Lord, Knight, or 'Squire his true Addition, yet truſts he [69] has not ſwerved from the true Sentence of the Matter. And where he has named the Diſtance between Places, by Miles and Leagues, they muſt be underſtood according to the Cuſtom of the Countries where they are named, being in ſome Places longer than in others. This is the Senſe of his ſaid Preface; after which follows

The Prologue of Sir John Froiſſart; which is the firſt Chapter. Herein we are inform'd, That he propoſes to take his Foundation out of the true Chronicles, compiled by that Right Reverend, diſcreet and ſage Maſter John le Bel, ſometime Canon in St. Lambert's of Liege, who with great Diligence, Charge and Coſt, through the Encouragement and Intelligence he received from Sir John of Haynault, continued it all his Days. Further, That our Author Froiſſart always inclining to theſe Studies, frequented the Company of divers Noble and Great Lords, as well in France, England, and Scotland, as other Countries, and had Knowledge from them of the Adventures that befel, eſpecially ſince the great Battle of Poitiers, where King John of France was taken Priſoner, before which time he was but young: Yet took upon him as ſoon as he came from School, to write and recite the ſaid Book, and bare the ſame compiled into England, and preſented the Volume to Philippa of Haynault, the Queen of England, who received it to his great Profit and Advancement. But becauſe the ſame Book might not be ſufficiently correct, he enterpriſed this Hiſtory on the aforeſaid Ordynance and true Foundation, at the Inſtance and Requeſt of a dear Lord of his, Sir Robert of Namure, Knight, Lord of Beaufort. And this is the Subſtance at his Prologue *. Then he proceeds to the Chronicles, divided under the many Chapters before-mentioned, [70] of all which, though we cannot here preciſely give the bare Titles, we ſhall yet point out ſuch Parts, as moſt reſpecting our own Country, may revive the Knowledge of many neglected Particulars, which will much illuſtrate the Hiſtory thereof.

[71]He begins therefore with a ſhort Recital of ſome of the moſt valiant Knights, to be mentioned in the Sequel of this Work. So proceeds to ſome Obſervations on ſome of King Edward IIId's Predeceſſors. The Parents of this King Edward. The Occaſion of the War between the Kings of France and England. [72] The beheading of Thomas of Lancaſter, with 22 other Knights and Lords. Queen Iſabella's Complaint to her Brother of France againſt Sir Hugh Spencer, and his procuring her Baniſhment out of France. Her repairing to the Empire, and Arrival in England with Sir John of Heynault. [73] Her beſieging the King her Husband at Briſtol. The Sentence paſs'd on Sir Hugh Spencer, and his Son-in-Law the Earl of Arundel. The Execution of Sir Hugh Spencer. Coronation of King Edward III. Robert de Bruce King of Scotland, his Defiance of King Edward. The Diſſenſion [74] between the Archers of England and Heynault. Of the Scots and their Manner of War. The King of England's Journey againſt the Scots. His Marriage with Philippa of Heynault. The Death of King Robert. Execution of the Earls of Kent and Mortimer. Berwick taken by King Edward. The Counſel he received to make War with the French. The Battle of Cagaunt between the Engliſh and French. Alliances made by King Edward in the Empire. Made Vicar-General of the Empire. Defies the French King Sir Walter Manny's firſt entring France; and the French entring England. Cambray beſieged by King Edward. The intended Battle between England and France at Vironfoſſe, in which five Kings were preſent; how the French were diſmay'd by a Hare, whence the Creation of Knights of the Hare by the Earl of Heynault. How King Edward took the Arms and Title of France. The great Sea-Fight gain'd by the Engliſh againſt the French at Sluſe. Of the Siege of Tournay by the King of England; and the Scots regaining great Part of Scotland the while. King Edward's third War with the Scots. His Affection for the Counteſs of Salisbury. Many brave Acts of Sir Walter Manny. The Feaſt made by the King for the Love of the Counteſs of Salisbury. He enters Bretagne with a great Army, and the Waſte he made there. Eſtabliſhes the Order of St. George at Windſor, to commence the next St. George's Day 1344. The Conqueſts of the Earl of Derby in Gaſcoigne. The King's victorious Progreſs thro' Normandy. The famous Battle of Creſſy, and Siege of Calais. The taking of the King of Scots at Newcaſtle. Calais taken. The Death of King Philip of France, and Coronation of his Son John 1350. Acts of the Prince of Wales in 1355. The Battle of Poitiers. King John taken Priſoner [75] there. The Prince of Wales's Bounty to James Lord Audley, which he beſtow'd on his 'Squires. The French King brought into England. The King of Scots Releaſement. King Edward's hoſtile March through, and Conqueſts in France 1359. The Form of the Treaty of Peace before Chartres. The Death of Henry Duke of Lancaſter. Coming of the Prince of Wales to Aquitaine. Death of King John, and Succeſſion of Charles V. of France. Acts of Sir John Chandos. The Prince of Wales's Conqueſts for the reſtoring Don Peter King of Caſtile. The King of France's Defiance of the King of England. The Battles and Conqueſts in France which enſued, under the Earl of Cambridge, Earl of Pembroke, Sir Robert Canol, Sir Thomas Felton, &c. The Death of Queen Philippa in Auguſt 1369. Sir John Chandos ſlain. The King's Letter ſent into Aquitaine, for the Prince of Wales to reſtore the Levies made there by his Officers. The Truce between England and Scotland. Sir Robert Canol's Actions in France. Limoges taken by the Prince of Wales. He leaves the Government of Aquitaine to the Duke of Lancaſter, who marries King Peter's Daughter. The Earl of Pembroke's Government in Poitiers; taken Priſoner. Death of David King of Scotland 1373. Actions of the Earl of Salisbury, W. Nevyll, Philip Courtnay, and divers others in France. Truce between the French and Engliſh. The Death of the Prince of Wales at Weſtminſter, and of his Father King Edward III. 1377. Richard crown'd. This is followed with ſome Invaſions by the French, and Revolts from the Engliſh in France; loſs of the Caſtle of Berwick, and recovery of it by the Earl of Northumberland, with new Wars in Scotland. The Alliance of Navarre and England. Death of Evan or Owen of Wales. Overtures of Marriage for King Richard. Earl of Buckingham's Progreſs in France. The Earl of Cambridge's Voyage to Portugal, and the Rebellion of Wat Tyler. The Marriage of King Richard with the King of the Romans Daughter. The Alliance between the Engliſh and Flemings, and of Pope Urban's Bulls ſent hither to deſtroy the Clementines. The Biſhop of Norwich's Expedition to war againſt them. The Flemings diſcomfited by the Engliſh. Then, with the Marriage between Heynault and Burgoign, and the Truce between England, Scotland and France, till the Expiration thereof in 1385, our Tranſlator concludes his firſt Volume.

The two laſt Books, according to the ſaid Tranſlator's [76] Diviſion of them, begin with the Victualling of Gaunt, during the Truce, by Sir John Bourchyer Governor thereof. The arming of the Engliſh againſt the French. The Preparations of the Scots to enter England. Inroads of the French and Scots at Northumberland. Sir Richard Stafford ſlain by Sir John Holland. Edinburgh taken by the King of England. Acts of the French and Scots in Wales. The Voyage of our Author Sir John Froiſſart from France to Gaſton Earl of Foix in Bearn 1388, for Hiſtorical Intelligence. How the late Princeſs of Wales prevail'd on the ſaid Earl to moderate the Ranſom of the Earl of Armignac. The Portugal Embaſſy into England. The Duke of Lancaſter's Expedition at Breſt and in Galicia. The French King's Preparations to enter England, and how fruſtrated. Sir Simon Burley's Counſel to remove St. Thomas his Shrine at Canterbury to Dover. The Engliſh Exploits in Flanders. Beſance taken by the Duke of Lancaſter. Sir John Holland's Combat with Sir Raynold de Roy. Of the Diſcords in England among the Nobles, occaſion'd by the Duke of Ireland; and between the Archbiſhops. Sir Simon Burley beheaded, and Sir Thomas Trivet's Death. The Council for reforming the King and the Realm. The King adviſed to make War upon his Uncles. Sir Robert Tryvylyen beheaded. The Duke of Ireland put to flight by the King's Uncles. Sir Nicholas Bramble beheaded. The General Council at Weſtminſter. Further Progreſs of the Duke of Lancaſter with the King of Portugal againſt the Spaniards and French. How the French regain'd what he had won in Galicia. The King of Caſtile's Overtures to match his Son with the Duke's Daughter, and the Truce which enſued. The Feat of Arms by Sir Thomas Harpyngham, and Sir John Barres. The Earl of Arundel's Exploit near Rochel. New Preparations of the Scots and Engliſh for Battle. The State of Queen Iſabella of England, and how King Richard was put in the Tower. Sir Henry Percy's Attempt againſt the Scots to recover his Pennon taken by Earl Douglaſs before Newcaſtle. Earl James Douglaſs kill'd. Sir Ralph Percy wounded. Victory of the Scots againſt the Engliſh near Ottebridge, and Sir Henry and Sir Ralph Percy taken. Sir James Lynſey taken by the Biſhop of Durham. The Earl of Arundel's Voyage to Rochel. The Entry of Queen Iſabella into Paris. The Truce ſealed by King Richard and his Uncles for three Years between England and France. The Enterprize of the French and Engliſh into Barbary againſt the Saracens. The [77] Feaſt in England during the Siege there. The great Aſſembly at Amiens on the Treaty of Peace. The ſaid Truce renewed. The Form of the Peace. The Dutchy of Aquitaine given by the King to the Duke of Lancaſter and his Heirs. The Death of Queen Anne of England. Our Author's Arrival in England, and Preſent of a Book to the King. The Reception of the Duke of Lancaſter at Aquitaine. Four Kings of Ireland, brought to obey King Richard. His Embaſſy to treat of a Marriage between Lady Iſabel the French King's Daughter, and himſelf. The Duke of Lancaſter's Re-marriage. The Peace between France and England continued, and the King of England married to the Daughter of France. The Order of the Marriage. The Duke of Glouceſter's ſubtil Attempts to deſtroy the King his Nephew. Diſcover'd and Apprehended. The Death of the Duke of Glouceſter, and of the Earl of Arundel. The Earl of Derby baniſh'd by the King out of England for Ten Years, and the Earl Marſhal for ever. The Anſwer of the Duke of Lancaſter, to the Meſſage ſent by his Son the Earl of Derby; alſo of the Duke's Death, and how it was taken by the King. His Majeſty's Obſtruction of the Earl of Derby's Marriage with the Duke of Berry's Daughter. The King's Preparations to march into Ireland. The Meſſage of the Londoners, &c. by the Archbiſhop of Canterbury to the Earl of Derby to return into England. The Earl's Arrival with great Power. King Richard's Reſignation of the Crown to the ſaid Earl of Derby and Duke of Lancaſter. The Coronation of the ſaid Henry Duke of Lancaſter. The French King's Diſpleaſure, at the Tydings of King Richard's being taken, and of the Army he raiſed to ſend into England. The Death of King Richard, and Renewal of the Truce between England and France.

This is a Summary of the principal Heads relating to our Engliſh Affairs in this Chronicle; which, as thoſe of moſt Note, have been drawn into the Titles of the Chapters, but clear'd here from the Foreign Matter wherewith they are there much interrupted, and might, by thoſe who wou'd go through the whole Volumes, and make a more minute Table of Contents, be augmented from the Chapters themſelves; which contain many other Particulars of memorable Perſons and Circumſtances, in this Period of our Hiſtory.

[76]
[...]
[77]
[...]

XV. The Fyrſte Part of the Actes of ENGLISH VOTARIES, comprehendynge their unchaſte Practiſes and Examples by all Ages, from the Worldes begynnynge to the Yeare of our Lord 1000. Collected owte of their owne Legendes and Chronycles; by JOHAN BALE, (at the End ſaid to be) Imprynted at London, by Abraham Vele, &c. 1551. containing 78 Leaves 8vo. To this is joined, The Second Part, or Contynuacyon of the ENGLISH VOTARIES; comprehendynge their unchaſte Examples for 200 Years ſpace; from the Year One Thouſand, from Chriſtes Incarnation, to the Reign of King JOHAN; Collected of theyr owne Wryters, by JOHAN BALE. Imprynted at London, for J. BALE, 1551, &c. Cum Privilegio ad imprimendum ſolum. 120 Leaves 8vo*.

[78]

IN his Preface to the firſt Part, our Author ſays, of the Popiſh Clergy, That, ‘"Not only have they commaunded unto us Whoremongers, Baudes, Bribers, Idolaters, Hyprocrites, Traitors, and moſt filthy Gomorreans, as Godly Men and Women; but alſo they have canonized them for [79] moſt holy Saintes; ſet them up gilt Images in theyr Temples, commaunded their Vigils to be faſted, appoynted them Holy-dayes, and the People to do them Honour with Even Songes, Houres, Proceſſions, Lightes, Maſſes, Ringings, Singings, Cenſynges, and the Devil and all of ſuch Heatheniſh Wares. They have done by us, as their old Predeceſſours the Idolatrous Prieſtes dyd by the ancient Romanes; they have ſet up a Sort of lecherous Gods to be worſhipped in oure Temples, to be our Advocates, and to helpe us in our Nedes. Inſtede of Jupiter, Saturne, Mercurye, Mars, Juno, Proſerpina, Diana and Venus, which did all their Feates in Whoredome, as the Poetes verefyeth; they have given us, Wenefryde, Cuthbert, Dunſtane, Oſwalde, Anſelme, Becket, Brigide, Audry, Modwin, Edith, Oſith, Ethelburge, and a great Sort more of unpure Workers out of Marriage."’

The firſt Part begins with Three Chapters on Marriage, ſhewing how it was inſtituted by God, contemned by Sathan, and appointed to the Prieſthood in both Laws. Next, of this Iſland, and its being inhabited before Noah: Of whom it was called Albion. Of the Samothites, of Brute, the Druids, [80] and their Chaſtity. More particularly of Prieſts married and unmarried among the Hebrews; and of Chriſt allowing Matrimony. That the Apoſtles and firſt Preachers were married. And that Britain was firſt converted by married Men. Of the Introduction of Chriſtianity. And how it was firſt corrupted with Biſhops and Archbiſhops, by the Romiſh Church. Of the firſt Spring of Monkery in Britain, and the Hereſies, ariſing therefrom, of Pelagius and Leporius. Of St. Patrick, that he was the Son of a Prieſt, and converſant with Women. Of Saints that were begotten in Whoredom, and how grievous Women were to them. The Legend of St. Urſula and her Companions, appointed to marry. The Inconſtraint of thoſe devoted to Religion. Of the Entry of the Saxons, and a New Chriſtianity. The ſelling of Engliſh Boys at Rome. The Entrance of Auguſtine and his Monks. How they were diſturbed by Women. Their firſt Spiritual Proviſions here. Their Preparations for Antichriſt. The Teſt of Auguſtine's Apoſtleſhip. The beginning of the Engliſh Church with Tyranny. What the Britiſh Church was before. The Approach of Antichriſt to his full Age. The Chaſtity of his Maſs-Mongers. The Contempt of Marriage, with the ground of the Fables, that the Men of Dorſetſhire and Kent had Tails. Of the Strife about the Eaſter Celebration and other Ceremonies. Other Religious Examples diſſuading Matrimony. Of the Toys ſent by Pope Boniface to King Edwin and his Wife Ethelburge. The ghoſtly beſtowing of their Vows. Of St. Erkenwald and Oſith, with their Nunneries. The Perfect Age of the Beaſt, at the coming of Theodorus, &c. Sealings to the Beaſt's Obedience. Of the Chaſtity, Monks, Monaſteries and Penance of thoſe Times. The Foundation of their Purgatory. The Chaſtity of Cuthbert and Doctrine of Colfride. Fall of Kingdoms and Riſe of the Papacy. The old Propheſy of Merlin diſcloſed. Acts of vowed Virginity. A Spiritual Conveyance of St. Audry (to Wilfryde Biſhop of York, for whom ſhe jilted two Princes her Husbands.) And of our Author's Treatment at Rippon. Of Kings becoming Pilgrims, and their Wives, Nuns. Great Experiments of Virginity and Chaſtity. When Images were firſt admitted, and where Engliſh Monks become Apoſtles to Antichriſt; particulary of Wenefridus, or Boniface the great Apoſtle of Germany. Of Kings depoſed, and certain Miracles. The Doctrine of Boniface, with the Sale of Whores. The Monaſteries of Fulda and Floriac. Why Oxford was to be miſchievous to Kings; and of Alcuinus [81] his Monks who all died in a Night. Of Engliſhmen puniſh'd at Rome, and the renewing of Rome-ſhot or Rome-ſcot. The Engliſh Monk's Paramour, or Pope Joan. How the Popes from that Time were choſen. Of Holy Water, and a Book againſt Marriage. The miraculous Tranſportation of Odulphus into Germany. Of Biſhop Elphegus and his Injunction about Marriage. Other Monkiſh Stories in Derogation of Marriage. Of Archbiſhop Odo's Frantick Tricks and Legerdemain with the Hoſt. Monkery augmented by Dunſtan. The Legend of his Harp ſounding of itſelf. How by Sorcery, he terrified King Edmund. How he diſpleaſed King Edwin, and of Alfgina's Love for him. How he kept the Kings of England under, with the Apoſtolical Swords and Biſhopricks he had for that Purpoſe. What Rule was at Rome in thoſe Days. The Chaſtity of Holy Church there. A Pope's Baſtard made Pope. Three Whores made Goddeſſes by King Hugh, and their Baſtards preferr'd in the Church. Dunſtan's Power to diſſolve Prieſt's Marriage. King Edgar's Penance for his Adultery with Wilfrith; his Religious Foundation and Grant. Dunſtan's Inſolence to him; and his further Submiſſion. Of Editha, and the Miracle he wrought upon her. The Synod in 969, wherein the Clergy were reſtrained from Women; and Dunſtan accuſed of Ill Rules: Edgar's Accuſation of the Clergy and Defence of Dunſtan. His clearing Wales of Wolves, and encreaſing them in the Church. Biſhop Ethelwold's Commiſſion from the ſaid Synod, and Biſhop Oſwald's. Dunſtan a King-Maker. Monks expell'd; and Prieſts, with their Wives and Children reſtor'd. Dunſtan's ſpeaking Idol. Here Thomas Cromwell is alluded to for the Detection of ſuch Impoſtures. Verſes in Memory of that pretended Miracle. That Idol crown'd by Canute. An Example of Clauſtral Chaſtity, in the Monks Baſtard impos'd by Queen Elgine on her Husband Canutus for her own Child. Dunſtan vexed with the Diſputes of his Enemies, argues the Houſe down upon them. Dunſtan's Death. The Order of Monks eſtabliſh'd, Anno 1000. The Miſchiefs which enſued, by the Invaſion of the Danes, which with a Concluſion of three or four Leaves, ends this Firſt Part.

The Second Part, after the Preface and Epiſtle to the Reader, begins with, The Ring-leader of our Votaries, in ſome Account of Pope Sylveſter II. and his Stone-Offering; which our Author found regiſter'd in an old MS. Chronicle at Calais, 28 Years paſt. Other Examples of the like Sacrifices [82] Further Account of this Sylveſter, and his Sorcerous Proceedings. Of the Elections of Popes henceforward, and the Emperors. Of Maſſes, Purgatory and Church Muſick. Other Hiſtories of the Prieſts and Monks in that Age. Of the Nunnery of Barking given to Wilfhilda, and her Miracles. The Virtue of St. Ives Water, and St. Walſtane's Miracles. Canutus his Superſtitious Buildings, through the Inſtigation of Archbiſhop Achelnotus; and the Burden of the Land with Rome-ſhot. The Story of the Emperor Henry IId's Siſter, and his Chaplain, whom ſhe convey'd from her Chamber on her Back, thro' the Snow to prevent his Footſteps being diſcovered, with the Emperor's Speech (having ſeen them) at the Gift of a Biſhoprick to the one, and an Abby to the other. The Adultery, Murders, and Treaſon of Queen Emma, and how after ſhe had profuſely endowed the Church, ſhe cou'd walk over burning Plough-Shares. Of St. Edward and his Chaſtity. The Poverty of the Papacy; when the Name of Cardinals came into Uſe; and of Swanus Earl Goodwin's Son. Of Palumbus a great Worker of Spiritual Knaveries, and Heyla the Witch and Bawd of Berkeley. Other unchaſte Examples in the Prieſthood, verefying that they laugh at Letchery, who frown at Marriage; and that never yet came Plague of Miſchief to this Realm, which the Prelates have not turn'd to their private Commodity, and ſported thereat in the End. Inſtanc'd in the promoting the Daniſh Race to the Crown of England; the Story of Duke Robert of Normandy, and Arletta the Mother of William the Conqueror of England, to the great Misfortune, Shame and Undoing thereof in thoſe Days. Of Stigandus Biſhop of Sherborne; and the riotous State of other Biſhops. William of Durham's expelling the Prieſts and their Wives for Monks; and of Oliver or Elmer the flying Monk of Malmesbury. Of St. Frideſwide's Church. Of Pope Nicholas, and the Freedom given to Weſtminſter for the Sanctuary of Whores and Rogues. Of Berengarius, and the Synod of Wincheſter. Lanfranc and his Legerdemains. Biſhops changing their Seats and Titles. Old Walter Biſhop of Hereford, murder'd by a Wench he would have debauch'd. Of Cicely, King William's Daughter and Thurſtinus. How Hildebrand, by Sorcery and Murder, obtain'd the Papacy. Others of his miſchievous Practices. An Act of Condemnation for Prieſts Marriage, with the Miſchiefs enſuing, and by whom reſiſted. Married Prieſts baited with a Bull. The Treaſon of Prelates, Biſhop Walter's Ambition and violent Death. The Diſpoſſeſſion [83] of the Prieſts at Durham, by the Monks. The Viſion of Boſo, and the Gallantries of Earl Toſtius's luſty Chaplain in Tinmouth Church. The Miracles of Archbiſhop Lanfranc. Of Biſhop Oſmond and his Ordinary, called the Uſe of Sarum. Of Kenred the gelded Prieſt. The Tribute paid by Prieſts for their Wives. Variance among Biſhops for married Prieſts. Of the Signs in the Heavens manifeſting the Miſchiefs of the Age. Robert Bloet Monk of Eveſham, his Simony for the See of Lincoln; and the Superſtition of Roger Earl of Shrewsbury, and Hugh Earl of Cheſter. Of Biſhop Herbert, who built Chriſt Church at Norwich. The Robbery, Symony and Sacrilege of the ſaid Herbert. Other anointed Prelates of the ſame Race. Of Wulſtane the misbegotten Biſhop of Worceſter. Of Stephen Hardynge and his Cyſteans. Hildegarde's Prophecy, with other Examples. The firſt Fit of Anſelm with King William Rufus: Another Inſtance of his Arrogance. His Flight to, and Reception at Rome; his Devotion and Prayer for Women; other Practices of his. A wonderful Overthrow of the Temporal Power. Acts in the Councils of Rome. Anſelm made Pope of England. The Chaſtity of Anſelm and Death of King William. King Henry marries a Votary without Diſpenſation. Anſelm's Wiles, and Randolf's Treaſon. The chaſte Proceedings of divers Holy Prelates. Prieſts Marriage condemned by Anſelm. The Acts of Anſelm's great Synod. Penalties for thoſe who infringed them. Abbots depoſed, and Prieſts in Norfolk deprived. Old Latin Rimes of a Monk againſt married Prieſts, found by our Author at Ramſey Abbey. The reſiſtance of York Dioceſe againſt depriving the Prieſts of their Wives. The Synod at London againſt Sodomy; and the general Curſe publiſhed, and diſſolved. Anſelm's Contention with the King; debated at Rome. Our Author's Obſervations on his Writings and Epiſtles, eſpecially to the Siſters. The firſt Order of Tippet-Men, or Secular Prieſts. Anſelm brings the King's Power in Subjection. Another Synod of Anſelm for diſſolving Prieſts Marriages. The cloſing up of Anſelm's unſavory doings. The Philoſophy of the Pagans brought in and Scholaſtic Diſputations; with John Baconthorp's Caution againſt ſuch ſubtil Sophiſtries. Ralph Archbiſhop of Canterbury's inſolent Outrage againſt the King. Of Pope Calixtus and the Head Church of Wales. King Henry's Children and Courtiers drowned, and to what aſcribed. That Archbiſhop Celſus had both Wife and Children. John de Crema the Pope's Legate, condemned Marriage, [84] and was caught in Fornication. How the King deceived the Biſhops in their Proceedings againſt the married Clergy. Of the ſeveral Swarms of Monks; where and when they enter'd here; as the Benedictines, and Canons of St. Auguſtine, or black Monks, and Canons: the Ciſteans, or white Monks; St. Robert's Friers; the Gilbertines; the Premonſtratenſers, or white Canons; and the Charter-houſe Monks. Of King Stephen and the Coronation Oath, which the Clergy made him take. The Rebellion of the Biſhops againſt the King. The King impriſons the Canons Wives of Paul's. Another Council held againſt Prieſts and their Wives. Of ſome crafty Wits and Schoolmen in the Univerſities. The Pope's Laws rejected by King Stephen, and ſome Diſputes about the Sacrament. The Marriage of Prieſts, and how differently judg'd of at Norwich, in the Story of St. William of Norwich, and that of our Author's Wife, who was impriſon'd by the Magiſtrates there, in 1545, for being married to a Prieſt, who had been a Preacher among them, and whoſe Doctrines they call'd erroneous, heretical and ſeditious. ‘"But this, I proteſt unto them, ſays our Author, who am her Husbande indeed, that I will be able to defend my Doctrine, when they ſhall not be able to juſtifie their moſt cruel and wicked Example in defendynge of the Biſhop of Rome's Tyranny: I am depely in their Bokes, Men ſaye, therefore lete them not blame me, if they be in my Bokes again, &c."’ Of Tundalus, his Viſions, and the Prieſts Impoſture with Crabs and Candles, to paſs over the Graves of the dead, for their Spirits. Of Pope Adrian, who had a Monk to his Father. St. William of York, St. Wulfrick, and St. Robert. The Marriage of Mary, the Abbeſs of Ramſey. The beginning of the Order of Gilbertines. Of a Nun at Watton in Yorkſhire, begot with Child by a Monk, with Verſes thereon, by Nigellus Wereker in Spec. Stultorum, and how the Nun was compell'd to caſtrate him. Of the Chaſtity of other Monks and Nuns in that Age from the ſaid Nigellus. Of Malcolm, St. Edward, and Abbot Eldred. Peter Bleſenſis, his Reprehenſions of the Enormities of the Clergy. The luſty Beginnings of Thomas Becket. His Amours at Stafford, and Prevarication at Clarendon. Prefers Antichriſt to his King's Obedience. The Articles he ſtrove for againſt the King; and for which he was admitted the Pope's Martyr. Upholds the Pope's Church by oppoſing the Waldenſes; with their Opinions and Puniſhment. His traiterous End and Advancement above Chriſt. The falſe Miracles and [85] Canonization of Becket. Of King Henry II. The Aid he granted towards the Holy Wars. Renounced Obedience to the Pope. Made Lord of Ireland, Peter-pence there reſerved to the Pope. Scotland alſo ſubjected to the Crown of England, by Pope Clement III. A Patronage proved lawful to five married Prieſts. Divers Examples of Prieſts in that Age having Wives. St. Goodrick's Remedies for keeping the Vow of Chaſtity. A Council at Rome againſt Sodomites. Character of John of Salisbury, Biſhop of Carnote; and his Character of the Pope and his Miniſters. The inſatiable Gluttony of Bennet's Monks, and their abominable Letchery. Of a Traitor and a Thief who were Engliſh Votaries. A Crown of Peacock's Feathers ſent by the Pope to King Henry. Hugh Biſhop of Durham, made both an Earl and Chief-Juſtice. A Monk ſtrangely ſwallow'd up by a great Fiſh for his indecent Curioſity. The fooliſh Fondneſs of another Monk at the Grave of King Arthur and his Queen. King Richard ſent on a Pilgrimage, and William Longcamp the Chancellor of England, and Biſhop of Ely governs the Realm. The Biſhop taken and dies, and is lamented by an old Crucifix. Antichriſt detected by Abbot Joachim. Geffery Archbiſhop of York excommunicated, and Biſhop Novaunt wounded. Of Poiſons provided by Prieſts; with their Revelations and Viſions. A Biſhop and an Archdeacon taken in the Wars. Fulco's Advice for the Marriage of King Richard's three vicious Daughters, and which of them the King beſtow'd on the Church. Two Archbiſhops rebuk'd for College Building. A letcherous Votary aſſoiled at Rome for Money. With this Abomination, which our Author found in an old Book of Confeſſion and Abſolutions ſought at Rome, and a reference to more Inſtances of the like nature, in that other Book called Poenitentiarium Romanum, he ends this Second Part: After which follows his Concluſion, wherein he mentions alſo the two other Parts, which were to continue this Work to his own Time; but they it ſeems were never publiſh'd.

What we here have, is a diligent Collection from a great Variety of many Foreign, as well as our own moſt ancient Hiſtorians, both in Print and MSS, whom he has particularly cited at the End of every Story or Chapter, and alſo given a general Liſt of them to either Part. Some of them are very ſcarce to be met with in Print, or never were printed; and, perhaps, ſcarcely now to be recover'd in Manuſcript. The Book in the whole may be uſeful upon many [86] Occaſions; tho' to be read with ſome Grains of Allowance; the Zeal of its Author's Mind for the Reformation requiring, ſometimes, itſelf, perhaps to be reform'd, for making him a little too violent in his Sentiments, and groſs in his Language.

XVI. A Diſcourſe of ENGLISH POETRIE: Together with the Author's Judgment touching the Reformation of our Engliſh Verſe. By WILLIAM WEBBE Graduate. Imprinted at London by John Charlewood. Quarto, 1586.

THE Author of this very ſcarce Pamphlet, conſiſting of five Sheets and a half, dedicates it to Edward Suliard Eſq whoſe Sons were under his Tuition, and who had been preſented by him with ſome other Work before, which was a Tranſlation of ſome Poetry belike, from, or into Latin. In his Preface, To the Noble Poets of England, he obſerves, that tho' Books of, or tending to Poetry were, then, more numerous than any other Engliſh Books, yet that ‘"Poetry has found feweſt Friends to amend it; thoſe who can, reſerving their Skill to themſelves; thoſe who cannot, running headlong upon it; thinking to garniſh it with their Deviſes, but more corrupting it with fantaſtical Errors."’ Therefore the chief end of his Writing this Diſcourſe is, to propoſe a Reformation of Engliſh Poetry, ‘"by having ſome perfect Platform, or Proſodia of verſifying ratified; either in Imitation of the Greeks and Latins, or, where it would not well abide the touch of their Rules, thro' the like Obſervations, ſelected and eſtabliſh'd by the natural Affectation of the Speech*."’

[87]In the Diſcourſe, having ſpoken in general of Poetry, what it is, whence it had its beginning, and in what eſteem it has always been, according to Plato, Ariſtotle, and Spenſer in his Shepherd's Calendar, which our Author thinks inferior neither to Theocritus nor Virgil, and therefore zealouſly wiſhes for his other Works abroad, eſpecially his Engliſh Poet, which his Friend E. K. did once promiſe to publiſh; he then ſhews the Opinion that was held of the Power of Poetry; how Alexander and Scipio were delighted with it. So proceeds to enumerate the moſt memorable Poets among the Ancients, as Orpheus, Amphion, Tyrtaeus, Homer, Ennius, and Empedocles; with the Comic, Tragic, and Paſtoral Poets among the Grecians; and in like manner the Latin Poets; more particularly of Virgil; then of the Epigrammatic, Elegiac, and Hiſtorical Poets. Of Ovid, Horace, beſides many others, and alſo, as not inferior to ſome of them, Palengenius, Mantuan, and, for a ſingular Gift in a ſweet Heroical Verſe, matches with them, Chriſtopher Ocland, the Author of our Anglorum Praelia.

Hence he deſcends to the Engliſh Poets: And here obſerves, that he knows of no memorable Work written by any Poet in Engliſh, till twenty Years paſt; tho' Learning was not generally decay'd at any time, eſpecially ſince William the Conqueror; as may appear by many famous Works written by Biſhops and others; yet that Poetry was then in little Account, the Light of the old Greek and Latin Poets which they had, being contemn'd by them, as appears by their rude verſifying, wherein they thought nothing to be learnedly written in Verſe, which fell not out in Rhyme, either by the middle Words of each Verſe ſounding alike with the laſt, or every two Verſes ending with the like Letters. The Original of which tinkling Verſe is aſcrib'd by Mr. Aſcham to the Hunns and Goths. King Henry I. ſurnam'd Beauclerk, is here next ſpoken of, his Name being a Proof that Learning in this Country was not little eſteem'd of at that rude Time; and that among other Studies it is probable ſuch a Prince would not neglect the Faculty of Poetry. But the firſt of our Engliſh Poets here mention'd is John Gower in the Time of King Richard II. a ſingular well learned Man, whoſe Works our Author wiſhes were all [88] whole and perfect among us, as containing much deep Knowledge and Delight. Chaucer the God of Engliſh Poets, next after, if not equal in Time, hath left many Works both for Delight and profitable Knowledge, far exceeding any other that as yet, ever ſince his Time, directed their Studies that way. Tho' his Stile may now ſeem blunt and coarſe, yet in him may be ſeen the perfect Shape of a right Poet. By his delightſome Vein he ſo gull'd the Ears of Men with his Devices, that tho' Corruption bore ſuch a ſway that Learning and Truth could ſcarce ſhew themſelves, yet without Controll might he gird at the Vices and Abuſes of all States, and gall them with very ſharp and eager Inventions; which he did ſo learnedly and pleaſantly, that none therefore would call him in queſtion, &c. Lydgate, for good Proportion of his Verſe and meetly current Stile, as the Time afforded, is by our Author thought ſurely comparable with Chaucer, yet more occupied in ſuperſtitious and odd Matters than was requiſite in ſo good a Wit; which though he handled them commendably, yet the Matters themſelves being not ſo commendable, his Eſteem has been the leſs. The next of our antient Poets he ſuppoſes to be Pierce Ploughman, who is ſomewhat harſh and obſcure, but indeed a very pithy Writer, and the firſt our Author had ſeen who obſerv'd the Quantity of our Verſe without the Curioſity of Rhyme. Then he comes to Skelton in the Time of Henry VIII. who as he obtain'd the Laurel-Garland is, with good right, granted the Title of a Poet, being a pleaſant conceited Fellow, and of a very ſharp Wit, exceeding bold, and would nip to the very quick where he once ſet hold. After him is mention'd Maſter George Gaskoyne, as painful a Soldier in the Affairs of his Prince and Country as he was a witty Poet in his Writing; in whoſe farther Commendation, he cites the Words of E. K. upon the ninth Eclogue of the new Poet. Here he paſſes over divers, as the old Earl of Surrey, the Lord Vaux, Norton, Briſtow, Edwards, Tuſſer, Churchyard, W. Hunnis, Haiwood, Sand, Hyll, S. Y. M. D. becauſe they would make his Diſcourſe too tedious. But obſerves, that the Earl of Oxford may challenge to himſelf the Title of the moſt excellent, among the reſt of the Lords and Gentlemen in her Majeſty's Court. Hence he proceeds to the Tranſlators; among whom he ſhall ever account Dr. Phaer the beſt, for his Virgil, as far as half the tenth Book of the Aeneids, the reſt being no leſs commendably finiſh'd by that worthy Scholar and famous Phyſician T. Twyne: Equal with [89] him he joins Arthur Golding, for his Labour in Ovid's Metamorphoſes, who, for his further profiting this Nation and Speech in all good Learning, is here greatly extoll'd. The next Place is given to Barnaby Googe, beſides his own Compoſitions, for his Tranſlation of Palengenius his Zodiac; and he is follow'd by Abraham Flemming, with whom he would join another of his Name, who had excell'd as well in all kinds of Learning as in Poetry eſpecially, were his Inventions made publick. Here he apologizes for not being particular on the Tranſlators of Seneca, Ovid, Horace, Mantuan, and many others; alſo the Students of the Univerſities and Inns of Court, becauſe he has not ſeen all he has heard of, nor dwells in a Place where he can eaſily get knowledge of their Works. One however he may not over-ſlip, and that is Maſter George Whetſtone, a Man ſingularly well skill'd in this Faculty of Poetry. To him is join'd Anthony Munday, an earneſt Traveller in this Art, in whoſe Name our Author had ſeen very excellent Works, eſpecially upon Nymphs and Shepherds, well worthy to be view'd, and to be eſteem'd as very rare Poetry. With theſe he places John Graunge, Knyght, Wylmot, Darrel, F. C. F. K. and G. B. But here, has reſerv'd a Place purpoſely for one, who if not only, yet principally deſerves the Title of the righteſt Engliſh Poet that ever our Author read, that is, the Author of the Shepherd's Kalendar. And finds none fit to couple with him, unleſs Gabriel Harvey, for his much admir'd Latin Poetry, his Reformation of our Engliſh Verſe, and beautifying the ſame with brave Devices, tho' chiefly hidden in hateful Obſcurity, and the Author long ſince occupied in graver Studies. And if he were to join Harvey's two Brothers, the one a Divine, the other a Phyſician, is aſſur'd, they would much adorn the Art, if they would ſet their hands to it.

After his Judgment of the Poets, he ſpeaks of the Engliſh Poetry in its Matter and Form; what Verſe is, the Arguments of primitive Poetry, the Comic, Tragic, and Hiſtoric; the Uſe and End of Poetry from the Teſtimony of Horace. With his Advice, of letting things, feign'd for Pleaſure, nearly reſemble Truth, how duely obſerv'd by Chaucer. Others of Horace his Rules, with the Tranſlation of Sir Thomas Elyot of Reading laſcivious Poems, and what good Leſſons ſome Readers will pick out of the worſt of them. Examples to this purpoſe, from Plautus, Terence, Ovid, and Martial, by Sir T. Elyot. Of Heroic Poetry, and [90] that we have nothing anſwerable to Homer and Virgil, imputed to our not having had a timely regard to the Engliſh Speech, and curious handling of our Verſe, tho' now it has had great Advantages of Eloquence from ſome rare and ſingular Wits; among whom, that Maſter John Lilly has deſerved moſt high Commendations, as one who has ſtep'd further therein than any before, or ſince he firſt began the witty Diſcourſe of his Euphues. Whoſe Works ſurely in reſpect of his ſingular Eloquence, and brave Compoſition of apt Words and Sentences, let the learned examine and make Trial thereof thro' all the Parts of Rhetoric in fit Phraſes, in pithy Sentences, in gallant Tropes, in flowing Speech, in plain Senſe; and ſurely, in my Judgment, I think he will yield him that Verdict which Quintilian gives of both the beſt Orators, Demoſthenes and Tully: That from the one nothing may be taken away; to the other, nothing may be added: But for a cloſer Example, to prove a former Aſſertion, of the Fitneſs of our Language to receive the beſt Form of Poetry, we are referr'd to the Examination of Dr. Phaer's Tranſlation of Virgil with the Original, from both which, here are ſeveral Examples laid before us, and our Critick thinks, that the like Inference might be drawn from the Compariſon of Ovid's Metamorphoſis, with Golding's Tranſlation.

Next our Author treats more particularly of the Paſtoral Poetry or Eclogue: Here having ſpoken of Theocritus, Virgil, and others, he comes to one of our own Country, comparable with the beſt in any Reſpect, even Maſter Spenſer, Author of the Shepherd's Calendar, who wou'd, he thinks, have ſurpaſſed them, if the Coarſeneſs of our Speech (that is, the Courſe of Cuſtom which he wou'd not infringe) had been no greater Impediment to him, than their pure Native Tongues were to them. Here we have a little Compariſon between Virgil's Eclogues and Spenſer's, and the Commendations of E. K. upon the Engliſh Poet. The ſubject Matter, and uſe of his ſaid Calendar, and our Author's Apology for what had been objected againſt ſomething in his ſixth Eclogue, ſhewing it is the fooliſh Conſtruction, and not his Writing that is blameable. To theſe Writers of Paſtorals, are join'd thoſe who wrote Precepts of Husbandry in Verſe, after the manner of Virgil's Georgics; ſuch as that Book [...]f Tuſſer, a Piece ſurely, ſays he, of great Wit and Experience, and withal very prettily handled. And he thinks that this Argument has been ſo little treated of in Poetry, becauſe ſo many have written of it in Proſe. As for a Tranſlation of [91] the Georgics, it appears that Abr. Flemming in his Verſion of the Eclogues, did make ſome Promiſe thereof, and that our Author Webbe did perform the like; but it ſeems not that either of their Works were printed. Thence, from the Subject of our Engliſh Writers, he paſſes to the Form and Manner of our Engliſh Verſe; cenſures our barbarous practice of Rhyming; what is underſtood by Rhyme, and how improperly that Word is apply'd. The firſt beginning of Rhyme. Rules to be obſerved in framing our Engliſh Rhyme. Next we come to the ſeveral kinds of Engliſh Verſe, differing in Number of Syllables, where 'tis obſerv'd the longeſt Verſe in length, our Author has ſeen uſed in Engliſh, conſiſts of ſixteen Syllables, not much uſed, and commonly divided, each Verſe equally into two, rhiming alternately. The next in length is of fourteen Syllables, the moſt uſual of all others, among Tranſlators of the Latin Poets, which alſo often is divided into two Lines; the firſt of eight Syllables, the ſecond of ſix, whereof the ſixes always rhime, and ſometimes the others. But to avoid Tediouſneſs and Confuſion, repeats only the different ſorts of Verſes in the Shepherd's Calendar, which contains twelve or thirteen ſeveral ſorts, differing in Length, or Rhime, or Diſtinction of the Staves. After theſe Examples we have ſome Remarks, on the natural Order of Words, or Poſition in Engliſh Poetry, and that the quantity of our old Verſe of fourteen Syllables, runs much upon the Iambic: With further Obſervations upon Rhime. Gaskoyne's Inſtructions for verſifying. Of ſome rare Devices and pretty Inventions in Compoſition, as in the Song of Colin, ſung by Cuddy in the Shepherd's Calendar, framed upon ſix Words, prettily turn'd and wound up together. Not unlike John Graunge's Device of making the laſt Words of a certain Number of Verſes fall into Senſe: And that there were ſeveral delicate Performances in this Nature of Echoes, privately paſſing among the fineſt Poets of our Author's Time. We have ſomething alſo after the manner of the Acroſtic, from the Compoſitions of W. Hunnis. Then he proceeds to the reformed kind of Engliſh Verſe, in Imitation of the Greeks and Latins, which many had attempted to put in Practice, and this Part takes up three Leaves, in which among other Things, he obſerves the Hexameter to be the moſt famous Verſe; and that the firſt who attempted to practiſe it in Engliſh, was the Earl of Surrey, who tranſlated ſome part of Virgil into Verſe; but without regard of true quantity of [92] Syllables. Here he repeats the famous Diſtich in Hexameter, common in the mouths of all Men, which was made by Maſter Watſon, Fellow of St. John's College in Cambridge, about forty Years paſt; and two more in the Gloſs of E. K. upon the fifth Eclogue of the new Poet: That the great Number of the like kind made by Mr. Harvey, were not unknown to any, and his own Tranſlation of the two firſt Eclogues of Virgil in the like ſort of Verſe, is by our Author here exhibited. After which Examples in Hexameter, he comes to the Elegiac Verſe with Examples, and laſtly, in like manner of the Sapphic, with an Example thereof in his Verſion, from the fourth Eclogue in the Shepherd's Calendar, of Colin's Song, ſung by Hobbinol in praiſe of the Queen. To the whole is annexed, The Canons or General Cautions of Poetry, preſcribed by Horace, firſt gather'd by Geo. Fabricius Cremnicenſis; and at the End, a ſhort Epilogue, in which for the rendering our Poetry equal with the beſt in other Tongues, he gives us hopes of framing ſome apt Engliſh Proſodia; but hopes firſt to enjoy the Benefit of ſome others Judgment, whoſe Authority may bear greater Credit, and whoſe Learning can better perform it.

XVII. Hiſtoire Notable de la Converſion des ANGLOIS, des Saincts du Pays, des Monaſteres, Egliſes & Abbayes, des Pelerinages, des Apparitions des Eſprits, & des Sainctes Reliques; rapportee ſoubs la VIE miraculeuſe de Saincte VAUBOURG, vierge Abbeſſe: Illuſtrées d'amples Annotations & Diſcours Hiſtoriques, par JEAN L'ESPAGNOL, Docteur en Theologie. A. Douay, 8vo. 1614. Pag. 792.

THIS Notable Hiſtory of the Converſion of the ENGLISH; of the Saints of the Country; of Monaſteries, Churches and Abbeys; of Pilgrimages, Apparitions of Spirits, and holy Reliques; comprehended under the miraculous LIFE of St. WALBURG, the Virgin Abbeſs; illuſtrated with copious Annotations, and Hiſtorical Diſcourſes, by Dr. JOHN L'ESPAGNOL, who was the Grand Prior of St. Remy of Reims; treating of ſome Perſons, who, for the Holineſs of their Lives, and the Magnificence of their Religious Foundations, were, as Natives of this Iſland, an Honour thereto in Foreign Parts, near a Thouſand Years ſince; may on [93] ſeveral Accounts, merit the Notice of the Britiſh Librarian; being ſuch a Rarity, as to have much eſcaped the Knowledge or Obſervation of thoſe, who have attempted to enumerate and characteriſe the Writers of our Eccleſiaſtical Hiſtory, or the Lives of our Saints. The true Searchers after ſuch Antiquities, are not to be prejudiced, to the rejection of any ſolid Facts therein, by the religious Deluſions of thoſe Miracles, in which they are ſometimes envellop'd and convey'd; well knowing, that no ſuch ancient Hiſtories from Popiſh Writers, wou'd be any ways ſecure from miſleading us, if ſome difference were not to be allow'd, and Diſtinctions practiſed in Reading them: but on the contrary, if in ſuch Subjects, the Reader imitates the Refiner, he will not ſpurn at Knowledge, becauſe it comes in the Ore, but ſeparate the Droſs, and embelliſh the little Gold that he finds.

After the Author's Dedication, To the moſt Illuſtrious and Religious Princeſs Reneé de Lorraine, Abbeſs of St. Peter of Reims; and his Verſes to the moſt Illuſtrious and Reverend Lewis of Lorraine, with other Verſes in Praiſe of his Work, both in Latin and French; we have the Author's Prayer to St. Walburg, in which we ſhall forbear to criticiſe upon his Etymology of her Name, Valburgâ, fortè quaſi validum burgum, and paſs to the Preface; from whence we learn that our Author gather'd his Materials for the ſaid Life, from the Extract which Surius has made thereof, out of an ancient anonymous MS, which our Author thinks might be written either by St. Wilibauld, who did compile an Account of her Life, according to the Teſtimony of Molanus, or by Wolfhard a Religious German, who alſo wrote on the ſame Subject, according to Surius and Cardinal Baronius. He has alſo collected ſomething from what has been written of her, by George Wicelius, and from a Tract compoſed by Philip Biſhop of Eyſt, at the Requeſt of a Queen of Hungary; and ſays the Latin MSS. of the ſaid Philip and Wolfhard upon this Subject, with others, were printed at Ingolſtad, in 1603; thro' the Care of Henry Caniſius, and that he has been furniſhed with ſeveral other little Fragments and Memoirs from other Hiſtorians, who are cited in their proper Places. After this Preface of two Leaves, we have a Summary of the Chapters in this Life and Miracles of St. Walburg; at the End of that is a Table of the Annotations and Diſcourſes, deduc'd from, and referr'd to in the ſaid Life: This is followed with ſome Approbations of the Work, by two Foreign, and two Engliſh Doctors at Reims, whoſe [94] Names are William Gifford and Matthew Kelliſon: And laſtly, An Extract of the King's Privilege for printing the ſaid Book, and ſecuring the Property to the Author.

The chief Contents of the Life itſelf, which is compriſed in 62 Pages, are the holy Expedition of Winfred or Boniface, out of England into Germany to eſtabliſh the Chriſtian Faith; with an Account of thoſe who accompanied him, among whom were St. Tecla, St. Lioba, &c. An Account of St. Richard King of (or, in) England and his two Sons, St. Wilibauld and Winibauld, their devout Piligrimages. Of Winibauld's receiving Religious Orders from his Uncle St. Boniface, Archbiſhop of Mentz; and alſo the Government of ſeven Churches and Monaſteries, and his Brother being conſtituted Biſhop of Eyſt, with their joint Labours in the Propagation of the Faith. How after the Death of the Queen their Mother, they ſent over for their Siſter St. Walburg. Of the Oratory and Monaſtery, her Brother Winibauld built near his own, at Heydenheim, for her and her Virgins. Of his Death in the Year 760, aged 60 Years, having been 10 Years Abbot of his Monaſtery; with his Epitaph. Of the Miracles of St. Walburg in her Life-time; her Death in 776, aged 70 Years, and Burial in her own Monaſtery. Of the removal of her Body by Biſhop Odger to Eyſt, and her Reliques repoſited in a Monaſtery of Benedictines, built for that Purpoſe. Of many Cures performed upon the removal of her Reliques, with a Prayer to God and St. Walburg, by the Author. Of the Churches built by the Earls of Flanders, Kenemberg and Mount-Beliard, in Honour of her Reliques. How renowned ſhe was alſo in France, in the Dioceſe of Reims, chiefly in the Village call'd after her own Name, near Attigny; becauſe ſome part of her Body was brought thither, by Charles the Bald, Emperor of Germany, and King of France, who founded a Church in Honour of her, which being afterwards demoliſh'd by the Norman Infidels, that Chapel was built, which ſtands, ſays our Author, at preſent in its Place.

The reſt of the Book, to the End, conſiſts of Annotations, or diſtinct Diſcourſes, occaſionally enlarging upon ſeveral Parts of the Life, in Thirty-Four Chapters. Among which the chief are: Of the Converſion of the ancient Engliſh, and of the Marriage of the Faithful with Infidels. Of St. Gregory the Great. Of St. Boniface and St. Wilibauld. Of St. Richard. Of Pilgrimages, with the Arguments in favour of them. Of the Spiritual Graces of St. Walburg. [95] A Meditation in Honour and Praiſe of her. Of her Monaſtery, and a Tranſition to that of Font Evrauld. The Force of the Examples of our Superiors. The frequent Effects of Riches. Of the Apparition of Spirits, and why Heretics admit not thereof. Many Cauſes aſſigned for their appearing, with Examples and Hiſtories, when, where, and to whom they appear. Of the Changes in Churches, Abbeys and Monaſteries; of Seculars, Regulars and other Orders, Habits, &c. Of the Oyl which diſtill'd from the Bodies of St. Walburg, and other Saints. Of the Tranſlation of their Reliques. Reliques of one Saint in divers Places. Of Miracles. The Obſervance of Feſtivals. The Reliques of Saints, with Arguments for the Veneration of Reliques. Of Churches; the Signification of the Word; to what End they were built; the Cuſtom of building them oppoſed by Reformers. Of the ancient practice of building them in honour of Saints: Of the Popes, Prelates, and Kings of England, as well as other Countries, who have founded, built and adorned them: That the Expence thereof obſtructs not other Charities, nor impoveriſhes the Builders: The antipathy of Catholicks and Reformers about Churches. The Converſion of Idolatrous Temples into Churches: Of the Immunities, Franchiſes and Liberties given to the Church: The Rights of Sanctuary eſtabliſh'd, and carefully preſerv'd in the Temples of the Ethnics: The Abuſes thereof, a Cauſe of their Reformation: Puniſhments of the Violators of Church Rights; and of Princes who have been diſſuaded from moleſting the Church. The laſt Two Chapters are upon the Patrons of Perſons and Places; and the Doctrine of certain religious Women. This, with an Epiſtolary Addreſs to the Female Devotees of St. Peter of Reims, and a large Alphabetical Index of the moſt remarkable Perſons and Matters in the whole Volume, concludes this uncommon Piece of Eccleſiaſtical Antiquity, in which there are ſeveral Particulars of Note and Honour to our own Country.

XVIII. The Maintenance of Free Trade, according to the Three Eſſential Parts of Traffique; namely, Commodities, Moneys, and Exchange of Moneys, by Bills of Exchanges for other Countries, &c. By GERARD MALYNES, Merchant, 8vo. 1622. Pages 105.

[96]

THIS little Work was written in Anſwer to a Treatiſe newly publiſhed, entitled Free Trade, or the Means to make Trade flouriſh; wherein, its Author had omitted to handle the predominant part, namely, the Myſtery of Exchange between us and other Nations; his only Scope being to have the Moneys of the Kingdom enhanced in Price, and the Foreign Coins, inconveniently, made current in the Realm at high Rates: And becauſe the ſaid Treatiſe was publiſh'd at the Time when King James had referr'd the conſideration of this important Buſineſs to Henry Viſcount Mandeville, Lord Preſident of the Privy Council, with others of Knowledge and Experience, among whom, our preſent Author Mr. Malynes was call'd, and did certify his Opinion; he, therefore, dedicates this Anſwer to his Majeſty.

In his ſaid Dedication, he lays down, Traffic to be the Preheminent Study of Princes, becauſe the Sacred Wiſdom has approved this Axiom: ‘"That a King is miſerable, how rich ſoever he be, if he reigns over a poor People; and that a Kingdom is not able to ſubſiſt, how rich ſoever the People be, if the King be not able to maintain his Eſtate."’ He concludes with obſerving that, Worthy of Commendation are thoſe, who can, by Providence, preſerve the Treaſure of Kings and Commonwealths; worthier are thoſe, who both, by honeſt and lawful Means, can preſerve and augment them; but worthieſt of all Immortal Praiſe are thoſe, who can, and do, by eaſy, juſt and politic Means, inrich Kingdoms and Commonwealths, and thereby fill the Prince's Coffers with ſtanding Treaſure, to ſerve in Time of War, when Arms are neceſſary, and the Time of Peace, more fitting wholeſome Laws. ‘"In the Theorick Part of which Study, I have, ſays he, theſe forty Years ſpent much Time and Charges, at the Pleaſure of Great Perſonages: [97] And albeit nothing did encounter me but Ingratitude, yet my Conſtancy to ſpend the Remainder of my Days therein, in hope of Practice, is as immoveable, as the Continuance of my daily Prayers, &c. to multiply your Majeſty's Days, as the Days of Heaven."’ *

In his preliminiary Diſcourſe, he diſtinguiſhes the Three. Eſſential Parts of Traffic, namely, Commodities, Money and Exchange, to be, the Firſt, as the Body, which upheld the World by Commutation and Bartering, till Money was deviſed; the Second, as the Soul in the Body, infuſing Life to Traffic, by the Means of Equality and Equity; the Third, as the Spirit and Faculty of the Soul, being ſeated every where, corroborating the vital Spirit of Traffic, and directing or controlling, by juſt Proportions, the Prices and Values of Commodites and Moneys. A little further, he [98] tells an Ingenious Tale, which he applies to the Force of Exchange by inferring, That the Author of the Treatiſe of Free Trade, is like the Novices mention'd in that Tale, who perceiving two great Whales to have aſſaulted the Engliſh Ship of Traffic; the one being the Wars in Chriſtendome, and the Pirates, and the other, more gentle, being the Policy of Princes and States, hath publiſh'd the Cauſes of the Decay of Trade in England, and the Means to make the ſame flouriſh, without obſerving the operative Power of Exchange, which is the Rudder of the Ship of Traffic, faſtned to the Rule of the Equality of Moneys, according to their Weight and Fineneſs.

The Treatiſe itſelf containing many obſervable Particulars is divided into five Chapters; the Firſt whereof, is on, The Cauſes of the want of Moneys in England. This Chapter begins with ſome Remarks on the Undervaluation of Money in Exchange, with an Inſtance of the Value of Realls, and the Par of Exchange; when Dudley Earl of Leiceſter went Governour of the Low Countries in 1586. Whence it is concluded, That, if the Low Exchange were not, the Gain wou'd prove to be imaginary; that when the Exchange anſwers the true Value of our Moneys, they are never exported, becauſe the Gain is anſwered by Exchange, which is the Cauſe of Tranſportation; ſo that Exchange is ſtill predominant, and ſtrikes the ſtroke; and tho' the Price riſes and falls according to the plenty or ſcarcity of Money, yet Moneys are over-ruled thereby: for if you enhance the Coin, the Exchange controlls it, and riſes accordingly; if you undervalue it, the Exchange in like manner falls, to the end that the Value thereof ſhou'd be anſwer'd by the public Meaſure, and to prevent all Abuſes in the Price of Commodities, and Valuation of Moneys either Real or Imaginary, according to the Cuſtom of the Place, by device of the Bankers. That this was ſeriouſly obſerved in 1576, by the Lord Keeper Bacon, Lord Treaſurer Burghley, Secretary Walſingham, with other Counſellors of State, beſides many Perſons of Experience, as Sir Thomas Greſham, Richard Martin, Maſter of the Mint, and many more here named; who found that the Bankers or Exchangers for their private Gain, had brought in Twenty Inconveniencies, which are here particulariz'd: By which it may be ſeen, ſays our Author, of what Importance the Operation of Exchange is, and wherein the Endeavours of Sir Thomas Greſham, thinking to rule the Exchange of England, by plenty of Money, prov'd fruitleſs, [99] which might have been performed with more facility by Direction. Here we have Foreign Examples from Bodin, of Bankers having their Goods confiſcated, and being indicted as Cozeners, ſeeing that in a ſhort time with 24000 Pounds, they had gotten 2400000. This is apply'd to the Kingdom of England, and in what Caſe it wou'd have been more ſenſible of the like Loſs; ſince, tho' Queen Elizabeth's Coffers were ſtored with ſeven hundred thouſand Pounds Sterling, before the Wars with the Earl of Tyrone in Ireland, more than double that Sum had been ſpent therein. The Second Cauſe of our Want of Money, is next imputed to the ſuperfluity of Plate in private Hands. Under this Head, is obſerved the great Quantity of Silver conſumed in Silver Thread, Spangles, &c. upon late Examination found, to amount to above fourſcore thouſands Pounds yearly; whereas the Plate made in London, is only fifty or ſixty thouſand Pounds worth. Here we have the ſeveral Opinions given to Charles IX. of France, upon his want of Money, after the Pariſian Maſſacre; ſome, under colour of ſuppreſſing Pride, adviſing him to preſcribe every Man what ſtore he ſhou'd keep, and melt down the reſt. Others, that he wou'd imbaſe his Money under the Standard of Plate, ſo bring Plate to be turn'd into Money. This is follow'd by another Example, in our Henry VIII. who priviledg'd his Nobles to make baſe Money of their own Plate, which fell [...]ut to the prejudice of the Commonwealth, and was but a ſhift for the Time to himſelf. Then we have a more particular Account of Gold and Silver Thread, both as to what the Author had recommended in his England's View, about making it at home, and the Reaſons why, by late Proclamation, the Foreign Manufacture thereof was encouraged. The Third Cauſe of our want of Money, is aſcrib'd to the Conſumption of Foreign Commodities, or the buying them, proportionably, dearer than we ſell our own, which he has proved (in his Canker of England) to proceed from the Abuſe of Exchange. Here we have the Cauſes of the overballancing of Commodities, and the Effects by which the Engliſh Merchants are bereaved of two eſſential Parts of Trade in three. And here we ſee the Advantages which Foreign Trade has over ours, and how our Commodities are fallen in Price; that French Wines are dearer to us, by the Money of the Realm's being undervalued in Exchange; and that the leſs Sterling Money we reckon in Exchange with them, the more is the gain of our Commodities. [100] The Fourth Cauſe is the Want of Money, (according to the Treatiſe our Author anſwers, for theſe Cauſes he takes from thence) is the great Want of our Eaſt-India Stock at home; but our Author expected the ready Money ſent in Reals of Plate to be imploy'd in the ſaid Trade, wou'd rather have been mention'd, not but he thinks this Eaſt-India Trade, which began with us in England, immediately after the great Jubilee Year 1600, might be very profitable hereafter. He gives us an Inſtance in Pepper; which, if it coſt but Two-pence half-penny the Pound in the Indies, and Ten Shillings employ'd therein, will require but 35 Shillings for all Charges to deliver it in London, where it is uſually ſold for above Twenty-pence; it follows there muſt be great Gain, which will encreaſe when the Parties ſhall be united in true Love: Whereas the Loſs we ſuffer by the undervaluing of our Money in Exchange, yearly, is greater than all the Moneys employ'd yearly for the Eaſt-Indies; wherefore he is for encouraging this Trade, and the rather for that the Hollanders found Reaſons, which are here produced, for continuing the ſame. Here we have alſo ſome Obſervations upon our Riches, ſince the Diſcovery of the Weſt-Indies. The Fifth Cauſe of our Want of Money, imputed to the Wars of Chriſtendom cauſing Exportation, and the Pirates hindring Importation of Money, is next examin'd. Here our Author argues, that if the Pirates did not take ſome of our Money, it follows not that the ſame wou'd come to us in Specie; and a [...] to the Exportation by Wars, he anſwers to the Argument, that the Rix-Dollar being raiſed in many Places of Germany, ſhou'd draw abundance of Money into the Mints of thoſe Countries, that Money inhanced is never carried to the Mint, but runs away like Poſt-horſes, every Man fearing to loſe by the Fall. We have here ſeveral other Remarks upon theſe Dollar, and the Alterations of their Value from the Year 1575; and the Chapter is concluded, with Advice to note the Valuation of Hamborough, where it has been at fifty-four Stivers the Dollar, which makes the Exchange above forty Shillings of their Money for Twenty of ours. ‘"And tho' we have raiſed the Price of Exchange from Twenty-four Shillings, Nine-pence, to about Thirty-five Shillings, ſhall we reſt here and go no further? And ſhall we be like Men that halting in Jeſt, become Lame in Earneſt?"’

Chap. II. Shews the Cauſes of the Decay of Trade in the Merchandize of England, by an Examination alſo of ſeveral Heads in the manner aforeſaid, as Firſt, The Want of Money. [101] Secondly, Extortionate Uſury. Thirdly, Litigious Law-Suits. Fourthly, Free Fiſhery of Foreigners in his Majeſty's Seas; with the Reaſons of our own Merchants in favour of that Liberty, as if England cou'd not maintain a Sea and Land Trade together; alſo ſeveral Examples, how other Princes neglect not the Advantage to be made of their Seas, but both encourage their own Subjects to fiſh in them, and make other Nations pay Duty for the like: Which have long determin'd the queſtion of Mare Liberum, allowing the Freedom of the Seas for Navigation, where it does not prejudice the diſtinct Dominion of Princes concerning their Fiſhery. Fifthly, The Abuſes of our Drapery. Here we have a particular, that the dreſſing and dying of them, were inſiſted on to be done in England in 1616, and that then 64 Thouſand Cloths were exported; with a Digreſſion of our Author's upon the envious Interpretation of his Studies for the welfare of the Kingdom, particularly in his Invention of Farthing Tokens, which are yet found moſt commodious to prevent the waſte of Silver, and relieve the Poor. Sixthly, The Policies of Merchants in monopolizing the Exportation of Cloths. Seventhly, The falſe making of our Cloth. And here we have the Inconveniences of engroſſing in Trade further laid open. Eighthly, The Exportation of the Materials of Wool, and the Cuſtoms or Impoſitions laid upon Cloths at Home and Abroad. Ninthly, The Wars in Chriſtendom, and Pirates, occaſioning the fall of Wool from 33 to 18 Shillings the Tod, and the inconſiderate Barter of it Abroad. Tenthly, The immoderate Uſe of Foreign Commodities, which concludes this Chapter.

Chap. III. Of Governed Trade and therein of Monopoly. Here we have ſome further curious Obſervations upon the Exchange of Money, and among others the Proverbial Character in Bodin of a Man of Experience and diſtinguiſhing Head, when they ſay, Il entend le Par; alſo a Syllogiſm, upon the Undervaluation of our Money, and a Compariſon of Exchange to the Aſſay of Money. Commendations of Maſter Huſſey, Governor of the Merchant-Adventurers, in the beginning of Queen Elizabeth's Reign, for the great Pains he took in ſettling the Parity of Exchanges, however the true Remedy to rule the Courſe of them, was but lately found out. The Opinions of mercantile Men upon the beſt Methods of Traffic, with our Author's Diſcuſſions thereupon; as, Whether Foreign Nations ſhou'd come and fetch our Wares? And whether there ſhou'd be no Societies or Corporations [102] of Merchants? Which tho' our Author is for allowing, under Government, in appointed Places, becauſe they may, by ſuch Order, be remov'd, or recall'd; and for that no Nation trafficks ſo much in the bulk of ſtaple Commodities; inſomuch, that two Years before the taking of Antwerp, all the Wares in Chriſtendom vented there, in one Year, being valued, the Engliſh amounted to four Parts in ſix: Yet we muſt not flatter Companies or Societies, ſays he, in their unadviſed or irregular Proceedings; for a Society may become a Monopoly, when ſome few Merchants have the whole managing of a Trade to the hurt of a Commonwealth, and when many others might alſo negotiate for the common good. Here we have a Definition of a Monopoly, and an Approbation of the Cuſtom in the City of Noremberg; where they receive all the Manufactures of the People, and paying theſe weekly, ſell thoſe for a reaſonable Profit. This is followed with ſome Obſervations on the Royal Commodity of Tin, which above 100 Years paſt, was ſold for 40 Shillings the Hundred, when the beſt Velvets were ſold for 10 Shillings the Yard. Alſo of the Abolition and Re-eſtabliſhment of Prae-emption, whereby the Wealth of the Kingdom has been ſince encreaſed 600 Thouſand Pounds Sterling, and his Majeſty received for his Benefit 150 Thouſand Pounds. Alſo how the Importation of Spaniſh Tobacco, gains the Kingdom many Thouſand Pounds yearly. Next we have his Opinion upon Joint Stocks in Companies; and laſtly, the general Intention of all Grants, by Letters Patent, for New Inventions; with Reflections upon thoſe, eſpecially relating to Alloms, rendering the Commodity dearer to the Subject, and cheaper to the Tranſporter or Stranger; which he reſembles to the Silver Mines of the Duke of Brunſwick, maintained at his own Charge, called the Wildman; which cauſe him to coin Dollars, having his Arms on one ſide, and a Savage Man on the other, holding a burning Candle in his Hand, with this Inſcripton, Aliis inſerviendo, conſumor.

Chap. IV. Of want of Government in Trade. And herein he ſets down the Errors in Trade, committed by Merchants, relating to Cloths, and the making over their Moneys beyond Seas. Then he proceeds, Firſt, To enumerate the Defective Means and Remedies, no leſs than Thirty-five, which have been tried theſe 350 Years, and next, to ſhew, wherein they have been found fruitleſs, and that the decreaſe of Wealth in a Kingdom, may be comprehended [103] under theſe Heads: The ſelling our Native Commodities too cheap, buying Foreign Wares too dear, and exporting our Money in Specie, or exchanging it for Money by Bills; and how the Undervaluation thereof cauſes it to be exported or hinders the Importation. This leads us, in the laſt Place, to

Chap. V. Of the Remedies for all former Cauſes of the Decay of Trade. Here he begins with his Remedies, Firſt, For the undervaluing our Money, by overvaluing Foreign Coin; and theſe are, by the Reformations of Exchange here propoſed, in cauſing the Value of our Money to be given in Exchange; which wou'd out off the Gain had by the Exportation of it, and make Foreign Coin not to be received above Value. More particularly, how, this recovery of England's Wealth is to be effected by Proclamation, and by publick Tables, fixed up at the Royal Exchange; like thoſe kept at Dover in the Time of King Edward III. to receive the Paſſenger's Money, and by Exchange in Specie for it beyond Seas; which made them leave their Moneys in the Realm. Further alſo, by taking warning from the Inconveniencies of inhancing Moneys; in ſeveral Examples of King Henry VI. who raiſed the Ounce of Sterling Silver from 20 to 30 Pence, and King Edward IV. from 30 to 40 Pence. And King Henry VIII. his raiſing the Angel Noble from 6 Shillings and 8 Pence, to 7 Shillings and 4 Pence, and afterwards to 7 Shillings and 6 Pence, whereby every Ounce of Sterling Silver was worth 45 Pence; yet there was nothing effected thereby, the Money ſtill altering beyond Sea. Wherefore Wolſey had power given to alter the Valuation from time to time as he ſaw cauſe. Soon after, it is ſhewn how the Turks, Perſians and Ruſſians are, by keeping the Price of their Exchanges above the Valuation of their Moneys, more politick than we. Hence the Queſtion is reſolv'd, whether it is more expedient to raiſe the Price of Exchange or the Valuation of Money. Next he ſhews how the want of Money has ſunk the Price of Plate, from 5 Shillings and 8 Pence to 5 and 2 Pence, and what wou'd be the Conſeqence of its riſing. Here he recommends all wrought Plate to be try'd and mark'd, alſo all Silver Thread from abroad; and that they ſhou'd receive our Wool in Exchange for it. The Conſumption of Foreign Commodities or over-ballancing of them, is referr'd to the Conſiderations upon the Abuſe of Exchange before: And the exceſſive Uſe of Tobacco, to the Limitation of Spaniſh Tobacco lately eſtabliſh'd, [104] that the Plantations of Virginia and Bermudas may be advanced thereby. The want of Money thro' the Wars and Piracies, is compris'd in the Reformation of Exchange and the Policy of Rewards. Thus having, to the Cauſes of the want of Money, join'd ſome Means for ſupplying it; he comes to the Remedys alſo for the Decay of Trade: And here, Secondly, Under the Head of Uſury, to be remedied by Money procur'd as afore directed, he recommends the Cuſtom of ſetting over Bills of Debt from one Man to another; and a Stock to erect Pawn-Houſes; and for principal Towns to take in Money upon the Adventure of their own or other Men's Lives; as at Venice, where a Man, for three or four Hundred Pounds, ſhall be ſure of one Hundred Pounds a Year for Life. The Third Cauſe of Decay in Trade, aſcribed to litigious Law-Suits, our Author thinks there can be no ſhorter Courſe to remedy than is us'd upon Proof and Specialities, if the Pleadings and Iſſues be join'd according to the firſt Inſtitution; whereby the Matter of Fact may appear before a Jury: For touching the Matter of Law, it, being ſeparated, makes a Demurrer to be determin'd by the Judge. Here he commends the Courſe in Germany, to take down litigious Humours, where a Fine of Twelve-pence in the Pound, or more is paid, to the Emperor or Magiſtrates, for ſo much as is claim'd of the Defendant more than can be proved to be due, beſides further Charge, if he be found to proceed upon Revenge. As for the Differences between Merchants, he refers to his Lex Mercatoria; as alſo the Fourth Remedy, in behalf of the Fiſhing Trade. The Fifth upon making Cloth abroad, is partly redreſs'd by the late Proclamation, to prohibit Exportations of that kind. And the Rules of our Author for the true making of Cloth, may be a Remedy for the Seventh Cauſe of Decay, as alſo to the Eighth; but the Sixth, concerning the Policy of Merchants, is recommended, for the general and not particular Good, to the Inſpection of a Committee; ſo that other Merchants may upon reaſonable Conſiderations be admitted of the ſaid Companies. The Ninth Cauſe is partly handled in the Firſt, and as to Bankrupts, ſome Remedy is aſſign'd alſo before, in ſetting over Bills of Debt; and the Defects in the Statute againſt them, is to be remedied by the Authority of Chancery, to the Commiſſioners appointed to examine the ſame. The Remedy to the Tenth and laſt Cauſe of our ſaid Decay, the Immoderate Uſe of Foreign Commodities, conſiſts, as was obſerved before, partly in reforming the Abuſe [105] of Exchange, whereby ſuch Abundance is imported, and partly in reſtraining the Affectation of the Vulgar, to imitate their Superiors, by their being deprived of their Ill Examples. Our Author concludes, That all theſe Cauſes of the Decay of Trade in England, are moſtly compriſed in that One, the Want of Money, whereof the Abuſe of Exchange is the Efficient Cauſe; which made him project ſo eaſy a Remedy; whereby the Kingdom ſhall enjoy the Three Eſſential Parts of Traffic, under Good and Politic Government, which will effectually produce a Free Trade.

XIX. HONOUR'S GENEALOGIE: or The Arms of the Ancient and Late KINGS of ENGLAND and GREAT BRITAIN; with their different Supporters and Badges of Regalitie: With the ſeveral Degrees of all the NOBILITIE of this NATION, at, and ſince the Conqueſt, Saxons and Normans, viz. The Dukes, Marqueſſes, Earls, Viſcounts, and Barons, by Fee, Writs of Summons and Patent; their Creation, Succeſſion, Matches, Iſſue and Arms: With ſome Obſervations of their ſeveral Places of Honour and Truſt; and what elſe is remarkable in any of them. By JOHN TILESON, Eſq Anno 1647. MS. Folio. Pages 304*.

ABOUT the Margins of this Title-Page, we have the Arms of Twenty of our Kings before the Conqueſt, painted in their proper Colours; that is, from Egbert down to Harold, who loſt the Kingdom to William the Norman. [106] And the Preface, is A Diſcourſe concerning the Nobility of England, according to the Laws of England. The beginning whereof, for a Taſte of the Author, we ſhall here give in his own Words. ‘"As in the Body natural, for the Preſervation of the whole, the different Temperature of Humours, and Offices in ſeveral Members, are requiſite: So likewiſe in the Body Civil, or Politic, different Eſtates and Degrees among Men have been judged as neceſſary. And as the Elements cannot be intermingled one with another, except it be by an unequal Proportion and Temperature: So Civil Societies cannot poſſibly be preſerved, but by a certain Inequality; which is apparent by the different Forms of Government, obſerved and eſtabliſh'd in all Countries: And the ancient Policy of this Realm of England, being govern'd by Royalty, ever ſince it was known to be an inhabited Piece of Earth, hath admitted of a Threefold Diviſion of Perſons, viz. King, Nobles, and Commons; which hath been a Government very Ancient, and fully underſtood, both by Magiſtrates and People; and rooted in Mens Affections both by long habituated Excerciſe, and the well approved Benefits received thereby."’

After this, he proceeds to diſtinguiſh the ſeveral Degrees, or Titles of Honour; and firſt of the King, and his Sovereign Power. That many of his Rights are termed Flowers of the Crown; in which reſpect Bracton, ſpeaking of them, ſays, The King's material Crown is adorned with Flowers. Alſo, that ſome of his Rights are by poſitive, or written Laws; others by right of Cuſtom. And that the Regalia, or Enſigns of Royalty, eſpecially the Crown, Scepter, Purple Robe, and Golden Ball, are as old among us, as King Arthur, according to the Teſtimony of Leland. Next he ſhews, That the Nobility, comprehend the Prince, Dukes, Marqueſſes, Earls, Viſcounts, and Barons; as the Commons, conſiſt of Knights, Eſquires, Gentlemen, Yeomen, Artificers, and Labourers. Which laſt are not here further ſpoken of, [107] this Work confining itſelf to the ſuperior Nobility. Therefore, having given us the Derivation of Nobilitas, from the Word Noſco, as one known, or notable for his Vertue, or the reward of it, he diſtinguiſhes, why they are called Peers, and the whole Body of them the Baronage; what difference there is in their Parliament Robes; how they are tryed by the whole Body, and in what Caſes they retain both their Chriſtian and Surnames; then deſcends more particularly to their ſeveral Degrees. Here we ſee, That the Title of Prince, was called by the Saxons, Aetheling: That the Normans only call'd him the King's Son, and the firſt begotten of the King of England, till King Edward I. ſummoned his Son Edward to Parliament, by the Title of Prince of Wales and Earl of Cheſter; and Edward III. created his Son Duke of Cornwall, ſince which this Title has been appropriated to the King's firſt Son. That as for the Title of Duke, it was firſt of Charge and Office, not of Dignity, after the Abolition of the Roman Government here; and that this Degree in the Days of Conſtantine was inferior to that of Comites; moreover, upon what Conditions this Title of Duke was conferr'd, as alſo that of Earl, or what Qualifications were requir'd in them; namely, Faithfulneſs and Valour approved, with the Protection of Widows and Orphans; that People, under their Regiment, might with Joy continue in Peace. That the Title began under Otho; but in England, not before King Edward III. created his Son Edward aforeſaid, and alſo his two other Sons; from which time we have had Hereditary Dukes. That the Marqueſs was not known to us, till King Richard II. made his Minion Robert Vere Earl of Oxford, Marqueſs of Dublin; and became not till then a Title of Honour, for before, thoſe who govern'd the Marches, were commonly called Lord Marcheres. The Title of Earl, ſome think to be derived from the Germans, who had their Comites according to Tacitus; but others think it came from the Romans, and that before Conſtantine the Great, the Name of Comes was not uſed as a Title of Honour. That after the diſſolution of the Roman Empire, this Title of Earls was retained by our Engliſh Saxons; and the Danes termed them by a Word, ſignifying Honourable, which, ſomewhat mollified, agrees with what we at preſent call them. That they became not, before the Normans got footing here, Feudal, Hereditary and Patrimonial, as appears by Domeſday-Book. After that, they were created with the Additional Name of a Place, and Aſſignment of the [108] Third Penny of the Shire, as appears by the Empreſs Maud's Creation (the moſt ancient Form which has been ſeen) of Geoffrey Mandevill, Earl of Eſſex. And King John was the firſt we meet with, who uſed the Cincture of a Sword in their Creation, and they waited at his Table there with it by their Side. It was the next Age before the Impoſition of a Chaplet, Cap of Honour with a Circlet of Gold came up, which after that, as at this Day, was turn'd into a Coronet with Rays or Points. The Earls Palatine were reckon'd moſt Honourable, and Hugh Lupus held the Earldom of Cheſter, as freely by the Sword, as the King held England by the Crown. To which was added, the diſtinction of bearing the Sword at Coronations; called Curtana, which being blunt betokened Mercy. This Earl ordained Barons and Abbots to ſerve in his Parliament, who with him made Laws for the Government of his County. Earldoms of Title without Place, as the Earl Marſhal of England, began under King Richard II. who gave that Title to Thomas Mowbray Earl of Nottingham. As for Viſcounts, it is alſo an old Name of Office, but a new one of Dignity; not being known among us for a Title of Honour before King Henry VI. who created John Lord Beaumont, Viſcount Beaumont. Here 'tis remarked, That after a Man is created an Earl or Viſcount, or any other Title of Honour above them, his Title becomes parcel of his Name, and not an Addition only, and in all Legal Proceedings he muſt be ſtiled by that Dignity. Laſtly, We come to the Barons. And here 'tis obſerved that our ancient Britons did not acknowledge the Name, and that in the Engliſh Saxon Laws it is not ſeen: That in the Saxon Gloſſary of Alfricus, among the Vocables or Terms of Honour; Dominus is tranſlated Laford, which we have contracted into Lord, and the Danes called their Free Lords, who equall'd the Barons of our Time, Thani. And that in a Fragment of the Laws of Canute, was the firſt mention of a Baron with us; yet therein, according to the Varieties of Copies, is indifferently read, Virones, Barones, and Thani. The Service of theſe Barons appears from the Laws of William the Conqueror, into which thoſe Ordinances of Canute are tranſlated in the Norman Tongue, where it being ordain'd, That the Heriot or Relevies ſhould be moderate, and thoſe of an Earl, mention'd, it appears that ſome of thoſe Accoutrements (for the Wars) to be raiſed by the Barons, were but half in proportion; as, four Horſes, two Swords, four Spears, and four [109] Targets; but for the reſt, only one Helmet, one Coat of Mail, and in Money only 50 Mances or Marks of Gold, which are but a fourth Part. Alſo after the coming of the Normans, Valvaſors and Thanes were ranged in Degree next after Barons; and our learned Interpreters have thought the Dignity of Barons was comprehended under the Valvaſores Majores, afterward called Capitanii, and that the like Dignity was, by the Engliſh Saxons before the Conqueſt called Thanes, according to Lambert in his Perambulation of Kent. Neither was the Name of Baron then granted to be of great Honour, ſome Earls having in thoſe Days their Barons under them, of which here are Examples produced. A few Years after they were accounted Barons, who held an entire Barony, conſiſting of 13 Knights Fees and one Third, which amounted to 400 Marks yearly: A Knight's Fee conſiſting of 12 Carves of Land, a Carve of 8 Oxgangs, an Oxgang of 15 Acres. Theſe Baronies were held, ſome of the King, and thoſe who had them of this Value, were taken for Barons by Fee, to which was annexed a Dignity with Juriſdiction; which the Court Barons in ſome ſort prove. In King Henry IIId's days, there were reckon'd in England 150 Baronies. But this Dignity attained to its higheſt Honour after that King in the 49th Year of his Reign, ſummon'd a ſelect Number to the Parliament, and they of the moſt ancient Families and excellent Qualifications, and decreed that none other ſhou'd come; which his Son Edward I. alſo conſtantly obſerv'd. Hence they were only accounted Barons, whom the King by ſuch Writs of Summons did call to Parliament. And 'tis obſerv'd, to the great Glory of this King Edward, that he did always direct his ſaid Writs to thoſe of the beſt Families, and whoſe Wiſdom and Virtues were anſwerable: But paſs'd over their Sons after their Death, if they were not equal to their Parents in Underſtanding and all other commendable Qualities. Here we have ſome curious Queſtions debated upon this Head, as, Whether a Barony by Writ, may deſcend from the Anceſtor to the Heir? Whether it may deſcend to the Heir Female, who is nearer a-kin than the Males? And whether, if it may deſcend to ſuch Females, their Husbands may aſſume the Style and Dignity of ſuch a Barony. Herein are Arguments produced on both ſides of theſe Queſtions, after which follow others, to compound the Controverſy, by our Author. So from the Nature, Quality and State of [110] Barons by Writ, he paſſes to Barons by Creation, begun by King Richard II. And for the Explanation of this Dignity, here alſo are ſome Queſtions reſolved. Then he proceeds to diſcourſe of Barons by Tenure; or ſuch as held any Honour, Caſtle, or Manor, as the Head of their Barony, by Barony, or Grand Serjeanty: That they were Spiritual and Temporal, the former of whom having loſt their Seat in Parliament, 17 Car. he ſays nothing more of them; but of the Temporal Barons by Tenure, having ſhewn that ſuch there were, he lays down ſome Arguments and Examples to determine the Queſtion, Whether after alienating the Lands by which they hold, they can retain their Title and Dignity? Thus having touch'd upon the Original, Nature and different Degrees of our Peerage, he concludes, with ſome Obſervations upon their Privileges, this his Preface, conſiſting of Twenty-ſix Pages.

The Work begins with a Diſplay in one Leaf, of the Arms of our Kingdom under its different Governments, in five ſeveral Scutcheons, repreſenting in their proper Colours, thoſe of the Saxons, Romans, Britons, Danes, and the Normans in the middle. So we turn over, and begin with the Nobility under William the Conqueror; and firſt with Edgar Etheling, who was Earl of Oxford before, and at the coming of the ſaid William into England. A ſhort Account being given of this Earl, and his Arms painted on the ſide of it, we have two other contemporary Nobles treated of after the like Manner, in the ſame Page; and this regular Method of Hiſtorizing three Noblemen in every Page, with the Blazonry of their Arms in the Margin, except where the Pages and Scutcheons are not fill'd up, which is very rare, is purſued through every Reign. That of the Conqueror, taking up 28 Pages, conſequently gives account of 84 Noblemen. After this, the Noblemen of every Reign, are led up by the Arms of every King then reigning, in the middle of a Blank Leaf, and nothing more written under them than the Name of the King. We obſerve no Quarterings in the King's Arms, from the Conqueſt, till we come to Edward III. nor any Supporters of, or Badges over them, till then: But from hence they conſtantly appear, changing with the ſeveral Lines or Races of the ſaid Kings. In the Reigns of William aforeſaid, King James, and King Charles, are the greateſt Number of Noblemen; in which laſt, Baron Sutton is the laſt mention'd; [111] and in the Reigns of Henry IV. Richard III. Henry VII. Edward VI. Mary and Elizabeth, eſpecially as this laſt reigned ſo long, there are the feweſt Noblemen mention'd. Other Obſervations upon this MS. and Deductions from them, might be made; but at this Time, theſe may ſuffice in this Place.

XX. ACADEMIARUM EXAMEN, or The EXAMINATION of ACADEMIES. Wherein is diſcuſſed and examin'd the Matter, Method and Cuſtoms of Academic and Scholaſtic Learning, and the Inſufficiency thereof diſcover'd and laid open. As alſo ſome Expedients propoſed for the Reforming of Schools, and the perfecting and promoting of all kind of Science: Offer'd to the Judgments of all thoſe who love the proficiency of Arts and Sciences and the Advancement of Learning. By JOHN WEBSTER. Quarto, 1654. Pages 110.

THE Author Dedicates this Tract to Major General Lambert, having had experimental Knowledge and Trial of his Abilities, for the reforming of Academies, and of his ſincere Affection and unparallel'd Love to Learning.

In his Epiſtle, To all who truly love the Advancement of Learning in the Univerſities of Cambridge and Oxford, or elſewhere; he anticipates ſeveral Objections, which might be raiſed againſt ſo private a Perſon as himſelf, for undertaking thus freely, to handle an Argument of this publick Nature and Conſequence. And one of them, where he ſuggeſts he ſhou'd be look'd upon as a Leveller; he anſwers, by ſaying, ‘"He muſt needs ſo far own Levelling, that he holds plain Dealing to be a Jewel, and that plain Ways ſeem to him moſt ſecure and comfortable: That the Prelacy, tho' it ſought to bow him, cou'd not break him: That tho' the Presbyterian Pride did ſeem to threaten him, it cou'd not hurt him; and the Independent Forms cou'd never inform him beyond the Baſis of a better Building than Man can erect. That the ſpoil of Academies cou'd never pleaſe his Mind, nor ſhou'd they [112] fill his Purſe. That he was no Dean, nor Maſter, Preſident, nor Provoſt; Fellow, nor Penſioner; nor had Tythes appropriate, or impropriate; Augmentation, or State Pay. That all the Levelling in theſe Times, had not mounted him, nor cou'd they make him fall lower: And he that wou'd raiſe himſelf by the Ruins of others, or warm himſelf by the burning of Schools, he wiſhes no greater Plague than his own Ignorance, or that he may ever gain more Knowledge than to live to repent."’ There are certainly many good Obſervations in the Book; and if a few Animadverſions might by Critical Examiners, be made upon his Style in ſome Places, and, perhaps, his Choice of exceptionable Matter, or the Efficacy of his Expedients, for the Reformation propos'd; yet the Work will ſtill demand regard for the eminency of the Attempt, and a Subject of ſuch great Importance, may render the moſt imperfect Hints in it ſo, to Heads which can raiſe out of them more effectual Improvements. But indeed, this Matter is not feebly recommended by the Author himſelf, as in other Parts of the Work, ſo in the Concluſion of the Epiſtle, wherein having inform'd us, That he intends not to aſperſe the Perſon of any, nor to traduce or calumniate the Academies themſelves; but only the Corruptions which Time and Negligence have introduced there, and ſimply to attempt ſome Reformation, not Eradication of their Cuſtoms and Learning: ‘"He adds, which, tho' I have, peradventure, but weakly managed, yet I hope my poor Mite, with the Candid and Ingenious, will be accepted; for the reſt, I value them not; and I intreat the more able to ſupply, what my want of Strength hath left incomplete. I have rather intended this as an Eſſay, to break the Ice to ſome more able Judgment, than as ſufficient of itſelf to perform what is aimed at; becauſe I have neither performed what I ſhou'd have done, nor what I cou'd, but only traced out ſome few clear Things, as a guide to higher and more noble Undertakings."’

After ſome Verſes, by his Friends, in praiſe of the Author and his Work, he enters upon it, divided under Eleven Chapters, in the following Manner. I. Of the general Ends of erecting Public Schools; under which, he tells us; ‘"If the Academies had kept within their own Sphere, and only taught Human Science, and had not, in Pride and Vain-Glory, mounted into the Chariot of the Sun like Phaeton; [113] they had then, neither diſorder'd, nor injur'd Theology, that is above them, nor the Things of Nature, which they account below them."’ II. Of the Diviſion of Academic Learning, and firſt of School Theology. Hence, having ſpoken of Perplexities wherein the preſumptuous Imaginations of Mankind have enſnared and intangled themſelves, he proceeds to, III. The Diviſion of Human Learning; and firſt of Tongues, or Languages. Herein the greateſt Objection is, the making ſome Sciences meerly ſpeculative; as Philoſophy, according to that of Seneca; Noſtraque erat Philoſophia, facta Philologia eſt, ex qua, diſputare dicemus, non vivere; and the like of Mathematicks. Then he proceeds to divide the Sciences in a manner moſt commodious for his Purpoſe; beginning with thoſe ſubſervient or conducive to others, as Grammar; under which he commends Dr. Webb's Enterprize of teaching the Latin Tongue, by an eaſy Clauſulary Method; and the elaborate Pains of Mr. Brinſley. So deſcends to the recommendation of Hieroglyphical, Emblematical, Symbolical and Cryptographical Learning, all relative to Grammar; inferrable from the Labours of Oughtred, Harrington, Spanheim, Porta, Trithemius, Agrippa, Claramuel, Silenus, and Frier Bacon, with the like Praiſes of a Univerſal Character, Dactylogy, the Real Character of the Chineſe, and Jacob Behmen's Language of Nature. After his Obſervations upon theſe Relatives to Grammar, he goes on to diſcourſe in the IV. Chapter, Of Logic. And here ſhews what a Civil War of Words it is made; the Imperfections of Ariſtotle's Syſtem, and of Logic itſelf; with the Conſequence of Tully's Alphabetical way of Syllogizing, and concludes with Lord Bacon's Opinion of Logic, as it is abuſed. So we come to V. The Mathematical Sciences. And here he complains how ſhamefully the Foundation-Stone to this great Building, Arithmetic, has been neglected or thrown aſide by our Academic Maſters, and but for ſome private Spirits, ſuch as Napier, Briggs, Oughtred and a few others, it had lain as a Garden unweeded. The like is obſerved of Geometry; alſo, how lately, by how few, and thoſe Foreigners, any Optical Improvements appear'd. That Muſic has indeed had ſome Pains and Honour ſhew'd to that Part of it, which is the concomitant of, or Spur to Voluptuouſneſs; which is the Companion of Melancholics, Fantaſtics, Courtiers, Ladies, Taverns, and Taphouſes. But any higher Advancements of it, for diſcovering natural Knowledge, and the Harmony of the [114] Univerſe remains unattempted. The Abſurdities of our Scholaſtic Syſtems of Aſtronomy, are next largely laid open; as that the Earth is the Centre of the Univerſe, and the heavenly Orbs immutable; that they are ſolid Bodies, the Velocity of the Tenth Sphere, and of the Eighth, or Starry Sphere. In Coſmography the Deficiences are next mention'd, eſpecially in the mutual Correſpondence and Application of the Heavens and Earth; nor are the Theorems of Hydrography brought into Practice, whereby Men might be made able for Navigation. Aſtrology, notwithſtanding all the Derogation of the Schools, and Diſcredit brought upon it, by the Ignorance and Knavery of pretended Scioliſts, our Author recommends as a laudable and profitable Study; and arraigns the negligence of Univerſities for having ſo little regarded the Improvement of Statics, Architecture, Pneumatithmy, Stratarithmetry, and the reſt enumerated by the learned Dr. Dee in his Preface to Euclid. Hence we paſs VI. To Scholaſtic Philoſophy. Herein Ariſtotle is pull'd to pieces, from the beginning to the end, and Reaſons drawn for denying the Palm to the Peripatetic Philoſophy, from the uncertainty we are in, both as to his Books and Doctrine, as alſo the defectiveneſs of thoſe which we leaſt doubt to be his; whence we are led to obſerve, in what Parts of Phyſical Knowledge the Schools are moſt deficient, and theſe are Natural Magic, Chymiſtry, Medicine, Anatomy, Surgery, and Phyſiognomy, Coeleſtial and Subcoeleſtial, Oneirocratics; beſides the Magnetical Philoſophy, for which Dr. Gilbert, Ridley, Carpenter, Barlow and Cabaeus, are ſo much commended; and the Atomical Learning, reviv'd by Deſcartes, and improv'd by Magnenus, Regius, White, Digby, Phocyllides, Holwarda, and others. Then we proceed, VII. To Metaphyſics, Ethics, Politics, Oeconomics, Poeſy and Oratory. Where having ſhewn what airy, inſufficient, deluſive, and meer Ornamental Aſſiſtances they are made, and thus run over ſome defects of Academic Learning, tho' not all, intimating that a great Part deſerves to be eradicated, ſome reform'd, and all meliorated in our ſaid Schools, he moves on to VIII. Their Cuſtoms and Method, leaving their Manners and Maintenance to others. Here the firſt Objection is, that tho' there are divers Houſes in one Univerſity; yet all Students muſt follow one another like Carriers Horſes in one accuſtom'd Path. The ſecond, is the ſlothful Performance of their Scholaſtic Exerciſes, their Public Acts being kept but four Times in a Year. 3. The Injury of [115] tying all Men to one ſet Courſe of Years, before they can receive their Degrees. 4. The ridiculous Levity of their hiſtorical Perſonations in the performance of their Exerciſes. 5. Their empty and windy Diſputations therein, without any Foundation from Induſtry, or practical Experience. 6. Their Confinement in all Exerciſes to the Latin Tongue. 7. Too much admiring Antiquity. 8. Being bound in with multiplicity of Voices. 9. Adhering to Authority, eſpecially of Ariſtotle. 10. The Immethodical Courſe of inſtructing Youth in Logic and Natural Philoſophy, before they have taſted the Rudiments of Mathematical Knowledge: But as before an old Building is demoliſh'd, a Platform is uſually deviſed for a better. So our Author in Cap. IX. Offers ſome Expedients or Remedies in Theology, Grammar, Logic and Mathematics; wherein, though he thinks what he has before produced for demonſtrating the ill Compoſure of the Scholaſtic Fabric of Learning, not far from the Truth, and tho' he here acknowledges his own Inſufficiency to make a more ſerviceable Subſtitution: yet, In magnis, voluiſſe, ſat eſt. He will do his Endeavour, and hopes that abler Hands will ſupply his Defects. Having offer'd his ſaid Means for regulating the Study of theſe Sciences, he continues after the like manner, to treat in Cap. X. Of ſome Helps in Natural Philoſophy; in which he highly celebrates the Writings of Dr. Flud. So gives us laſtly, in Cap. XI. Some Expedients concerning their Cuſtom and Method: And hopes they will be acceptable till better be found out.

XXI. PLUS ULTRA: or, The Progreſs and Advancement of KNOWLEDGE ſince the Days of Ariſtotle: In an Account of ſome of the moſt remarkable late Improvements of practical, uſeful Learning, to encourage Philoſophical Endeavours: Occaſioned by a Conference with one of the notional Way. By JOS. GLANVILL, 8vo. 1668. Pages 149. Beſides Dedication and Preface.

[116]

THE Intention of this Treatiſe is, by aſſembling ſuch a Variety as it contains, of new Improvements in all Sciences, to raiſe able and pregnant Heads from a drouſy Acquieſcence in the Diſcoveries of former Times, and tempt them from thoſe Modern Advancements, with Encouragements to proceed. And tho' the Author intends not a full Hiſtory of the ſaid Improvements, and their Authors; yet the moſt remarkable of them are inſtanced, at leaſt ſo far as may ſerve his aim of confuting his Antagoniſt, and exciting Philoſophical Endeavours: In which he has has a principal regard to the Royal Society, by giving a ſuccinct Account of the Purpoſes and Productions of that Illuſtrious Aſſembly, for the Information of ſuch as have not met with their excellent Hiſtory.

After his Dedication to William Biſhop of Bath and Wells, and his Preface to the Clergy of that Dioceſe, we come to the Work itſelf; which, in the running Title, is called, Modern Improvements of uſeful Knowledge; and is divided into Eighteen Chapters, tho' the whole is written by way of Letter to a Friend. The firſt Chapter containing his Introduction, ſhews the Occaſion of writing this Treatiſe, to have proceeded from a Diſpute the Author had with an old Clergyman in his Neighbourhood*, who was ſo wedded [117] to the Peripatetic Philoſophy, and extoll'd Ariſtotle ſo far above all Compariſon, as to contend, ‘"That he had more Advantages for Knowledge, than either the Royal Society, or all the preſent Age."’ But, ſays our Author, in the Concluſion of this Chapter, ‘"As my Lord Bacon obſerves well, Philoſophy as well as Faith muſt be ſhewn by its Works: And if the Moderns cannot ſhew more of the Works of their Philoſophy in ſix Years, than the Ariſtotelians can produce of theirs in more than thrice ſo many hundred, let them be loaded with all that Contempt, which is uſually the reward of vain and unprofitable Projectors."’ Chap. 2. Is upon the Ways of improving uſeful Knowledge, Firſt, by enlarging the Hiſtory of Things, and next by improving Intercourſe and Communications: Alſo upon the Advantages of this Age, from the great Advancements of Chymiſtry and Anatomy. Here we have a brief recital of the many Diſcoveries made in the Body of Man, and the Names of the Phyſicians who made them; more particularly, of the Circulation and Transfuſion of the Blood. Chap. 3. On the Advantage of late Times from the Improvements of Mathematics, particularly in Arithmetic, by Logarithms, Napier's Bones, and Decimals; alſo in Algebra and Geometry, and by whom they have been improved. Chap. 4. Is upon the Improvements, more particularly in Geometry, by Des Cartes, Vieta, Dr. Wallis, Harriot and Oughtred. Chap. 5. The late Improvements of Aſtronomy; in the Performances of John de Sacro Boſco, Regiomontanus, who publiſh'd the firſt Ephemerides, Clavius, Tycho Brahe, Copernicus, Galilaeo, Jacobus Metius, Inventor of the Teleſcope, Scheiner, Kepler, Bullialdus, Hevelius, and ſeveral others, ending with Dr. Seth Ward, Biſhop of Sarum, who had demonſtratively proved the Elliptical Hypotheſis. Chap. 16. Recites the Improvements of Optics and Geography. Here we learn that Roger Bacon ſo much commended, by Picus Mirandula and [118] Voſſius, wrote accutely of Optics; by what Hands Dioptrics alſo were improved, and that in Geography likewiſe, Improvements have been great, as may be found, by comparing the Works of ſome Moderns here named, with the beſt Remains of the Ancients. Chap. 7. Is upon the Aids of uſeful Knowledge by Inſtruments, as the Teleſcope, Microſcope and Thermometer. Chap. 8. Of the Barometer and Air Pump; and what Advantages we have and may further expect from them. Chap. 9. The Credit of Optic Glaſſes vindicated againſt his Antagoniſt. Chap. 10. Our Advantages for Knowledge from Modern Improvements of Natural Hiſtory; in the Heavens, Air, Earth; Waters, by ſeveral Hands, and the ſubterraneous World, by Kercher. In Plants alſo by ſeveral, and Trees, particularly Mr. Evelyn, from whoſe Elyſium Britannicum greater Things were to be expected, as he has already oblig'd the World with many other Things on Sculpture, Picture, Architecture, &c. Alſo in Animals, and chiefly Man: That all the Heads of Natural Hiſtory, have received Aids from the famous Verulam, who led the way to ſubſtantial Wiſdom, and has given moſt excellent Directions, for the Method of ſuch an Hiſtory of Nature. Chap. 11. The Advantages of late Ages for ſpreading of Knowledge, by Printing the Compaſs and the Royal Society. Chap. 12. Of the Royal Society, the Reaſons of the Inſtitution and their Deſigns, with an Anſwer to the Queſtion, what have they done? Chap. 13. An Account of what has been done by the Illuſtrious Mr. Boyle, for the Promotion of uſeful Knowledge; giving an Account of the Books he had publiſh'd, and what Knowledge he had advanced in them. Chap. 14. Gives a further Account of the Works, Mr. Boyle had by him unpubliſhed, for the Advantage and Improvement of real Knowledge; and what Reaſons there were to hope for great Things from the Royal Society. Chap. 15. The Abſurdity of making Compariſons, between the Advantages Ariſtotle had for Knowledge, and thoſe of later Ages. Chap. 16. The Reaſon of ſome Men's ſuperſtitious Adherence to the notional way, and of the Diſputer who gave occaſion to this Diſcourſe. Chap. 17. Treats more particularly of the Peripatetic Philoſophy, and Ariſtotle, as he concerns the Univerſities. Laſtly, in Chap. 18. We have ſome Arguments of our Author with his Antagoniſt about the Prophets and Scriptures; particularly, that God was pleaſed in his Inſpirations, to apply himſelf much to the Imagination of the Prophets. Then comes the Concluſion, containing Obſervations about the Cenſure [119] of Atheiſm, apply'd to Philoſophical Men; with the Author's Apology to the Royal Society, and other generous Philoſophers.

XXII. The Inſtitution, Laws and Ceremonies of the moſt Noble ORDER of the GARTER: Collected and digeſted into one Body, by ELIAS ASHMOLE, of the Middle Temple, Eſq Windſor Herald at Arms: A Work furniſhed with Variety of Matter, relating to Honour and Nobleſſe. Fol. 1672. Pages 720, beſides the Appendix.

THIS elaborate and coſtly Performance being adorned with fifty Copper-Plates, etch'd by the famous Hollar, might have ſtill been more complete, by that further Addition to the Lives of the Knights Companions, which our Author intended, had not ſome malicious Inſinuations withheld the Encouragement, he was very near attaining, to re-imburſe his Expences therein; as we have learn'd from his own Words, both in Print and Manuſcript*.

[120]The Work itſelf, is, not without ſome ſeeming Reſpect to the Subjects of it, diſtinguiſh'd into Twenty-ſix Chapters, and they ſubdivided into ſeveral Heads, containing many curious Remarks and Inſtructions of Antiquity; and not only concerning the Legal and Ceremonial Parts of this Order, but of many other Inſtitutions, Cuſtoms, Habits and Forms of Honourable Diſtinction among Mankind: As may be beſt ſeen by the Particulars of thoſe Chapters and Heads, which are here drawn together, with ſome neceſſary Enlargements, from the Bodies alſo of thoſe Heads; that the Contents of the Book may be the better known, and our Readers accommodated with the greater Variety of Intelligence.

Chap. I. Treats of Knighthood in general. Which begins with a Section upon Vertue and Honour; ſhewing that Virtue is encouraged by Reward, and that Honour is the reward of Military Vertue; that they were deified by the Romans, who built them various Temples; and we have here the Sculpture of one erected for Vertue, which ſtood before that of Honour, myſtically implying that Honour was not to be attained by any other ways than by Vertue. Hence we [121] proceed to the Antiquity of Knighthood among the Greeks. The Foundation of the Equeſtrian Order among the Romans: From thence to the Modern Degrees of Knighthood, as Batchelor, Bannerets, Bath and Baronets. The Etymology of Eques, Miles, Chevalier, Ritter and Sir: Lydgate's Verſes on them and others. The Enſigns and Ornaments of this Dignity among other Nations; Qualifications for it; the various Ceremonies uſed in conferring it, with a Liſt of the Knights made Anno 34 Edw. I. laſtly the Dignity, Honour and Renown thereof.

Chap. II. Of the Religious Orders of Knighthood in Chriſtendom. And firſt of the Societies among the Ancients, analogous to the Orders of Knighthood. The Chriſtian Inſtitution thereof, and Diviſion of them into Religious and Military. Of Eccleſiaſtical Foundations depending on Military Orders. A brief Account of Forty-ſix Religious Orders of Knighthood in Chriſtendom, with a Sculpture of their Enſigns or Bagdes.

Chap. III. Of Military Orders. There we have alſo a brief Account of Forty-ſix Orders in Chriſtendom, abſolutely [122] Military, beginning with the Knights of the Round Table, and a Sculpture of their ſeveral Enſigns. Hence we paſs to the Knights in the Weſt-Indies, and the Feminine Cavaliers of the Torch in Tortoſa.

Chap. IV. Of the Caſtle, Chappel and College of Windſor; with three Proſpects of the Caſtle, and ſix of the ſaid Chappel of St. George in Sculpture. Of the Dean, Canons, Clerks, and Choriſters. Of the Alms Knights, and other Officers: Endowments and Privileges.

Chap. V. The Inſtitution of the moſt Noble Order of the Garter. Here we have ſeveral Opinions touching the Occaſion of the ſaid Order, and a Refutation of Polydore Virgil's Fiction of its riſe from the King's taking up the Queen's, or his Miſtreſs's Garter. Hence we are led to the True Cauſe of this Martial Foundation, which was to emulate King Arthur's Round Table, ſo we proceed to the Time when it was inſtituted; and here it appearing that King Edward's Robes for the firſt Feaſt, not being made till the 22d or beginning of the 23d Year of his Reign, and the Statutes of the Inſtitution fixing it in his 23d Year; the firſt Feaſt might not be held till the 24th. Agreeable to what we read in Fabian, and more expreſly in Stow, Lilly, Speed, Segar and Selden in one Place, ſo that in Froiſſart, however the earlieſt Writer, the Inſtitution ſeems antedated ſix Years. Next of the Patrons of the Order; with the Honour and Reputation thereof.

Chap. VI. Of the Statutes of the Order, and other Rules ſince eſtabliſh'd, to amend and reform the firſt; alſo of the Annals of the Order.

Chap. VII. The Habits and Enſigns of the Order, with Sculptures and Medals concerning the ſame, ſuch as the Garter; the Mantle; the Surcoat; the Hood and Cap: The Robes for the Queen and Ladies. Of Collars in general. That of the Order. Collars of SS. The leſſer George, and concerning the Aſſumption of this Symbol, by the Emperor of Ruſſia, as in his Seals here exhibited. Laſtly, At what Times the Habit is to be worn.

Chap. VIII. Of the Officers for the Service of the Order. Such as the Prelate and Chancellor; with Letters by John Biſhop of Sarum, and Sir Thomas Rowe; alſo of Regiſter, Garter, Black Rod, with their Office, Seal, Oath, Habits, Privileges, Penſions and Execution by Deputies.

Chap. IX. Of their Election. Their Place of Aſſembly. Chapter, Right of Nomination. The Number and Qualifications of thoſe to be nominated, with a Liſt of [123] Strangers nominated. The Scrutiny; Time, Manner and Order thereof. Preſentation thereof. The King's Conſiderations thereupon. That he is ſole Elector. The Scrutiny to be entred in the Annals; not to be viewed till entred. Of Scrutinies without Election. Penalties on Knights abſent at Elections.

Chap. X. Of the Inveſtiture. The Notice given. The Knight's Reception into the Chapter-Houſe. Ceremonies of inveſting him with George and Garter. Of ſending thoſe Enſigns to the Knight Elect. The Manner of his Inveſtiture.

Chap. XI. Preparations for the Perſonal Inſtallation. That Inſtallation gives the Title of Founder. The Time and Place appointed for his Inſtallment. Commiſſions for the ſame. Letters of Summons. Warrant for the Livery of the Order. Removal of Atchievements and Plates in and over the Stalls.

Chap. XII. The Perſonal Inſtallation. Beginning with the Cavalcade to Windſor. Sir Thomas Rowe's Letter to the Knights, upon the intended Inſtallation of King Charles II. The Offering in the Chappel on the Eve of the Feaſt. The Supper. Order of Proceſſion to the Chapter-Houſe. Ceremonies perform'd there. Proceedure to the Choir. The Ceremonies of Inſtallation. The Order at an Inſtallation of ſeveral Knights. The Offering of Gold and Silver. The Grand Dinner at Inſtallation. Setting up the Knights Atchievement. A Corollary ſhewing how the Ceremonies of the Order of St. Michael, are but copied from this of St. George.

Chap. XIII. Of Inſtallation by Proxy. The Cauſe of Proxies. Letters of Procuration, Qualifications of a Proxy. Preparations for Inſtallment. Proceeding to the Chapter-Houſe. Tranſactions in it. Proceeding to the Choir. Ceremonies there; and the Dinner.

Chap. XIV. The Signification of Election to Strangers. As when and how they are certified of their Election. The Notice given of an Election, before ſending the Habit. Notice ſent with the Habit. Certificate of Acceptation. Of Elections not accepted.

Chap. XV. The Inveſtiture of Strangers with the Habit and Enſigns of the Order. The Time for ſending them unlimited. Preparations for the Legation. Ceremonies of Inveſtiture, with the particular Narratives of ſeveral Heralds [124] concerning their inveſting ſome Foreign Princes. Certificates of receiving the Order.

Chap. XVI. The Inſtallation of a Stranger by Proxy. As to the Choice and Nomination of a Proxy. The Proctor's Qualifications. His Letters of Procuration. His Reception. Preparations for the Inſtallment. His Cavalcade to Windſor. Supper. Proceeding to the Chapter-Houſe. Ceremonies there. Proceeding to the Choir. Ceremonies of Inſtallation, and Dinner.

Chap. XVII. The Duties and Fees of the Knights inſtall'd. Thoſe due to the College at Windſor. To the Regiſter, Garter, Black Rod and Officers of Arms. To others of the Sovereign's Servants. Thoſe to be paid for Strangers.

Chap. XVIII. The Grand Feaſt of the Order. To be celebrated on St. George's Day; fixed to the 23d of April: Which Day is Feſtum Duplex. To be at Windſor Caſtle. Tranſlated to other Places. How it was neglected by King Edward VI. and no Anniverſary of St. George kept at Windſor; but a Grand Feſtival. Removed from Windſor by Queen Elizabeth. Prorogation of the Grand Feaſt. Commiſſions for the ſame. That it ought to be celebrated once a Year.

Chap. XIX. Preparations for the Grand Feaſt of the Order; by Letters of Notice. Diſpenſations for not attending. Commiſſions of Lieutenancy and Aſſiſtance. Warrant for removing Atchievements. Scutcheons of Arms and Stiles. Ornament of the Chappel, wherein we have Chancellor Rowe's Letter to ſome of the Knights to pay their Arrearages, as to the Obits of the Companions, and for adorning the Chappel; alſo an Inventory of the Furniture in the Chappel and Treaſury. Of furniſhing St. George's Hall; and of the Officers appointed to attend at the Feaſt.

Chap. XX. The Order of the Ceremonies on the Eve of the Feaſt: Here we have Obſervations on the ancient Vigils, and the Hora Tertia, which is our Nine in the Morning. The Order of their Proceeding, with a curious Sculpture of the Proceſſion, Anno 20 Eliz. as ſet forth by T. Dawes, Rougecroix, and deſign'd by Mark Gerard, the Queen's Painter. Of their Proceeding to the Chapter-houſe. The opening of the Chapter. Tranſactions in the Chapter before the firſt Veſpers; Ceremonies relating to the firſt Veſpers. The Supper on the Eve.

[125]Chap. XXI. The Order of the Ceremonies on the Feaſt-day. The proceeding to the Chappel in the Morning. To the ſecond Service. Of the Grand Proceſſion, with ſome ancient Forms thereof. The Order of the ſecond Service. Here we have another Sculpture of the Grand Proceſſion, Anno 23 Car. II. The Offering of Gold and Silver. Their Return to the Preſence-Chamber. Of the Dinner on the Feaſt-day. Here we have a Sculpture of all the Knights at Table, and their Attendance in St. George's Hall. And further, five Stanza's of Verſes preſented to King Henry VII. at St. George's Feaſt in the 3d of his Reign, as our Author ſuppoſes by John Skelton. Then follow the Ceremonies of the ſecond Veſpers; and the Supper on the Evening of the Feaſt-day.

Chap. XXII. The Ceremonies obſerved on the laſt Day of the Feaſt: As their proceeding to the Chapter-houſe in the Morning. Proceeding of the Elect Knights into the Choir. The Ceremonies perform'd at Divine Service. The Diets at ſome of the Grand Feaſts, with the particular Courſes in ſeveral of them, or Bills of Fare.

Chap. XXIII. The Obſervation of the Grand Feaſt by abſent Knights. Of their Injunctions to obſerve the ſame, alſo more particular Directions how to be obſerv'd in Sickneſs. How it has been obſerv'd by abſent Knights; with Diſpenſations for Abſence granted, during Life.

Chap. XXIV. The Degradation of a Knight Companion. Firſt, Of a Knight Batchelor. Then of a Knight of the Garter. Of Reſtoration to the Order after Degradation.

Chap. XXV. Of the Honours paid to deceaſed Knights Companions; as by Maſſes heretofore. The fixing on their Stalls, Plates of their Arms and Styles. The Offering of Atchievements, depoſiting their Mantles in the Chapter-houſe.

Chap. XXVI. Of the Founder; the Firſt Knights Companions and their Succeſſors. Here we have the Portraits at full length, in their proper Habits of King Edward III. and his firſt 25 Knights Companions in one Copper-Plate. This is follow'd with an Hiſtorical Account of the ſaid King, his Wars, Iſſue, &c. And, after that, the like Accounts of the ſaid firſt Twenty-five Knights of the Order, each in a diſtinct Section. And laſtly, A Catalogue of all their Succeſſors, with an engrav'd Leaf, between every printed one, of all their Arms. Then having made a few Remarks upon ſome of thoſe Scutcheons, and given us alſo [126] a Catalogue of the Officers of the Order; the whole is cloſed with an Appendix of about 25 Sheets, containing the Statutes of the Order. Conſtitutions of the Officers, Bulls, Letters, Oaths, Warrants, Commiſſions, Diſpenſations, Deputations, Receipts, Inſtructions, Certificates, Degradations, &c.

The End of Number II.
[127]

XXIII. The Boke of ENEYDOS, compyled by VYRGYLE; whiche hathe be tranſlated oute of Latyne into Frenſhe, and oute of Frenſhe reduced into Englyſſhe, by me William Caxton, the 22 Daye of Juyn, the Yere of our Lorde 1490. Fol.

THIS Work contains not an entire Verſion of two or three Books only of Virgil's Aeneid, as ſome might imagine from the ſlender Bulk of the Book; nor is it here tranſlated into Verſe, as they might alſo expect, in imitation of the Original, and as nothing appears to the contrary in the Title above, printed at the End: but it is rather a Reduction of that Epic Poem to an hiſtorical Narrative in Proſe; which, tho' a commendable Undertaking at that time, to familiarize the Contents; yet, as it is but a Tranſlation of a Tranſlation; as the Original itſelf is familiar enough now, and we have alſo many better Tranſlations, even in Verſe, directly from it; the very Table of Heads, no leſs than ſixty-five, cannot be in this Place deſirable Therefore, we ſhall only refer to a Note at Bottom*, for [128] a few Remarks upon the Work itſelf; and here recite the Tranſlator's Preface; which contains ſuch obſervable Proofs of the fleeting Faſhions in our Engliſh Tongue, as may moderate the Conceits of thoſe who depend upon a Style, or Manner of Expreſſion, more than the Matter expreſſed, that will not, like moſt other things, become obſolete, but maintain its Perſpicuity, and engage the Taſte of all Ages.

This Preface, containing near two Leaves, is as follows: ‘"After dyverſe Werkes made, tranſlated and achieved, having noo Werke in hande; I, ſittyng in my Studye, whereas laye many dyverſe Paunflettis and Bookys, happened that to my Hande cam a lytyl Booke in Frenſhe, which late was tranſlated out of Latyn by ſome Noble Clerke of Fraunce; whiche Booke is named Eneydos, made in Latyn by that noble Poete and grete Clerke Vyrgyle. Which Booke I ſawe over and redde therein; how after the generall Deſtruccyon of the grete Troye, Eneas departed, beryng his olde Fader Anchiſes upon his Sholdres, his lityl Son Yolus on his Honde; his Wyfe wyth moche other People followynge; and how he ſhypped and departed, wyth alle th Hyſtorye of his Adventures, that he had 'er he cam to the Achievement of his Conqueſt of Ytalye, as all a longe ſhall be ſhewed in this preſent Boke. In which Booke I had grete Playſyr, by cauſe of the fayr and honeſt Terms and Wordes in Frenſhe; which I never ſawe to fore lyke, ne none ſo playſaunt, ne ſo wel ordred. Which Booke, as me ſemed, ſholde be moche requyſite to Noble Men to ſee, as wel for the Eloquence, as the Hyſtoryes, how wel that many honderd Yerys paſſed was the ſayd Booke of Eneydos with other Werkes made and learned dayly in Scolis, ſpecyally in Ytalye and other Places. Whiche Hiſtorye the ſayd Vyrgyle made in Metre. And whan I had adviſed me in this ſayd Booke, I delybered and concluded to tranſlate it into Englyſhe, and forthwyth toke a Pen and Ynke and wrote a Leef or tweyne, which I overſawe agayn to corecte it: and whan I ſawe the fayr and ſtraunge Termes therein, I doubted that it ſholde not pleaſe ſome Gentylmen, whiche [129] late blamed me, ſaying, that in my Tranſlacyons I had over curyous Termes which coude not be underſtande of comyn Peple, and deſired me to uſe olde and homely Termes in my Tranſlacyons, and fayn wolde I ſatysfye every Man. And ſo to doo toke an olde Boke and redde therein, and certaynly the Englysſhe was ſo rude and brood, that I coude not well underſtande it. And alſo my Lord Abbot of Weſtmynſter ded do ſhewe to me of late certayn Evydences wryton in old Englisſhe, for to reduce it into our Englysſhe now uſid; and certaynly it was wreton in ſuch wyſe, that it was more lyke to Dutche than Englysſhe; I coude not reduce ne brynge it to be underſtonden. And certaynly our Langage now uſed varyeth ferre from that which was uſed and ſpoken whan I was born; for we Englysſh Men ben borne under the Domynacyon of the Mone, which is never ſtedfaſte, but ever waverynge, wexyng one Seaſon, and waneth and dyſcreaſeth another Seaſon; and that comyne Englysſhe that is ſpoken in one Shyre varyeth from another. In ſo muche, that in my dayes happened that certayn Merchauntes were in a Shipp in Tamyſe, for to have ſayled over the See into Zelande; and for lacke of Wynde they taryed atte Forlond, and went to lande for to refreſhe them; and one of them named Sheffelde, a Mercer, came into an Hows, and axed for Mete, and ſpecyally he axed for Eggs, and the goode Wyf anſwerde, that ſhe coude ſpeke no Frenſhe; and the Marchaunt was angry, for he alſo coude ſpeke no Frenſhe, but wolde have hadde Egges, and ſhe underſtode hym not. And thenne at laſte another ſayd, That he wolde have Eyren; then the good Wyf ſayd, that ſhe underſtod him wel. Loo what ſholde a Man in thyſe Days wryte, Egges or Eyren? Certaynly it is harde to playſe every Man, by cauſe of Dyverſite and Chaunge of Langage. For in theſe Days every Man, that is in ony Reputacyon in his Countre, will utter his Communicacyon and Matters in ſuch Manners and Termes, that fewe Men ſhall underſtonde them; and ſom honeſt and grete Clerkes have ben wyth me, and deſired me to wryte the moſte curyous Termes that I coude fynde. And thus bytween playn, rude, and curious, I ſtand abasſhed. But in my Judgemente, the comyn Termes that be dayli uſed ben lyghter to be underſtonde than the old auncyent Englysſhe. And for as moche as this preſent Booke is not for a rude uplondysſh [130] Man to laboure therin, ne rede it, but only a Clerk and a noble Gentleman, that feleth and underſtondeth in Fayles of Armes, in Love, and in noble Chyvalry; therfor in meane bytwene bothe, I have reduced and tranſlated this ſayd Booke into our Englisſhe, not over rude, ne curyous; but in ſuch Termes as ſhall be underſtanden by Goddys Grace accordyng to my Copye. And yf ony Man wyll entermete in redyng of hit, and fyndeth ſuche Termes that he cannot underſtande, late hym goo rede and lerne Vyrgyll, or the Pyſtles of Ovyde, and ther he ſhall ſee and underſtande lightly all, yf he have a good Redar and Enformer; for this Booke is not for every rude and unconnynge Man to ſee, but Clerkys and very Gentylmen that underſtands Gentylnes and Scyence. Then I praye alle theym that ſhall rede in this lytyl Treatys to holde me for excuſed for the tranſlatynge of hit: For I knowleche myſelfe ignorant of connynge to enpryſe on me ſo hie and noble a Werke. But I praye Mayſter John Skelton, late created Poete Laureate in the Unyverſite of Oxenforde, to overſee and correcte this ſayd Booke; and taddreſſe and expowne where as ſhall be founde faulte to theym that ſhall requyre it: For hym I knowe for ſuffycyent to expowne and Englysſhe every Dyfficulte that is therein: For he hath late tranſlated the Epyſtles of Tulle, and the Booke of Dyodorus Syculus, and diverſe other Werkes oute of Latyn into Englisſhe, not in rude and olde Langage, but in polysſhed and ornate Termes craftely; as he that hath redde Vyrgyle, Ovyde, Tullye, and all the other noble Poetes and Oratours, to me unknowen: And alſo he hath redde the IX Muſes, and underſtands their muſicalle Scyences, and to whom of them eche Scyence is appropred: I ſuppoſe he hath dronken of Elycon's Well. Then I praye hym, and ſuch other, to correcte, adde, or mynysſhe, whereas he, or they, ſhall fynde faulte; for I have but folowed my Copye in Frensſhe, as nygh as me is poſſible. And yf ony Worde be ſayd therin well, I am glad; and yf otherwyſe, I ſubmytte my ſaid Boke to theyr Correctyon: which Boke I preſente unto the hye born my tocomynge Naturell and Soverayne Lord Arthur, by the Grace of God Prynce of Walys Duc of Cornewayll and Erle of Cheſter, fyrſt begoten Sone and Heyer unto our Moſt Dradde Naturall and Soverayn Lorde and moſt Cryſten Kynge Henry the VII. by the Grace of God Lorde Kynge of [131] Englonde, and of Fraunce, and Lorde of Ireland; byſeching his noble Grace to receyve it in Thanke of me his moſt humble Subget and Servaunt. And I ſhall praye unto Almighty God for his proſperous encreaſyng in Vertue, Wyſdom, and Humanyte, that he may be egal with the moſt renouned of alle his noble Progenytours; and ſo to lyve in this preſent Lyf; that after this tranſitorye Lyf, he, and we all, may come to everlaſtynge Lyf in Heven; Amen."’

XXIV. The HISTORIE of Cambria, now called WALES; a Part of the moſt famous Yland of BRYTAINE; written in the Britiſh Language above Two Hundred Years paſt: Tranſlated into Engliſh by H. LHOYD, Gent. Corrected, augmented, and continued out of Records and beſt approved Authors, by DAVID POWEL, Doctor in Divinity. Quarto. 1584.

THO' there is no Date in the Title Page of this Hiſtory, we have ventured to add the ſame that appears at the End of the Dedication, which is made thereof to the Right Worſhipful Sir Philip Sidney, by the ſaid Dr. Powel. Herein, this Editor, inſtead of extolling the noble Gifts and Vertues in his ſaid Patron, which were conſpicuous to all Men, exhorts him to the diligent Exerciſe of them; and particularly, from thoſe domeſtick Examples, his noble Father, conſtantly inclined more to benefit even Wales and Ireland, beſides his own Country, than himſelf; and his honourable Father-in-Law, Sir Francis Walſingham, the Queen's Chief Secretary; whoſe Zeal for God's Glory, and Love of thoſe who feared him unfeignedly, was well known to the World. ‘"Follow, ſays he, their Footſteps, with the Remembrance of that noble Houſe out of which you are deſcended by your honourable Mother; and then you cannot do amiſs. Labour, by the Example of your Father, to diſcover, and bring to light, the Acts of the famous Men of elder Times, who, with Conference of the State and Government of all Ages, will bring you to the perfect Experience [132] of thoſe things that you have learned out of Ariſtotle, Plato, and Cicero, by your Travel in Philoſophy. Your Father, with his great Expences and Labour, having procured and gotten to his hands the Hiſtories of Wales and Ireland (which Countries for many Years with great Love and Commendation he govern'd) committed unto me this of Wales, to be ſet forth in Print, with Direction to proceed therein, and neceſſary Books for the doing thereof. And altho' I was unſufficient for doing of it, yet I have done mine Endeavour; and now do preſent the ſame unto your Worſhip, as by good Reaſon due to the Son and Heir of Him that was the Procurer and Bringer of it to light," &c.

From the Editor's Epiſtle to the Reader, his Notes on the Hiſtory, and the Beginning thereof itſelf, we learn, That this Succeſſion of the Britiſh Princes was the Work of Carodoc of Lancarvan, from the Reign of Cadwalader, the laſt Britiſh Monarch, over the whole Iſland, (who fled into Armorica, or Bretagne, Anno 680, and died at Rome eight Years after, with whoſe Departure to that Part of France, and a Liſt of the Britiſh Kings ruling there, this Hiſtory begins) down to ſome Years of Owen Gwyneth's Reign over that Part of the Iſland, now called Wales; that is to the Year 1157, or the 3d of Henry II. King of England, as may be ſeen, p. 206. The Continuation which follows for 113 Years, from that time, was yearly regiſter'd in the Abbeys of Conway and Stratflur, down to the Year 1270; or the 54th of our Henry III. which was a little before the Death of the laſt Lhewelyn; and here ends this Britiſh Chronicle; as appears p. 327. Many Copies remained of it, at this time, in Wales; moſt of them 200 Years old; and one of them coming to the hands of Mr. Humphrey Lhoyd, a learned and skillful Antiquary, he tranſlated it into clear ſmooth Engliſh, and continued it chiefly out of Matt. Paris, and Nicholas Trivet, to the Slaughter of the ſaid Prince Lhewelyn, the laſt of Britiſh Blood who had the Dominion of Wales, in 1282; or the tenth of our Edward I. that is, to page 375 of this Volume. But before this Tranſlation and Continuation were thoroughly poliſhed by the ſaid H. Lhoyd, he was taken away by Death, in the Flower of his Time. Yet the Copy of his Labour being procured, and preſerved by Sir Henry Sidney, Lord Preſident of Wales, he prefer'd our Editor, Dr. Powel, to the Care of its Publication; who, procuring all the printed Hiſtories which treated of Wales, [133] and the Uſe of all John Stow's MS. Hiſtories, and many Books of Britiſh Pedegrees from the Lord Burghley, with his Authority for ſearching all the Records; did not only correct the ſaid Tranſlation, but put marginal References in it to thoſe Hiſtorians who treated of the particular Facts, and additional Notes, likewiſe throughout of Matters relating to Wales in thoſe Hiſtorians, unmentioned in his Copy; alſo interſperſed the ſame with many authentic Inſtruments, Records and Pedigrees; and laſtly made a further Continuation Of the Princes of Wales of the Blood Royal of England, and the Lords Preſident, down to his own Time; the whole ending with the aforeſaid Sir Henry Sidney at page 401. So that Authors have been too indiſtinct, when they have quoted every Part of this Book under one Name. Thus much for the general View; now to be a little more particular.

After the Editor's Epiſtle before mentioned, follows a Deſcription of Cambria, now called Wales: Drawn firſt by Sir John Priſe, and afterwards augmented by H. Lhoyd; and here prefixed for the better underſtanding of this Hiſtory. Herein, upon the Name of Wallia, there is Occaſion taken by the ſaid Lhoyd, it ſeems, to make a liberal Cenſure of Polydore Virgil, being a Stranger, as well to many of our Hiſtories, as the Tongues they are written in, and a Reference made to the Apology of Sir John Priſe, and the Britiſh Hiſtory he purpoſely writ againſt the envious Reports and ſlaunderous Taunts of the ſaid Polydore; whoſe Errors in great number are there confuted. And it is further ſhewn, that Wales is a new and ſtrange Name, which the Britains do not underſtand; that they know no other than Cambry, nor of their Language than Cambraec, or the Cambers Tongue; That they know not what England or Engliſh means, but call the Country Lhoyger (from Locrine) the Engliſhmen, Sayſon; and their Tongue Sayſonaec; which is a Token this is the old Britiſh Language: For the Works of Merdhyn and of Talieſſin, who wrote above 1000 Years paſt, are almoſt the ſame Words as they uſe at this Day, or at leaſt underſtood by all who know the Welſh Tongue. Then he diſcourſes of the Three Remnants of the Britains, in Wales, Cornwal, and little Britain, or Bretagne in France. The Bounds of Wales, and the Diviſion thereof, into Three Territories, that is, North-Wales, South-Wales, and Powys-Land; ſubdivided into their ſeveral [134] Candreds, and Comots; and all expreſs'd in their old Britiſh Names.

Thus we come to the Hiſtory, which has a little wooden Print at the Head of every Chapter or Prince's Reign, more for Ornament, we preſume, than real Reſemblance; becauſe they are diſcontinued at the Engliſh Princes of Wales, of whom ſome true Repreſentation was more likely to be recovered. The Hiſtory is too ſhort to be made ſhorter, by any thing that looks like an Epitomy; beſides, it cannot prudently be deſired, we ſhould be ſo long confined from the Deſcription of other Books, as to give an Abſtract of every Prince's Reign in this. It may be therefore ſufficient, that we here draw out a Table of their Names, with a Chronology of their Deaths, and the Names of thoſe Princes, who were their Contemporaries in England, which will be of general Uſe in Reading any other Piece of Welſh Hiſtory.

In Wales.Died.In England.
Cadwalader688Saxons, Angles, Jutes, &c.
Juor720Kentwin, &c.
Roderik-Molwynoc750Ethelard, &c.
Conan Tindaethy817Offa, &c.
Mervyn Urych843Ethelwulph.
Roderike the Great877Alfred.
Anarawd913Edward.
Edwal Voel940Edmund.
Howel Dha948Eldred.
Jevaf & Jago depos'd973Edgar.
Howel ap Jevaf984Ethelred.
Cadwalhon ap Jevaf985Ibid.
Meredyth ap Owen, depos'd992Ibid.
Edwal ap Meyric about998Ibid.
Aedan ap Blegored1015Edm. Ironſide.
Lhewelyn ap Sitſylht1021Cnute.
Jago ap Edwal1037Harold.
Gruffyth ap Lhewelyn about1065Edward Confeſſ.
Blethyn1073William Conq.
Trahaern1079Ibid.
Gruffyth ap Conan1137Stephen.
Owen Gwyneth1169Henry II.
David ap Owen depoſed1194Richard I.
Lhewelyn ap Jorwerth1240Henry III.
David ap Lhewelyn1246Ibid.
Lhewelyn ap Gruffyth1282Edward I.

[135]This was the laſt of the Britiſh Princes: Then follows the Hiſtory of the Princes of Wales of the Blood Royal of England, by our Editor, down to his own Time; who are ſo well or eaſily known, that they need not be here drawn out in like manner. All therefore we ſhall further mention, will be of the Editor's Notes, with the moſt obſervable Inſtruments, Records, and Pedigrees, which he firſt publiſhed, to illuſtrate this Hiſtory, in ſeveral Parts thereof. Such are his Account of the two Merlins, from Girald Cambrenſis; his Tranſcripts from John Caſtoreus his Chronicle, concerning K. Ina, &c. Enlargements upon the Story of Alfred, and upon that of Elfled, Dutcheſs of Mercia; upon Howel Dha, his Laws and Form of his Court of Judicature. The Foundation of the Family of the Stewarts, from Walter the Baſtard. The Hiſtory of the Winning of Glamorgan, Anno 1091; with the Pedigrees of thoſe who won it; viz. Sir Rob. Fitzhamon, Sir W. Londres, Sir Richard Greenfield, Sir Pain Turbervile, Sir Robert St. Quintin, Sir Richard de Syward, Sir Gilbert de Humfrevill, Sir Roger Berkerolles, Sir Reginald de Sully, Sir Peter le Soore, Sir John le Fleming, Sir Oliver St. John, Sir W. Eſterling, or Stradling. This Hiſtory was drawn up by Sir Edward Stradling, and communicated to our Editor, by Mrs. Blanch Parry, one of the Maids of Honour. And as Robert Sitſylt came alſo to the ſaid Conqueſt of Glamorgan; our ſaid Editor here ſubjoins the Pedigree of the Cecylls, as he had it from the Lord Burghley. Several other of their Families, who made Expeditions into Wales, are alſo here enlarged upon. Further Particulars of the Lordſhip of Powys, the Caſtle of Chirke and Glyn [...]dowrdwy, with the ſeveral Lords of Powys. Of the Diſcovery of ſome Part of the Spaniſh Weſt-Indies, by Madoc ap Owen Gwyneth, before Columbus. A Catalogue of the Deſcents of the Earls of Cheſter, from the Conqueſt to John Scot, 1237. Articles of Agreement between King Henry III. and the Wiſe of Gruffyth, Son of Prince Lhewelyn. Articles of Submiſſion by David, Son of the ſaid Prince. The Pedigree of the Mortimers; evidencing the frivolous Pretences of Owen Glyndoure to the Principality of Wales. Prince Lhewelyn's Letter to Robert Kilwarby, Archbiſhop of Canterbury, 1275, from the Collections of Dr. Tho. Yale. Articles ſent by John Peckham, Archbiſhop of Canterbury, to Prince Lhewelyn, as copied from the Records at Canterbury, by the ſaid Dr. Yale, Chancellor to Archbiſhop Parker, who is here celebrated, for his chargeable [136] Publication of the Antiquitys of this Land: With the Princes Anſwers and Complaints. And in the Editor's Part, of the Engliſh Princes of Wales, we have alſo ſeveral uſeful Lights to Hiſtory, as the Donation of Welſh Lordſhips to the Engliſh Nobility. The Homage of the Welſh Nobility to Prince Edward, Son of King Edward I. the 29th of his Reign. The Story of Owen Glyndoure, and his Rebellion. The clearing of Owen Tudor's Parentage from foreign Aſperſions; and Accounts of ſeveral Lords Preſident of Wales, as was before obſerved.

XXV. The principal Navigations, Voyages, Traffiques, and Diſcoveries of the ENGLISH NATION, made by Sea or over Land, to the remote and fartheſt diſtant Quarters of the Earth, within the Compaſs of theſe 1500 Years: Divided into Three ſeveral Volumes, according to the Poſitions of the Regions whereunto they were directed. The Firſt Volume containeth the worthy Diſcoveries, &c. of the Engliſh toward the North and North-Eaſt by Sea, &c. with many Teſtimonies of the ancient foreign Trades, the warlike and other Shipping of this Realm; with a Commentary of the true State of Iceland, the Defeat of the Spaniſh Armada, and the Victory at Cadiz. By RICHARD HAKLUYT, M. A. ſometime Student of Chriſt-Church in Oxford. Fol. 1598. To this is joined, The Second Volume, comprehending the principal Navigations, &c. of the ENGLISH NATION to the South and South-Eaſt Parts of the World, as well within as without the Streight of Gibraltar; within the Compaſs of 1600 Years: Divided into two ſeveral Parts. By R. HAKLUYT, &c. Folio 1599. Both Volumes are bound together; the former conſiſting of 620 Pages; the latter of 312 the firſt Part, and 204 the laſt; beſides Dedications, Preface and Tables of Contents: And both printed by Geo. Biſhop, Ralph Newberie, and Rob. Barker.
The Third and Laſt Volume of the Voyages, &c. of the ENGLISH NATION, &c. within and before theſe 100 Years, to all Parts of the Newfound World of America, or the Weſt-Indies, from 73 Degrees of Northerly to 57 [137] of Southerly Latitude, &c. Collected by RICHARD HAKLUYT, &c. Imprinted (as before) Folio 1600. Pages 868*.

THE Firſt Volume, after the Dedication to the Lord Admiral Howard, Epiſtle to the Reader, Verſes to the Author, by Hugh Broughton, Richard Mulcaſter, William Camden, and Marc. Ant. Pigafeta, begins with the Voyage of King Arthur to Norway, and the Conqueſts he made there, Anno 517. and with King Malgo's Conqueſt of the Northern Iſlands, in 580, from Geffrey of Monmouth. The Conqueſt of the Iſles of Angleſey and Man by King Edwin in 624, from Bede. The Voyages of Bertus into Ireland 684; of Octher to the Northern Sea, in 890; and of Wolſtan to Denmark. The Voyage of King Edgar, with 4000 Ships round his Kingdom, Anno 973, from Florence [138] of Worceſter, Hoveden, Dr. Dee, &c. The Voyage of K. Edmund's Sons into Hungary. A Chronicle of the Kings of Man from Camden. The Marriage of K. Harold's Daughter with the Duke of Ruſſia. The Antiquities of the Cinque Ports, and State of the Shipping there, from Edward the Confeſſor, to King Edward the Firſt after the Conqueſt; gathered by W. Lambert in his Peramb of Kent. An Engliſh Voyage to Tartary, &c. from Mat. Paris. The Voyage of Frier John de Plano Carpini to Tartary, 1246. The Journal of Frier William de Rubruquis to the Eaſtern Parts, 1253, in Latin and Engliſh. Part of the Charter granted by King Edward I. to the Barons of the Cinque Ports. A Liſt of King Edward III. his great Fleet before Calice. Frier Nicholas of Lynn, the Mathematician of Oxford, his Voyage to the Regions under the North Pole, Anno 1360, from Mercator, Dr. Dee, &c. Henry, Earl of Derby's Voyage, 1390, into Pruſſia, &c. againſt the Infidels: And of Thoma; Duke of Glouceſter, thither in 1391. Teſtimony from Chaucer, who was living in 1402, as appears in his Epiſtle of Cupid (tho' by all, who have written Accounts of him, laid in his Grave two Years before) that the Engliſh Knights after the Loſs of Acon, were wont to travel into Pruſſia and Lettow. Of the ancient Traffic of Britain, from Nero to this Time, from the moſt authentick Hiſtories, particularly the flouriſhing State of London, and its Trade, from Bede and Malmsbury; alſo of Briſtol; Leagues and Privileges of Commerce, by the Saxons and Danes, the Merchants of the Empire, and thoſe of England, with Charters for Merchandizing, by ſeveral of our Kings, and Ordinance of the Staple. A brief Account of the Great Maſters of the Knights Heſpitalers of Jeruſalem, and their Exploits in Pruſſia, or againſt the Infidels The Ambaſſador's Oration from the Maſter General of Pruſſia to King Richard II. [...]e Agreement of Traffic made thereupon; the Revocation and Renewal thereof by King Henry IV. The Grievances of the Merchants of the Hans-Towns in England. Letters to Sir William Sturmy; alſo between King Henry IV. and the Maſter of Pruſſia, about Agreement with the ſaid Merchants The ſaid King's Charter to the Engliſh Merchants in Pruſſia. A Note of King Henry V. his mighty Ships, from a Chronicle in Trinity Church Wincheſter. Branches of Statutes in Henry VI. for the Northern Trade. The Libel of Engliſh Policy, an old Poem, written in Henry VI's Time, exhorting the Engliſh to keep the Sea, and eſpecially the [139] Narrow Sea, with the Profits thereof: Treating more particularly of the Commodities of ſeveral Countries, with the Praiſe of Sir Richard Whittington; the Policy of keeping Ireland, Wales, and Calais; the Trade of Briſtol and Scarborough; with many Arguments and Examples for our keeping the ſurrounding Seas: The whole being 21 Pages, concluding with the Lord Hungerford's Judgment of this Tract. This is followed with King Edward the Fourth's Charter to the Engliſh Merchants in the Netherlands, for chuſing a Governor. Robert Thorne's Declaration of diſcover'd Lands in the Indies, and Exhortation of King Henry VIII. to undertake the Diſcovery of other Parts thereof, Anno 1527. A Treatiſe of the Duke of Muſcovy's Genealogy. Sebaſtian Cabota's Ordinances and Inſtructions for the Voyage to Cathay, 1553. The Names of the Counſellors appointed in this Voyage, being 12, beginning with Sir Hugh Willoughby. The Letters of King Edward VI. to the Northern Princes upon this Expedition to Cathay. The Copy of the Names of Sir Hugh Willoughby's Company, who wintered in Lapland, where he and they were all frozen to death in the River Arzina, 1553. Richard Chancellor, Pilot Major, his Voyage and firſt Diſcovery by Sea, of Muſcovy, with his Account thereof. Another Account of this new Navigation to Muſcovy, by the North-Eaſt, undertaken by Sir H. Willoughby, and performed by R. Chancellor; tranſlated from the Latin Copy written by Clement Adams, School-maſter to the Queen's Henſhmen; with the Teſtimony of Richard Eden in his Decades concerning the ſaid Treatiſe. The Emperor of Muſcovy's Letter to King Edward VI. Of the Coins, Weights, and Meaſures in Ruſſia, by John Haſſe, 1554. The Letters of K. Philip and Q. Mary to the ſaid Emperor John Vaſilivich. Articles for the Merchants of this firſt Ruſſian Company. A Letter from the Company's firſt Agent in Moſco, Mr. George Killingworth. The Emperor's Grant of the firſt Privileges to the Engliſh Merchants, 1555. Queen Mary's Charter to them. Inſtructions for the third Voyage to Ruſſia, ſerviceable in other like Adventures. The Voyage of Stephen Burough towards the River Ob, for Diſcovery of the North-Eaſt Paſſage, 1556. Richard Johnſon's Account of the Waigats, Nova Zembla, and the ſtrange religious Rites of the Samoeds. The Reception of the firſt Ruſſian Ambaſſador in England; regiſtered by John [...]ncent. Preſents from the King and Queen of England to [140] the Emperor of Ruſſia; from him to them, and from them to the Ambaſſador. Ste. Burough's Voyage from Ruſſia to Wardhouſe in ſearch of ſome Engliſh Ships; with a Catalogue of ſome Ruſſian Words, and their Conſtruction. Inſtructions to the Muſcovy Company in 1577. Letters of the Muſcovy Merchants to their Agent G. Killingworth, and between T. Hawtrey, H. Lane, Ric. Gray, T. Alcock, Ant. Jenkinſon, Chr. Hudſon, and T. Glover, other Agents. The Manner of Juſtice in Ruſſia, by Combat or by Lots. Ant. Jenklnſon's firſt Voyage to Ruſſia, and from thence to Bactria. Richard Johnſon's Notes of the Way to Cathay. A Letter from Sigiſmond, King of Poland, to Queen Elizabeth 1559. Her Letter to the Emperor of Ruſſia, for Ant. Jenkinſon's ſafe Conduct, and to the Sophy of Perſia, for the ſame purpoſe. A Remembrance of the Ruſſian Company to the ſaid Jenkinſon upon his Departure. A Declaration of his ſaid Journey to Perſia, 1561, to diſcover Lands, &c. for the ſaid Society of Merchant Adventurers. The Privileges he obtained from the King of Hircania for the ſaid Company. The ſecond Voyage to Perſia, by T. Alcock, &c. Written by Ric. Cheiny, 1563. The third Voyage thither by Ric. Johnſon, Alex. Kitchen, and Arth. Edwards, with the ſaid Edwards his Letters into England, concerning the ſame; with a Note of the Commodities to be carried thither and brought from thence. Diſtance of Places in Ruſſia. Tho. Southam and John Spark's Diſcovery of Ways in Ruſſia, 1566. An Act of the Corporation for Diſcovery of new Trades. Jenkinſon's third Voyage to Ruſſia; the Privileges he obtained for the Engliſh Merchants of the Emperor, 1567. Hen. Lane's Account of the firſt Ruſſian Embaſſy to Queen Elizabeth, to Mr. Ric. Hakluit. The Queen's Letter to the Emperor of Ruſſia, 1668. The Embaſſy of Thomas Randolph, Eſq to the ſaid Emperor, written by himſelf. Further Privileges granted by the Emperor, 1569. Randolph's Commiſſion for Diſcoveries, from the River Pechora to the Eaſtward. Three Letters in Verſe, by his Secretary George Turbervile, to his Friends Edward Dancie, Spencer, and Parker in London. Of the State of Ruſſia, and Manners of the People. The fourth Voyage into Perſia, by Arth. Edwards, &c. written by Laurence Chapman, 1569. Richard Willis his Notes upon that Voyage; more particularly of the Silk Trade; how the Chriſtians become Apoſtates; of the Cotton Tree and Writing of the Perſians. The fifth Voyage into Perſia, by Baniſter and [141] Ducket, to the Year 1574, with the Cuſtoms of the Perſians. The Letter of Chriſt. Hodſdon and W. Borough to the Emperor of Muſcovy, 1570. And from Richard Uſcomb to H. Lane of the burning that City. The Proceedings of A. Jenkinſon in his Embaſſy to Ruſſia, till his Departure in 1572. The Names of all the Countries he had travelled to for 26 Years paſt. James Alday's Letter to Mich. Lock of a Trade to Lappia. Enquiries about the Manner and Charge of Whale-killing, with an Anſwer thereto. W. Burough's Depoſition concerning the Narve, Kegor, &c. An Epiſtle Dedicatory to the Queen, by the ſaid W. Burough (late Comptroller of her Navy) annexed to his exact Map of Ruſſia, containing his great Travels, Experience, &c. in thoſe North-eaſtern Parts. The Queen's Letters to Shaugh Thamas, the Great Sophy of Perſia, by the Agents ſent on the ſixth Voyage thither, 1579. Advertiſements and Reports of this ſixth Voyage, to the Year 1581, out of Chriſtopher Burough's Letters; concluding with Obſervations of the Latitudes and meridian Altitudes in Ruſſia. Directions given by Mr. Ric. Hakluyt of the Middle Temple, to Morgan Hubblethorn, Dyer, ſent into Perſia. The Commiſſion of Sir Rowland Hayward, and Geo. Barne Alderman, to Arthur Pet and Charles Jackman, for the Diſcovery of Cathay, with the Inſtructions of W. Burough, Maſter Dee, and the foreſaid Richard Hakluit, of Eiton, in the County of Hereford, Eſq to them, 1580. Gerard Mercator's Letter to Mr. Richard Hakluit of Oxford, touching this intended Diſcovery of the North-eaſt Paſſage. The Diſcovery made by the ſaid Pet and Jackman thereof, written by Hugh Smith. The Opinion of W. Burough about the Departure of our Ships towards Ruſſia. The Commiſſion for Sir Jerom Bowes his Embaſſy to Ruſſia, 1583, with the Queen's Letter to the Emperor. A Diſcourſe of Sir Jerom Bowes his Voyage to Ruſſia. Henry Lane's Letter to Mr. W. Sanderſon, recounting the Occurrences in the North-eaſt Diſcovery for 33 Years. The Coronation of Theodore Emperor of Ruſſia, obſerved by Mr. Jerom Horſey; with the Courſe of his Journey by Land, from Moſco to Emden. Dr. Giles Fletcher's Embaſſy to the ſaid Emperor, 1588; with a notable Deſcription of Ruſſia. John Baptiſta Ramuſio's Note of the North-eaſt Paſſage. Letters from the Emperor of Ruſſia, and his Brother-in-Law, to the Lord Treaſurer Burghley, and to the Queen, 1591, with their Anſwers. The Emperor's laſt Letters of Privilege to Sir John Hart and [142] Company. Edw. Garland's Commiſſion to F. Simkinſon, for bringing Mr. John Dee, the famous Mathematician, to the Emperor of Ruſſia. Edw. Garland's Letter to the ſaid Worſhipful John Dee Eſq 1586, to the ſame purpoſe, proffering him 2000 l. per Ann. beſides 1000 Rubbles, &c. for his Council in maritime Diſcoveries, &c. all which he refuſed. John Merick's Account of the Death of the Emperor of Ruſſia, 1597. John Balak's Epiſtle to Gerard Mercator, about the Diſcovery of the North-eaſt Paſſage. A Teſtimony of the North eaſtern Diſcoveries, by the Engliſh, from the Second Volume of Ramuſio's Voyages, written in Italian 1557; and from Mercator's large Map of Europe, and J. Metellus Sequanus's Preface to Oſorius de Reb. Geſt. Emanuelis R. Portugalliae. Here follows a brief Commentary of the true State of Iceland, written in Latin, 1592, by Arngrim Jonas of Iceland, to confute the Errors of ſeveral Writers: With a Tranſlation of the ſame into Engliſh. And after this, we have the Victory of the Engliſh Fleet under the Lord Charles Howard, &c. over the huge Spaniſh Armada ſent in 1588, to invade England; tranſlated from Emanuel Van Meteran's Hiſtory of the Low Countries: And laſtly, A brief Report of the honourable Voyage to Cadiz, in 1596, deſcribing the Overthrow of the Spaniſh Fleet there, with the Sacking and Burning of the City, under the Conduct of the Earl of Eſſex, Lord Admiral Howard, Lord Thomas Howard, and Sir Walter Ralegh; which laſt, is here deſcribed to be ‘"a Man of marvellous great Worth and Regard, for many his exceeding ſingular great Vertues, right Fortitude, and great Reſoluteneſs, in all Matters of Importance."’ With theſe two Diſcourſes our Author, through the Importunity of his Friends, and Unwillingneſs to delay their Publication, cloſes this Firſt Volume, though they rather belong to the Southern Voyages of our Nation.

The Second Volume is dedicated to Sir Robert Cecil, Secretary of State, and, reſpecting the Voyages made to the South and South-eaſt Quarters within the Straight of Gibralter, begins with a Quotation from Camden, to prove that the Britains were in Italy and Greece with the Cimbrians and Gauls, before the Incarnation of Chriſt; ſo proceeds to the Voyage of Helena the Empreſs to Jeruſalem, Anno 337. That of Conſtantine the Great to Greece, Aegypt, &c. Of Pelagius Cambrenſis into Aegypt and Syria, Anno 390. Of certain Engliſhmen, ſent to Juſtinian, Anno 500, out [143] of Procopius. Of Sighelmus, Biſhop of Shirbourne, to St. Thomas of India, from W. of Malmsbury, Anno 883. Of John Erigena, under King Alfred, to Athens. Of Andrew Whiteman, under Canute, to Paleſtine. Of Swanus, Earl Godwin's Son, to Jeruſalem. Of three Ambaſſadors in Edward the Confeſſor's time, to Conſtantinople. Of Alured, Biſhop of Worceſter, to Jeruſalem, 1058, from Hoveden. Of Ingulphus, Abbot of Croyland, to Jeruſalem (in 1064, according to Florentius Wigornienſis) from the Concluſion of his own Hiſtory. Of the Beauchamps, with Robert Curtoys, to Jeruſalem. Of the Lady Gutuere, or Godwera, to Jeruſalem. Of Edgar, Grandſon of Edm. Ironſide, to Jeruſalem, 1102. Of Godericus to the Holy-Land. Of Hardine to Joppa, and other Engliſhmen thither. Of Athelard to Aegypt, &c. Of William, Archbiſhop of Tyre, and Robert Ketenenſis to Dalmatia, &c. Of other Engliſhmen to the Holy-Land, 1147. Of the Lord John Lacy, and William Mandevile, Earl of Eſſex, to Jeruſalem. Of the Engliſh Guard at Conſtantinople. Of King Henry II. his Supplies to the Holy Land; and Manuel Emperor of Conſtantinople his Letter to him concerning the Engliſh in Battle with him againſt the Sultan. The Voyage of King Richard I. for the Recovery of Jeruſalem from the Saracins, 1190. The Travels of Archbiſhop Baldwin after the ſaid King. Memorial of Sir Frederick Tilney, knighted at Acon in the Holy Land, for his Valour; and the Travels of Richard Canonicus with King Richard. King John's Contribution to the War in the Holy Land. The Travels of Hubert Walter, Biſhop of Salisbury, and Robert Curſon, made Cardinal at Rome. Voyage of Ranulph Glanvile, Earl of Cheſter, and other Nobles to the Holy Land; alſo of Petrus de Rupibus, Biſhop of Wincheſter; of Richard, Earl of Cornwall, and William Longeſpee, Earl of Salisbury. Of Prince Edward, Son of King Henry III. into Aſia, 1270. The Travels of Frier Turnham, Anthony Beck Biſhop of Durham, and the Journal of Frier Beatus Odoricus concerning the ſtrange Things he ſaw among the Eaſtern Tartars, written 1330. The Expedition of Sir Mat. Gourney againſt the Moors of Algiers. The Arrival of Lyon, King of Armenia, in England, from Froiſſart. The Voyage of Henry, Earl of Derby, afterwards King of England, to Tunis, from Pol. Virgil, Froiſſart, and Hollinſhed. The Victories, in Italy, of Sir John Hawkwood, as mentioned by Camden, William Thomas, &c. Voyages of John Lord Holland, Earl of Huntington, and Thomas Lord Mowbray, Duke of [144] Norfolk, to Jeruſalem, 1399. The Arrival of the Emperor of Conſtantinople in England, 1400. Voyage of the Biſhop of Wincheſter to Jeruſalem, from T. Walſingham. King Henry the Fourth's Preparations to the Holy Land, in 1413. A Relation of the Siege and Conqueſt of Rhodes, by Sultan Solyman, 1522: tranſlated from French into Engliſh, at the Motion of the Lord Thomas Dockwray, Grand Prior of the Order of Jeruſalem in England. Here may be ſeen how many Thouſands of the Turks were ſlain; how gallantly the Engliſh diſtinguiſhed themſelves, particularly Sir John Bourgh, Turcoplier of England, who was ſlain; and Sir Wm. Weſton, Captain of the Engliſh Poſtern, wounded there. Next follows the Embaſſy of Don Ferdinando, from his Brother Charles the Emperor, to King Henry VIII. for Aid againſt Solyman. The Antiquity of Trading with Engliſh Ships into the Levant. The ſaid King Henry's Letter to John King of Portugal, 1531, to reſtore ſome Merchandize belonging to John Greſham and William Locke, which had been treacherouſly carried into Portugal. Of two Voyages to Candia and Chio, in 1534, and the Year after. The Epitaph of Sir Peter Read in Norwich, who was knighted by Charles V. at Tunis, 1538. The Voyage of Sir Tho. Chaloner to Algier, with the ſaid Emperor, 1541, taken from his Book De Republica Anglorum inſtauranda. Roger Bodenham's Voyage to Candia and Chio. That of John Locke to Jeruſalem, 1553. Anthony Jenkinſon's Account of Solyman's entering Aleppo, in his March againſt the Sophy of Perſia. Solyman's Privilege of Safe-Conduct to A. Jenkinſon. Jaſper Campion's Diſcourſe of the Trade to Chio, directed to Mich. Locke and W. Winter. A Report of the Turks taking from the Venetians, the City of Famaguſta, in Cyprus, 1571: tranſlated from the Italian, by W. Malim, and dedicated to the Earl of Leiceſter. The notable Delivery of 266 Chriſtians from Turkiſh Slavery at Alexandria, by John Foxe of Woodbridge, in Suffolk, Gunner, Anno 1577; with the King of Spain's Letter, allowing him eight Ducats a Month, in the Quality of a Gunner, till he could otherwiſe provide for him. The Renewing of Trade in the Levant. The Letters of Zuldan Murad Can, the Great Turk, to Queen Elizabeth, granting the firſt Privileges of Trade, 1579. Her Majeſty's Anſwer. The Charter of the Privileges granted to the Engliſh; and the League of the Great Turk with the Queen for Traffic, 1580. Her Majeſty's Letter to the ſaid Grand Signior, 1581, promiſing Redreſs of the Diſorders of Peter Baker in the Levant. [145] Her Letters Patent to Sir Edward Osborne, Ric. Staper, &c. for Trading in Turky, 1581. The firſt Voyage of Laurence Alderſey, Merchant, to Jeruſalem and Tripoly. The great Maſter of Malta's Paſſport to the Engliſhmen. The Queen's Commiſſion to W. Hareborne to be her Ambaſſador in Turkey. Her Letter in Commendation of him to the Great Turk, 1582. Her Letter to Alli Baſſa, the Turkiſh Admiral. A brief Remembrance of Things to be endeavoured at Conſtantinople, and other Places in Turkey, touching our Clothing, Dying, Vent of our natural Commodities, Labour of our Poor, and the general enriching of this Realm; drawn up by R. Hakluyt of the Middle Temple, and given to a Friend ſent into Turkey, 1582. His Remembrances for Maſter S. to inform himſelf of ſome things in England, and of others in Turkey, to the great Profit of this Commonwealth. The Voyage of W. Harborne, the firſt Ambaſſador to Turkey, where he continued almoſt ſix Years. Letters from Muſtapha Chaus to the Queen; from the Ambaſſador to Harvey Millers, appointing him Conſul in ſome Parts of Aegypt; and his Commiſſion to Richard Forſter, conſtituting him the firſt Engliſh Conſul at Tripoly. Complaints to the Ambaſſador, and his Letter to Muſtapha, challenging him for his diſhoneſt Dealing. The King of Algier's Paſſport to T. Shingleton. Sir Edw. Osborne's Letter in Spaniſh to the King of Algier, in behalf of ſome Engliſh Captives. Notes on the Trade of Algier and Alexandria. The Ambaſſador's Letter to Edw. Barton, with the Commandments of the Grand Signior for the quiet Paſſage of the Queen's Subjects. His Letter to Mr. Tipton, appointing him Conſul. A Regiſter of Engliſh Ships and Captives, taken by the Galleys of Algier. The Ambaſſador's Letter to Aſſan Aga thereupon. A Petition to the Viceroy of Turkey, for Reformation of Injuries offered our Nation in Morea, with the Turkiſh Mandates thereupon. Tho. Sanders his Report of the Voyage to, and Captivity in Tripoly, Anno 1583. The Queen's Letters to the Turk for Reſtitution. The Turk's Letter to the King of Tripoly thereupon; and the Engliſh Ambaſſador's. Captain Henry Auſtell's Voyage to Conſtantinople. The Turk's Paſſport to him. The Earl of Leiceſter's Paſſport for T. Forſter, travelling to Conſtantinople. A Deſcription of the Yearly Pilgrimage of the Mahumitans, &c. to Mecca. The Travels of Caeſar Frederick in and beyond the Eaſt Indies, for eighteen Years; deſcribing the Cuſtoms and Commodities of the Countries he paſſed [146] through; tranſlated from the Italian by Thomas Hickocke. Letters, concerning the Voyage of Mr. John Newbery and Ralph Fitch, to the Eaſt Indies; by the Queen to the Kings of Cambaia and China; by Mr. Newbery to our Author Hakluyt, &c. and from Mr. Fitch to Leonard Poore. The ſaid Mr. Fitch's particular Narrative of his Voyage to the Eaſt Indies, for the ſpace of eight Years; with Linſchoten's Report (in his Travels) of the Impriſonment and Eſcape of the ſaid Newbery and Fitch. Mr. John Eldred's Account of his Voyage to Tripoly. Of the Weight, Meaſure, and Money current in Babylon, Ormus, Goa, Cochin, Malacca; Bill of Charges from Aleppo to Goa, and a Catalogue of Goods, Druggs, &c. with the Places whence they come; alſo of the Monſon Winds; by Will. Barret. Mr. John Eveſham's Voyage by Sea to Aegypt, 1586. Mr. Laur. Alderſey's ſecond Voyage to Alexandria and Cairo. Philip Jones his Report of the brave Fight between five London Ships and eleven Spaniſh Gallies at Pantalarea. The Return of Mr. Harborne from Conſtantinople over Land, 1588. Peter, Prince of Moldavia's Privilege to the Engliſh Merchants. The Grand Signior's daily Payments, out of his Treaſury, to the Officers of his Seraglio or Court, and Annuities; Liſts of his Officers and Soldiers; his Yearly Revenues, and Ambaſſadors Allowances. Letters from Sinan Baſſa, the Grand Signior's Chief Counſellor, to Queen Elizabeth, ſhewing how, for her ſake, the Peace was made with Poland. The Queen's ſecond Letters Patent to the Company of Engliſh Merchants for the Levant, 1592. Edward Barton's Embaſſy, with the ſecond Preſent to the Sultan, 1593, deſcribed by Rich. Wrag. A Letter from the Grand Sultana to Queen Elizabeth, 1594: and here ends the Firſt Part. The Second Part of this Second Volume begins with the Voyage of Macham, an Engliſhman, who firſt diſcovered the Iſland of Madera, 1344, from Antonio Galuano's Portugal Hiſtory. A Note of the taking of Ceuta by the Portugueze, with the Aſſiſtance of the Engliſh, 1415; which was the firſt Occaſion of all the Portugueze Diſcoveries, from T. Walſingham. John King of Portugal's Embaſſy to King Edward IV. of England, wherein he prevailed upon the Reſtraint of John Tintam and W. Fabian, from an intended Voyage to Guinea, 1481. A Note of the Engliſh Trade to the Canaries, in 1526. A Deſcription of the Canary or Fortunate Iſlands, by Tho. Nicols; beginning with a Cenſure of Andrew Thevet's Account of them. Of the firſt Voyage, for Traffic, [147] into Barbary, 1551, under Capt. Tho. Windham; as obſerv'd by J m. Aldaie, the Inventor of that Trade. The 2d Voyage thither, ſet forth by Sir James York, and others, under Capt. Windham, related from the Account of James Thomas. The firſt Voyage to Guinea and Benin, at the Charge of the Merchant Adventurers of London, under Capt. Windham, 1553, beginning with a Deſcription of Africa, by Richard Eden. The ſecond Voyage to Guinea, ſet out by Sir Geo. Barne, Sir John Yorke, &c. 1554, under Capt. John Lok. W. Towrſon's firſt Voyage to Guinea, 1555. His ſecond Voyage thither, 1556. His laſt Voyage, in 1577; with a Liſt of Wares deſired in Guinea. A Remembrance for Capt. Lok on his Arrival at Guinea, by Sir W. Gerard, &c. touching a Fortification, 1561. His Letter to the ſaid Merchants Adventurers on his not proceeding in the Voyage. W. Rutter's Relation of a Voyage ſet out to Guinea, 1562, by Sir W. Gerard, Sir W. Cheſter, Mr. Tho. Lodge, &c. which Voyage was alſo written in Verſe, by Rob. Baker. The Meeting at Sir W. Gerard's Houſe, for a ſeventh Voyage to Guinea, 1564, and the Succeſs thereof, extracted from the ſecond Voyage to the Weſt Indies, by Sir John Hawkins. Mr. Geo. Fenner's Voyage to Guinea and the Iſlands of Cape Verde, 1566; written by Walter Wren. Mr. Edmund Hogan's Relation of his Embaſſy from the Queen to Mully Abdelmelech Emperor of Morocco, &c. 1577. The Voyage of Thomas Stukeley, wrongfully called Marqueſe of Ireland, into Barbary, 1578, written by Jo. Tho. Freigius, in Hiſtoria de caede Sebaſtiani Regis Luſitaniae. Reports of China, from the Italian, by Ric. Willis; and of Japan, with other Iſles in the Eaſt Ocean, by the ſaid Willis. A Dialogue of the Kingdom of China, State and Government thereof, from the Latin, printed at Macao, 1590. Tho. Stephens's Letter from Goa, 1579. Frey Peter of Lisbon, his Relation of Pegu, and the rich Traffic there. A Voyage to the Eaſt Indies, begun by Mr. Geo. Raymond, in 1591, performed by Capt. James Lancaſter, and written from the Mouth of his Lieutenant Edm. Barker, by Mr. Richard Hakluyt. Remembrances of an intended Voyage to Braſil, and the River of Plate, by Edw. Cotton, 1583. The Eſcape of the Primroſe from the Spaniards at Bilboa, with her bringing the Corrigidor Priſoner into England; and the King of Spain's Commiſſion to arreſt all Engliſh, Dutch, and Eaſterling Ships, 1585. The Queen's Patent for Trade to Barbary. The Embaſſy of Mr. Henry Roberts to Mully Hamet, Emperor of Morocco, [148] written by himſelf. That Emperor's Edict, obtained by the ſaid Ambaſſador, That no Engliſhmen ſhould be moleſted or made Slaves in any Part of his Dominions, 1587. His Letter to the Earl of Leiceſter. The Queen's Letter to the ſaid Emperor. A Voyage to the Azores, by Sir Walter Ralegh's Pinnaces, which took the Governor of St. Michael's Iſland, and Pedro Sarmiento, Governor of the Straights of Magellan, beſides other Prizes, 1586, written by Mr. John Eveſham. Sir Francis Drake's notable Services upon the Spaniſh Fleet in the Road of Cadiz; and of his deſtroying 100 Barks, taking ſome Forts, and ſurprizing a great Carack called Sant Philip, 1587. Patent to Merchants of Exeter and London, for Trade to Guinea, 1588. James Walſh's Narrative of a Voyage to Benin beyond Guinea, ſet forth by Merchants Bird and Newton. Anthony Ingram's Account thereof, in a Letter to thoſe Merchants. Their ſecond Voyage to Benin, 1590, by James Walſh. Advertiſement to King Philip of Spain, concerning the State of Angola. Colonel Anthony Winkfield's Diſcourſe of the Portugal Voyage, 1589. The Voyage of George, E. of Cumberland, to the Azores, &c. written by that eminent Mathematician and Engineer Mr. Edward Wright. The valiant Fight performed by ten Merchant Ships of London, againſt twelve Spaniſh Gallies, in the Straights of Gibraltar, 1590. The valiant Fight in the ſaid Straights by the Centurion of London, againſt five Spaniſh Gallies, 1591. A Report of the deſperate Fight near the Azores, between the Revenge, commanded by Sir Richard Grenvile, and a Spaniſh Fleet, in Auguſt 1591; penned by the Honourable Sir Walter Ralegh. A Note of the Spaniſh Indian Ships expected in Spain that Year, with the Number thereof which periſhed. Mr. Rob. Flick's Report of the Succeſs of the London Supplies, ſent to the Lord Tho. Howard at the Azores. Linſchoten's Teſtimony of the worthy Exploits atchieved by the Earl of Cumberland, Sir Martin Frobiſher, Sir Richard Grenvile, and divers other Engliſh Captains, about the Azores and the Coaſts of Spain and Portugal, in 1589, 1590, 1591, &c. recorded in his excellent Voyages to the Eaſt and Weſt Indies. A Relation of the State and flouriſhing Trade of Arguin, near Cape Blanco. The Voyage of Ric. Rainold, and T. Daſſel, to the Rivers of Senagra and Gambra, near Guinea; with the Treaſons of ſome of Don Antonio's Followers. Relation of the States of Tombuto and Gago, written 1594, from Morocco to Mr. Ant. Daſſel in London, A further Relation of the late Conqueſt [149] and Riches of thoſe Provinces. Extract of a Patent to Tho. Gregory, &c. for Traffic between the River of Nounia, and others on the Coaſt of Guinea, 1592. The taking of two Spaniſh Ships laden with Quickſilver and Popes Bulls; by Mr. Tho. White. Report of the Service of Sir John Burrough, Lieutenant-General of the Fleet prepared by the Honourable Sir Walter Ralegh, Lord Warden of the Stannaries; wherein the Santa Clara, of 600 Tun, was taken, the Santa Cruz burnt, and the huge rich Madre de Dios brought into England, Sept. 7, 1592. Of the Firing and Sinking that ſtout Spaniſh Carack, called the Five Wounds, by the Earl of Cumberland's Ships: written by Capt. Nich. Downton. The Loſs of the Ship Toby on the Coaſt of Barbary, 1593. The Queen's Letters by Laur. Alderſey to the Emperor of Aethiopia, 1597: which concludes this Second Volume.

The Third and Laſt Volume, containing the Voyages and Adventures of our Nation in the Weſtern Parts, begins with the moſt ancient Diſcovery of the Weſt Indies, by Madoc, Son of Owen Guyeth, Prince of North Wales, in the Year 1170, from the Hiſtory of Wales, publiſhed by Dr. Powel. This is followed by Chriſtopher Columbus his Offer of the Diſcovery of the Weſt Indies to King Henry VII. in 1488, by his Brother Bartholomew Columbus, who preſented the ſaid King with a new Map of the World; in which was repreſented the Burning Zone, lately diſcovered by the Portugueze; but returning with the ſaid King's Acceptation of the Offer, his Brother was in the mean time engaged to make that Diſcovery by and for the King of Caſtile, as we here have it from the Life of the ſaid Chriſtopher, written by his Son Don Ferdinand Columbus. After another Teſtimony, from the ſaid Life, of that Engagement, we have the Letters Patents of King Henry VII. to John Cabot, and his three Sons, Lewis, Sebaſtian, and Sancius, for the Diſcovery of new and unknown Lands, 1495; with a Record from the Rolls of the Voyage of the ſaid John and his Son Sebaſtian; alſo an Extract from Sebaſtian Cabot's Map, cut by Clement Adams, concerning the ſaid Cabot's Diſcovery of the Weſt Indies, 1497; which Map was to be ſeen in the Privy Gallery at Weſtminſter, and in many Merchants Houſes. Next we have the ſaid Sebaſtian's Diſcourſe of that Diſcovery with the Pope's Legate in Spain, from the ſecond Volume of Baptiſta Ramuſius his Voyages; alſo further Teſtimonies of this Cabot from the Preface of Ramuſio's Third Volume, [150] from the third Decade of Peter Martyr of Angleria, from Fra. Lopez de Gomera's General Hiſtory of the Weſt Indies, and from Robert Fabian's MS. Continuation of his Chronicle, in the Cuſtody of John Stow; with an Account of the three Savages preſented by Cabot to the ſaid King in the 14th of his Reign. After this, we have a Note of the Diſcovery of Newfoundland from Robert Thorn's Book to Dr. Leigh, and the Grant made by King Edward VI. of a Penſion of 166 l. 13 s. 4 d. yearly, with the Office of Grand Pilot of England, to Sebaſtian Cabot, 1549. And this is followed by Sir Humphrey Gilbert's learned and curious Diſcourſe, to prove a Paſſage by the North-weſt to Cathaia and the Eaſt Indies; with other Reaſons proving the ſame, by Mr. Richard Willis. The firſt Voyage of M. Martin Frobiſher to the North-weſt, in ſearch of the Paſſage to China, 1576, written by Chriſt. Hall. The ſecond Voyage of Frobiſher for the ſaid Diſcoveries, 1577, by Dioniſe Settle. Frobiſher's third and laſt Voyage to Meta Incognita, 1578, by Tho. Ellis; with Tho. Wiar's Report of a great Iſland in their way home. The Notes of Richard Hakluyt, of the Middle Temple, Eſq for the Direction of certain Gentlemen who went with Mr. Frobiſher. Mr. Geo. Beſt's Diſcourſe of theſe three Voyages, with a Preface, proving all Parts of the World to be habitable. The Queen's Letters Patents to Adrian Gylbert, and others, for the Diſcovery of the Northweſt Paſſage to China. The firſt Voyage of Mr. John Davis, in 1585, for the Diſcovery of the North-weſt Paſſage, written by John Janes. Davis's ſecond Voyage for that Diſcovery, 1586. His Letter to Mr. W. Sanderſon concerning his Voyage. A Relation of the Courſe held by two of his Pinnaces, in diſcovering the Paſſage between Greenland and Iceland. Mr. Davis's third Voyage for diſcovery of the Iſles of the Moluccas, or the Coaſt of China, 1587, written by Mr. John Janes. Another Letter from Mr. Davis to Mr. Sanderſon. A Traverſe-Book made by Mr. John Davis, in his ſaid third Voyage. His Report of theſe three Voyages, taken from his Treatiſe, intitled, The World's Hydrographical Deſcription. Nicholas and Anthony Zani's Diſcovery of Frieſland, Iceland, &c. 1380, from Marcolino's Letters. Several Voyages towards and to Newfoundland; as by two Ships, in 1527, mentioned by our Chroniclers Hall and Grafton. Another Voyage thither by Mr. Hore and others, 1536. An Act againſt exacting any Money for Licence to traffic to Iceland and Newfoundland, 2 Edw. VI. [151] Ant. Parkhurſt's Letter to R. Hakluyt of the Middle Temple, concerning the true State, &c. of Newfoundland, 1578. The Queen's Letters Patent to Sir Humphry Gilbert. A Latin Poem, by Steph. Parmenius Budeius, upon Sir Humphry's Voyage to Newfoundland, for the planting a Colony there; celebrating alſo ſeveral others of our Sea-Adventurers. A Report of Sir Humphry's ſaid Voyage, and the Succeſs thereof, 1583, by Mr. Edward Haies; concluding with an Account, how the Admiral was loſt, and a Letter from the ſaid Parmenius to our Author R. Hakluyt of Oxford. Richard Clark's Relation of the ſaid Voyage, excuſing himſelf from caſting away the Ship. Sir G. Peckham's Report of the late Diſcoveries and Poſſeſſion taken in Newfoundland, by Sir H. Gilbert. Sir Fra. Walſingham's Letter to our Author Hakluyt, encouraging him to the Study of Coſmography, &c. 1582. Another Letter from Sir Francis to Tho. Aldworth, Mayor of Briſtol, concerning the Weſtern Diſcovery. Aldworth's Letter to Sir Francis, concerning an intended Weſtern Voyage for Diſcovery to the South-weſt of Cape Briton. Capt. Chriſt. Carlile's Diſcourſe upon the intended Voyage to the hindermoſt Part of America, 1583. Articles by the Committee appointed in behalf of the Muſcovy Merchants, to confer with Capt. Carlile upon his intended Diſcovery. Relation of the firſt Voyage, and Diſcovery of the Iſle of Ramea, to make Train Oil of the Morſes, performed 1591. Tho. James's Letter to the Lord Burghly, about the Diſcovery of the Iſle of Ramea. A brief Note of the Morſes, and their Uſe. Richard Fiſher's Relation of a Voyage to Cape Briton, 1593. The Voyage of Mr. Geo. Drake, of Apſham, to the Iſle of Ramea. Sylveſter Wyet's Voyage to the Iſle of Aſſumption for Whale Fins and Train Oil, 1594. Charles Leigh's Voyage to Cape Briton, and the Iſle of Ramea. The three Voyages of Jaques Cartier, diſcovering New France, between the Years 1534 and 1540, with John Alphonſe's Courſe from Belle Iſle, up the River Canada; and the Lord of Roberval's Voyage thither, in 1542. The ſeveral Voyages to Virginia, and Diſcoverys thereof, chiefly at the Charges of Sir Walter Ralegh; from 33 to 40 Degrees Latitude: As firſt, the Queen's Letters Patents to him, for new Diſcoveries, 1584. Whereupon enſued the firſt Voyage to Virginia, by Capt. Phil. Amadas, and Capt. Arth. Barlow, at Sir Walter's Charge and Direction. Sir Richard Grenvile's Voyage for Sir Walter thither, in 1585. The Names of [152] the Engliſh Colony left there under Governor Lane. Extract of the ſaid Mr. Ralph Lane's Letter to Richard Hakluyt Eſq &c. Account of the Employments of the Engliſh left in Virginia, by Sir Richard Grenvile, under Governor Lane, from Auguſt 1585 to June 1586, directed to Sir W. Ralegh. The third Voyage in 1586, for Relief of the Virginian Colony at the ſole Charges of Sir W. Ralegh. A true Report of the New-found Land of Virginia, with the Commodities to be there found, or raiſed, by Mr. Tho. Hariot, Servant to Sir W. Ralegh. The fourth Voyage to Virginia, with three Ships, tranſporting the ſecond Colony, 1587; with a Liſt of their Names. The fifth Voyage to Virginia, under Mr. John White, 1590. Certain Voyages to Florida, with the more perfect Diſcoveries thereof; beginning with the Relation of John de Verrazzano to the French King, 1524. A notable Hiſtory of four Voyages, made by certain French Captains into Florida, 1561, &c. moſtly written by Monſ. Laudonniere; tranſlated from the French by our Author Richard Hakluyt, and by him dedicated to the Right Honourable Sir W. Ralegh, Knt. Captain of her Majeſty's Guard, Lord Warden of the Stanneries, and Lieutenant General of the County of Cornwall, 1587. The Relations of P. Morales and Nic. Burgoignon, brought by Sir Fra. Drake from St. Auguſtines in Florida, touching the State of thoſe Parts. Sundry Voyages from Nueva Galicia and Nueva Biſcaia, in New Spain, to the 15 Provinces of New Mexico, and to Quivira and Cibola, as far as 37 Degrees Northerly Latitude, beginning with Ramuſio's Account of the three Voyages of Frier Marco de Niça, Fran. Vaſquez de Coronado, and Ferdinand Alorchon. Letters of the ſaid Vaſquez to Don Antonio de Mendoça. The ſaid Don Antonio's Letter to the Emperor Charles V. Then more particularly of Frier Marco's Diſcovery of Cevola or Cibola, 1539. And the ſaid Vaſquez his Voyage thither, 1540. With the Continuation of this Voyage and Diſcovery, from Fra. Lopez de Gomara's General Hiſtory of the Weſt Indies, and the ſaid Lopez his Deſcription of the ſtrange crook'd-back'd Oxen, great Sheep and Dogs in Quivira. The Voyages of Frier Auguſtine Ruis, and Antonio de Eſpeio, to the 15 Provinces of Mexico, in 1581, 1582. Bartholomew Cano's Letter about the building of two ſtrong Forts in St. John de Ullua, and in Vera Cruz; alſo touching the Diſcovery of Cibola or New Mexico, 400 Leagues North-weſt of Mexico. Franciſco de Ulloa's Voyage, at the Charges of Ferdinando Cortez, into the Gulph of Calefornia, 1539, from Ramuſio's third [153] Volume of Voyages. Ferdinando Alarchon's Diſcovery to the Bottom of the ſaid Gulph, 1540. Sir Francis Drake's Courſe from the Haven of Guatulco, in the South Sea, to the North-weſt of Calefornia as far as 43 Degrees; where he landed, made many Diſcoveries, had Poſſeſſion given him, and named the Country Nova Albion. The Voyage of Franciſco de Gualle from Acapulco, in New Spain, to the Philippinas, the Haven of Manilla, and Macao in China, and back again, in 1584. The Engliſh Voyage to Mexico, and to moſt other principal Parts throughout the Kingdom of New Spain, to Nicaragua, Panama, and Peru; as the Voyage of Robert Tomſon into Nova Hiſpania, 1555. Roger Bodenham's Voyage to St. John de Ullua, in the Bay of Mexico, 1564. John Chilton's notable Obſervations of the People, Cities, Riches, Mines, Forces, &c. of New Spain, and other Weſt Indian Provinces, in the ſpace of 17 Years, returning into England 1586. Henry Hawks his Relation of the Commodities of Nova Hiſpania, and the Manners of the Inhabitants, at the Requeſt of R. Hakluyt, Eſq of Eiton, 1572. A Diſcourſe by Miles Philips, who was ſet aſhore by Sir John Hawkins near Panuco, 1568, of the Spaniſh Government and their Cruelties in the Weſt Indies; his ſeveral Impriſonments by them, his Eſcapes and Return to England, after 14 Years. The Travels of Job Hortop, ſet on land in the Bay of Mexico, by Sir John Hawkins, after his Departure from St. John de Ullua, the ſame Year. A Relation of the Haven of Tecuanapa, ſituate on the South Sea, deſcribing the Rivers falling into that Haven, with the Towns, &c. adjoining, fit for building and victualling of Ships. The Engliſh Voyages to all the Iſles called Las Antillas, and the greater Iſlands of Puerto Rico, Hiſpaniola, Jamaica, Cuba, &c. with the taking, ſacking, &c. moſt of the principal Spaniſh Towns there; ſince their traitorous burning of the Jeſus of Lubec, murdering the Engliſh, and arreſting their Ships and Goods, in 1585. Beginning with the Voyage of Sir Thomas Pert, Vice-Admiral of England, and Sebaſtian Cabota, in 1516, to Braſil, Santo Domingo, and Sant Juan de Puerto Rico, from a Work of that learned and painful Writer Richard Eden, called, A Treatiſe of New India, and the Account of Gonſalvo de Oviedo. The Voyage of Tho. Tiſon to the Weſt Indies, before 1526, from an old Ligier Book of M. Nic. Thorn of Briſtol. The firſt Voyage of the Right Worſhipful and Valiant Mr. John Hawkins, ſince knighted, and ſometime Treaſurer of her Majeſty's [154] Navy Royal, made to the Weſt-Indies, 1562. The ſecond Voyage of the ſaid Sir John Hawkins, in the Jeſus of Lubec, to the Coaſt of Guinea and Nova Hiſpania, 1564. His third perilous Voyage in the ſaid Jeſus of Lubec, with five other Ships, to the Parts aforeſaid, in 1567, 1568. The firſt Voyage of that expert and valiant Captain M. Francis Drake, in the Dragon, with two other Ships, to Nombre de Dios and Dariene, about the Year 1572, written by Lopez Vaz; which Diſcourſe with the Author were taken at the River of Plate, by the Earl of Cumberland's Ships in 1586. The Voyage of John Oxnam, of Plimouth, to the Weſt Indies, and into the South Sea, 1575, by the ſaid Lopez Vaz. The Voyage of Andrew Barker to Terra Firma, and the Bay of Honduras, 1576, collected by our Author Ric. Hakluyt. The Opinion of Don Alvaro Baçan, High Admiral of Spain, touching the Army of Sir Fra. Drake, at the Iſles of Bayon in Galicia, written in Lisbon 1585. A ſummary and true Diſcourſe of Sir Francis Drake's Weſt Indian Voyage, began in 1585, wherein were taken ſeveral Cities and Towns, publiſhed by Tho. Cates. Baptiſta Antonio's Survey of the Ports, Harbours, Forts, and Cities in the Weſt Indies, which have been edified, repaired, &c. by the King of Spain's Direction. The Voyage of Capt. William Michelſon, and Maſter W. Mace, to the Bay of Mexico, 1589. Spaniſh Letters intercepted by Mr. John Wattes his Ships, containing many Secrets of the State of ſeveral Weſt Indian Countries in 1590. The memorable Fight in June 1591, againſt the Spaniſh Ships in the Weſt Indies, by three Ships of Sir Geo. Carey's, then Marſhal of the Queen's Houſhold, and Captain of the Iſle of Wight, ſince Lord Hunſdon, &c. John Twitt's Report of Chriſt. Newport's Enterprize with three Ships and a Pinnace, ſet out in Jan. 1591, wherein were taken and burnt upon the Coaſt of Hiſpaniola, &c. 3 Towns, and 19 Cities, &c. The Voyage to Mexico, by Capt. Will. King, &c. 1592. Henry May's Note of a Voyage to the Eaſt Indies, begun in April 1591, with three tall Ships and a Pinnace, ending with a large Deſcription of Bermudas. The Honourable Mr. Rob. Duddeley's Voyage to the Iſle of Trinidad, and the Coaſt of Paria, in which he took and ſunk 9 Spaniſh Ships, written at the Requeſt of Mr. R. Hakluyt, concluding with ſome Words of the Trinidad Language. The victorious Voyage of Capt. Amias Preſton and Capt. Geo. Sommers, to the Weſt Indies, begun in March 1595, written by Robert Davie. The Voyage of Sir Francis [155] Drake and Sir John Hawkins, with ſix of the Queen's Ships, and 21 others, to the Weſt Indies, Anno 1595; in which Voyage both thoſe brave Knights died by Sickneſs. This is followed with a Detection of the Spaniſh General's Slanders, which he publiſhed in a Letter relating to this Voyage, and the Generals therein, particularly that Sir F. Drake died of Grief, becauſe he had loſt ſo many Barks and Men; and that the Engliſh Fleet fled from the ſaid Spaniard, which, with other Aſſertions, are contradicted by Capt. H. Savile, who was in the Expedition, and Sir Thomas Baskervile, who returned General thereof. A true Relation of Sir Anthony Shirley's Voyage to St. Jago, Dominica, Margarita, &c. and homeward by Newfoundland, with the memorable Exploits atchieved therein, 1596. The Voyage of Capt. William Parker to Margarita, &c. the ſame Year, in which he joined Sir A. Shirley, and they took Puerto de Cavallos, Campeche, &c. An excellent Ruttier for the Iſlands of the Weſt Indies, and for Terra Firma and Nueva Eſpanna. Another principal Ruttier, containing moſt particular Directions for ſailing to all the Weſtern Iſlands, with the Marks of all the Capes, &c. and a Declaration of Longitudes and Latitudes. The Diſcovery of the large, rich and beautiful Empire of Guiana, and many Provinces therein, Anno 1595, by Sir Walter Ralegh, Captain of the Queen's Guard, Lord Warden of the Stanneries, and Lieutenant General of Cornwal: Dedicated to his Kinſman the Lord Charles Howard, Knight of the Garter, and Admiral of England; and to Sir Robert Cecyll, of the Queen's Privy Council. To which is annexed, An Abſtract of certain Spaniſh Letters taken at Sea by Capt. Geo. Popham, concerning Guiana and the Countries upon the great River Orenoque. A Relation of the ſecond Voyage to Guiana, performed and written in 1596, by Capt. Laurence Keymis; dedicated to the approved right valorous, and worthy Knight Sir Walter Ralegh; at whoſe Expence and Direction it was undertaken. After the Preface, we have an Heroic Poem in Engliſh Verſe, by G.C. upon this famous Enterprize. And ſome Latin Verſes, by Captain Keymis, to Mr. T. Hariot the Mathematician, in praiſe of Guiana, and the Diſcoverer thereof; and at the end, a Table of the Rivers, Nations, Towns, and Caſiques diſcovered in this Voyage; with a Liſt of all the famous Spaniards, who have attempted this Diſcovery and Conqueſt. The third Voyage ſet forth by Sir W. Ralegh to Guiana, in 1596, written by Mr. Tho. Maſham. Teſtimonies concerning [156] the River of Amazons, and the wonderful Cataract at the Head thereof, and of the ſtately Empire of Dorado or Guiana, &c. from Joſeph Acoſta, and Martin Fernandez de Ençiça. Several Voyages, ancient and modern, upon the Coaſt of Brazil, &c. beginning with the two Voyages of Mr. W. Hawkins (Father to Sir John) in the Years 1530 and 1532. The Voyages of Rob. Reniger and Tho. Borey to Brazil 1540, and of one Pudſey thither, in 1542. John Whithal's Letter from thence to Ric. Staper, 1578. A Letter of the Adventurers, ſent to the ſaid Whitehal there, 1580. Tho. Grig's Notes of Capt. Stephen Hare's Voyage to Brazil the ſame Year. Account of the rich Trade begun there, in a Letter from Fra. Suares to his Brother, 1596. The proſperous Voyage of Mr. James Lancaſter with three Ships and a Galley, in 1594, in which he took 29 Ships, &c. ſurpriſed Fernambuc, and brought home 15 Ships full of Goods. Feliciano Cieça, Governor in Brazil, his Letter to the King of Spain, mentioning, among other important Communications, a rich Silver Mine at Copaoba. A ſpecial Note of the Currents of the Sea between the Cape of Buena Eſperança and the Coaſt of Brazil, given by an experienced French Pilot to Sir John Yorke before Sebaſtian Cabot. A Ruttier or Courſe for thoſe who wou'd ſail from Cabo Verde to Brazil, and along the Coaſt to the River Plate, and from hence to the Streights of Magellan. The Voyage of two Engliſhmen with Sebaſtian Cabota to the River Plate, in 1527, from Rob. Thorne's Information to Dr. Ley, Ambaſſador to the Emperor Charles, touching the Diſcovery of the Molucca's by the North. An Extract from Lopez Vaz, concerning the Fight of Capt. Fenton, with the Spaniſh Ships, with Capt. John Drake's Proceeding to the River of Plate. A Ruttier of the Coaſt of Braſil from Santa Catelina to the Mouth of the River of Plate, &c. The famous Voyage of Sir Fra. Drake, in the Pelican, to the South Sea, and thence about the whole Globe of the Earth, begun from Plimouth, 15 November, but driven back by Diſtreſs, and begun again 13 December 1577, with five Ships and Barks, and finiſhed 3d of November, 1580, when he arrived ſafe in England; concluding with the Names of the Kings and Prince of Java then living, and certain Words of their Language. The Voyage of Nuno de Silva, a Portugal Pilot, taken by Sir F. Drake at Cabo Verde, with his Confeſſion to the Viceroy of Mexico, of the Courſe and Actions which paſſed in the Voyage of Sir Francis, during [157] the time he was his Priſoner, concluding with a Letter of Sir Fra. Drake to Mr. J. Winter. The ſaid Mr. Winter's Voyage into the South Sea, by the Straight of Magellan, with Sir Fra. Drake in 1577, the firſt Engliſhman who ever repaſſed the ſaid Streight: Written by Edward Cliffe. Inſtructions by the Lords of the Council to Edward Fenton Eſq for his Voyage to the Eaſt Indies and Cathay, 1582. The intended Voyage towards China, wherein the ſaid Edward Fenton was appointed General; written by Capt. Luke Ward his Vice Admiral, 1582. The Voyage ſet out by the Right Honourable the Earl of Cumberland, in 1586, for the South Sea, performed to 44 Degrees South of the Equinox, written by Mr. John Saracoll, Merchant. A Diſcourſe of the Weſt Indies and South Sea, written by Lopez Vaz, to the Year 1517; wherein, amongſt ſome uncommon Things, is a true Report of certain Engliſh Voyages; which Diſcourſe with its Author were taken at the River of Plate, by Capt. Witherington and Capt. Chriſt. Liſter, in the Fleet ſet forth by the Earl of Cumberland. The admirable and proſperous Voyage of the Worſhipful Thomas Candiſh of Trimley in Suffolk, Eſq into the South Sea, and thence round the whole Earth, begun with three Sail of Ships, 21 July 1586, and finiſhed 9 Sept. 1588; written by Mr. Francis Pretty. Certain rare and ſpecial Notes, which properly belong to the ſaid Voyage, concerning the Heights, Soundings, Lyings of Land, Diſtances of Places, Variation of the Compaſs, Time in Sailing between Places; alſo Harbours, Anchorings and Depths, with the Winds of ſeveral Coaſts; written by Mr. Thomas Fuller of Ipſwich, Maſter in the Deſire, of Mr. Candiſh, in his foreſaid Voyage. A Letter from the ſaid Mr. Candiſh to the Lord Hunſdon, touching the Succeſs of his Voyage, dated the Day he returned to Plimouth. Notes or References taken out of the large Map of China, brought home by Mr. Candiſh. W. Magoth's Relation of a Voyage to the Straights of Magellan, under John Chidley Eſq and Capt. Paul Wheele, 1589. A Petition by ſome of the Company in the ſaid Voyage, to the Maſter of their Ship. The laſt Voyage of the Worſhipful Tho. Candiſh Eſq intended for the South Sea, &c. and the Coaſt of China, with three Ships and two Barks: he ſet forth the 26th of Auguſt 1591, and on the 21ſt of May 1592, was loſt near Port Deſire. The Queen's Letters to the Emperor of China, by and in behalf of Ric. Allot and Tho. Bromefield, Merchants of London, [158] whoſe Voyage thither was ſet forth at the Charge of Sir Robert Duddeley. Teſtimonies concerning the mighty Kingdom of Coray, tributary to the Emperor of China. A Note of an extream Northern Province in Japan, called Zuegara, and of a Nation of Tartars, called Jezi, never heard of in theſe Parts before; as written from Japan in 1596, by Frier Luis Frois. Advertiſements of the Ships that go from Sevil to the Spaniſh Indies; with ſome Notes of the Contractation-Houſe in Seville. The Order of the Carena given to Ships that go from Spain to the Indies. The Examination of Maſters and Pilots in the Spaniſh Fleets to the Weſt Indies, by P. Dias, a Spaniſh Pilot; which, with his Account of the Table of Rates in the Contractation-Houſe aforeſaid, concludes this whole Work. And this Summary of it, may ſufficiently intimate what a Treaſury of maritime Knowledge it is; wherefore we ſhall here take our leave of it, with referring only to a needful Obſervation or two at the Bottom*.

XXVI. Enquiries touching the DIVERSITY of LANGUAGES and RELIGIONS, through the chief Parts of the World. Written by EDW. BREREWOOD, lately Profeſſor of Aſtronomy in GRESHAM COLLEGE in LONDON. Printed by John Bill, 4to. 1622. Pages 203, beſides Dedication, Preface, &c.

[159]

THIS learned Treatiſe, being publiſhed after the Author's Death, is dedicated to the Archbiſhop of Canterbury, by Robert Brerewood, who, as it is thought, did alſo compoſe the Preface to the Reader, ſhewing the Occaſions the Author had to write the enſuing Diſcourſe; and briefly deſcribing the general State of Proteſtants in Europe, for a Supply to the ſaid Work.

It is divided into Twenty-ſeven Chapters; and treats, firſt, Of the antient Largeneſs or Extent of the Greek Tongue, and the Cauſes thereof, with its Declenſion, upon the Inundation of the Saracens, about 640 Years after our Saviour, in the Time of Heraclius the Emperor. 2. More particularly of the Decay of the antient pure Greek, and of the preſent vulgar Greek; nevertheleſs that the preſent Language does not ſo much decline from the ancient Greek, as the Italian departs from the Latin, according to Bellonius: for that there were Corruptions, even in the ancient Greek; however, it is concluded, that the Skilful in the learned Greek cannot underſtand the vulgar. 3. Of the Extent of the Roman Tongue in the time of the Roman Empire, with the Cauſes of its ſpreading, and in what Parts of the Empire it was moſt ſpoken: That it was little reſpected in the Eaſtern Parts thereof, and why. 4. That the Roman Tongue aboliſhed not the vulgar Languages in the foreign Provinces of the Roman Empire, but that near fourteen Tongues here mention'd (in which Number the Engliſh, Italian, Spaniſh, [160] and French, are not reckoned, our Author inſtancing only Original or Mother Languages) were in Europe in the Time of the Roman Empire, and ſix or ſeven of them within the Limits of it. From hence it is obſerved, how hard it is to ſupplant vulgar Languages in populous Countries: That neither the Punic, nor the Gallic, the Spaniſh, or Pannonian Tongue was aboliſhed by the Romans; and that the Latin was neither generally nor perfectly ſpoken in the Provinces. 5. Of the beginning of the Italian, French, and Spaniſh Languages; with the Ruin of the Roman Empire, when, and by whom; and that Barbarous Nations were not the firſt Authors of thoſe degenerate Languages, but rather Promoters of their Corruptions. 6. Objections touching the Extent of the Latin Tongue anſwered; That it was never purely ſpoken in the foreign Provinces; that there were great Changes in it; whereof, he concludes with a pregnant Example from the Inſcription upon that naval Column (they call it Columnam Roſtratam, being deck'd with the Beaks of Ships) in the Capitol at Rome; which Inſcription, tho' compoſed not above 150 Years before the Tongue ſhone in its full Luſtre under Cicero, has not one Word in it ſpell'd like the later Latin that is ſubjoined: An Example which may give the Engliſh Tongue ſome Countenance, tho' our Author does mention an Inſtance or two alſo of its Mutability, ſince it is in a far larger Compaſs of Years. 7. Of the Ancient Languages of Italy, Spain, France, and Africa: That the Punics of Africa were originally Canaanites or Phoenicians, and that the Punic Language was the old Hebrew Tongue; and tho' that Punic Speech in Plautus, which is the only Specimen of it extant, hath no great Affinity with the Hebrew, yet 'tis imputed to the Corruptions of Tranſcription. 8. Of the great Extent of the Slavonic, Turkiſh, and Arabic Tongues. 9. Of the Syriac and Hebrew Tongues; the Beginning and Change of the Syriac; the Difference of Hebrew from Chaldee and Syriac; the Greek and Chaldee Tranſlations read in the Synagogues. 10. Of the ſundry Parts of the World inhabited by Chriſtians; that Chriſtians were mingled with Mahometans in Europe; the weak State of Chriſtianity in Africa; the Dimenſions of the Kingdom of Abeſſia; the State of Chriſtianity in Aſia, its Regions and Iſlands; and its Declenſion in the Eaſt Parts thereof; with the Condition of Chriſtianity in America. 11. Of the Parts of the World poſſeſſed by Mahumetans; the large Extent of Mahumetiſm in Africa and in Aſia; and why ſo mightily encreaſed. [161] 12. Of the ſundry Regions in the World inhabited by Idolaters; what Part of Africa poſſeſſed by them, and what Parts of Aſia; their vaſt Extent in America. 13. Of the Jews diſperſed in ſeveral Parts of the World; the State of them in Europe, Aſia, and Africa. Tartars ſuſpected to be of the Iſraelites Race: That Americans are the Progeny of the Tartars: That many Nations are circumciſed beſides the Iſraelites, and therefore that Circumciſion is no ſure Token of Deſcent from them: That the Tartarians are not the Offspring of the Iſraelites: That the ſecond Book of Eſdras contradicts the Scripture: That the Iſraelites departed not out of the Dominion of Aſſyria: that Arſareth was a feigned Manſion of the Iſraelites; and that their Voyage and remote Retirement favours of the ſame Talmudisal Spirit with that other Tale of the reaſon why God appointed the Sea for the Whale, and the Land for the Elephant, becauſe they were too big to be Inhabitants together in either of thoſe Elements; whereupon we have a Digreſſion upon the Dimenſions of thoſe two Animals; the Deepneſs of the Sea, and Height of Mountains; that the Sea is not higher than the Land, and the Depth of the Sea more than the Height of the Mountains; the great Declivity of the Face of the Land, and great Deepneſs of the Sea. 14. Of the Quantity and Proportion of the Parts of the Earth poſſeſſed by the ſeveral Sorts of the above-mentioned Religions; as, the Proportion of Chriſtians to Mahometans and Idolaters; the vaſt greatneſs of the South Continent, and of the Antartic Continent. 15. Of the divers Sorts or Sects of Chriſtians in the World, and of their ſeveral Regions: And firſt of the Grecians: The large Juriſdiction of the Patriarch of Conſtantinople, and by what Means encreaſed; the Properties of the Grecian Religion. 16. Of the Aſſyrians or Melchites; their Religion differs not from the Grecians; the Patriarch of Antioch's Juriſdiction diſtracted. 17. Of the Georgians, Circaſſians and Mengrellians, with their Religion. 18. Of the Muſcovites, and the Properties or Principles of their Religion. 19. Of the Neſtorians, and how far ſpread in the Orient; their Patriarch ſeated in Muſal; the Properties or Principles of their Religion. 20. Of the Indians or Chriſtians of St. Thomas, and their Habitation; that they were Neſtorians, and became of the Roman Religion; Properties of the ancient Indian Religion; and that the New Teſtament in Syriac is no ancient Tranſlation. 21. Of the Jacobites; the Antiquity and Seat of their Patriarch; [162] Properties of their Religion. 22. Of the Cophti, or Chriſtians of Egypt; infected by the Hereſies of Eutyches, and how much [...]ooted there: The great Juriſdiction of the Patriarchs of Alexandria and Jeruſalem. 23. Of the Abaſſines; and the Dependance of their Church on Alexandria: Properties of their Religion, and that Circumciſion is a national Property among them. 24. Of the Armenians; and that their Church is governed by two Patriarchs; their Juriſdiction, and the Properties of their Religion. 25. Of the Maronites, and their Habitation in Libanus; the Reſidence and Juriſdiction of their Patriarch; the Articles of their preſent and ancient Religion; the beginning and ſpreading of Eutychianiſm; the peſtilent Train of Eutyches his Hereſy, the Oriental Sects reclaimed from their Errors touching Chriſt. 26. Of the ſeveral Languages wherein the Liturgies of Chriſtians, in ſeveral Parts of the World, are celebrated: The Jews Prayers in Hebrew; Mahumetans in Arabic; the Chriſtian Liturgy anciently in Syriac; Armenian Liturgy in the Armenian Tongue; the Abaſſines and Muſcovites Liturgy in their own Language; the Slavonian Liturgies in the Slavonic; that the Scriptures were tranſlated into vulgar Tongues by the Fathers; the original Liturgies in the Syriac; alſo thoſe of the Neſtorians, the Indians, Jacobites, Aegyptians, and Maronites; the Grecian and Syrian Liturgies in Greek; alſo thoſe of the Georgians and Circaſſians. Laſtly, Of the Languages of the People of Europe; collected out of Joſ. Scaliger: And with this ends the whole Work.

XXVII. FINETTI PHILOXENIS: Some choice Obſervations of Sir JOHN FINETT Knight, and Maſter of the Ceremonies to the two laſt Kings, touching the Reception and Precedence, the Treatment and Audience, the Puntillios and Conteſts of Forren AMBASSADORS in ENGLAND. With this Motto, Legati ligant Mundum. 8vo. London 1656. Pages 250, beſides the Dedication and Table.

[163]

THIS curious Book, containing the Author's Obſervations on the Treatment and Conteſts of foreign Ambaſſadors in England, from the Year 1612, to the Year 1627, incluſive, was publiſhed after the Author's Death, from the Manuſcript by his intimate Acquaintance, Mr. James Howell.

The Editor, in his Dedication to Philip Lord Viſcount Liſle, gives this Account of the Author: ‘"Among other Parts of Induſtry, which were known to be in that worthy Knight, one was, to couch in Writing and keep an exact Diary of what things had paſſed in his Province, as Maſter of the Ceremonies."’ And he obſerves, that ‘"Nothing is taken here upon Truſt, but all upon the Author's own Knowledge, being ſtill upon the Place himſelf, and an Actor in everything*."’

[164]The Work itſelf conſiſts of two Parts, and is continued in a chronological Method.

Part I. Containing the Author's Services under K. James, begins with the Arrival of the Count Palatine of the Rhine to marry the Princeſs Elizabeth on the 16th of Octob. 1612, attended by Count Henry of Naſſau, and eight other Counts. Then ſhews the Diſcontent of Monſ. Boiſcot, the Arch-Duke's Ambaſſador, on Precedence given to the Venetian Ambaſſador at the Marriage; with the King's Apology in Writing, ſent by the Earl of Suffolk, Lord Chamberlain. The Viſcounteſs Effingham's Diſpute with the French Ambaſſador's Wife for Precedence. Afterwards we have an Account of the Marriage in Feb. following, of which he extols the Bravery and Riches; adding, that the King's, Queen's, and Prince's Jewels only, were valued by his Majeſty at 900000 l. Sterling. He then ſhews the Occurrences at the Invitation of Ambaſſadors to the Marriage of the Earl of Somerſet in December 1613. Next follows a Claſh between the Agents of Savoy and Florence. Monſ. de Buiſſeaux, the French Ambaſſador, has the Honour of [165] ſitting in a Chair with the Prince, at the Marriage of Lady Jane Drummond, on the 20th of Feb. following. The Spaniſh Ambaſſador Don Diego Sarmiento (afterwards Count Gondomar) excepts againſt Sir Noel Caron, the Ambaſſador of the States, (whom he calls his Maſter's Vaſſals and Rebels) ſitting with him in the King's Preſence, and refuſes to be at a Mask in January 1614; with the King's Reaſonings thereupon. An Ambaſſador from Ruſſia 26 of Octob. following. The Arrival in July, 1615, of Zomoiski, a young Nobleman of Poland, Son of the famous Chancellor of that Kingdom, and his Audience of the King. The Reception of Monſieur de Mareth, the French Ambaſſador; a Queſtion thereupon between Secretary Winwood and the Maſter of the Ceremonies. Foſcarini, the Venetian Ambaſſador, diſſatisfied with his Preſent; with the King's Anſwer for ſatisfying him. Segnior Barbarigo ſucceeds in his ſtead. Sir Dudley Carleton returns from his Embaſſy thither. Sir H. Wotton nominated in his room. Monſ. de Mareth, Segnior Barbarigo, and the Savoyard Ambaſſador at a Mask at Twelf-tide. Thoſe three Ambaſſadors, and Sir Noel Caron, at a Reader's Feaſt in the Temple. A Meſſenger from Ruſſia received. Monſ. de Mareth at St. George's Feaſt, in 1617, without Notice. The King and he invited by the Earl of Exeter to hunt at Wimbleton. Don Diego Sarmiento invited to hunt with the King at Theobalds. The Creation of the Prince of Wales the 1ſt of November. The Arrival of two Ambaſſadors from Ruſſia; one whereof being the Chancellor of that Kingdom, brought a Preſent of Furs, &c. to the King, eſteem'd worth 4000l. The Ambaſſador of Sweden's Arrival, and Audience; dines with the King at Newmarket, ſees the Earl of Suffolk's rare Building at Newport, and is knighted. A Claſh between Don Diego Sarmiento and Monſ. de Mareth, about going to a Mask at Twelf-tide; the latter makes Remonſtrances to his Court, and departs. The King's Recommendation of Capt. Manwaring to Seignior Contareni, the Venetian Ambaſſador, come for the King's Leave to raiſe certain Companies here for their War. Several ceremonious Audiences of the Ruſſian Ambaſſadors, and their Departure in May 1618, having obtained only Part of a Loan of 100000 Marks, with Sir Dudley Digges Ambaſſador to Ruſſia. The Lords Examination in Sept. following of Monſ. le Clerc, the French Agent, touching the employing Monſ. de la Chenay, one of his Domeſticks, for conveying Sir Walter Ralegh to [166] France. A Meſſenger from Turkey, whoſe Son is touch'd for the King's Evil. Seignior Donati ſucceeds Contareni, who is recalled to Venice. The Sitting of Ambaſſadors at a Mask with the King reformed. The Arrival and Audience, in 1619, of Count de Tillieurs, the French Ambaſſador; alſo of a young Duke of Holſtein; of Count Guido, Extraordinary from the Duke of Savoy, to condole the Death of Queen Anne; of Baron Denow, from Prince Palatine, to notify his Maſter's Acceſſion to the Crown of Bohemia; of Monſieur Beninch Hauſon from the Princes of the Union in Germany; and of Count de Gondomar, Ambaſſador from Spain. A Difference between the Counts de Gondomar and de Tillieurs, for Precedence at a Mask the 24th of March, and between other Ambaſſadors. The Venetian Axiom; That the firſt Place of inferior Degree is worſe than the laſt of a ſuperior. The pompous Arrival, in December 1620, of the Marqueſs de Cadenet, Extraordinary from France, attended by above 50 Perſons of Title, and their Treatment: He is allowed 200l. per Diem. Six Commiſſioners from the States are knighted, but pay no Fees. Oſalinskie, Count Palatine of Sindomerskie, Ambaſſador Extraordinary from Poland, arrives in March, and departs with a Loan of 10,000 l. Sterling, obtained by the cunning Aſſiſtance of Count de Gondomar. Three Ambaſſadors from the States the 23d of December 1621. The Ruſſian Ambaſſador Thomas Simonwitz, with his Puntillio for Precedence. The Reception of the Emperor's Ambaſſador Suartzenberg, in April 1622. His Queſtion with the Venetian and French Ambaſſadors concerning Titles and Viſits. The Reception of the young Landgrave of Heſſe; and his Departure in three Months. Don Carlos de Colonna, Ambaſſador from Spain. The States Ambaſſador's Diſtaſte. The Ruſſian Ambaſſador's Diſſatisfaction at his Preſent. Audience of Duke of Soubize, Refugee from France. Seignior Valereſſo, Ambaſſador from Venice. The States Ambaſſadors Exceptions on their not being invited to a Mask. Monſ. de Boiſcot, Ambaſſador Extraordinary from the Arch-Duke. The Marqueſs de la Inoioſa, Extraordinary from Spain. The Prince's Return from Spain, in May 1623, attended by Don Diego Hurtado de Mendoza, Ambaſſador Extraordinary from Spain. The French Ambaſſador gets ground of the Spaniſh. Differences about Precedence between the Spaniſh Ambaſſadors. Don Diego de Mexia, from the Arch-Dutcheſs. Reaſons why the Maſter [167] of the Ceremonies ſhould ſit in the ſame Coach with the Ambaſſadors, whom he is ſent to receive. The Duke of Buckingham entertains the King and ſeveral Ambaſſadors at a Supper and Mask. A Claſh between the French and Spaniſh Ambaſſadors. Sir Robert Sherley, Ambaſſador from Perſia. Two Ambaſſadors from the States. The Spaniſh Ambaſſadors depart in June 1624, without Succeſs in their Treaty of Marriage between the Prince and Infanta. Marquis de Fiat, Ambaſſador Extraordinary from France to treat of Marriage: Monſieur de Villiaveler from France, about the ſame Buſineſs. Then the Author concludes Part I. in this manner. ‘"Here end the Services of my Place of Aſſiſtant Maſter of the Ceremonies under King James, who died the 27th of March following."’

Part II. Containing the Author's Services under King Char. I. begins with the firſt Audience of the Perſian Ambaſſador Sir Robert Sherley, and an Account of the Solemnization of King James's Funeral, 7 May 1625. The Complaint of the Venetian Ambaſſador againſt Sir Lewis Lewkner, for neglecting to invite him to the Funeral: His Reaſon for claiming Parity with Ambaſſadors of crown'd Heads. The King goes to Canterbury to meet Maria Henrietta of France, affianced to him: News brought from Dover to Canterbury of her Arrival, in half an Hour, by R. Tirwhit: Their firſt Interview: Ratification of the King's Marriage. Three Ambaſſadors from the States. A Meſſenger from Turkey. The Marqueſs de Bleinvill, the French Ambaſſador's Remonſtrances with regard to his Lodging and Diet at Court: His Reaſon for not aſſiſting at the Coronation: His Diſcontent and Departure. The remarkable Outrage of the new Perſian Ambaſſador againſt Sir Robert Sherley. The Reception of Seignior Coraro, and Seignior Contareni, Venetian Ambaſſadors, in 1626. Two Commiſſioners from Hamborough. Paul Rozencrantz, Ambaſſador from Denmark. The French removed from the Perſon of the Queen. Monſieur Quadt, Ambaſſador from Bethlem Gabor, Prince of Tranſylvania, his Reaſons why he covered at his firſt, but not at his laſt Audience of the Queen. The Reception of Monſieur de Baſſompierre, Ambaſſador from France, about the Removal of the French from the Queen's Perſon: He is preſent at ſeveral Masks. A Difference between the Maſter of the Ceremonies, and Sir H. Mildmay, Maſter of the Jewel-houſe, about carrying Preſents to Ambaſſadors. The Reformation of Ambaſſadors ſitting next the King, [168] under the State, and eating with him. A Deputy from the States, who at his Departure was knighted. The Daniſh Ambaſſador returns from his Negotiation in France, 29 Mar. 1627: His Complaint againſt Philip Weiſman, a German, whoſe Trade was to defray Ambaſſadors. The Venetian Ambaſſador declines being at St. George's Feaſt, on a Punctillio of Precedence to the Daniſh. A Particular of the Gratuities given by the Daniſh Ambaſſador to all the Kings Servants. The inſolent Treatment of the Duke of Soubize (the French Refugee) his Followers, by ſome drunken Mariners. Two Commiſſioners from Saliy in Barbary. Count Emden (Brother to the Chief of that Title) his Arrival. A new Ordinance touching the Diet, Lodging, and Preſents of Ambaſſadors. The Reception of the Marqueſs Pompeio Strozzi, Ambaſſador from the Duke of Mantua: his Expoſtulations upon the New Ordinance. Two Ambaſſadors from Denmark. The Order eſtabliſhed that no Ambaſſador ſhould be defrayed but at Concluſion of Peace, Marriages, and Baptiſms. Diſtinctions in the Reception of Regal and Ducal Ambaſſadors. The Abbot de la Seaglia, Ambaſſador from the Duke of Savoy: The too nice Punctillios of the Daniſh and Venetian Ambaſſadors about viſiting him. The Lord-Mayor of London's Refuſal to give place to the King of Denmark's Ambaſſador, within the City. The Duke of Buckingham's Diſpleaſure at the Ambaſſador of Savoy, for procuring the Lady Purbeck's Eſcape. The Venetian Ambaſſador's Complaint, on account of intercepting his Letters. Two Ambaſſadors from the States: Their Exceptions and Punctillios ſatisfied. The Author then ſteps backward to the Year 1624, and gives an Account of a Remonſtrance made by Sir Walter Aſton the King's Ambaſſador in Spain to that Court, on the notable Plot traced by the Spaniſh Ambaſſadors (the Marqueſs de Inonoſa, and Don Carlos Colonia) in that Year, to deſtroy the Duke of Buckingham. And with this ends the Work.

XXVIII. ORIGINES JURIDICIALES: or Hiſtorical Memorials of the Engliſh Laws, Courts of Juſtice, Forms of Tryal, Puniſhment in Caſes Criminal, Law-Writers, Law-Books, Grants and Settlements of Eſtates, Degree of Serjeant, Inns of Court and Chancery. Alſo aCHRONOLOGIE of the Lord Chancellors and Keepers of the Great Seal, Lord Treaſurers, Juſtices Itinerant, Juſtices of the King's Bench and Common Pleas, Barons of the Exchequer, Maſters of the Rolls, King's Attorneys and Sollicitors, and Serjeants at Law. By Sir WILLIAM DUGDALE, now Garter, Principal King of Arms. The Third Edition with Additions, and Sculptures. Folio. Pages 336, the Hiſtorical Part, and the Chronological, 122. Printed, 1680.

[169]

THE hiſtorical Part of this Work, which that elaborate and accompliſhed Antiquary, its Author, deſigned as an Introduction to the chronological Tables, is divided into ſeventy-eight Chapters, beginning with the Original of Government, which our Author thinks he cannot better expreſs, or account for, than in the Words of Sir Walter Ralegh, which are here quoted at length, from his Hiſtory of the World. Then he proceeds to treat, all in diſtinct Chapters; Of the beginning of Laws; The Antiquity of ours in England; our ancient Laws and Law-makers; Parliaments, Judges; Chief Juſtices of England; Lawyers; Courts of Juſtice; Court Baron; the Hundred Court; the Trihing, or Lathe; the Shireeves Turn, the Country Court, Court Leet; the Chancery, and Antiquity of the Lord Chancellor's Juriſdiction for hearing of Civil Cauſes; the King's Bench Court; the Common Pleas, with a Table of the Juſtices of the Common Pleas, before whom Fines are levied, from the 7th of King Richard I. to the 16th of King Charles II. Of the Exchequer, Juſtices Itinerant, Juſtices of Aſſize and Gaol Delivery, a Table of our ancient Laws, Britiſh, Saxon, Weſt Saxon, and, ſince the Normans, down to K. Henry III. By whom they were compoſed, and in what MSS. or Hiſtories, the Collections are extant. A Catalogue of our Law-Writers and Law-Books, beginning with the Mirror [170] of Juſtices, wherein is ſeen how the Kingdom was govern'd eleven hundred Years ſince, and ending with T. Blount's Law-Dictionary; with the Times when printed, or Places where they remain in MS. taking up above nine Pages, and ending with Law-Books and Treatiſes of uncertain Times. Of Trial by twelve Men. Trial by Combat in Caſes civil. Trial by great Aſſize. Trial by Combat in Caſes criminal. Trial by Fire and Water Ordale. Wager of Law, or perſonal Oath. Puniſhment in Caſes criminal. Of the four Terms, Hilary, Eaſter, Trinity and Michaelmas, from a MS. of Sir H. Spelman's. Fines, how ancient; in what manner, before whom, and where levied. Pleadings in the French Tongue. Limitation of Time for pleading in ſome ſpecial Caſes. Outlaries, how ancient. Juſtices of the King's Courts in Weſtminſter-Hall, how created: Their Veſtments. Here we have a Sculpture of ſome Judges in their Habits, from Sir Robert Grimbald's Seal, and ſome monumental Effigies, with the Judges Decree in 1635. and a Remark at the End about the Collar of SS. That Juſtices of the King's Courts at Weſtminſter, were anciently dignified with Knighthood. Their ancient yearly Fees, or Salaries. Of Serjeants at Law: The ancient Form and Order uſed in making them, from Sir John Forteſcue's Book De Laud. Legum Angliae. The Manner of making three Serjeants at Law, of the Middle Temple, 19th Henry VII. Others 13 Henry VIII. Others 1 Edw. VI. And others 19 and 20 Eliz. Of the Serjeants Feaſts. The Order of a Serjeant's Feaſt the 2 and 3 of Phil. & Mar. Their Writs of Summons; and their Robes. When they were firſt knighted: The Form of Creating them at this day. A Memorial of the ſaid Ceremony by the Judges, Anno 1635. A Diſcharge of the ſaid State and Degree, to Ralph Rokeby; another Diſcharge to Tho. Fleming, made Sollicitor-General. Of ſettled Places for Students, call'd Inns of Court and Chancery. Of the Inns of Chancery. Of the Inner Temple, the Buildings, Orders for Government and Learning there; ſeveral Accounts of their Feaſts at Chriſtmas; Orders and Exerciſes: The Officers of this Houſe: A Catalogue of the Readers of the Inner Temple, another of the Treaſurers, and a third of the Governors. Of the Temple Church; with the monumental Inſcriptions, and at that of Mr. Selden, here is (in this laſt Edition) a Copper Print of him inſerted, graved by Rob. White. Next, we have three Pages of Sculpture, repreſenting all the Arms painted in the Windows [171] of the ſaid Temple Hall. After this, an Account of three Inns of Chancery, belonging to the Inner Temple; which are Clifford's Inn, Clement's Inn, and Lion's Inn. So we come to the Middle Temple, and its Buildings; Orders for Government and Learning, with the Legacy of Mr. Robert Aſhley's Books towards a Library. Other Orders for Government, Charge of Diet, Stipend of Officers, &c. as in the Time of King Henry VIII. from a MS. in the Cottonian Library. The State of the Houſe at preſent, containing the Offices of Servants, the Admiſſion and Degrees, Exerciſes, and Fines or Penalties of Students; with the annual Wages of all Maſters or Members of the Society, and Under-Officers. A Catalogue of the Readers in the Middle Temple, from 17 Henry VII. and of the Treaſurers there. Then follow the Repreſentations in Sculpture, for 6 Pages and a half, of all the Arms in the great Hall of this Houſe, and a ſhort Account of the two Inns of Chancery belonging thereto, which were New-Inn and Strand-Inn. Then we come to Lincoln's-Inn, and its Buildings; namely, the Square, Library and Gatehouſe; the Gardens, and the Terras raiſed there, in 1663. An Account of the Portraits of the Prophets and Apoſtles, in the Window of the Chapel, and the Coats of Arms under them; with a Repreſentation alſo in Sculpture of thoſe Arms, in 4 Pages and a half. Next, of their Orders for Government in this Houſe; Expences at their Solemnities, Revels, Grand Chriſtmas; and of their Readers; with a Catalogue of them from 4 Edw. IV. and another of their Governors, from 3 of Henry VI. ending with an Account of four famous Perſons of this Houſe, not mentioned in thoſe Catalogues, who were Sir John Forteſcue, Sir Arthur Plantagenet, William Lambard, and Sir Henry Spelman. This is followed with a Letter, by the Privy Council, to reſtrain building in Lincoln's-Inn-Fields. So after ſome Account of the Orders of the Society, their Rules of Exerciſe, and the two Inns of Chancery belonging to this Inn, which were Furnival's Inn, and Thavye's Inn; we paſs to Gray's Inn, and the Account of its Buildings, with the planting of its Walks, Orders for Government, Exerciſe for Learning, Readers, and double Readers, Commons, Barreſters and Apparel: Of the Chappel: Their Sports and Paſtimes; Copy of the ancient ſtanding Orders of this Society, as to their Commons, Chappel, Exerciſes, Degrees, and Chambers. After which, we have a Catalogue of the Readers of this Houſe, from the 5th of [172] Henry VIII. and of the Treaſurers, from the 22d of the ſame Reign, and ten Pages of the Arms in Sculpture, which are in the Windows of the Hall and Chappel of the ſaid Inn, ending with the proper Arms of the twelve ſeveral Inns of Court and Chancery, alſo in Sculpture. Then we have an Account of the Inns of Chancery belonging to Gray's-Inn, which are Staple Inn, and Barnard's Inn; and this is followed with the Judges Orders to be obſerved in all the four Houſes or Inns of Court, made the 3d and 4th of Phil. & Mar. others made 1 Eliz. and others the 16th. Others for better regulating the Readings in all the Inns of Court; others by the general Conſent of the Judges and Bench of Gray's-Inn; others to be obſerved by the Inns of Court and Chancery, 36 Eliz. An Anſwer to the former Orders by the Society of Lincoln's-Inn. Other Orders at Serjeants-Inn, 38 Eliz. others, 1 Jac. others agreed on by the Readers and Benchers of the four Houſes of Court, 12 Jac. Orders for eſtabliſhing the Company of the Inns of Court and Chancery in their Exerciſes and military Diſcipline, tempore Regis Jacobi. Orders to be obſerved in the Houſes of Court, ſubſcribed by all the Judges 1627. Orders by the Lord Keeper of the Great Seal, all the Judges of both Benches, and Barons of the Exchequer, by Command of the Privy Council, for the Government of the Inns of Court and Chancery, 6 Caroli primi. Orders at the Council Table, 19 Mar. 1636. And further, in the laſt Editions, one Copy more of Orders, by the Lord Chancellor, and all the Judges and Barons of the Exchequer, by Command of the King, for the Government of the Inns of Court and Chancery, 16 of Charles II. Next, as in the former Editions, a Table of the mootable Days, in the Reading times, for the Inns of Chancery. Of the two Serjeants Inns; firſt of that in Fleet-ſtreet, with three Pages in Sculpture of the Arms in the Hall, as they were obſerved there, in 1599, by Mr. W. Burton; and another Page of the Arms there, as they were, before the Fire of London, in 1664. And laſtly, in the next Page, the Arms (and Names alſo, as all the other Coats have over them) of thoſe Heads of this Houſe, who were Contributors to the new Building. This is followed with an Account of Serjeants-Inn in Chancery-lane; at the Concluſion of which, it appears, how a Leaſe thereof was granted to Sir Anthony Aſhley, for three Lives; that of Philippa his Wife, afterwards married to Carew Ralegh, Eſq and two of his Servants; under whom the [173] Judges and Serjeants then held it. Next, after a ſhort Account of Scroop's Inn, which was an Inn for Serjeants, we have a Print, in one Page, of the Arms in the Hall Windows of Serjeants Inn, in Chancery-lane, as they were in 1664. The next Chapter gives us the Inſcriptions on three Monuments in the Chappel of the Rolls. And the laſt Chapter is a Copy of a Letter from the Lords of the Privy Council, Anno 1573, to the Shireeves of the ſeveral Counties in England, for eaſing them in their Entertainment of the Juſtices of Aſſize and Goal-Delivery, with Diet, in their reſpective Circuits. Thus, after a ſhort Index to this firſt Part of the Book, we arrive at the laſt, by our Author, entitled,

CHRONICA SERIES Cancellariorum, &c. In which uſeful Tables of the ſaid Lord Chancellors, Lord Treaſurers, Judges, Barons of the Exchequer, Maſters of the Rolls, King's Attorneys and Sollicitors, and Serjeants at Law, from the beginning of William the Conqueror, Anno 1067, in diſtinct Columns, parallel with each other, down (in this laſt Edition) to the Year 1680, may be ſeen, in one View, as our Author obſerves, ‘"how the famous Men for Knowledge in our Laws ſtood Contemporary thro' all Ages ſince the Conqueſt; alſo, what great and noble Families have ſprung from thoſe Roots: and laſtly, rectify the common Miſtakes among young Students, in reading the ancient Year-Books, where they are apt to miſtake the Judge for the Pleader, and the Abbreviations of Judges Names for their proper and perfect Appellations."’ Our Author was at the Expence of Engraving the Heads or Effigies of ſome of the Chancellors and Judges, mentioned in theſe Tables; but they are differently bound up, ſometimes before, ſometimes after them, and ſometimes interſperſed in the Chronology, againſt the Pages where their Creations are mentioned. Theſe Heads are thoſe of Sir John Clench, etch'd by Hollar; Sir Edward Coke, graved by D. Loggan; Sir Randolph Crew, and Sir Robert Heath, by Hollar; the Earl of Clarendon, by Loggan; to which Chancellor, the firſt Edition of this Book being inſcrib'd, his Print is often bound therein, at the beginning thereof; and further, which are not in the firſt Edition, Sir Orlando Bridgman, graved by Faithorne, which is in the ſecond and laſt Editions; and Sir John Vaughan, by White, which is only in this laſt. So that the laſt Edition has, with Mr. Selden's Head before mentioned, three Cuts more than the firſt: [174] But thoſe in that, are, as muſt be expected, of more lively and perfect Impreſſion. At the End of theſe Tables, we have, in one Page, a Continuation of the Catalogues of the Readers and Treaſurers of the Inner Temple, Middle Temple, Lincoln's-Inn, and Gray's-Inn; which ſhould have followed at the end of thoſe Catalogues, in their reſpective Places, had what paſſes for this laſt Edition been entirely reprinted, but except the Title-Page at the beginning of the Book, and three Leaves at the end, continuing the Chronology, and Catalogues aforeſaid, 'tis the ſame with the ſecond Impreſſion, and they are ſo much worſe than the firſt, by how much the Errata of the Preſs in them are more numerous; however, this laſt Edition ſells in the Shops, ſometimes, for as much again as the firſt. And this is all we have here to remark of this Book, from our preſent Review of it, and the Opportunity we have had of collating the ſeveral Editions: What others have obſerved, we refer to below*.

XXIX. The NATURAL HISTORY of STAFFORDSHIRE: By ROB. PLOT, LL. D. Keeper of the Aſhmolean Muſaeum, and Profeſſor of Chymiſtry in the Univerſity of Oxford. Fol. Oxford 1686. Pages 450.

[175]

THIS Work, by the Title, ſeemingly confined to the remarkable Productions of Nature, only in one County; therefore, under that Conſideration alone, particularly engaging to all ingenious Natives thereof, is nevertheleſs ſuch an extenſive Field of curious and inſtructive Matter, ſo various in its kinds, yet connected by ſuch eaſy Tranſitions, and ſupported by ſuch pertinent Parallels, as have rendered it of a more general or comprehenſive Nature; ſo as to become a Pattern, tho' ſcarcely equal'd, to ſeveral Writers, who have attempted the Illuſtration of other Counties in the like manner, and may indeed be coveted by all Readers, who delight in natural Knowledge.

It is dedicated by the Author to King James, becauſe of the Approbation his Majeſty had ſhewn to his Hiſtory of Oxford; and after his ſhort Preface, we have the Verſes of T. Lane to the ſaid King James II. upon occaſion of the Author's preſenting him this Work: Alſo others to the Author himſelf, by Mr. J. Norris, in Engliſh, and S. Welſted, in Latin. After this, the Work is faced with a moſt accurate Map of the County; inſcrib'd by the Author to the Lord Lieutenant thereof, Charles Talbot, Earl of Shrewsbury. It is graved on a large Sheet, folding in, by Joſeph Brown, having the Arms of all the Gentry in the County diſplay'd about the Margins, and ſuch mutual References, that any Stranger, ſeeing a Seat in the Map, may moſt readily find the Arms and Name that belong to it; or knowing only the [176] Name, ſhall as quickly find his Arms and Seat. Yet we have the further Convenience, for the leſs apprehenſive Reader, of an Explanation prefixed, and an alphabetical Liſt of all the Pariſhes, Villages, and Houſes delineated therein.

As to his Method; that which he formerly preſcribed himſelf in his Natural Hiſtory of Oxfordſhire, being approv'd of, he follows the ſame here; whereby the whole Work is divided into Ten Chapters; which are interſperſed with thirty-ſeven Copper Prints of the chief Seats and Views, Curioſities of Nature, and Antiquities found in the County; each Print inſcribed to the Owners of thoſe Seats, or other eminent Natives of the ſaid Shire. Chapter I. treats of what has been obſervable among them in the Heavens and Air; as, particularly, the Remark of the Moorland Inhabitants upon the Sun-ſet, in the Summer Solſtice; alſo the Mock-Suns frequent in this County. Remarkable Rainbows, as, of the Moon, and Halo's of the Sun. Strange Effects of Thunder and Lightning; with an elaborate Digreſſion upon Fairy Circles; which tho' he indulges ſo far the Accounts of Remigius and others, who impute the ſame to Wizards and Witches, as to recite them; yet, at laſt, more probably imputes them to Lightning. Then we come to his Remarks on Animals, eſpecially on the mortal Effects of Thunder upon Crevices and Lobſters. Several ſtrange Meteors. Noiſes in the Air. Extraordinary Hail Storms, and prodigious Showers, particularly of Frogs, Maggots, &c. Prognoſticks of Showers and Winds; of the Tornado Wind; and uncommon Echoes; which, with an Experiment upon Sounds, and ſome ſhort Obſervations on the Comet in 1681, ends this Chapter.

Chap. II. Of the Waters. This is introduced with a Diſcourſe of nine Pages upon the Effects of Air on human Bodies. And, among many other Obſervations, ſome on Unction and Painting of the Body, to prevent the Depredations thereof, from Roger Bacon. The Choice of healthy Situations, with many Examples; which brings him to the Conſideration of Waters, by which the Air is ſo much affected. Several Remarks on the pure Streams and Waters of common Uſe in this County, and particularly the refreſhing Pool of Madely, mentioned by Gervaſe of Tilbury. Inſtances of Health in the Moorlands, from the Age of twelve Tenants who made up 1000 Years, and four, who made 360 Years. Then ſpeaks of the more unuſual Waters; their Diſcolourations, Prognoſtications of Rain and Dearth, [177] Noiſineſs, Inconſtancy of Flowing, and Intermiſſions; in Examples from Hobbes and Cotton, Alex. Neckham, Will. of Newberry, Sylveſter the Poet, &c. Here we have a Digreſſion upon the Queſtion, Whether Springs are ſupply'd from the Rains, &c. or from the Sea. Obſervations on the Quantity of Water thrown out by perennial Springs. Sir Chr. Wren's Invention of the Rain-Bucket, to meaſure the Quantity that falls. Computations of what the greateſt Rivers throw forth in an Hour, Day, Year. The many Examples favouring the Origin or Supply of Springs from ſubtertaneous Communications. Then proceeds to the Rivers and Fountains of this County, which have yielded any unuſual Remarks; ſome running under ground, and riſing again; ſome throwing up little Bones; ſome never freezing; ſome warmeſt in the coldeſt Weather; ſome ſalt, as the Brine-Pits, with the manner of Salt-work; ſome again are Vitrioline; ſome Petrifying, and ſome Sulphureous. Here we are led to the Medicinal Waters; among theſe, ſuch as are of a milky Nature, and others aluminous. Some of Repute for curing the King's-Evil; ſome good for the Eyes; and ſome of noxious Quality, as the Coal-pit Waters which kill the Fiſh of thoſe Rivers into which they fall.

Chap. III. Of the Earths. This begins with the Situation of the County, Nature, and Fertility of the Soil. K. James his ſaying of it for the Firmneſs of the Highways. A Remark upon ſome Paſtures, which tinged the Teeth of Cattle, of a Golden Colour; and upon others, which changed the Colour of their Hides. A Pit that never held any Water when it filled all others. Deductions from Remarks upon ſome Buildings, tending to prove the Earth will be quite level. Of Earths that vegetate or grow up, and Floating Iſlands. Of turfing their mooriſh Grounds, and the rotten Shining Earth. Here we have many curious Inſtances of luciferous Bodies, animate, and inanimate. Their different Kinds of Earths and Clays; and how the Potters work the ſame. Of their Earths uſed by Painters in Colours, Sulphurs, Bitumen, and Pit-Coal, with the Extent of its Mines. Remarks on their Damps, and firing of Mines: Of Earthquakes there, thought to be cauſed thereby. Signs for finding of Coal: Of working it, and keeping it dry.

Chap. IV. Of Stones. The Cauſes of their Production; Obſervations on Salt in Stones, and ſuch as beſt endure the Fire. Of Limeſtone, and the Pyrites; and the Biſhops Stones [178] near Weeford, why ſo called. Then we come to the Iron Ore, with the melting and working it; alſo the Copper Ores, and their Works; then to the Lead Ores, where we have an Account of a Leaden Coffin that ſwam in nine Inches Water, with the hydroſtatical Reaſon for it. Hence we come to the Quarries and their Stones for Building, Grinding, and the Mills; with an Experiment giving reaſon to believe the Loadſtone is to be found at Rowley Regis. Next of the Rocks, Cliffs, and Caves, which have any thing remarkable; their Alabaſter, and the kind of Marble, whereof their Chimney-pieces, Tombſtones, Emery, &c. are made. Alſo of their Crowſtones, and tranſparent Pebbles.

Chap. V. Of Formed Stones. And firſt of thoſe reſembling heavenly Bodies, as the Selenites or Moon-ſtones, more rationally called Lapis Specularis, found in this County; and the Aſteriae, or Star-Stones, of different kind from any yet deſcribed, whoſe unaccountable Quality of moving towards one another in Vinegar is here obſerved to have been known 400 Years ſince, by the learned Roger Bacon. He ſpeaks next of the Thunder Stones, as they are commonly called, found in thoſe Parts, and others repreſenting the Parts of Birds; Cryſtalline Stones; a kind of Honeycomb Stones, full of ſweetiſh Liquor; many Stones reſembling Sea Fiſhes, eſpecially of the teſtaceous Kind. Of Gold and Silver growing like Trees, and other Ores alſo, into odd Figures. Stones alſo form'd like particular Vegetables, as the Fungites, likewiſe Mineral Corals, like Stumps of Trees, and the Vertebrae of Fiſhes; like Fruits and the Stones of them; Animals and their ſeveral Parts; Buttons, Barrels, Saddles, and ſome Plants found with Rings of Stone, Iron, and Copper naturally growing about them.

Chap. VI. Of Plants. Among which, none ſo remarkable for reſembling certain Parts of the human Body, as the Fungus Phalloides, or Phallus Hollandicus of Hadr. Junius. After ſeveral uncommon Obſervations among the herbaccous Kind, he advances to ſome undeſcribed Shrubs; as the White-Berried Elder, Standard Honey-Suckles, and Ivy. A Vine changing its Fruit from Red to White, St. Bertram's Aſh, with a narrower Leaf than uſual, a yellow-leav'd Yew Tree, a blood-ſpotted Birch, yellow-leav'd Thorn; and among the Trees unnoted to be of Engliſh Growth, the Sorbus Pyriformis, and one kind of Firr: And among the Accidents of Trees, ſome of extraordinary ſpeedy Growth. [179] Oaks of vaſt Bulk and extenſive Shade; more particularly Sir Harvey Bagot's Witch-Elm, growing at Field, within Memory; which was 120 Foot long, 17 Yards round at the Bottom, had 14 Load of Fire-Wood broke off in the Fall, 47 Load more of Fire-Wood cut from the Top, 8000 Foot of Plank, 80 Pair of Naves, &c. in ſhort computed to contain 96 Tons of Timber, after their Country way of reckoning; but, according to our Author, at leaſt 100 Ton of neat Timber. With this is mentioned, as what might equal it in Height, the Oak which yielded a Plank above 25 Yards long, and near one Yard broad, of which was made the Table at Dudley Caſtle. From this we are led to the tall Firrs at Norbury; one of which was 47 Yards high; and thence, to what is obſervable in the Roots of Trees, as their embracing and lifting up great Stones; Trees of different Species uniting at the Roots, or in the Trunks, and ſome Trees growing out of the Bodies and Heads of others; but above all, thoſe found buried under Ground in all Countries, are reckoned moſt unaccountable. Here we have an elaborate Diſſertation upon thoſe ſubterraneous Trees, by ſome call'd Moſs-wood, with the Cauſe of Moſſes, ſinking of Hills, and raiſing of Valleys. Hence we paſs to the internal Notice of what was moſt uncommon in Trees; as the Cylindraceous Cavities in an old Crab Tree here deſcribed, with the Cauſe; leading us to the ſtrange Diſcovery of Animals in the Bodies of Trees, as Field Mice, which are ſuperſtitiouſly pegg'd up by the Country People here, to make Nurſrow Trees, as they call them, to cure Swellings in their Cattle; and other Inſtances of their Superſtition, in the Wood of the Quicken Tree, for walking Staves. Here ending his Remarks on Whole Trees, and their Trunks, with an Obſervation, that the Timber of this County is generally large and good, particularly the Woods in the Park of John Offley, Eſq whereof 1000 Trees might be choſen worth 8000 Pounds, and of theſe 100 worth 1500 Pounds; he proceeds to unuſual Accidents in the Branches, Fruits, and Leaves of Trees; upon which laſt he accounts for the Excreſcences by Inſects, and the Variegations or Stripings in Hollys, Maples, Aſhes, and Oaks he met with. From thence paſſes to Fruit Trees, as the large ſpreading Apple Tree at Leigh, having borne 50 Strike of Apples in a Year; Pear Trees bloſſoming at Chriſtmas; another that bloſſom'd and bore twice a Year. The Orange and Lemon growing on one Tree, and in one Fruit; the Quantity of Cyder [180] that might be made in one Pariſh; large Cherry Gardens, and great Variety of Fruits in the Gardens of Rowland Okeover, Eſq as 60 Sorts of Apples, 35 Sorts of Apricots, and other Plums, &c. with which Enumeration this Chapter ends.

Chap. VII. Of Brutes. Under which is comprehended Birds, Inſects, Fiſhes, Reptiles and Quadrupeds, and of theſe only ſuch as are undeſcribed by others, unnoted by Willughby and Ray to be indaginae of this County, or have had extraordinary Accidents attending them. And firſt he begins with Birds; among theſe he reckons a kind of Gooſelegg'd Swans, and the black-bill'd Gooſe, with a Voice like a Bittern; an undeſcribed Loon or Ducker, creſted, horned, and bearded; the Eagle, the Shriek, Heathcock, or Black Game, Gorcock, or Red Game, the Martlet, Ground Martin, Brambling, Groſs-beak, Heron, and great Loon: but moſt remarkable is his Hiſtory of the Pewits, and their breeding only upon the Eſtate of Sir Charles Skrymſher, at the old Pewit-Pool in the Pariſh of Norbury, and Shebben-Pool in the Pariſh of High-Offley; where they encreaſed in ſuch abundance, that 50 Dozen has been taken at a Driving; which, at five Shillings a Dozen, the ancient Price, comes to twelve Pounds ten Shillings; but ſome Years the Profit of them has amounted to fifty or threeſcore Pounds: and we have here a Repreſentation, in Sculpture, of Shebben-Pool, with the manner of driving and taking theſe Birds. Next he obſerves what has been extraordinary in the Colours, Limbs, Eggs, and Time of Production among Birds; as Popinjays, Crows, and Sparrows that were white; Croſs-bill'd Ravens; a four-legg'd Pewit, and three-legg'd Gooſe; with the Opinions of Fabricius and Dr. Harvey, that ſuch Deformities ariſe from double yolked Eggs, &c. Next we have Obſervations upon white yolked Eggs, and Eggs all Yolk. Of Hens and Ducks, that laid at the rate of three Eggs a Day, and of Birds hatching in the Winter. Then we come to flying Inſects, as the winged Glow-worm, or Lanthorn-Fly; the white Ear-wigg. Of viviparous Inſects, Spiders, and their Webs, with ſome aquatic Inſects, undeſcribed; which leads to Fiſhes, and his Account of the Burbot or Bird-bolt, not before, or not well deſcribed. Of Fiſhes found in unuſual Places. Of the uncommon Nature of Eels, that they are viviparous, travel from one Water to another, and the Account of their equivocal Generation. How various the Food or Prey of Fiſhes; how [181] voracious ſome of them, and others reſtor'd to their Element after they had been ſwallowed up. The unuſual Magnitude of Fiſhes, particularly a Carp weighing 15 Pounds, with Scales as broad as a Half-Crown: Jacks a Yard and half long. Thus paſſing from the Water to the Land Animals, he begins with the Toad, and how ſtrangely ſome have been found excluded from both Elements in the midſt of ſolid Blocks of Stone, and in the Bodies of ſound Trees. Then we have an Account of an undeſcribed Land Lizard, a ſtrange toothed Rabbit, uncommon Accidents in a Hare, and other Animals breeding their Young; and an odd Mixture in the Breed of Dogs. Of large Boars; the Reaſon diſcuſs'd why Caſtration prevents Horns in ſome Animals, and enlarges them in others. Of uncommon Accidents in Sheep, Deer, Cows, Oxen, Horſes, as to Heading, Breeding, Superfoetation, &c. Of Hair Balls found in the Stomachs of ſuch Animals; and Shining Tallow: Concluding with a Deſcription of the true Hippomanes, or Forehead Fleſh of a new foaled Colt, ſo famous among the Ancients in Philtres or Love-Potions; and an Account of the Jawbone of an Elephant, found in this County.

Chap. VIII. Of Men and Women. Beginning with an Account of one who was neither. Of Men getting Children at 104 Years of Age. Of Longing in Women, and diſmemdering the Foetus like the Object which gave the Fright. Some who had all the Signs of Pregnancy, without being with Child; others having a Child without the Signs. Of Children born with Teeth. Monſtrous and imperfect Births. Of the Perſons born in this County, who were eminent Churchmen, Lawyers, and Authors, or for their Valour by Land and Sea, and for numerous Offsprings. Remarkable Cuſtoms relating to Births, as Borow-Engliſh, or Deſcent of Lands to the Youngeſt before the Eldeſt born, with the Reaſon preſumed to be, that where this Cuſtom remains, the Places were anciently liable to the Privilege granted alſo in Scotland, by King Evenus or Eugenius, to the Lords of Mannors, that they ſhould have the firſt Night's Lodging with their Tenants Brides; ſo that eldeſt Sons being ſuppoſed all Baſtards, and of the Lord's begetting, they ſettled their Lands on the Youngeſt, as more likely to be their own: But how common this Cuſtom was all over England, may be ſeen by the Tax afterwards gathered inſtead thereof, called Marcheta Mulierum, in Bracton. Nor was the Privilege of Lotherwits or Lierwit, expounded [182] in Fleta, to import the ſame as Mulcta Adulteriorum, and remaining here to this day, much leſs lewd or immoral, being a Liberty of taking a Compenſation for Baſtards, got or born in the Lordſhip, nay alſo out of the Lordſhip for 1 l. 19. s. 11 d. paid to the Lords; and further, here was an Oak in Knoll-Wood, which had ſuch a ſuperior Privilege of Fornication, that if a Baſtard was ſworn to be begot under its Shade, neither the Biſhop nor Lords of the Mannor themſelves could take any Cognizance of it. After theſe Births, we have ſome Remarks upon Chriſtnings, or Chriſtian Names, how they ran much upon Ralph and Walter, from two famous Earls who lived in the County; and how ſome Families chriſtned their eldeſt Sons of the ſame Name for many Generations. Having done with the Births of Infants, he proceeds to remarkable Paſſages in Childhood and Youth, as the Impoſtures of William Perry, the Boy of Bilſon, who counterfeited himſelf bewitched or poſſeſſed; whereof there is a Pamphlet printed in 1622. And this Story brings in other Inſtances of imitating Sounds and Motions, whereof the involuntary Imitations of Donald Monro, are moſt ſtrange. Next we advance to uncommon Accidents and Qualities in adult Perſons, and firſt of Women. Some who yielded great Quantities of Milk, and the medicinal Virtues of Women's Milk. One who ſlept 14 Days and Nights; and another 7 Days. A Man who faſted 14 Days; and another in Scotland 30 or 40 Days together. And here is a Copy from a Record in the Tower, of a Pardon granted 31 Edward III. to Cicely de Rygeway (who was condemned at Nottingham, for killing her Huſband) becauſe ſhe had faſted forty Days without Meat or Drink, &c. Of deaf Perſons underſtanding People by the Motion of their Lips. Of a Lady who had a Pin ſqueezed out of her Arm, which ſhe never could account for, yet parallel'd with like Inſtances. Of ſtrange Deliverances from Murder and Hanging; particularly of Judith de Balſham, who having been hang'd from nine a-Clock on Monday Morning, till Sun-riſing on Tueſday, according to the Sentence paſſed, yet lived after it, and had a Pardon thereupon granted, 48th Hen. III. which is here recited. And of a Swiſs, who was hanged 13 times, yet could not by that kind of Execution be put to death. Next we come to Men eminent for their extraordinary Strength, exceſſive Stature, and Pious Works; others who had their want of Sight wonderfully ſupply'd by the Perfection of their other [183] Senſes; ſtrange Inſtances of Longing in Men, as well as Women; and other uncommon Diſtempers. Of Men that never ſpit. The ſtrange Force of Cuſtom in ſome Fools, eſpecially one, who being removed from a Place where he had heard a Clock conſtantly ſtrike, would repeat the Strokes punctually every Hour when he heard it not; and of the Artificial, learn'd to become a Natural Clock, as Dr. Willis has related. Here is another Inſtance of a Fool, whoſe ſtrange Sagacity exceeded the other telling not only the Changes of the Moon, Times of Eclipſes, and when Eaſter and Whitſuntide fell, or any other moveable Feaſt, but at what time they had, or ſhould fall, at any diſtance of Years, which could receive no Help from the Force of Cuſtom: From the Imperfections of Men, we have a Tranſition to their Vices, which brings in the dreadful Judgment upon John Duncalf, who having ſtole a Bible, had his Hands rotted off, according to his Wiſh, if that Theft were true; from the Narrative of this Judgment publiſhed by Mr. Ja. Illingworth and Mr. Newey. This is followed with ſome wonderful Eſcapes from Death in this County, particularly that of King Charles II. after the Battle of Worceſter, who found an Aſylum at Bentley, and afterwards conferred ſeveral Honours on Col. John Lane, as the Letters Patent here exemplified, concerning the ſame, do teſtify. Here is likewiſe an Account of the Preſervation of his Followers; and by whoſe means his Majeſty's George came ſafe again to his Hands. From Men ſolitarily conſidered, we proceed to ſome Remarks upon them jointly, in Examples of Men extremely alike, or reſembling each other, particularly Dr. Hen. Fairfax and his Brother. Of Biſhops twice married. Remarks on many Families of one Name, and marrying among themſelves. Of ſome odd Cuſtoms; as at Guoſall; where the Civil Law Judge determines according to a Jury; Moſeley's Dole-penny at Walſhall. The Society of Free-Maſons in the Moorlands of this County; with ſome curious Remarks thereon; particularly on a fabulous MS. Hiſtory of the ſaid Craft; their Lodges and Rules, with the Notice of an Act 3 Henry VI. aboliſhing this Society, and adjudging the holding of their Congregations to be Felony. The Cuſtom at Brewood, &c. of adorning their Walls with Boughs and Flowers. Many Examples of extream old Age; many aged Perſons living together, five and ſix Generations at a time. Examples of ſeveral unaccountable Warnings of Death in ſome [184] Families, by divers kinds of Noiſe. Remarks on the frontal Sutures in ſome Skulls, and of ſome large human Bones: which, with an Omiſſion or two in the Articles of valiant Men, and thoſe famous in the Law, finiſhes this Chapter.

Chap. IX. Of Arts. Theſe are treated of after his former Method; firſt, of ſuch as relate to the Heavens and Air; next, of Fire and Water-works; thirdly, tending to the Improvement of Earths, Stones, or Plants, and laſtly, reſpecting Men or Women. To this purpoſe he begins with an Account of a new Sort of Dyals, and a Dyal Quadrant; with an Experiment proving the Force of the Rarefaction of Air. The Arts relating to Fire are, thoſe of burning Turf, Earth, &c. for the fertilizing of Lands, and for certain Iron-works, at the Anvil and Forge; particularly of the Difficulty and Ingenuity of making Frying-pans and that there were but two Maſters of this Craft in the Kingdom. An improved Way of burning Tiles. Prince Rupert's Dexterity in ſhooting with Fire-Arms, exemplified in the two famous Shots he made ſucceſſively, thro' the Weather-cock of St. Mary's Church-Steeple, at Stafford, with a ſcrew'd Horſeman's Piſtol, at threeſcore Yards diſtance, before King Charles I. Among the Water-works, we have ſome Account of remarkable Mills, and Mill-dams; of Brewing and Fining of Ale; and in the Pleaſure-Gardens, of Fountains, Canals, &c. Of Arts relating to the Earth, we have here thoſe of the Agriculture uſed in this County: and of thoſe concerning Stones, what is moſt obſervable in Architecture, both publick and private; with ſome copious Remarks upon the Building of Churches, eſpecially Eaſt and Weſt. Next of the Bridge at Burton upon Trent; and after that, of the Hardening and Softning of Iron, for the making of ſeveral kinds of the ſaid Hard Ware, with many Inſtances of curious Improvements therein, and the ways uſed to keep them from Ruſt. Then follow ſome Arts relating to Plants, as the improving of Ropes, made with Hemp and Ruſhes; preſerving of Beer with Heath inſtead of Hops; and making Malt of Oats. After theſe, the Arts relating to Shrubs and Trees; as to the ſowing of Acorns, making Furze Hedges, planting of Vines, forming of Topiary Works, Arbors, and other like Curioſities in Gardens, Parks and Groves; with the managing of their Woods, as to Bruſhing, Fencing, Barking, Felling, &c. and the Excellency of ſome Joyners and Turners Work thereon: alſo their Management of Fruit-Trees. Thus we come to their Arts [185] concerning Animals; beginning with Bees and Bee-hives An Inſtrument to match Game Cocks: Device to prevent Hogs from rooting; and to cure ſome Diſtempers in Cattle; a new invented Bridle, or Gag for ſcolding Women; and a Sledge for Smiths. Improved Barrels for Drink; in Cookery potted Otters taſting like Veniſon; and to puniſh Miſdemeanors, a Pair of Finger-Stocks. Laſtly, ſome odd kind of Pictures upon an indented Board, which beheld directly, appear confuſed, but obliquely, the Pictures of a King and Queen: alſo ſome curious Cut-work, in Paper, with Sciſſars, of Col. J. Lane's Tomb, Trophies, Inſcription, &c. And Part of a Greek Chapter which, laid on a black Ground, was as legible as the ſame in a printed Teſtament.

Chap. X. Of Antiquities. And theſe, not ſo much of Perſons or Actions, as of Things; ſuch as are remote from the preſent Age, whether found under Ground, or whereof there yet remain any Footſteps above it; as ancient Medals, Ways, Lows, Pavements, Urns, Monuments of Stone, Fortifications, &c. whether of the ancient Britains, Romans, Saxons, Danes, or Normans. Beginning with the Author's Reaſons, why the original Inhabitants of this County might be Iceni, and the notable Remains of ſome ancient Britiſh City near Wrotteſley, of great Extant, being about three or four Miles round; with ſome Ruins of Fortifications preſumed alſo to be theirs. Of their Arrow Heads made of Flints, found here. Other Antiquities alſo of Britiſh Origin; and particularly the Place where Litchfield now is, ſo called from the dead Bodies of St. Amphabale's Companions, who were martyr'd there. Of Roman Antiquities, the moſt conſiderable in theſe Parts are, their publick Ways; which here, with ſome other of their Antiquities alſo, are copiouſly treated of. The Saxon and Daniſh Antiquities are ſtill more largely diſcuſs'd, in relation to the building or deſtroying of ſeveral Towns, Fortifications, &c. in the County. Here ſpeaking of the Cuſtoms and Utenſils of the Danes, which obtained among theſe People, we have a large Account and Sculpture of the Staffordſhire Cloggs, or little ſquare Logs of Wood, which by the Notches and Inciſions upon them, ſupplied the Uſe of Almanacks; with many Remarks upon the Symbols thereon, and the Computations relating thereto; ending, as to this Daniſh Part, with the Account of the famous Lady Godiva, who rode through Coventry naked, to obtain many Privileges, for the Inhabitants, of her Husband Leofric, Earl of Mercia; ſhe dying at his Village of Bromleyg in this County, according [186] to Knyghton, tho' buried at Coventry. To theſe are added, ſome old Cuſtoms, whoſe Originals being obſcure, might commence as high as thoſe Times: ſuch as the Service of the Lord of Eſſington to the Lord of Hilton, round whoſe Hall-Fire, he was to drive a Gooſe every New-Year's-Day three times, &c. while Jack of Hilton, a whimſical kind of Aeolipile, being a little brazen Image, in an impudent Poſture, filled with Water, is blowing the Coals. Their merry Cuſtom of the Hobbey-Horſe Dance, &c. at Abbots Bromley had a good uſeful End in it; but the Cuſtom at Tutbury for the King of the Minſtrells to arreſt all the Muſicians in the ſaid Franchiſe, who refuſed to do the yearly Services, according to the Charter of John of Gaunt, for which they had a Bull, given by the Prior of Tutbury, amidſt all the Harmony thereof, ſeems to have been attended with much Diſcord, which produced an Alteration according to the modern Ceremonies uſed in theſe their muſical Meetings, which yet are not void of Tumult and Miſchief. That other Cuſtom at Tutbury, of finding a Flitch of Bacon for every married Man, who took the Oath a Year and a Day after his Marriage, That he had never wiſhed to change his Wife, but would have taken her before all other Women had ſhe been ſingle; whereby Sir Philip de Somervile held Whichnovre, and other Manors; had a good Encouragement in it to the making of mature Elections, and being contented with thoſe they made; and was parallel'd by that Cuſtom alſo inſtituted at the Priory of Dunmow in Eſſex, by the Lord Robert Fitzwalter, temp. Hen III. which Ceremony is alſo here recited, from the Hiſtory of that Baron, printed 1616 Then follows an Account of ſome other Antiquities, as the Donation of Heyley Caſtle to Hen. de Aldithleg, and the Advowſon of Penckridge Church to the Archbiſhops of Dublin, by King John; which, with the founding of ſome other old Structures, alſo the Account of an Entrenchment, anciently the Seat of the Cockains, a monumental Stone in Memory of the Death of James Lord Audley, and the mention of a few more eminent Perſons, omitted in their proper Place, concludes this elaborate and curious Hiſtory of Staffordſhire; and how grateful ſoever our Au [...]hor's Acknowledgments throughout the ſame appear, for his Encouragement therein, he yet ends with informing us, he is ‘"pretty fully reſolved never to publiſh any more of theſe Hiſtories, tho' I think, ſays he, I was never ſo fit as now, unleſs commanded by a Power that I muſt not reſiſt."’ To the Work he has joined [187] a uſeful Index, alſo his Propoſals for Subſcription; which are very reaſonable, no more than a Penny per Sheet, a Penny each Plate, and the Map Sixpence; which for each Copy, he gueſſes will amount to about ten or twelve Shillings: and the whole ends with a Liſt of the ſaid Subſcribers.

XXX. A Collection of ROYAL GRANTS from the beginning of King HENRY VIII. to the latter end of King WILLIAM III. Extracted from the Patent Rolls, and other authentic Inſtruments in the Offices of Record. MS. Large Folio. Pages 260.

THIS Collection, made about the Beginning of the Reign of our late Queen Anne, by a Gentleman lately dead, as we have ſome Reaſon to believe, who was well acquainted with the Records of this Kingdom, and the Pedigrees of the moſt eminent Families in it, begins with Abſtracts from the Patent Rolls of Grants, which were made by King Henry VIII. from the firſt to the thirtieth Year of his Reign, extending to Page 32: which is followed with a long Recital in Latin, of many other Grants, in the ſame Period, of Abbey Lands, &c. to whom, and where alſo demiſed, as far as Page 68; concluding with the ſaid King's Grants to the Lord Chancellor Audley, of Duke's Place, &c. copied from the Exchequer, to Page 76. So we come to the Grants of the Reverſions of Mildenhall, Marlborough, &c. made by King Edward VI. in the firſt Year of his Reign, to his Uncle, Edward, Duke of Somerſet; whereof we have here two large Copies in Latin, to Page 135. Next we come to an Abſtract from ſome Patents of ſeveral Grants, made by Queen Elizabeth in the 38th Year of her Reign, as far as Page 152. Hence we deſcend to a Copy from the Hanaper Books, of the Entries of all Perpetuities, Charters, Licences, Grants, and Confirmations which paſſed the Great Seal, from the Reſtoration of King Charles II. Anno 1660, down to Michaelmas 1696, to Page 224. Whereunto is joined the like Copy or Abſtract of all the Leaſes, which paſſed the Great Seal, during the ſame ſpace of Time: The whole ending at Page 260, with one to Thomas Lord Raby of the Poſt Fines for 48 Years; and another [188] to Thomas Harley, Eſq of certain Mines, Lands, &c. in the County of Radnor for 42 Years*.

XXXI. A Collection of curious Diſcourſes, written by Eminent ANTIQUARIES, upon ſeveral Heads in our ENGLISH ANTIQUITIES, and now firſt publiſh'd by THOMAS HEARNE, M. A. Oxford. 1720. 8vo. Pages 327; beſides a long Preface.

THE Publiſher of theſe Diſcourſes ſhews us in his Preface, that Experience and Practice are better helps in the Study of Antiquities than General Rules; yet that theſe are to be regarded, and better Accounts of our Antiquities to be given. Next he commends the Baroccian Collection of Greek MSS. and Dr. Langbain's noble Deſign of publiſhing divers Volumes of Fragments, which requir'd Aſſiſtance; and that the Clergy ought to have better Proviſion to enable them for ſuch Public Services. That the Polyglott Bible is a noble Inſtance of what ſhou'd be expected from Joint Labours; requiſite alſo in our own Hiſtory and Antiquities. That ſuch Societies ought to have ſtated Meetings, and write upon intricate Subjects, as theſe Antiquaries did. Further of the ſaid Society, and this Collection; and how they were ſummon'd to give their Opinions; with a Liſt of [189] the Members at one of their Meetings, 41 Eliz. Remarks upon ſome Roman Coins and Antiquities. The Neglect of our Hiſtorians herein, and Praiſes of Dr. And. Pern. Some Obſcurities in theſe Diſcourſes obſerved, and why our Anceſtors hid their MSS. under Ground, and in old Walls; with an Example from Sir Thomas Elliot's Dictionary, in the Word Britannia, and the Etymology thereof. That the Antients were more exact than the Moderns in noting the Bounds of Places. That the Saxons imitated the Romans herein. Whence the Diviſion of Shires is aſcribed to Alfred; and why he is called the Founder of Oxford Univerſity. Of King Edward the Confeſſor's Chappel at Iſlip; with a Sculpture thereof. Alſo concerning the Miniſter of Aſhdon in Eſſex. Of other Ancient Structures in Oxfordſhire. Of King Offa's Buildings there. Remarks upon Caſtles in Coats of Arms; upon other Military Buildings, and upon the Efficacy of Bells, with the Names of thoſe of Oſney. The difficulty of procuring a perfect Liſt of the Society of Antiquaries, and their Diſſertations. An Account of ſome MS. Collections made by Francis Tate the Antiquary, in the Hands of John Anſtis, Eſq the Heads of which are here recited. Praiſes of the ſaid Mr. Tate, by Mr. Selden; how well he was vers'd in Domeſday Book. His Explanation of the abbreviated Words therein, with a Copy thereof here repreſented, from a Copper Plate in one Page. A complete Edition of Domeſday Book much deſired. Remarks upon our ancient Tournaments. Further Praiſes of Mr. Tate's Skill in the Britiſh as well as Engliſh Antiquities, and of his Acquaintance with the learned Mr. Jones. The Publiſher's Acknowledgment to John Bridges, Eſq for his Communications. And his Addition of two Diſcourſes in this Work, from his own Collections; which, with his Obſervation to us how careful he has been, not to vary from his MSS, finiſhes this Preface of 134 Pages.

After the Table of Subſcribers, the firſt Diſcourſe in this Collection is entitled, The Antiquity of the Laws of this Iſland, written by W. Hakewill (of Lincoln's-Inn, Eſq) which is followed by another anonymous Diſcourſe on the ſame Subject. Next we have four Diſcourſes upon Sterling Money, by Sir Tho. Lake, 1590, Francis Thynne, (Lancaſter Herald) Mr. James Ley, (afterwards Earl of Marlborough) and Anonymous. Five Diſcourſes upon the Antiquity of Shires in England, and the Reaſon of ſuch Diviſion; written by the Deputy-Chamberlain of the Exchequer, Mr. Arthur Agard, 1591, Mr. Thynne, Mr. Tho. Talbot, (Clerk of the [190] Records in the Tower) Mr. Richard Broughton, and Mr, James Ley. Two Diſcourſes of the Antiquity of Terms, for the Adminiſtration of Juſtice in England, by Mr. Joſeph Holland, and Fra. Thynne. Of the Antiquity of Cities in England, by Joſ. Holland. Three Diſcourſes on the Dimenſions of the Land of England, by the ſaid Mr. J. Holland, Sir John Dodderidge, and Mr. Agard, 1599. Six Diſcourſes on the Antiquity, Office, and Privilege of Heralds in England, by Mr. Leigh, Mr. Camden, Mr. Whitlock, 1601, Mr. Joſ. Holland, Mr. Agard, and Anonymous. Four Diſcourſes on the Antiquity and Privileges of the Houſes or Inns of Court and Chancery, by Mr. Agard, Mr. Thynne, Mr. Holland, and Mr. Whitlock. Two Diſcourſes upon the Knights who were made by Abbots, by Sir Francis Leigh, (Knight of the Bath) and Mr. Francis Tate (afterwards one of the Welſh Judges.) Four Diſcourſes of the Diverſity of the Names of this Iſland, by Mr. Camden, Mr. Holland, Mr. Agard, and Mr. Oldſworth, 1604. The Etymology, Antiquity and Privileges of Caſtles, by Sir Rob. Cotton; and of Towns, by the ſame Hand, (42 Eliz.) Of Dimenſion of Land, by the ſame. The Antiquity of Motts and Words, with the Arms of Noblemen and Gentlemen of England, by the ſame. Of the Antiquity of Arms in England, by Mr. James Ley. Foreſta, by the ſame. The Antiquity of the Chancellor of England, by Mr. Ley. Of Epitaphs, by the ſame. Of Motts, by the ſame. The Etymology and Original of Barons, by Mr. Camden. Mr. Tate's Queſtions about the ancient Britons. Mr. Jones's Anſwers. Two Diſcourſes of the Office and Duty of an Herald of Arms in England, by Francis Thynne, 1605, and Sir John Dodderidge, 1600. After which follows an Appendix by the Publiſher, of eleven Papers, which are Sir James Whitlock's Epitaph; Mr. Camden's Will; A Letter of Degory Whear to Mic. Oldſworth; A Greek Fragment about the Places aſſigned for the Souls of the Juſt and Unjuſt; Dr. T. Smith's laſt Letter to the Publiſher; Archbiſhop Laud's Letter to Mr. J. Greaves concerning the Gift of his Grace's Coins to Oxford; Mr. Tim. Nourſe's Donation to Oxford; A Note of the Divinity-School and Ancient Library in Oxford; Dr. Langbain's Collections thereupon; A Letter about the Forfeiture of Briſtol Bells; Laſtly, A Note about the Bells of Oſney, and their Names. Then follows the Index; and the whole Book is concluded with a Catalogue of the Publiſher's Works hitherto printed, in which is inſerted an Account of John Morwen, with a Recital of his long Latin Epitaph on Steph. Gardiner, Biſhop of Winton; which was firſt printed in 1555.

The End of Number III.
[191]

XXXII. The Book of the ORDRE of CHYVALRY or KNYGHTHODE, tranſlated out of the Frensſhe and imprinted by William Caxton. Quarto, without Date.

THIS thin Volume, of about one hundred Pages, is perhaps one of the ſcarceſt Books now remaining of that our firſt Printer; ſeeing it has ſo little occurred to thoſe who have attempted to give us any Catalogues of his Publications. Tho' no Date when it was printed is expreſs'd, yet may it be gueſſed at within a Year over or under, by ſuppoſing it in 1484; from the ſhort Reign of that Prince to whom it is inſcribed at the End, as will preſently appear. It is printed with large initial Letters at the Beginning of the Chapters; with only one Sort of Points, which are oblique or leaning Daſhes; ſome double or united Types, as in his other Books, which we have hitherto obſerved; alſo with Signatures, but no Catch-words at the Bottom of the Leaves, nor any Numbers on them at Top. And is divided into eight Chapters.

The firſt, ſhews how a Knight, who was a Hermit, beſtowed this Rule or Order of Chivalry upon a Squire. The ſecond, treats of the Beginning of Chivalry or Knighthood. The third, of the Office of Chivalry. Fourth, Of the Examination that ought to be made to the Eſquyer, when he will enter into the Order of Chivalry. Fifth, In what manner the Squire ought to receive Chivalry. Sixth, Of the Sygnefyaunce of the Arms belonging to a Knight. Seventh, Of the Cuſtoms that appertain to a Knight. And eight, Of the Honours that ought to be done to a Knight. By all which it will appear how different the Honour, the Profeſſion, the Qualifications, required in Knights anciently, were from thoſe for which they have been created in latter Times.

At the End we have the Printer's Rehearſal in theſe Words: ‘"Here endeth the Book of the Ordre of Chyvalry; whiche Book is tranſlated oute of Frensſhe in to Englysſhe, at a Requeſte of a gentyl and noble Eſquyer, by [192] me William Caxton, dwellynge in Weſtmynſtre, beſyde London, in the moſt beſt wyſe that God hath ſuffred me, and accordynge to the Copye that the ſayd Squyer delyvered to me; whiche Book is not requyſyte to every comyn Man to have, but to noble Gentylmen, that by their Vertu entende to come and entre in to the Noble Ordre of Chyvalry; the whiche, in theſe late Dayes, hath ben uſed accordyng to this Booke here to fore wreton on, but forge en, and thexcerſytees of Chyvalry, not uſed, honoured ne excercyſed, as hit hath ben in auncient Tyme; at which tyme the noble Actes of the Knyghts of Englond, that uſed Chyvalry, were renomed thurgh the unyverſal World. As for to ſpeke to fore thyncarnation of Jeſu Cryſte; where were there ever ony lyke to Brenius and Belynus, that from the Grete Brytayne, now called Englond, unto Rome, and ferre beyonde, conquered many Royammes and Londes; whos noble Actes remayne in thold Hyſtoryes of the Romayns. And ſyth the Incarnation of oure Lord, behold that noble Kyng of Brytayne, Kyng Arthur, with al the noble Knyȝtes of the Round Table, whos noble Actes, and noble Chyvalry of his Knyghtes, occupye ſoo many large Volumes, that is a World, or as thyng incredyble to byleve. O ye Knyghts of Englond! where is the Cuſtome and Uſage of noble Chyvalry that was uſed in tho Dayes? What do ye now, but go to the Baynes and playe at Dyſe? And ſome, not wel advyſed, uſe not honeſt and good Rule, ageyn alle Ordre of Knyghthode. Leve this, leve it, and rede the noble Volumes of Saynt Graal, of Lancelot, of Galaad, of Tryſtram, of Perſeforeſt, of Percyval, of Gawayn, and many mo: Ther ſhalle ye ſee Manhode, Curtoyſe, and Gentylneſs. And loke in latter Dayes, of the noble Actes ſyth the Conqueſt; as in Kyng Richard's Dayes, Cuer du Lyon; Edward the Fyrſt, and the Thyrd, and his noble Sones; Syre Robert Knolles; Syr Johan Hawkwode; Syr Johan Chaundos, and Syre Gaultier Manuy; rede Froiſſart. And alſo behold that vyctoryous and noble Kynge Harry the Fyfthe, and the Captayns under hym; his noble Brethren; the Earl of Salysbury, Montagu; and many other, whoos Names ſhyne gloryouſly by their vertuous Nobleſſe and Actes that they did in thonour of thordre of Chyvalry. Allas, what do ye, but ſlepe and take eaſe? And ar al diſordred fro Chyvalry. I wold demaunde a Queſtion [193] yf I ſhould not diſpleaſe. How many Knyghtes ben there now in Englond, that have th Uſe and thExcercyſe of a Knyghte? that is, to wete, that he knoweth his Hors, and his Hors hym; that is to ſaye, he beynge redy at a Poynt, to have al thyng that longeth to a Knyght, an Hors that is accordyng, and broken after his hand; his Armures and Harnoys mete and fyttyng, and ſo forth, et cetera. I ſuppoſe, and a due Serche ſhold be made, ther ſhold be many founden that lacke; the more Pyte is. I wold it pleaſyd our Soverayne Lord, that twyes or thryes in a Yere, or at the leſt ones, he wold do crye Juſtes of Pees, to thende that every Knyght ſhold have Hors and Harneys, and alſo the Uſe and Craft of a Knyght, and alſo to tornoye one ageynſte one, or 2 ageynſt 2, and the beſt to have a Prys, a Dyamond or Jewel, ſuch as ſhold pleaſe the Prynce. This ſhold cauſe Gentylmen to reſorte to thauncyent Cuſtoms of Chyvalry, to grete Fame and Renoumee; and alſo to be alwey redy to ſerve theyr Prynce, whan he ſhalle calle them, or have nede. Thenne late every Man that is come of noble Blood, and entendeth to come to the noble Ordre of Chyvalry, rede this lytyl Book, and doo thereafter, in kepyng the Lore and Commaundements therein compryſed: And thenne I doubte not he ſhall atteyn to thordre of Chyvalry, et cetera. And thus this lytyl Book I preſente to my redoubted, naturel, and moſt dradde Soverayne Lord, Kyng Rychard, Kyng of Englond and of Fraunce; to thende, that he commaunde this Book to be had, and redde unto other yong Lordes, Knyghtes, and Gentylmen within this Royame; that the noble Ordre of Chyvalrye be hereafter better uſed and honoured, than hit hath ben in late Dayes paſſed. And herein, he ſhalle do a noble and vertuouſe Dede; and I ſhalle pray Almighty God for his long Lif and proſperous Welfare, and that he may have Victory of all his Enemyes, and after this ſhort and tranſitory Lyf, to have everlaſtyng Lyf in Heven, where as is Joye and Blyſſe, World without ende. Amen."’

XXXIII. The Workes of Sir THOMAS MORE, Knyght, ſometyme Lord Chancellour of England; written by him in the Engliſh Tonge. Printed at London at the Coſtes of John Cawod, John Waly, and Richard Tottell, Anno 1557. Fol. Pages 1458, beſides Tables, &c.

[194]

THO' Sir Thomas More ſuffer'd Death for maintaining the Supremacy of the Pope over that of his Sovereign, as may be read in theſe Works, and in the many Accounts of his Life, ſet forth by the Roman Catholics, who have much magnified him for his ſaid Writings and Sufferings; yet are there many things in this Collection of his Engliſh Works obſervable to all Readers, who are even not attach'd to his own Perſuaſion, as it is one of the moſt copious Exemplars we have in Print of the beſt Engliſh Stile in thoſe Days, and contains ſome curious Pieces or Parcels of Civil, and many of Eccleſiaſtical Hiſtory, relating to the Times of our Reformation: and, overlooking the ſuperſtitious Adherence to his Cauſe, with ſome ſophiſtical Arguments neceſſary to ſupport it, is fraught with many Teſtimonies of virtuous Learning, fine Genius, and good Morals for the univerſal Conduct of Life.

The Book was collected together and publiſhed from the Author's printed Copies and Manuſcripts, by his Nephew William Raſtell, Serjeant at Law, and dedicated to Queen Mary; that it might forward her Majeſty's moſt Godly Puſpoſe, in purging this her Realm of all wicked Hereſies.

After the Table of Contents, and a tolerable good Index, the Collection commences with ſome Pieces of our Author's Poetry, which he wrote for his Diverſion, in his younger Days. As, the Merry Jeſt, how a Serjeant would learn to play the Frier; containing ſome good Reproofs of thoſe who act out of their Sphere. Then follow his Verſes to explain the Images in ſome Pageants, which he deviſed in his Father's Houſe; deſcribing the ſeveral Stages and Conſequents of Life. After this, we have his rueful Lamentation of the Death of Queen Elizabeth, Wife of King Henry VII. in Feb. 1503. Next come his Prefatory Verſes before the Book of Fortune: Theſe Verſes make about four [195] Sheets. Hence we paſs to his Works in Proſe; beginning with the Life of John Picus, Earl of Mirandula, an Italian Nobleman, of great Virtue and Learning, who died in 1494, aged 32; with ſeveral of his Letters, and his Verſes, tranſlated from the Latin, and dedicated to his beloved Siſter Joyeuce Leigh. After this, we have the Hiſtory of King Richard III. written by our Author when he was one of the Under Sheriffs of London, about the Year 1513, but unfiniſhed, and publiſhed before, in the Chronicles of Harding and Hall; tho' very corruptly, and much varying from his own Copy whence this is printed. The next is a long Treatiſe on the four laſt Things, Death, Dome, Pain, and Joy; with ſeveral Chapters on Pride, Envy, Wrath, Covetouſneſs, Gluttony, and Slouth; compoſed after he was knighted, of the Privy Council to King Henry VIII. and Under-Treaſurer of England, about the Year 1522, but unfiniſh'd, and we preſume never before printed; but that which ſucceeds, it was as we are informed, the Year after it was written; entitled, A Dialogue of Sir T. More, then Chancellor of the Dutchy of Lancaſter, wherein is treated of the Veneration and Worſhip of Images and Reliques; praying to Saints, and going on Pilgrimage, with many things touching the Sects of Luther and Tyndale, begun by the one in Saxony, and labour'd to be brought by the other into England; made in the Year 1528. This is a large Treatiſe, in four Books, divided into many Chapters, and illuſtrated with many pleaſant Examples, Tales, &c. with which he had a Memory plentifully furniſhed, and a Talent happily conſtituted to apply them. To ſome, who made Objection thereat, we find his Anſwer was, ‘"That for a Layman to tell his Mind merrily, might ſometimes better become him, than ſeriouſly and ſolemnly to preach."’ His next Treatiſe is, The Supplication of Souls, written 1529, againſt a famous little Tract, call'd, The Supplication of Beggars; (written by Simon Fiſh of Gray's-Inn, which was very Inſtrumental to the Reformation, and is reprinted in Fox.) To that follows, The Confutation of Tyndale's Anſwer, (to the Dialogue aforeſaid) made 1532, by our Author. In the Preface hereof, we have a large Account of many late Books, and their Authors, whom Sir Thomas calls Heretics. Then we come to Tyndale's Preface, divided, with our Author's Anſwers to the ſeveral Particulars alternately; which ends the firſt Book: but the firſt Part of the Work contains 3 Books. The ſecond Part, written 1533, [196] after he had given over his Chancellor's Office, begins at the fourth Book: It contains Tyndale's Defence for his Tranſlation of the Teſtament; with our Author's Anſwers to the ſeveral Parts interfering, as before; and herein, having conſider'd Tyndale's Church, to the End of the ſeventh Book, we come in the eight, to our Author's Confutation of Barnes his Church in the ſame manner: The ninth Book is a Summary of the reſt, was not printed before, and appears at the End to have been left unfiniſhed. This Work is ſucceeded by a Letter of our Author, written at Chelchith (or Chelſea) in 1533, againſt the little Book of John Frith upon the Sacrament; and both concluded with a long Apology, written and publiſhed alſo the ſame Year, in Anſwer to the Objections which were made, more eſpecially to theſe his laſt Writings, againſt his ſaid three Antagoniſts. Theſe Pieces of his, producing a large Treatiſe againſt him, call'd, Salem and Bizance, he writ the ſame Year his Debellacion of Salem and Bizance. The ſame Year he wrote his Anſwer to the firſt Part of the Poiſoned Book, which a nameleſs Heretic named the Supper of the Lord. His Poſtſcript to this Treatiſe ends with this Alluſion; ‘"Of all my Adverſaries, could I never hitherto find any one, but when he catcheth once a Fall, as each of them hath caught full many, there lyeth he, ſtill tumbling and toltring in Mire, and neither Spur, nor Bridle can one Inch prevail, but, as tho' they were not fall'n in a Puddle of Dirt, but rubbed and laid in Litter under the Manger, at their Eaſe, they whine, and they bite, and they kick, and they ſpurn at him that would help them up."’ His next Performance is entitled, A Dialogue of Comfort againſt Tribulation, made by an Hungarian in Latin, and tranſlated out of Latin into French, and out of French into Engliſh, in 1534, when he was Priſoner in the Tower of London. And this is followed with a Treatiſe to receive the Bleſſed Body of our Lord ſacramentally and vertually both, written in the ſame Year and Place. The next is, a Treatiſe Hiſtorical, containing the bitter Paſſion of our Saviour Chriſt, after the Courſe and Order of the four Evangeliſts; with an Expoſition upon their Words, taken moſtly out of the Sayings of ſundry good old holy Doctors, &c. This copious Treatiſe was alſo written in the ſame Year and Place aforeſaid; 'tis moſtly taken from John Gerſon's Monateſſeron; but is unfiniſhed, the Author now being denied the Uſe of Books, Pens, Ink, and Paper. [197] Yet here follows, His Godly Inſtructions, Meditations, and Prayers, in Latin and Engliſh, written with a Coal, both before and after his Condemnation, which was on Thurſday the firſt of July, 1535, Anno 27 Hen. VIII. and he was beheaded on Tower-Hill the Tueſday following. The reſt of the Volume conſiſts of his Letters, &c. written at ſundry times on divers Occaſions, beginning with his Letter from the Court at Woodſtock, to his Wife the Lady Alice at Chelſea, in 1528, the Year before he was Lord Chancellor, containing Conſolations to her for the Loſs ſhe had there by Fire. Next we have his Epitaph, written by himſelf in Latin, in 1532, ſoon after he had laid down his Chancellor's Office; which he cauſed to be inſcribed upon his Tomb, which he had erected in Chelſea Church, while he was Lord Chancellor; with a Tranſlation of it. Then follow four Letters which he wrote after he had given over the Office of Chancellor, and before he was impriſon'd, viz. Three to Mr Tho. Cromwell of the King's Privy Council, and one to King Henry VIII. all in the Year 1533. Next we have his Letters, &c. wrote while he was Priſoner in the Tower, beginning with his Letter to his eldeſt Daughter Mrs. Margaret Roper, upon his refuſing the Oath. Another to his ſaid Daughter, written with a Coal. His Anſwer to a Letter of hers, which ſeemingly perſuaded him to take the Oath, that ſhe might get the Liberty ſhe did obtain of Acceſs to him. Her Anſwer thereunto. His Letter to all his Friends, written with a Coal; with two Stanza's upon Fortune. Lady Alice Alington's Letter to Mrs. Margaret Roper. A long Anſwer by her or her Father to the ſame. His two Letters to Doctor Nicholas Wilſon, alſo Priſoner in the Tower, 1534. His Daughter Roper's Anſwer to a Letter of his, when he was ſhut up cloſe Priſoner, 1534; with his Anſwers both to the ſame and another ſhe had ſent him. His Letter to Mr. Leder, a virtuous Prieſt, the ſame Year. Two more of his Letters to his Daughter in 1535. His Latin Epiſtle to Mr. Anthony Bonuyſe, Merchant of Luca, in London, his old Friend, written with a Coal the ſame Year: with the Tranſlation. His laſt Letter was to his Daughter Roper, the Day before his Death, containing his Bleſſing to, and deſires to be recommended to the Prayers of her, and his other Friends and Relations.

XXXIV. The BREVIARY OF BRYTAYNE, &c. contayning a learned Diſcourſe of the Variable State, &c. thereof, under diverſe, as well natural, as forren Princes: With the Geographical Deſcription of the ſame; ſuch as neither by elder nor later Writers, the like hath been ſet forth before. Written in Latin by HUMFREY LHUYD, of Denbigh, a Cambre Britayne, and lately engliſhed by THOMAS TWYNE, Gent. Octavo. 1573. 94 Leaves.

[198]

THIS much-commended Book is dedicated to Edward de Vere, Earl of Oxenford, Lord Great Chamberlayne of England, by the Tranſlator, who tells his Lordſhip, at this time but in the Flower of his Age, ‘"that hereon when your Honour ſhall be at leiſure to look, beſtowing ſuch Regard as you are accuſtom'd to do on Books of Geography, Hiſtories, and other good Learning, wherein I am privy your Honour taketh ſingular Delight, I doubt not, but you ſhall have cauſe to judge your Time very well applied. And ſo much the rather, for that in the Study of Geography, it is expedient, firſt to know exactly the Situation of our own home where we abide, before that we ſhall be able to judge how other Countries do lie unto us, which are far diſtant from us; beſides, that it were a foul Shame to be inquiſitive of the State of Foreign Lands, and to be ignorant of our own."’

Then follows the Tranſlator's Preface; in which he acknowleges the Aſſiſtance of Dr. Yale, for the Tranſlation of ſome Names, eſpecially in the Britiſh Tongue; and the Faultineſs of the Latin Copy which was printed at Cologne. He alſo apologizes for his Tranſlation of the Title, as above, it being called by the Author, Commentarioli Britannicae Deſcriptionis Fragmentum, that is literally, A Fragment of a little Treatiſe of the Deſcription of Britain, which he thinks not much beſide the Meaning of the Title he hath given it. Next we have other Commendations in Verſe, namely by T. Brown, Prebend of Weſtminſter, Ed. Grant, Schoolmaſter of Weſtminſter, Lodowick Lhuyd, &c. Laſtly [199] concludes his Preface with a Commendation of the Author, which for Brevity we refer to, having a Character more Modern, here to ſubjoin*. Nor is the Tranſlator unattended with Verſes by his Brothers Laurence and John Twyn.

After an Alphabetical Table, we have the Author's Epiſtle to Abraham Ortelius of Antwerp, wherein we obſerve, he was now ſuffering under a dangerous Fever. Yet that he had here ſent him his Deſcription of Wales and of England, with the ancient Names, and another England; beſides certain Fragments written with his own Hand, probably for his great Book of Geography. This Epiſtle is dated from Denbigh, Aug. 30, 1568, and ſubſcrib'd yours, both living and dying, H. Lhuyd.

After a Table of near ſeventy Authors uſed in this little Work, our learned Antiquary begins it, with his Notice of the Promiſe he had made to his Correſpondent aforeſaid, of ſending him the Geographical Deſcription of Britain, with the moſt ancient Names, as well Latin as Britiſh; wherein, becauſe he finds he muſt diſagree from the Opinions of others, he has thought it expedient, firſt, in a few Words, to diſcloſe the Effect of his Purpoſe, and by what Arguments and Authorities he is moved to change or aſcribe to others, the Names of ſome Countries, Towns, Rivers, and other Places. But before he takes this in hand, enters upon ſome Explanation of the Britiſh Tongue, touching the ſignification of the Letters, and manner of pronouncing the ſame: The Ignorance of which Tongue having driven many notable Men to ſuch ſhifts, that endeavouring to wind themſelves out of one, they have fallen into many. After this he begins with the Etymologies of Britain; ſhews their Errors who have darken'd all the Names of Places and Men with thoſe of Latin Derivation; whereof Robert Coenalis is particularly arraign'd; ſo proceeds to confirm Sir Thomas Eliot's Obſervation out of an old Manuſcript that Britain was anciently written Prytannia, as if it were derived from Pryd ſignifying Comelineſs or Beauty, and Cain, or White, with the firſt Letter ſunk for ſmoothneſs in Conjunction. After this he takes [200] occaſion to chaſtiſe Polydore Virgil the Italian, and Hector Boethius the Scot; whereof the firſt, in his Hiſtory of Britain, mainly ſought not only to obſcure the Glory of the Britiſh Name, but alſo to defame the Britains themſelves with ſcandalous Lyes; and the other, in attempting to raiſe the Scots out of Darkneſs, attributes whatever he finds the Romans or Britains have done worthy of Commendation in this Iſland, all to his Countrymen. Yet does he alſo believe that Brutus came into Britain with his Trojans, and took upon him the Government thereof; whence they might alſo be called Britains. Then he proceeds to the Diviſionof Britain into Lhoegria, Albania, and Cambria; ſo to the Entrance of the Saxons, and by whom the Country was called England, and the People Saiſon. But now returning to treat more particularly of Lhoegr or England, he begins firſt with Kent, and having given an Account of the ancient Names of Places in this and other Counties, to fol. 35, where, having alſo reproved Sleydan's partial Abridgment of Froiſſart, and ended with the Deſcent of the Stuarts, he begins, as in a Second Part, with theſe Words: ‘"Now that we have wander'd over all England called Lhoegr, let us next in Order proceed to the ſecond Region of Britain, which, of our Countrymen, is called Albania, of the Inhabitants, Scotland."’ Here he obſerves, That there was never any Writer of Name, that made mention either of Scots or Redſhanks before Veſpaſian's Time, about the Year of our Lord's Incarnation 72, when Merrigus or Arviragus reigned in Britain. And that they cou'd not be called by the Romans, Phichtiani, for painting their Bodies, ſince they were called by that Name before they were ever known to the Latins, and were the Britains whom Caeſar and others report to have painted themſelves blue with the Herb Woad, that they might appear more terrible to their Enemies. Then having given us the Original of the Scots and Redſhanks, and ſharply corrected Boethius for his many Falſities, he proceeds, in the like Manner as he had done of England, briefly to deſcribe or explain the Names of ſeveral principal Places in Albania or Scotland, and the circumjacent Iſlands; ſo paſſes to the third Part concerning Wales, upon which our Author is moſt copious, as well in deſcribing the Manners of the People, and the Characters of ſome of their moſt ancient Worthies, as the ancient Names of the Places: Interſperſed with many learned Authorities, curious Obſervations, and critical Remarks. Of which, we ſhall mention only his Reproof of the Golden [201] Number, his Deſcription of Wenefride's Well; with other Cenſures again of P. Virgil and William Petit the Monk, and laſtly of Gildas, for his hard Character of the Britains; as if he was to be regarded merely as a Preacher ‘"whoſe Cuſtom is, very ſharply to inveigh againſt the Faults of their Hearers: Wherefore, if we ſeek Authorities out of Sermons as Polydore hath done; what Pariſh, what Town, what Nation, or Kingdom may eſcape Infamy? What hath Bernard written of the Romans? Thus ſurely, terming them impious, unfaithful, ſeditious, diſhoneſt, traiterous, great Speakers, but little Doers. Theſe Things are by Divines ſpoken in the Pulpit, according unto their Manner, that the like Faults may be amended, and the Life reformed; not that the Romans or Britains were ſuch indeed. Neither is there any Man, unleſs he be a ſhameleſs Sycophant, that lyeth in wait for all Occaſions to diſpraiſe and accuſe, which will go about, by wreſting of Sentences forth of the Sermons of Preachers, ſlanderouſly to tax, and infamouſly to note any whole Covent, Shire, City, or People. Wherefore, let ſuch idle and ill-diſpoſed Slanderers leave off, and ſuffer the true Renown of Britain to appear to the World. Neither judge me good Reader, of too ſharp a Tongue; ſeeing (ſo God help me) neither Envy of any Foreign Name, neither Thirſt of Vain-glory, neither Hatred of any Nation, but alone the Love of my Country, which is evil ſpoken of undeſervedly, and deſire to ſet forth the Truth, have provoked me to write thus much."’ Then follows a ſhort and modeſt Concluſion, after which, the whole is ended with certain Welch, or rather true Britiſh Words converted into Latin by the Author, and now tranſlated into Engliſh.

XXXV. A Treatiſe of the CORRUPTION of SCRIPTURE, COUNCILS and FATHERS, by the Prelates, Paſtors and Pillars of the CHURCH of ROME, for maintenance of Popery and Irreligion. By THOMAS JAMES, Student in Divinity, and Chief Keeper of the Public Library in OXFORD, &c. With a ſufficient Anſwer unto JAMES GRETSER and ANTONIE POSSEVINE Jeſuits, and the unknown Author of The Grounds of the Old Religion and the New. Divided into V. Parts. Lond. Quarto. 1612.

[202]

THE Learned Author of this Work, in his Dedication to George Abbot, Archbiſhop of Canterbury, tells him, ‘"he has written this Book in Engliſh for the Benefit of his poor ſeduced Countrymen, who are perſuaded by the Prieſts and Jeſuits that there is no ſuch Matter, and that their Books are freeſt from Corruption, and Minds from Falſhood; that Proteſtants are guilty of this Crime, and ſundry others. But as St. Auſten obſerved of Hereticks, that they were ſhameleſs and impudent, without Foreheads, not caring what they ſaid: So it is with the Papiſts; they do not only impudently deny, but wickedly tranſlate the Crime from themſelves unto others. For if forging falſe Treatiſes, or Corruption of the True; changing of Scriptures, or altering of Men's Words, contrary to their Meaning, be certain Notes of Hereſy, how heretical then muſt the Church of Rome be, wherein this Doctrine of Corruption is both openly taught and profeſs'd? As their Indices Expurgatorii; the Printing of the Fathers Works at Rome, and the Evidence of the Fact doth plainly declare. All which is plainly ſhewed in this ſmall Treatiſe, and whatſoever elſe doth tend thereunto."’ Then he obſerves how his ſaid Patron, the Archbiſhop, had long ſince in his Book againſt Hill, begun to diſcover this deviliſh Policy of the common Adverſary, and his Grace's Example has encouraged him to proceed therein, and embolden'd him to conſecrate his Labours with himſelf, wholly at his Grace's Diſpoſition.

[203]After this Addreſs, which gives, in this Part we have here extracted, a Glimpſe of the Contents of the Work before us, we have an ample Advertiſement to the Chriſtian Reader, wherein he tells him, that ‘"having fully travelled this vaſt Wilderneſs of Sin, I have thought it my Duty to leave certain Land-Marks behind me, for their Direction which ſhall come hereafter."’ The whole Book is reſolved into five Parts: The Firſt ſhews, The Baſtardy of the Falſe Fathers, and in this Part theſe few Things are to be noted, That there are 187 ſeveral Treatiſes, here diſtinctly produced, which are ſhrewdly ſuſpected, if not plainly convicted of Forgery by the Papiſts themſelves. That our Author follows herein the Judgment of their moſt eſteemed Writers, ſuch as Bellarmine and Baronius, Poſſevin and Gretſer, Sextus Senenſis, Angelus Roccha, Pamelius, and ſundry others; ſometimes, tho' ſeldom, citing Eraſmus, or following his Cenſure, becauſe the Papiſts ſay he was an Apoſtate; tho' he defended the Religion, then openly maintain'd, againſt Oecolampadius, Melancthon, Martin Luther and others; was accounted in the boſom of the Church, and ſaluted by the Name of Son, by Adrian VI. and Leo X. And however he was accuſed for a Lutheran, ſeeing his Apology ſatisfied the Pope in his Lifetime, why ſhould the Papiſts traduce him being dead? Tho' he were in Heart and Profeſſion a Papiſt, God made him write againſt the Abuſes of Popery, rather than againſt the Religion itſelf, as himſelf ſays. But leaving him, let them conſider the reſt who were inflexible Papiſts, and ſee here how the beſt of them are driven to cenſure theſe Treatiſes, yet enforced to make uſe of them, abuſing the ſimple Reader, by the frequent Citation of Clement, Cyprian, Ambroſe, Auguſtine, Hierome, and the reſt, when no one Scrip of their Writings is alledg'd; yet Cocceius their Maſter has been bold to ſet down the Age when every one of theſe Fathers lived, to thoſe baſtard Treatiſes, which themſelves never ſaw. Our Author begins his ſaid Catalogue, in this firſt Part with Abdias, who lived in the Time of St. Paul, and ends it with Iſodore, who flouriſh'd not long after St. Gregory; yet, in this Part, he compriſes not all the Treatiſes of the Fathers who lived within the Six Hundred Years, condemned by Papiſts, nor many more detected by the Proteſtants, but only thoſe he finds cited by the Papiſts in their Books of Controverſy; eſpecially when they are alledg'd to gain Credit with the ſimple People; which they well might do, ſince ſome Learned Men here named have been deceived, to cite thefe Forgeries, [204] as the Works of the Fathers, who lived before Luther's Time, ſo they cou'd not be forged by Proteſtants, who according to the Opinion of the Papiſts derive their Origin from him. And as to their being cited ſometimes by learned Proteſtants alſo, 'tis but reaſonable, as one ſide has uſed them for their Convenience, that they ſhou'd be as free for the other. After this Catalogue, which comprehends 71 Pages, we have a Liſt of the Names of the Author's whoſe Books are cited; and a brief Table wherein is declared, the Uſe that Papiſts make of theſe Baſtard Treatiſes: With another Table, ſhewing who they were written by, or aſcribed to, and the Characters of them. Thus we come to

Part II. Of the Corruption of the True Fathers, wherein is the greater Danger, becauſe it may ſpread farther before eſpied. And here our Author takes the Word Fathers in a large Senſe, extending it as far as Gregory de Valentia does, unto the beſt learned of all Ages. His Obſervations are taken from the moſt learned Proteſtants, and particularly his chief Encourager the learned Dr. Bilſon, Biſhop of Wincheſter. Further, this Part contains, 50 Proofs of corrupted Places in theſe Eccleſiaſtical Writers. In the 26th Proof, there is a Story rehearſed by our Author of Biſhop Jewel, who citing St. Gregory's Epiſtles in a Viſitation Sermon, at Abingdon in Berkſhire, was defamed for corrupting his Author's Senſe; which cauſed all the MS. of that Father to be ſearch'd, whereby it was found, that the Popiſh Editions only were corrupted, that the Biſhop had quoted the genuine Senſe, and that thoſe who charged ſuch Corruptions upon him were themſelves moſt guilty of them. Our Author concludes this Part, with his Wiſhes for a Proteſtant Edition of the Councils; and obſerves, that Dr. Ward, Maſter of Sidney-Suſſex College, in Cambridge, had beſtowed many Years Pains in this way, and that his Endeavours wou'd tend to excellent Purpoſes, if he might be prevail'd on to publiſh them; but if any Thing keep him back, it is an humble Conceit he has ever had, to think himſelf ſo much the leſs able, the more ſufficient others eſteem him. This Part is compriſed in 103 Pages, and has in another Page, The Names added, of the Authors and Pages corrupted.

Part III. The Variety and Contrariety of the Popiſh Bibles, commonly called the Vulgar Bibles in Latin. Our Author's Motives for publiſhing this Part were, firſt, becauſe it is a Matter of Faith to appoint what is Scripture, and what not, to ſhew that the Pope may err in Matters of Faith. Secondly, [205] Becauſe Papiſts object to us our different Tranſlations of the Bible, to ſhew their own groſs Errors and Abſurdities, in ſetting forth their two Hierome Bibles, authoriz'd by two Popes within two Years. Thirdly, To vindicate his Bellum Papale, wrote againſt thoſe two diſcording Editions, from ſome Objections to the ſame, lately publiſh'd by James Gretſer. In this Part it further appears, Theſe Bibles were ſet forth by Pope Sixtus in 1590, and Pope Clement 1592. And what Sentences or Words were added by Pope Clement, which were not in the Edition of Sixtus: Alſo the Sentences or Words left out by Clement, which were in the Bibles of Sixtus; with the Contradictions of one againſt the other: Errors in Numerical Computations; Tranſpoſition of Names, and other Alterations of the Senſe: To which follows, An Apology or Defence of the Bellum Papale, publiſh'd by our Author againſt thoſe Bibles, 4to, 1600. In which he tells us, how he came to engage himſelf againſt thoſe Editions; recites the pompous Inſcription ſet up in the Vatican in Honour of Sixtus, upon his ſaid Publication, with the Apologies of ſome Jeſuits for the Errors therein; as Baldwin, Dr. Norrice, and Dr. Biſhop; alſo ſome Anſwers to Gretſer's Allegations againſt our Author: With an Account of Arias Montanus's Apology, for his Integrity in ſetting forth the King's Bibles, containing the whole Hiſtory of his Troubles in the Progreſs of that coſtly Work; the Copy of which was found at the Sack of Cadiz, and by Dr. Rives repoſited in the Library at Oxford; this with a rehearſal of ſome Sentences that are yet found uncorrected, or rather added unwarrantably to the Vulgar Bible; alſo ſome further Anſwers to his Antagoniſt, and a Character of him, concludes this Part in 59 Pages.

Part IV. Of their condemning the Fathers. For tho' the Papiſts do much boaſt of their Fathers, and vulgarly ſeem to value their Writings, yet it is found that none are more injurious to their Works or their Worth, ‘"uſing them as Merchants do their caſting Counters; ſometimes they ſtand for Pounds, ſometimes for Shillings, ſometimes for Pence, ſometimes for nothing, according as they be next and readieſt at Hand to make up their Accounts."’ In this Part, our Author acknowledges himſelf much indebted to the Second Part of the Dean of Wincheſter's Apology, and to Sam. Huberus in his Anti-Bellarminus. And having proved theſe Aſſertions, he proceeds, to lay open the Myſtery and Abuſes of the Indices Expurgatorii; ſhews you the Original, [206] Nature, Uſe and Corruption of this Inquiſition; the Officers, Inquiſitors, Commiſſaries, and Public Notaries, concerned in theſe Indices of Books to be forbidden, or purged from whatever impugned the Church of Rome. And here he commends the Treatiſe, written by Gabriel Putherbeus, De tollendis Libris malis, 1549, as what has diſcovered the Wickedneſs of their Biſhops, Prieſts and Monks, better than any Work our Author knows. In the latter end of this Part, we have a Table of the Divinity Books, firſt ſet forth and approved, then cenſured by Papiſts. This Catalogue contains 323 of their ſaid forbidden Books, which are often noted in what Parts they have been purged: Among them there are ſome of our own Authors; as Alcuinus, whoſe Book de Trinitate, ad Carolum Regem, printed in Bibl. Patrum, is falſely by Sextus Senenſis and others, attributed to Calvin; tho' indeed their Names are one, by a Metatheſis and Change of the Letters. Whereas Copies of it, written above 500 Years ago, were to be ſeen in the Prince's Library at St. James's and elſewhere. St. Adhelm Biſhop of Sherburne has alſo incurred the Roman Cenſure; and the Summes of Richard Fitz-Rauf, Archbiſhop of Armagh, againſt the Armenians, with his other Treatiſes, are caution'd againſt, as printed Anno 1511, by Poſſevine; and in Biſhop Fiſher's Book de Fiducia Dei, the Papiſts, finding ſome Points againſt them, have pretended it was printed by ſome Heretic in his Name, and even by Calvin according to Gregory Capuchine. A ſilly ſhift; for the Book was printed at Cologn in 8vo 1556, ſhortly after his Death; and ſince then no ſuch Matter was ever heard, till of late Years. ‘"A very likely Matter (ſays our Author) that the Papiſts wou'd ſuffer ſuch a piece of Knavery to lie buried ſo long. Again, what reaſon have Proteſtants to counterfeit ſuch a Book in a Papiſt's Name? Seeing their Indices of Books forbidden, and to be purged, do furniſh us with a ſufficient Number in this kind; without any Labour of ours. So much the more are we kindly beholden unto them, firſt for ſending us unto the beſt Books, by their Catalogue of Books prohibited, and ſecondly, for directing us unto the beſt Places to be read in thoſe Books, by their Indices Expurgatorii."’ Nay, Gildas Sapiens was not ſo wiſe, as to ſee that his Works ſhou'd come to be cenſur'd at Rome, for otherwiſe he wou'd to be ſure have prevented them, and retracted his Opinion. Much leſs cou'd William of Occham's Dialogues, his Works of 90 Days, and his Writings againſt Pope John XXII. eſcape [207] the Catalogue of Books forbidden: Beſides ſome others o [...] our Countrymen in this Table alſo mentioned. At the End of which we have a little Summary of the Uſes thereof, under the Conſideration of what Popes, Patriarchs, Biſhops, Cardinals, Fathers, Saints, Martyrs, &c. Councils, Liturgies, Prayer-books, Bibles, &c. are cenſur'd therein; alſo by what degrees Books have been corrupted; with what Oppoſition; the Inquiſitors being ſtill at odds with us and themſelves; what Popiſh Authors, through all Ages, have maintained the Truth of our Religion; what Books and Editions are to be read by Proteſtants: laſtly, what is conſtantly denied by the Papiſts, That the Text of the Fathers Works is commanded to be purged in their ſeveral Indices Expurgatorii, and plainly proved in this Table, by the Mark of a Hand in the Margin. In this Table, our Author doubts not but many Writers have ſlipped his Pen, Wherein he deſired not Exactneſs, but to give you a Taſte only of that ſour Fruit, which they have grafted upon other Mens Stocks. He has cited nothing without a ſufficient Author or Authority. And as for the Books of Law, Phyſick, and the Arts, which the Papiſts have thus mangled and disfigured, they are reſerved for ſome other time, this Part ending at p. 102.

Part V. A Remedy againſt all Popiſh Corruptions. Herein the Author ſhews how vain it is to find out the Diſeaſes in Books, without we endeavour to find out the Remedies alſo. This laſt Part, containing 27 Pages, begins with an Account of the ſundry Ways how Books are depraved and corrupted, and three Ways propoſed for reforming the ſame. That the Diſcovery of falſe Treatiſes, in the Name of the Fathers, has in part been made by the Biſhop of Wincheſter, Dr. Reynolds, Abraham Scultetus, and eſpecially Maſter Robert Cooke of Leedes. How the Corruption of the true Fathers is to be known; and that thoſe Places purged by the Inquiſitors are to be reſtored as faſt by the Proteſtants. Of a Catechiſm to be framed for us out of their Writings: and how Papiſts are to be anſwered by Papiſts. The Collations of this kind by Mr. W. Craſhaw, of the Temple, commended. How the Romiſh Falſifications might be ſhortly diſcovered, by dividing the Examination among many Divines. The Profit of Collating printed Books, with the Indices Expurgatorii. Their late corrected Editions to be conſidered and ſuſpected. Of their pretended Diſcovery of loſt Writers in Caves, Mountains, [206] [...] [207] [...] [208] &c. The Popiſh Editions of the Fathers to be compared with ancient MSS. How the Fathers Works were corrupted before, and ſince Printing; the Ways of correcting them. Our Univerſities and private Libraries well ſtor'd with MSS. notwithſtanding the great Conſumption of them in England. An Exhortation to private Men not to monopolize, but communicate their MSS. ſeeing that how commendably ſoever they preſerve them, little Uſe can be made of them, nor their Authorities ſafely vouch'd, ſince they are not always to be ſeen, while ſuch Owners are living; and, when they die, may eaſily miſcarry, by falling into the Hands of ſuch as regard them not; by whom, as one merrily ſaid, Monyſcripts are more pored upon than Manuſcripts. That the Neglect of the Fathers has proceeded from the falſe Editions of them; and that there would be an End of Controverſy, if their Works were truly printed. An Objection from the divers Readings of ancient MSS. Another againſt the Antiquity and Integrity of Copies; with Anſwers. The Satisfaction of ſmall Differences in Copies. Our Engliſh MSS. highly eſteemed beyond Seas. Our Founders of Colleges careful to furniſh their Libraries with rare MSS. maintaining divers Scholars abroad, to compare, tranſcribe, or procure Originals. That Richard Dunelmenſis, Founder of Dureſme College, now called Trinity College, beſtowed many thouſand Pounds per Annum in Books, and moſt of his Books upon the Library he erected in that College, who, for his exceeding great Love of Learning, did well deſerve the Name of Philo-biblos: See his Book, De Amore Librorum, printed at Oxford 1598. De eo dictumerat, quod haberet plures Libros quam omnes Pontifices in Anglia. Which Title and Character, ſince his Time, is moſt juſtly to be given to Sir T. Bodley, whoſe great Munificence has far ſurpaſſed the Biſhop, having ſtored his Magazine, as our Author obſerves, with eleven or twelve thouſand Volumes; whereof the greateſt part are in Folio, in all Sciences and Languages, and frequented by Scholars of all Nations. Here follows the Confeſſion of his Adverſaries, Poſſivine and Coſterus, of the Goodneſs and Plenty of our Books; the Way of diſcerning corrected Copies, and to know if they be ancient or not. That thoſe which are written in a ſet Hand, with great Letters, or in the Lombard or Saxon Characters, are of great Antiquity; how far later MSS. to be eſteemed of. The Objection, that it is a tedious and needleſs Work to [209] collate the Fathers Works, with MSS. anſwered. The Benefit likely to ariſe of a general Collation. Commendations of Eraſmus, and wherein defective, in his Animadverſions upon the Fathers Works. That he gave the firſt Alarm of their barbarous corrupting the Fathers, for which his very Name is in Maledictione. Exhortation to our wealthy Stationers to print the Fathers Works; ſuch as Mr. Geo. Biſhop, Mr. Bonham Norton, and Mr. John Norton, who have been choſen Aldermen of London. That the Charge of Printers and Stationers ought to be well recompenſed. They are compared to our Merchants-Adventurers. Why, the Hazard being alike in moſt Books, they ſhould ſeek rather to deſerve well of the ancient Fathers. The Bible compared, reviſed, and printed this Year, 1611. St. Chryſoſtom's Works, with ſeveral other of the Greek Fathers, likely to be printed at the unſpeakable Charge of the learned and judicious Provoſt of Eton College, and Warden of Merton College in Oxford, Sir Henry Savile, well ſeen in the beſt Languages, and moſt of the Liberal Arts. The Latin Fathers, more urged in all Controverſies, ſhould be the ſooner correctly printed. The Collation and Reviſion of the Fathers Works, a good Inducement to the printing of them. The Uſe that is made of the MSS. indifferently, both by Proteſtants and Papiſts; whereof, tho' much remains to be ſpoken, our Author, like a weary Traveller, here takes up his reſt; which indeed he might well need, having gone through ſuch a Variety of Books, as this Work does manifeſt; and really held it, as Baronius pretended to do, a Religion, to ſay nothing which he could not prove, and to prove nothing but out of certain, known, and ſufficient Authors. At the End of his Advertiſement mentioned at the beginning, there is an Appendix, ſhewing firſt, how there are Scribes diligently employ'd in the Vatican Library, to tranſcribe Acts of the Councils, or Works of the Fathers; that they can imitate their Copies exactly; that it is feared they alter and change at the Pope's pleaſure; and that theſe Tranſcripts in time may be vouched for ancient MSS. And this is more to be feared, if there is an Index Expurgatorius for purging of MSS. as well as printed Books. Secondly, That the unknown Author of the Grounds of the Old Religion, and the New, ſo often mention'd in this Work, is now known to be one May, a Prieſt, a Man neither immodeſt nor unlearned, yet foully miſtaken in ſundry Points of his Anſwer to Mr. Craſhaw's firſt Tome of, [210] Romiſh Forgeries and Falſifications. What we have laſtly to obſerve, is, That at the End of the whole Book, there is a Table of the Authors mentioned in this Treatiſe, with the particular Editions made uſe of throughout the ſame.

XXXVI. The YOUNGER BROTHER'S APOLOGIE, or, a Father's Free Power diſputed, for the Diſpoſition of his Lands, or other his Fortunes, to his Son, Sons, or any one of them: As right Reaſon, the Laws of God and Nature, the Civil, Canon and Municipal Laws, of this Kingdom, do command. Quarto. Oxford, 1634. Pages 56.

THIS ſcarce Tract is dedicated by the Author to all Fathers, and Sons of worthy Families, whom Virtue, Birth, and Learning, have juſtly ſtiled Gentlemen. And in the ſaid Addreſs has theſe Aſſeverations; ‘"Not upon the leaſt Preſumption of a Self-ſufficiency to confront thereby any received Cuſtom (if any ſuch be) nor to diminiſh the natural Reverence due by younger Brothers to their Elder, nor to enkindle Emulation in Families, nor to innovate any thing to the Prejudice of public or private Quiet (which none I hope will be ſo ill-affected as to ſuppoſe) neither mine inoffenſive Zeal for younger Brothers, among who I am ranked one; nor the abſolute Conſent of Imperial and Eccleſiaſtical Laws, which I, having a little ſtudied, not a little reſpect; nor the particular Honour I bear to the Uſages in this Point of our ancient Britains, from whom I am deſcended; nor deſire to maintain and juſtify an Act in this kind, done by a Friend, whom I muſt ever reverence; nor yet the hope of bettering my private Fortunes, which moves Men much in theſe our Times, hath drawn me to this Undertaking: But principally the ſingular Reſpect, which, as a Patriot, I bear to the Glory and Good of Gentlemens Houſes, whoſe beſt Original, ſureſt Means of Maintainance, and principal Ornament, is Virtue, or Force of Mind; the want whereof is a common Cauſe of Ruin. The free Power therefore of you, who are [211] Fathers, is here in ſome ſpecial Caſes argued and defended, to give you occaſion thereby to conſider, with the clearer Eye-ſight, for the Eſtabliſhment and Continuance of Families. Here alſo the natural Rights of us that are Children, be ſo diſcourſed and diſcuſſed, as that we younger Brothers may have Cauſe and Courage to endeavour, by virtuous Means, to make ourſelves, without the leaſt wrong to any, capable, if need ſhall be, of the chiefeſt Uſes. And both and all, are ſo handled, as that no Offence can reaſonably ariſe in any reſpect, much leſs for that the whole is conceived and written in Nature only of an Eſſay or Probleme; to which I bind no Man to afford more Belief than himſelf hath liking of, being free to refute the whole, or any part, at his pleaſure, as he feels himſelf able or diſpoſed."’ In the Concluſion of this Epiſtle, the Author obſerves, that nothing in this Apology is defended but by Authority, Reaſon, and Example, nor any Perſon taxed, or particular perſonal Vices; nevertheleſs, if he has not performed as well as he deſires, or the Cauſe deſerves, he hopes, that for his good Intention he ſhall be conceived well of: and ſubſcribes the two Letters of his Name, J. A.

The Work is divided into ten Chapters, whereof the firſt ſhews the Occaſion of writing this Apology, to prove that a Father may, in ſome Caſes, make any of his Children his Heir, or freely diſpoſe his worldly Eſtate to which of his Sons he pleaſes, leaving to the reſt a Competency; and do an Act which may be juſt, according to the Law of God, of Nature, and of Nations. The 2d Chapter maintains, That the Grounds of all good Conſtitutions being in Nature, yet ſhe neither before nor after the Law of Propriety eſtabliſh'd, did command that all ſhould be left to any one more than another: herein is alſo ſhewn the happy Community of all things in the primitive Ages; and that hereditary Succeſſion or Title to Parents Lands or Goods, was not in uſe till Nature came to be depraved. 3. That the Breach of ſome written Laws of God, upon Warrant of the primary. Law of Nature, is without Sin; and that therefore there can be no ſuch Right in Primogeniture, which is not in the Father's Power to avoid, tho' there were a Precept to the contrary, as there is not. 4. That Nations beginning to deviſe ſundry Forms of ſettling Inheritances, the Romans eſpecially therein reſpected the free Power of Fathers; the Right of Children to their Fathers Eſtates, beginning only at [212] their Father's Death. 5. That the preſent Cuſtom of our Country, of giving all, or almoſt all, to the Eldeſt, was never ſo begun that it meant to exclude just Remedies for ſuch Evils, as ſhould grow out of the Abuſe of that Cuſtom, when it may make Fathers guilty of their Sons Faults, and of their Families Ruin. 6. That it is no Offence before God, for a Father, being Tenant in Fee-ſimple, to diſinherit the Eldeſt, or to parcel his Eſtate upon Cauſe; and that extream Vices of Heirs apparent, together with the fewer Means, which younger Brothers have now to live on than heretofore, crieth out againſt the contrary Opinion. 7. That Fathers, being Tenants in Fee-tail, may likewiſe without Scruple of Conſcience, diſcontinue the State-tail upon Cauſe, and deviſe the ſame at their reaſonable Pleaſure. 8. That Unthriftineſs is one known Name of many hidden Sins, and is alone a ſufficient Cauſe of Diſinheriſon, proved by the Law of God and Man, 9. The main Points of the Premiſes exemplified in divers particular Facts, as well of Princes as of private Perſons. 10. That the Law of natural Equity and Reaſon, confirm juſt Diſinheriſon; and that the riotous Lives of eldeſt Brothers deſerve that vehement Increpation, with which the Author cloſes up this Treatiſe*.

XXXVII. SCOT's Diſcovery of WITCHCRAFT: Proving the common Opinions of Witches contracting with Devils, Spirits, Familiars, and their Power to kill, torment, and conſume the Bodies of Men, Women, and Children, or other Creatures, by Diſeaſes or otherwiſe; their flying in the Air, &c. to be but imaginary, erroneous Conceptions, and Novelties. Wherein alſo the Practices of Witchmongers, Conjurers, Inchanters, Soothſayers; alſo the Deluſions of Aſtrology, Alchemy, Legerdemain, and many other things are opened, that have long lain hidden, tho' very neceſſary to be known, for the undeceiving of Judges, Juſtices and Juries; and for the Preſervation of poor People, &c. With a Treatiſe alſo upon the Nature, &c. of Spirits and Devils, &c. Quarto, 1651. Pages 401. beſides Tables, &c.

[213]

THIS curious Book ſo elaborately written upon theſe uncommon Subjects, and firſt publiſhed by Reginald Scot, Eſq in 1584, as appears alſo in the Title-Page of this Edition, had for a while a very good EfFect upon the [214] Kingdom, in purging thoſe Dregs of Superſtition, to which it ſeems naturally ſubject, by the Paroxyſms into which it has ſo frequently relapſed. James Ady, M. A. in his Perfect Diſcovery of Witches, publiſhed in 4to. ten Years after this Edition of Mr. Scot's Book now before us, tells us, ‘"It did for ſome time take great Impreſſion in the Magiſtracy, and alſo in the Clergy; but ſince that time, England hath ſhamefully fall'n from the Truth, which they begun to receive."’ Further, it appears in the third Book of this Mr. Ady's Diſcovery, which detects the Vanity of ſome Engliſh Writers concerning Witches, and principally that Dialogue of King James's, called Demonologie, firſt printed at Edinburgh, 4to. 1597. that the ſaid King has, in the Preface thereof, chiefly objected to this Work of Scot's; wherefore, the Reader might expect in the Body of his Majeſty's Pamphlet, to find our Author notably confuted; but in reading that Dialogue, he ſhall not find one thing or other anſwered, but only a bare Affirmation of ſuch Tenets, without Ground, or Warrant of Scripture, which were confuted by Scot; as the Tenets of Bodin, Hyperius, Hemingius, and other Popiſh Writers; which might yet bring a Diſcredit upon Scot's Book, in thoſe Underſtandings which are to be dazled by Names that glare with great Titles or Dignities; but with diſcerning and unbiaſs'd Judges, an Antagoniſt of ſuch Character and ſuch Conduct, will but raiſe the Credit of the Works he oppoſes. All we have further to premiſe of our Author, is from A. Wood, who informs us, That he was the younger Son of Sir John Scot of Scots-Hall, near Smeeth in Kent; that he was bred at Oxford, and ‘"gave himſelf up ſolely to ſolid Reading; to the Peruſal of obſcure Authors, that had, by the generality of Scholars, been neglected."’ And at Times of leiſure, to Husbandry and Gardening, as may appear from his Perfect Platform of a Hop-Garden, which was the firſt Treatiſe that had been written upon this Subject, and from this Diſcovery of Witchcraft, which alſo he ſeems to have [215] firſt detected, publickly at leaſt, in our Nation. In both ‘"our Author plainly appears to have been well verſed in many choice Books, and that his ſearch into them was ſo profound, that nothing ſlipt his Pen which might make for his Purpoſe."’

As to this Work, now under our Inſpection, there are Three ingenious Epiſtles, publiſh'd by our Author before it. Two of them, to Sir Roger Manwood, Lord Chief Baron of the Exchequer, and to Sir Thomas Scot; and the third, to Dr. Coldwell, Dean of Rocheſter, and Dr. Readman, Archdeacon of Canterbury. Then follows his Epiſtle to the Reader; in which he ſolemnly profeſſes, his Drift in this Undertaking was, That the Power and Glory of God ſhou'd not be abridg'd or abaſed; that Religion might ſtand without the Trumpery of ſuch Impoſtures; and that Compaſſion might be uſed towards thoſe poor ignorant Souls, who are commonly accuſed, and ſometimes credulouſly confeſs themſelves guilty of Witchcraft. At the End of this Epiſtle, there is a Table of between two and three Hundred Authors uſed in the enſuing Work, which is divided into Sixteen Books, and they into many Chapters; beginning with an Impeachment of the Power of Witches in Meteors, and Elementary bodies, tending to the Rebuke of ſuch as attribute too much unto them. So proceeds in the next Chapter, to the Inconvenience growing by Men's Credulity herein, and a Reproof of ſome Churchmen inclined to the common Opinion of Witches Omnipotency, with a familiar Example thereof, in the Story of Margaret Simons of Brenchley in Kent, who being accuſed of Witchcraft, by John Ferral Vicar of that Pariſh, was arraign'd in 1581 at Rocheſter; but one of the Jury being wiſer than the reſt, ſhe was acquitted. Next we have a Deſcription of thoſe who are called Witches, the Motives to their being thought and thinking themſelves Witches. What miraculous Acts are imputed to them, by Witchmongers, Papiſts and Poets. Confutations of the Opinion of Witchcraft, and the Sin of repairing to Witches for help; how their Name became ſo famous, and how variouſly People think of them. Cauſes why Witches themſelves, as well as others, believe they can work Impoſſibilities, with Anſwers to certain Objections, where alſo their Puniſhment by Law is touch'd, and ſome late credulous Publications reflected on. This Book concludes with an Arraignment of the Cruelties practis [...]d upon old Women in all [216] Ages, ſince the Commencement of Popery, by Witchmongers and Inquiſitors.

The Second Book ſhews what infamous Witneſſes are allowed to give Evidence againſt reputed Witches, and upon what hard Conditions to be challeng'd; as James Sprenger, and Henry Inſtitor, from whom Bodin, and other Champions of Witchmongers receive their Light, allow. Next follows, the Order of their Examination, with an Account of the Scottiſh Cuſtoms of accuſing Witches, and King Childebert's cruel Device. Matters of Evidence againſt them. Their Confeſſions. Preſumptions whereby they are condemned. Interrogatories by the Inquiſitors. Their ſuperſtitious Trial of Tears; their Cautions and Tortures to procure Confeſſion. The fifteen Crimes laid to their charge; refuted. Cornelius Agrippa's Pleadings for an old Woman condemn'd of Witchcraft. That it is no wonder Witches condemn themſelves, thro' the Barbarities uſed in extorting their Confeſſions.

The Third Book lays open the Bargains charged upon theſe reputed Witches with the Devil, by ſeveral Popiſh Witchmongers here mention'd; with the Order of their Homage to the Devil: Their Songs, Dances, Excourſes, &c. Their Summons to appear before the Devil; riding in the Air, Conferences, Supplies, Sacrifices, &c. That there can be no real League made with the Devil, with the weak Proofs of the Adverſaries for the ſame. Of the private League with the Devil. Bodin's fabulous Miracle of the French Lady, tranſported from Lions to Lorrain by an Ointment. A Diſproof of their Aſſemblies and their Bargains. A Confutation of the Objection concerning Witches Confeſſions. What folly it were for Witches to undergo ſuch deſperate Peril and intolerable Tortures for the little Gain and great Diſappointments they meet with; and how it comes to paſs they are overthrown by their Confeſſions. How Melancholy abuſes old Women, and the Effects thereof in ſundry Examples. That voluntary Confeſſions may be untruly made, tho' to the undoing of the Confeſſors, and of the ſtrange Operation of Melancholy, proved by a late Inſtance, in the ſtory, of Ade Davie of Sellenge in Kent. Other ſtrange Effects of Melancholy; that it frequently abounds in old Women, and that their Confeſſions are not to be credited. Confutations of their Confeſſions, concerning their League, and cauſing of Tempeſts. What wou'd be the Conſequence if their Confeſſions were true. Examples [217] of credulous People, who uſed Witches in the Wars. Of the Eye-biting Witches in Ireland; of thoſe pretended to ryme Man or Beaſt to death; and of inchanted Archers, particularly a poor Fellow at Malling in Kent, who by one of Queen Mary's Juſtices was puniſh'd, for ſhooting with Flies, or Familiars, or inchanted Arrows, becauſe he cou'd win two or three Shillings a-day at the Butts. Authorities condemning the Confeſſions of Witchcraft, with the Attempts of a Popiſh Doctor to diſprove the ſame. The Reaſons alſo of Witchmongers, to prove the Wonder-Workings of theſe old Women: Bodin's Tale of the Frieſeland Prieſt tranſported; and the further Illuſions of melancholy Imaginations. Of the Sufficiency of Witches Confeſſions in Law to take away Life, with the Decrees of Divines and Councils in the Caſe. Anſwers to the four Capital Crimes objected againſt Witches. The Author's Requeſt that his chaſte Readers wou'd overlook Eight Chapters in the following Book, reciting ſome lewd Feats aſcribed to Witches by Doctors of Popiſh Divinity; with his Apology for the ſame, as neceſſary to be detected.

The Fourth Book expoſes the preſumptuous Opinions of Witchmongers, in aſcribing the ſuperior Power to evil Spirits, of framing themſelves in more excellent ſort than God has made us; with their abſurd Aſſertions of the incongruous Conjunctions of Witches with Incubus; that ſince the Year 1400, they have conſented willingly to the Carnal Embraces of this Diabolical Phantom, and that many Witches burn'd at Ravenſpurge, confeſſed ſuch Carnal Knowledge for many Years together; with many other Tenets of the ſaid unaccountable Intercourſe, moſt groſſly unphiloſophical, and improbable to have met with the Reception they have done among the moſt Ignorant; ſuch as the Devil's viſible Dealings with Women in this kind, the Power of Witches to obſtruct Generation, and their ſupernaturally depriving Men of the Paris thereof. The Legend of St. Sylvanus perſonated by Incubus, and of St. Chriſtina, who charitably ſupplying the Place of a Female oppreſs'd with one, was ſhrewdly accloy'd: Alſo another ridiculous Legend of St. Bernard, with the Tradition of yellow-hair'd Maids being moſt encumber'd with Incubus; and the bewitchery of married Men, to uſe other Mens Wives inſtead of their own: how to procure the diſſolving of bewitched Love, and enforce Men to love old Hags; with the relation of a lewd Trick of a Prieſt in Gelderland. Inſtances [218] of divers Saints, very letcherouſly diſpoſed and miraculouſly render'd chaſte. A recital of certain Popiſh and Magical Cures for thoſe who are bewitch'd in their Privities, among which we have the wiſe diſtinction of Hoſtienſis, between Frigidity and Witchcraft; alſo Sir Thomas More's Receipt to procure Generation mention'd, but not recited even in Latin, as the former is; being too groſs in our Author's mind for Repetition. This Chapter concludes with the pious Offering made by Katharine Loe, of a waxen Reſemblance of the Parts affected in her impotent Husband, at the Altar of St. Anthony for his Recovery. After theſe, and the Narrative of another Cure performed on a Hag-ridden Maſs-Prieſt, from the Account of Jaſon Pratenſis; This Book concludes with a Confutation of theſe Follies touching Incubus and Succubus, ſhewing them to be nothing but Popiſh Impoſture and Knavery, to cover the ſhameful Debaucheries of the Eccleſiaſticks and their Concubines: That Robin Goodfellow was nothing but a luſty coſening Frier; and that there can be no Carnal Copulation with Spirits, much leſs any Offspring therefrom, whatever Hyperius, and other ſuch Deceivers write of our Merlin: That Incubus is a natural Diſeaſe, and of the Remedies preſcribed for the ſame; with the Deriſion which Chaucer, who had ſeen through theſe Popiſh Abominations, long ſince made of the Prieſts, under that Name, quoted from his own Verſes in the Wife of Bath's Tale.

The Fifth Book lays open and confutes with many Arguments and Authorities, the abſurd Accounts of Transformations by Sorcery, into Wolves, Aſſes, Cats, &c. Anſwers the Witchmongers Objections concerning Nebuchadnezzar, with their Error relating to Lycanthropia; and anſwers alſo their Arguments for Tranſportation, and from the Calamities of Job; concluding with the ſeveral ſorts of Witches mention'd in the Scriptures, and how the word Witch is there apply'd.

The Sixth Book begins with an Expoſition of the Hebrew Word Chaſaph, wherein is anſwer'd that Objection in Exodus, Thou ſhalt not ſuffer a Witch to live; alſo of Simon Magus in Acts 8. An Explanation alſo of that Place in Deuteronomy, wherein are recited all kind of Witches, with a Confutation of their Opinions, who hold they can work ſuch Miracles, as are imputed to them. Obſervations upon the Uſe of Poiſon, by Women in all Ages more than Men. Of divers Practitioners with Poiſon in many Countries, [219] called Veneficia. A great Objection anſwer'd concerning this kind of Witchcraft called Veneficium. What Confections uſed therein. Of Philtres, or Love-Potions, and the ſame confuted by Poets. Proofs that ſuch Potions rather promote Death tbro' their Venom, than Love by Art; with a recital of many ſimple Ingredients, on which this Power is impoſed. And this Chapter concludes, with Bodin's Charge of falſe Greek, and falſe Interpretation thereof, againſt John Wier, retorted upon himſelf.

The Seventh Book begins with explaining the Hebrew Word Ob in the Old Teſtament, tranſlated Pytho or Phyonicus Spiritus; which Hebrew Word ſignifying moſt properly a Bottle, is there uſed becauſe the Pythoniſts ſpake hollow, as in the bottom of their Bellies, whereby they are aptly in Latin call'd Ventriloqui; of which ſort was Elizabeth Barton the Holy Maid of Kent, &c. by which Faculty they many times overthrow the good Fame of honeſt Perſons. But our Author paſſing over a hundred Coſenages he cou'd recite of this kind; does here give us a large and true Story of a Wench named Mildred Norrington, practiſing her diabolical Witchcraft by this Ventriloquy, Anno 1574, at Weſtwell in Kent, ſix Miles from his own Houſe; with the Account of her detection before two diſcreet Juſtices, named Thomas Wotton of Bocton Malherb, and George Darrel, Eſqs; Here, ſays our Author, compare this Wench with the Witch of Endor, and you ſhall ſee that both the Coſenages may be done by one Art. The Diſcovery alſo of other ſuch Deceivers, as Agnes Brigs, and Rachel Pinder of London, who diſgorged Pins, Clouts, &c. and the Dutchman at Maidſtone, named John Stiklebow, who was diſpoſſeſs'd of Ten Devils in 1572, according to the Pamphlet then printed. The Abuſes of Apollo's Oracle; the Apoſtle's miſtake of Spirits, with Arguments that they can aſſume no Shapes. Further of Apollo's Witches call'd Pythoniſts, and of Gregory's Letter to the Devil, with a Compariſon between the Idol of Apollo, and our Rood of Grace, thro' the help of little St. Rumbal at Boxly in Kent. How many learned Men have been deluded in their Writings upon this Subject of Spirits. More of the Witch of Endor, and that Samuel was not raiſed indeed; the Dotage of Bodin and other Papiſts herein, and that Souls cannot be raiſed by Witchcraft. That neither the Devil nor Samuel were raiſed; but that it was a mere Trick according to the Guiſe of our Pythoniſts. Anſwers to the Objections of our Witchmongers [220] in this Caſe. Expoſitions of the Places in Scripture, ſhewing how Saul was abuſed, and how it might all be wrought by Ventriloquy. With other Opinions produced and anſwer'd, tending to prove that our Miracles are commonly Knaveries, and eſpecially of the Prieſts; that ſince Luther's Time theſe Spirits, Hags, Fairies, Imps, Incubi, Robin Goodfellows, Men in the Oak, Puckles, Fire-drakes, Hobgoblins, Tom-thumbs, and all the reſt of this Black Brood of Bull-beggars, have much vaniſh'd and very little appear'd; and laſtly, that thoſe who will credit the Stories of Witches, muſt allow as much to their Power of working Miracles, as to that of Chriſt.

The Eighth Book ſhews us how Miracles, the Gift of Prophecy, and Oracles are ceaſed; with a recital of Plutarch's Tale, believed by many learned Men, of the Devil's Death; and another out of the Golden Legend of a godly Devil. The Judgment of the Fathers upon Oracles, and their Aboliſhment, with their Tranſplantation from Delphos to Rome; alſo where, when, and how the prieſtly Sorcerers wrought their Feats of old; and when they ceaſed in England.

The Ninth Book expounds the word Kaſam or Divination; proves from Scripture the Lawfulneſs of making Obſervations on the Weather; that of other Obſervations, ſome are Indifferent, ſome Ridiculous, and ſome Impious. Further of the Idol of Apollo, and the ancient Aruſpices. Of the Predictions of Soothſayers, and Lewd Prieſts, Aſtronomers, Phyſicians; and of Divine Prophecy. The diverſity of True Prophets; of Urim, and the Prophetical Uſe of the twelve Precious Stones therein; and of the Divine Voice called Echo. Of Prophecies Conditional: Whereof the Prophecies in the Old Teſtament do treat, and by whom they were publiſh'd, with ſome Anſwers againſt Witches ſupernatural Actions. Of the Mircales in the Old and New Teſtament, and that we are not now to expect any more ſuch.

The Tenth Book interprets the word Onen, and thereupon diſcourſes of divine, natural and caſual Dreams, with their Cauſes and Effects. The variance of old Writers touching Dreams. Againſt the Interpreters of Dreams, and that the Interpretation of them is ceaſed. Of Hemingius his diabolical Dreams, and that Witches nor any other can impoſe upon ſleeping Men what Cogitations they liſt. The Cauſe of Magical or rather frightful Dreams. How Men [221] have been deluded by Dreams to dig for Money, with the Order and Ceremony uſed therein; alſo an Account of Receipts for procuring pleaſant Dreams, and the difference between Morning and Midnight Dreams. Receipts of Unctions uſed for the Tranſportation of Witches; with a Confutation of theſe Follies, and of the Witches Aſſemblies and Banquets. That the Prophecies in the Old Teſtament were moſtly revealed in Dreams, and that ſuch Revelations are not now to be look'd for. Of ſome Dreams coming to paſs, others proving contrary, and Nebuchadnezzar's Rule to know a true Expoſitor of them.

The Eleventh Book begins with the Expoſition of Nahas, or the flying of Birds called Augury, ſo paſſes to the Jewiſh Sacrifice to Moloch, with an Argument againſt Purgatory. The Cannibal Cuſtom of the Popiſh Sacrifice in the Maſs. The Superſtition of the Heathens about Fire. Of the Roman Sacrifices, and their Eſteem of Augury. That the Practiſers of that Art were Coſeners. Of the Ceremonies thereunto belonging: Upon what Signs and Tokens they did prognoſticate. Obſervations on the Parts of Beaſts. A Confutation of Augury, Plato's Opinion thereof. Of contrary Events and falſe Predictions. The Coſenage of Sortilege, or Lotteries. Of the Cabaliſtical Art. Of the firſt Ordaining and Profanation of Sacrifices, and of the Pope's Corruption of Sacrifices. Of the Objects upon which the Augures exercis'd their Prognoſtications. Of the Diviſions in the Art, Perſons admittable, and other Superſtitions, eſpecially by the common People. The variance of old Writers upon this Art; wherefore it is ridiculous; derided by Cato, Ariſtotle, &c. Of the ſilly Diſtinctions made thereof. Of Figure-flingers, and the Uncertainty of their Art. The Sentence of Cornelius Agrippa againſt judicial Aſtrology. The Subtilties and Impieties thereof, with further Inſtances of the Deceits of theſe Genethliacs or Nativity-Caſters.

The Twelfth Book treats of Inchantments from the Hebrew Word Habar. In what Senſe Words may be allow'd as Charms. What is forbidden in Scripture concerning Witchcraft. The Superſtition of the Cabiliſts and Papiſts. The Offence of Charms, and what wou'd follow, if the Effects aſcribed to them were true. Why God forbade the practice of Witchcraft. The Abſurdity of the Law of the Twelve Tables, whereon their Eſtimation in miraculous Actions is grounded. An Inſtance of one arraign'd upon the Law of thoſe Tables; where the ſaid Law is proved ridiculous. [222] Laws for the Puniſhment of Witches that work Miracles, and of Popiſh Laws againſt them. A Recital of the Poetical Authorities alledg'd by Witchmongers for the Proof of Witches. A Collection of Popiſh Tablets, Amulets, Charms, Agnus Dei, &c. againſt Diſeaſes, Caſualties, &c. How to make Holy Water, with ſeveral other Receipts, and the Opinion of Ferrarius touching them: Of Homerical Medicines, and ſeveral other Popiſh Charms for Man and Beaſt, eſpecially for the Duke of Alva's Horſe, which was conſecrated or canoniz'd in the Low Countries, at the ſolemn Maſs; wherein the Pope's Bull and his Charm was publiſh'd, the Duke ſitting as Viceroy with his conſecrated Standard in his Hand, till the Solemnity was over. Several Accounts of the charming of Serpents, Snakes, &c. Mahomet's Pidgeon, the tractable Aſs at Memphis, with many other Inſtances of Charms, particularly with waxen Images; whereby the Impoſtures of Mother Baker, a famous Kentiſh Witch, were diſcover'd. Several Receipts uſed of old, to make Charms, as St. Adelbert's againſt Thieves, the Pope's Incantation in 1568, to the Spaniards for Succeſs in the Low-Country Wars, &c. ending with a Confutation of the Virtues falſely aſcribed to ſuch Charms and Amulets, by ancient Writers.

The Thirteenth Book opens with explaining the Hebrew Word Hartumim or Natural Magic, and ſhews how the Antients travell'd for the Knowledge thereof. Of Solomon's Knowledge therein, the diſtinction thereof, and why it is condemn'd for Witchcraft. That this Study teacheth only the Works of Nature: What wonderful Effects are diſcover'd by it in Waters, Precious Stones, with the Uſe thereof by Magicians; the Sympathy and Antipathy of Natural and Elementary Bodies, particularly of two notorious Wonders not marvell'd at. The one a Piece of Earth which would fly the hot Steel with great ſwiftneſs, and purſue Gold as faſt, with other Properties more incredible; the other a ſtrange Stone which wou'd ſhine bright in the Dark, always labour'd to aſcend, &c. But the former of theſe being found to ſignify a Man, the latter a Fire; our Author applies the manner of Expreſſion to that often uſed in Magic, which ſometimes conſiſts as well in the deceit of Words as ſlight of Hand; and this introduces the Illuſions and Confederacies here diſplay'd in the Art of Legerdemain. Here he obſerves the Admiration there was at Brandon the Juggler, who by the Wounds and Words he uſed upon the Picture of a Dove painted on the Wall, promiſed the King before [223] whom he performed, perhaps Edward VI. it being ſtill in remembrance, that a live Dove then on the Houſe-Top ſhould fall down dead; which it did accordingly: The Juggler was forbidden the Practice of this Feat, as if he could murder any body ſo in Effigie, tho' the Myſtery being here revealed, he appeared not to have more dangerous Power than any other body. We have here alſo many other of the Juggler's Tricks recited and revealed. Obſervations on Pharaoh's Magicians, a Compariſon between them and our Witches. Many ſtrange Experiments by Glaſſes, and the perſpective Art. Remarks on the Feats of Jannes and Jambres; alſo on Balaam's Aſs. But the Trick which was called the Decollation of John Baptiſt, perform'd by one Kingsfield, at London, in 1582, was long practiſed with great Surprize to the Spectators; as the League of Stephen Taylor and one Pope, the one to ſteal Horſes, and the other to diſcover them, ſeems to have been with Profit to the Confederates. But the moſt dexterous Fellow for Legerdemain, in our Author's Time, was John Cautares of St. Martin's; not that himſelf was a mean Artiſt: for ſays he, ‘"If Time, Place, and Occaſion ſerve, I can ſhew ſo much herein, that, I am ſure, Bodin, Spinaeus, and Vairus would ſwear I were a Witch, and had a familiar Devil at Commandment: But truly my Study and Travel herein, hath only been employed to the end I might prove them Fools, and find out the Fraud of them that make them Fools, as whereby they may become wiſer, and God may have that which to him belongeth."’ With this, and the Patters or Prints, of ſome juggling Inſtruments before-mentioned, our Author ends this Chapter.

The Fourteenth Book treats of the Craft of Alchemy, recites Chaucer's Character and Opinion of Alchemiſts, and their Terms of Art. Their Pretenſions by the Philoſophers Stone and Waters, with other Characters, and Detections of them, by Chaucer in his Chanon's Yeoman's Tale. Several Stories of Perſons couſened by Alchemiſts, among the reſt, that of Eraſmus in his Colloquies. The Opinion of ſome learned Men touching the Folly of Alchemy, as Avicenna, Petrarch, &c. That vain and deceitful Hope is the Cauſe of Deluſion hereby, ending with the Story of the Courtier, who gave King Lewis XI. a fine Horſe, becauſe his Majeſty had given a Peaſant (who had often entertained him in his Hunting Diverſions) a thouſand [224] Crowns for a Turnip; in hopes of a proportionable Reward, but received the Countryman's Preſent for his own.

The fifteenth Book having ſhewn the Significations of the Word Jidoni, a ſort of Conjurers, whom our Author calls No ſmall Fools, as not going to work with a Toad or a Cat, as Witches do, but with a kind of Majeſty call up by Name, and have at Command, no leſs than ſeventy-nine principal and princely Devils, who have under them, as their Miniſters, many Legions of petty Devils: and we have here a Liſt of all their Names, with an Account of their Shapes, Powers, Government, their ſeveral Segniories, and Degrees: The Work of one T. R. in 1570. Whereunto is joined, the Hours wherein it is pretended, that the principal Devils may be bound or raiſed, and reſtrained from doing hurt. After which follows a Confutation of the manifold Vanities in theſe Accounts, and of the Predictions derived from the planetary Aſpects and Motions; whereof we have here ſeveral Tables, with their Characters. The Forms used in the pretended Conjurations of the Spirits of dead Perſons, and for finding hidden Treaſures. The Conjuration of the three Fairy Siſters for the Ring of Inviſibility, and for the encloſing of Spirits in a Cryſtal Stone; with Types or Figures explaining the ſame. The Receipt for making of Holy-water; Compacts with departing Perſons to appear, and be bound, &c. Then follows a Confutation of this kind of Conjuration of raiſing, binding, and diſmiſſing of the Devil, going inviſible, &c. into which the Aſſaſſine was deluded, who murdered the Prince of Orange, 1582. Alſo an Obſervation, that the chief Authors among us of thoſe Conjurations were T. R. before-mentioned, and John Cokers. A Compariſon between Popiſh Exorciſts and Conjurers. The Detection of a late couſening Conjuration practiſed at Orleans by the Franciſcans. Who may be Conjurers in the Romiſh Church, beſides Prieſts; a ridiculous Definition of Superſtition. Why there were no Conjurers in the Primitive Church; and that it is more difficult to conjure the Devil out of one bewitched, than one poſſeſſed; with many other abſurd Diſtinctions. Some Conjurations taken out of the Pontifical and out of the Miſſal. The Rules of Popiſh Exorciſts, and other Conjurers, all one; and how St. Martin conjured the Devil. That it is a ſhame for Papiſts to believe other Conjurers Doings, their own being of ſo little force; with Hippocrates's Opinion of the Art. How Conjurers have beguiled [225] Witches. What Books they carry about to procure Credit-Wicked Aſſertions by the Ancients againſt Moſes and Joſeph. All magical Arts confuted, by an Argument concerning Nero. What Cornelius Agrippa and Carolus Gallus have left written thereof, and proved by Experience. Of Solomon's Conjurations from Joſephus, P. Lombard, Gratian, Durandus, and the Leſſons of the Romiſh Church upon St. Margaret's Day. Thoſe Leſſons tranſlated, and a ridiculous Story of that St. Margaret cited. Some other Popiſh Miracles. Of Viſions, Noiſes, Apparitions and imagin'd Sounds; wandering Souls, and other Illuſions, with a Confutation thereof. Cardan's Opinion of ſtrange Noiſes; how counterfeit Viſions grow into Credit. Of Boniface his Knavery in counterfeiting a Voice from Heaven, by which he got the Popedom of his ſilly Predeceſſor Coeleſtinus. Of Echos, and Cardan's odd Story or a Man who was near being drowned by one; and of the ſtrange Noiſe at Wincheſter, which was ſo much wondered at about 1569, tho' indeed a meer natural Noiſe engendered by the Wind and other concurring Cauſes. Of Theurgy, or working by good Angels, with the appendent Arts, and the Rejection thereof, as altogether papiſtical and ſuperſtitious; more particularly expoſed in a Letter here recited, which was ſent to our Author by T. E. Maſter of Arts, Practiſer both of Phyſick, and alſo, in times paſt, of certain vain Sciences, for which he was now, 1582, in Priſon, and condemned to die. In this Letter, it is confeſſed by the Writer of it, that in twenty-ſix Years practice of theſe ſecret Arts, and converſe with thoſe moſt familiar in them, he could meet with nothing true as pretended, or ſupernatural Performance, but that it was all Impoſture and Deluſion; and recommends a Book written in the old Saxon Tongue, by one Sir John Malborne, a Divine of Oxenford, three hundred Years paſt, detecting the Devices of Conjuration, or opening all the Illuſions and Inventions of theſe Arts and Sciences; which Book this Letter-writer had left with the Parſon of Slangham in Suſſex; where, he tells our Author, if he would ſend for it in his Name, he might have it: But tho' he did ſend, and uſed the Intereſt of Men of Worſhip and Credit, particularly of the Knight of the Shire, who would have paſſed his word for the Reſtitution, yet ſuch was the Folly and Superſtition of this Parſon, that he would not lend it for our Author's Peruſal. But, in truth, he had ſo induſtriouſly ſtored himſelf with other Authorities and Intelligences, [226] that he appears to have little needed thoſe which this Book might have afforded; inſomuch, that whatever lay clouded or ſhadowed in the Face of Truth, by this frightful Grey-Beard of Superſtition, ſeems here diſcovered by the Light of thoſe Authorities, and that of Reaſon, according to this ryming old Verſe;

Quicquid Nix celat, Solis calor omne revelat.

The ſixteenth Book contains a Concluſion, in manner of an Epilogue, repeating many of the former Abſurdities of Witchmongers, with Confutations thereof, and the Authorities of James Sprenger and Henry Inſtitor, Inquiſitors and Compilers of Malleus Maleficarum; more particularly by what means the Vulgar have been brought to believe in Witches; with a Definition and Deſcription of Witchcraft. Reaſons to prove that their Charms, Characters, &c. are all Fables, and that thoſe who uſe, them are all Cheats; and from the Confeſſions of the moſt notorious among them, more eſpecially Mother Bungie, who, in divers Books, ſet out with Authority, is regiſtered and chronicled, by the Name of the Great Witch of Rocheſter; who, on her Death-bed, confeſſed, That her Cunning conſiſted only in deluding and deceiving the People with ſome little Skill in Phyſick, and the Aſſiſtance of a Friend, named Heron, which was all the Spirit or Devil ſhe had, whatever the World had been impoſed on to believe. Further Detections of theſe Knaveries in one ſo bewitched, that he could read no Scripture but canonical, and a Devil that could ſpeak no Latin. Of the Divination by the Sieve and Sheers, and by the Book and Key: Hemingius his Opinion thereof confuted, and many other juggling Deluſions. The Conſequences of believing in the Devil's Transformation, or aſſuming of different Shapes, exemplified in the Instances of Chriſt's Argument to Thomas; the Inhabitant of Tigurie, appearing to be in wicked Dealings with a Mare, as Lavater records; and the Story of Queen Cunegunda from Crantzius, with her Purgation by the Fiery Ordeal, or Candentis Ferri. After another idle Story expos'd, of the Devil preaching holy Doctrine, in the ſhape of a Prieſt, and Arguments to ſhew what a ſhame it is, after Confutation of the greater Witchcratfs, for any Man to give credit to the leſſer Points thereof, we have a general Concluſion againſt thoſe whom this Book concerns; which, with two or three Chapters upon natural Witchcraft, or Faſcination, bewitching Eyes for Hatred and for Love, concludes the whole ſixteen Book.

[227]Then follows a Diſcourſe upon Devils or Spirits; and firſt of Philoſophers Opinions; alſo the Manner of their reaſoning hereupon, and the ſame confuted. Herein the Author proceeds to ſhew how unſatisfactorily all Authors have written upon this Subject; particularly Pſellus, whoſe abſurd Aſſertions are here expoſed; as alſo Cardan's about his Father's Familiar Devil. Plato's Opinion of Spirits, and of Socrates's familiar Devil. The nine Orders of Spirits and Angels, according to Plato and Dionyſius. The meaning of Archangel, according to Mr. Deering, our Author's Kinſman, in his Lecture upon the Hebrews. The Commencement of Devils fondly gathered out of the 14th of Iſaiah. Of Lucifer and his Fall; the Opinion of the Cabaliſts, Talmudiſts and Schoolmen, of the Creation of Angels. The Contention between the Greek and Latin Church about the Fall; and among the Papiſts. Enquiries where the Battle was fought between Michael and Lucifer, how long it continued, and what their Forces. Other fond Opinions about the fallen Angels, particularly among the Rabbins, Reaſons againſt the Devil's Uglineſs. That the Devil's Aſſaults are ſpiritual, and how groſſly ſome underſtand the Scriptures herein. The Equivocation of the word Spirit, and how diverſely taken in the Scriptures. Of Chriſt's healing the Blind, and of thoſe poſſeſſed with Devils in the Goſpel, or Lunacy, and other Diſeaſes. How the word Devil is to be underſtood, both in the ſingular and plural Number. The Variation of Authors about Spirits and Souls. Popiſh Opinions of Spirits; of Day-devils, and Night-devils. That the Devils mentioned in Scripture, have their Nature and Qualities in their Names, here mentioned and interpreted. The Idols or Gods of the Gentiles diſtinguiſhed. Their Lares, Larvae, Manes, Daemones, and Virunculi Terrei, &c. ſuch as was Robin Godfellow in England, who would ſupply the Office of Servants, ſpecially of Maids; and Hudgin, a very familiar and ſociable Hobgoblin in Germany, ſo called becauſe he always wore a Cap or Hood; therefore our Author thinks him a kind of Robin Hood; and that our Fryar Ruſh was altogether ſuch another Fellow, brought up in the ſame School, the Kitchen, inſomuch as the ſelf-ſame Tale is written of one as the other, about the Scullion ſaid to have been ſlain, &c for the reading whereof, we are referred to Friar Ruſh's Story, or elſe to John Wierus, De praeſtigiis Daemonum. Further of the Romans chief Gods, called Dii ſelecti; the various Gods in other Countries; of [228] Popiſh provincial Gods, as St. George, St. Andrew, &c. A Compariſon between them and Heathen Gods, where it appears we have had as great Traitors, as great Whores, as great Quacks and Impoſtors, among our ſanctified and canonized Tribe, as the beſt of them. And whereas our ancient Saints were Patrons only over ſome one Province of Health, or had Power to cure only one Diſeaſe, nothing comes amiſs to our Moderns thro' the Omnipotency of Witchcraft, yea greater Matters aſcribed to their Powers, than to all other Saints; witneſs S. Mother Bongie, S. Mother Paine, S. Feats, S. Mother Still, S. Mother Dutton, S. Kytrell, S. Urſula Kemp, S. Mother Newman, S. Doctor Heron, S. Roſimund, with divers more, who deſerve to be regiſtered in the Pope's Kalendar, or the Devil's Rubric. Then follows a Compariſon between the Heathens and the Papiſts, touching their Excuſes for Idolatry. The Idolatry of the Council of Trent. A notable Story of a Hangman arraign'd, after he was dead and buried, taken from our Lady's Roſary; with a Confutation thereof, and ſeveral other Tales. Of Moſes and Elias appearing in Mount Tabor. A Confutation of aſſuming Bodies, and of the Serpent tempting Eve. Expoſition of the Curſe rehearſed, Gen. 3. John Calvin's Opinion of the Devil. Our Author's Opinion of the Nature of Spirits, and of the Devil, with his Properties. Againſt Witchmongers, and their idle Opinions of Corporal Devils, and particularly againſt Brian Darcie's Diſtinction of Spirits, and the Books publiſhed by W. W. and Richard Gallis of Windſor. Then comes the Concluſion, wherein the Spirit of Spirits is treated of, by the Illumination whereof, all Spirits are to be tried; with a Confutation of the Pneumatomachi, denying the Divinity thereof; which, with a Summary of the Chapters, concludes the whole Book.

XXXVIII. The VALE-ROYAL of ENGLAND: or, The County Palatine of CHESTER Illuſtrated; wherein is contained a Geographical and Hiſtorical Deſcription of that famous County, with all its Hundreds, Seats, Rivers, Towns, Caſtles, &c. Adorned with Maps and Proſpects, with the Coats of Arms belonging to every Family. Performed by W. SMITH and W. WEBB, Gentlemen: Publiſhed by Mr. DANIEL KING. To which is annexed, a Chronology of all its Rulers and Governors, in Church and State. Alſo an excellent Diyſcourſe of the Iſle of MAN. Fol. 1656*.

[229]

THIS Collection is dedicated by the ſaid Daniel King to the Worſhipful Sir Orlando Bridgman. Then follows a Letter to the Editor, by his Couſin John King, encouraging the Publication in hand thro' the Merits of his [230] Labours therein. After which, we have Verſes in Latin and Engliſh, upon the ſame, and another Letter to him, by his Friend Thomas Brown. In his Preface to the Reader, we learn, that the firſt Part of this Volume was the Work of William Smith, long ſince Rouge-dragon, Purſuivant at Arms, and communicated to him by Mr. Ranulph Crew, Grandſon to the Lord Chief Juſtice Crew, in whoſe hands the Copy was left. The ſecond, was the Work of Mr. William Webb, heretofore a Clerk in the Mayor's Court at Chester; and this was imparted by that great Lover of Antiquities, Sir Simon Archer of Tanworth in Warwickſhire. Both theſe Pieces relate purely to the County Palatine of Cheſter. The third, touching the Iſle of Man, was written by Mr. James Chaloner, whoſe Abilities in hiſtorical Matters, the Work itſelf will ſpeak. To all which are added by this Publiſher, ſeveral Proſpects and other Pieces of Sculpture, for the better Ornament of the whole; as alſo, thro' the help of ſome that were Well-wiſhers thereto, A Tranſlation of divers Foundation-Charters, with other things of good Note. Then follows this Remark, ‘"That there is no County in England more famous for a long-continued Succeſſion of ancient Gentry than this of Cheſter, will not be denied, nor any that can afford Materials with ſo little Trouble and Charge, for the ſetting forth their Deſcents and memorable Imployments, inſomuch as the Subſtance of all public Records meerly relating thereto, for almoſt 400 Years, are carefully preſerved in the Caſtle at Cheſter; and that the private Evidences concerning the particular Families of that County, are, by reaſon of their long Duration, leſs diſperſed than thoſe of many others be thro' the great and frequent Changes that have befallen them in moſt Places."’ But our Publiſher, apprehenſive, belike, that his Authors, however they may have preſerved many worthy Memorials, had not made all the Advantage they might have done of thoſe Records, ‘"hopes therefore, that theſe Eſſays of the Perſons [231] above-mentioned, now coming to the View of the World, will for the Reaſons before expreſs'd, conſidering the Worthineſs of the Subject, ſtir up ſuch whoſe greater Abilities may, by a more exact Survey and Search into the Antiquities of this Shire, contribute further to its Honour, by reſtoring to Light its ancient Glory, for the more ample Content of all Perſons concerned therein, and their own laſting Memory."’

After this Preface, we have the Publiſher's Map of the County Palatine of Cheſter, which Mr. Randolph Crew had drawn with a Pen. Then begins the Work under the Title of, The Vale Royal of England, with a Catalogue of the Kings of Mercia, or March; which Kingdom in the Saxon Heptarchy reached from London to the River of Marſey, which parts Cheſhire from Lancaſhire, containing ſeventeen Counties, and Part of two more. This Catalogue contains 22 Kings, beginning Anno 5 [...]5 with Crida, deſcended from Woden, and ending in 886, with Ceolwolph. Next we have an Account, gather'd, as the former ſeems to have been, from Fox, Holinſhed, Llhuyd, Camden, &c. of the Dukes and Earls of March, before the Conqueſt, who were alſo Palatines of Cheſter; for that it was a County Palatine before the Conqueſt, appears in the Supplication here exhibited to King Henry VI. by the Inhabitants thereof; and alſo that they were, among other Privileges, exempted from the granting of Subſidies, appears by that King's Anſwer thereunto. Then we have a Confirmation of the Liberties of the County Palatine by Queen Elizabeth, 1568, with the Opinions of the Judges, Dier, Weſton, Harper, and Carns, concerning the Juriſdiction and Liberties of the ſaid County. Here we enter upon a particular Deſcription of the County; its Length about 44 Miles; Breadth about 25, and Compaſs 112 Miles; Number of Market-Towns 11; Pariſh Churches 87; Longitude 17 Deg. 30 Min. and Latitude 53 Deg. 30 Min. with the reaſon, from its low Situation, of its being named the Vale-Royal, by King Edward I. when he founded an Abbey in the midſt of the Shire. So we proceed to the Temperament of the Air, the Fertility and Products of the Soil, among which the Salt-Wells are not forgot; laſtly of their Buildings, the Diſpoſition of their People, and their Manner of Houſe-keeping. Hence we paſs to the Waters and their Courſes, beginning with the River Dee; ſo of the Marſey, the Weaver, the Dane, Bollin, Peever, Wheelock, [232] Taume, and the Goit; with others mentioned by John Leland, and W. Harriſon. Thus we come to the Particularities of Cheſhire, that is, the Diviſions or Hundreds, into which the County is diſtinguiſhed, and they are ſeven. Of Weral, the firſt here mentioned, we have a Deſcription from Leland, and of Helbrie Iſland: Then follow the Names of all the Villages and Townſhips in this Hundred. So we go on to Broxton, with a Liſt of all the Townſhips therein; the like of Nantwich, Edsbury, Northwich, Bulkley, and Maxfield. Here we have a brief Account of the Antiquity of the City of Cheſter, from Henry Bradſhaw and Ranulph Higden, two Monks of that City, and from Holinſhed and Harriſon; and then a Map giving a Proſpect of Cheſter, the Ground Plot, and Arms of the Earls ſince the Conqueſt. Then we advance more particularly to the Longitude and Latitude of the City, Deſcriptions of the Walls, the Gates, the Bridge, the Caſtle, Cuſtom-Houſe, Shire-Hall, Exchequer, and the Pariſh Churches in Cheſter. Next of the Mayor, Aldermen, Sheriffs, Common-Hall, the Pendice, the Rows, the Mercer's Row and Conduits. Then of the Biſhoprick of Cheſter. The Diviſion of Mercia into five Biſhopricks. The Names of the Biſhops of Cheſter, ſince the Beginning of King Henry VIII. Market-Towns in Cheſhire. The Manner of making Salt at Nantwich, and at Northwich. After that ſhort Account of the Market-Towns, and ſome others of principal Note, and a Reference to the Map for the reſt, not named here, we have the Genealogy of the Earls of Cheſter, ſince the Conqueſt; wherein is briefly ſhewed ſome Part of their Deeds, beginning with Hugh Lupu [...], and ending with Edward the Black Prince, who was the eleventh Earl. After theſe follows a Note of the chief Places of Gentlemen in Cheſhire, from John Leland; and next, the Names of all the Knights, Eſquires, Gentlemen, and Freeholders in the County Palatine of Cheſter, and in what Hundred they dwell, taking up about three Leaves and a half. Then comes a Liſt of all the Mayors and Sheriffs of Cheſter, beginning 1320, ending 1586, about fourteen Leaves. After this, we have another Liſt of the Benefices, or Rectories, and Vicaridges in the County, with their Valuations, from a MS. in the Library of St. John's College, Cambridge. Then comes the Deſcent of the Barons of Haulton, Conſtables of Cheſter, and a Sculpture repreſenting Beeſton Caſtle, with the Caſtle and Town of Haulton; alſo ſome Latin Verſes upon Beeſton [233] Caſtle, built by Ranulph, third Earl of Cheſter, from Leland, with Tranſlations of the laſt Diſtich, from Speed and Camden; and a Note of the Battle on Blore Heath, Anno 1459; which, with another Note touching the Arms of the Gentry in this County, introducing eleven Pages of them, repreſented in Sculpture, alphabetically, and a Table of the remarkable Paſſages, in the foregoing Diſcourſe, finiſhes this Part of the Vale-Royal, aſcribed to William Smith, by our Editor as aforeſaid; which, beſides the Sculptures, takes up 99 Pages.

The other Part, or Deſcription of this Vale-Royal, by William Webb, M. A. and ſometimes Under-Sheriff to Sir Richard Lee, begins with his Wiſhes, that the Labours of Mr. John Norden had been continued to the finiſhing of that Hiſtorical and Chronographical Deſcription of the reſt of the Shires of this famous Iſle, which he had begun in that of Middleſex: alſo his Commendations of our Worthy Countryman, Mr. John Speed's Labours of the ſame nature. At the End of this Introduction, he gives us a ſummary Account, for his more methodical Proceeding, of what Matter he has choſen to treat, and in what manner; ſo enters upon a Deſcription of the City and County Palatine of Cheſter; and becauſe Broxton, in ſome ſort, contains or borders upon, and almoſt encompaſſes the ſaid City, he firſt makes a ſhort Survey of that Hundred, then more particularly deſcribes the City itſelf, recites its Names, remarks upon the ancient Foundations and Buildings thereof, more as a Topographer than Antiquary, tho' not wholly avoiding hiſtorical Obſervation, where it will illuſtrate his Account, as himſelf profeſſes. The Authors uſed in this Deſcription, are Giraldus Cambrenſis, Peter Langtoft, Ranulph Higden, Harding, Caxton, Fabian, Holinſhed, Stow, Camden, and a manuſcript Life of St. Werburg, in Engliſh Verſe, by Henry Bradſhaw, Monk of Cheſter; out of whom he makes ſeveral Quotations, and calls him their beſt Antiquary. Then follows a Diſcourſe of the Foundation and Endowment of the Abbey of St. Werburg in Cheſter, written by N. N. with two Sculptures repreſenting the Ground-Plot of her Church, and the Southern Proſpect of it. This holy Virgin appears to have been the Daughter of Wulpher, King of Mercia, who died A. Dom. 675. She had the Command over the Monaſteries of Weedon, Trentham, Repton, and Hambury. In her tender Years was profeſſed under her Aunt Andry at Ely, lived much at Weedon, deceas'd at [234] Trentham, and was buried at Hambury, but twice tranſlated, firſt from Trentham to Hambury about the Year 708, afterwards to Cheſter, about 875, as the 2 B. and 2 Chap. of her Life aforeſaid teſtify. After which follow ſeveral monumental Inſcriptions in the Quire of the ſaid Abbey, and in St. Nicholas Chapel, for William Downham, Biſhop of Cheſter, who died 1577; Dr. Geo. Lloyd, Biſhop of Sodor, 1615; Dr. John Lloyd, a famous Civilian, 1607; Sir Geo. Beverley; the famous Abbot Simon Ripley, who died about 1492; Sir W. Gerrard, 1581; and in St. Mary's Chapel, Sir Henry Troutbeck, round the Effigies of whoſe Body, in compleat Armour, is neatly wrought a Wreath of Trouts. Here alſo was buried the late famous Citizen Robert Brerewood, Alderman, and thrice Mayor of Cheſter, who was, ſays our Author, ‘"The happy Father of the learned Edw. Brerewood, of Oxford; whoſe ſurpaſſing Progreſs in the Studies of all manner of Learning, the Univerſity does yet, and for ever will ring loud of; and Greſham College in London, where he was Mathematical Reader, will, to the World's end, bewail the want of; being deprived of him by an untimely Death, before he had finiſhed, or taken Order for Preſervation of ſuch learned Labours, as, if they were publiſhed, wou'd make the World beholden to Cheſter, the Nurſe of ſuch a Father, which begat ſuch a Son."’ Here are alſo recited ſeveral Inſcriptions of ſeveral other Mayors, Aldermen, &c. of the ſaid City. Then, after ſome Obſervations upon the River Dee, and the renewing of the Haven, our Author gives us the Remainder of his Remarks upon Broxton Hundred, taking notice all the way he travels along, by the Towns and Lordſhips, of the principal Seats, or Mannor-Houſes, and by whom poſſeſſed or inhabited. This is alſo his Courſe thro' the Hundred of Nantwich, where we have a Recital of the Foundation-Charter of Cumbermere Abbey in Cheſter, founded Anno 1133, by Hugh Malbanc, from the Annals of Crockſdon, in the Cotton Library. In this Hundred, we have ſome Remarks upon the Excellency of their Cheeſe, on their Salt-Pits or Wiches, and a Sculpture of Crew-Hall. In the Hundred of Northwich, our Author thinks the Ale of Sandach as worthy of Praiſe, as Mr. Camden does that of Derby; and if that Ale got its Name from the old Daniſh word Oel, as he ſays, our Author knows not why this may not, almoſt with as little Variation, come from Oil, being almoſt as ſubſtantial in handling. He alſo remarks upon [235] the common Report of the Trees, which are ſeen floating in Bagmere Pool above Water, juſt before any Heir of the Houſe of Brereton the Owner thereof dies; but looks upon it as meerly accidental. In Eadsbury Hundred, we have the Foundation-Charter of the Abbey of Dernhall, in the County of Cheſter, tranſlated afterwards to the Vale-Royal, given by Edward, eldeſt Son of King Henry III. in the 54th Year of his Reign; alſo the ſaid King Henry's Letters of Recommendation to all Abbots, &c. in England, for Books to be beſtowed on the ſaid Abbey; alſo the Charter for Tranſlation of the ſaid Abbey to the Vale-Royal. This Hundred he concludes with an Apology for paſſing over ſome old Prophecies, ſome conceited Names of Trees, Moſs-Pits, Pools, long Shoots of old Archers, a Horſe Race or two, and the latter Newfound-Well, becauſe he ſuppoſes his long Journey in this little Hundred, has well nigh tired his Reader already. In Werall Hundred, when he comes to Birket Wood, we have a Proſpect, in Sculpture, of the Ruins of Berkenhead Abbey. A Reference to the Monaſticon, fol. 404; with the Charter of Hamon Maſſie's Donation of the Church of Bowdon, and another Charter of Power to the Monks of Berkenhead. Thus he paſſes on, as through the reſt of the Hundreds, giving Deſcriptions of the chief Seats all the way, and Characters of the Gentry who poſſeſſed them, till he arrives again at the famous City of Cheſter; and here takes the Government with its Governours under Conſideration, ſo begins with a Narrative of the Earls of Cheſter; and firſt of thoſe four or five before the Conqueſt, who were named Edolf, from the Teſtimony of Ranulph Ceſtrenſis and Fabian. 2. Curſon, according to John Harding. 3. The famous Leofric, whoſe Power, Grandeur, and charitable Works are celebrated by many Hiſtorians; but the Story of his Wife Godwina, or Godiva, riding through the City of Coventry naked, to obtain the Franchiſement of the City, is ſuſpected by our Author. 4. His Son Algarus. But theſe two (and much leſs Jonas, mentioned in the Chronicle of St. Albans, or Othonel) are, tho' allowed to have been Earls of March, by Sir John Fern, in his Second Part of Lacie's Nobility, not reckoned to have been Earls of Cheſter, but he thinks they are ſo miſtaken to have been, by their Reſidence or Abode in that City, or thereabouts. Here we enter upon the Hiſtory of the Earls of Cheſter from the Conqueſt, of whom there is more certain Record; beginning with Hugh Lupus, who was [236] the Son of William the Conqueror's Siſter, and we have a Sculpture repreſenting the ſaid Earl in Parliament with the Barons and Abbots of the County Palatine; which Hugh having governed the Earldom 40 Years, died about 1107. In the like manner, we have a Chapter a-piece upon the ſix enſuing Earls, ending with John Scot, who died in 1237, without Iſſue. King Henry III. took the Earldom of Cheſter into his hands, and it was thenceforward held by Princes of the Blood Royal; of whom, after a little Account of the Barons under the ancient Earls, we have alſo a Catalogue down to Prince Charles. This is followed with a Diſcourſe of the Eccleſiaſtical State and Government in this County; the Succeſſions of the Biſhops, and, with more certainty, from the 33d of Henry VIII. ending with Dr. John Bridgman. The next Chapter treats of the Government of the County and City, by the Officers, or Princes, who ruled here after the Earls, down to King James I. Then we have a Table of the Mayors and Sheriffs of Cheſter, from 1242 to 1655, interſperſed with little hiſtorical Memoirs of ſome noted Occurrences, happening under ſeveral Years within that Time and Place. After this, we have the Names of the Juſtices of Cheſter, with another Liſt of the Sheriffs of the County: and the whole cloſes with a Copy from Domeſday Book, ſub Titulo, Ceſterſheire; ſhewing in whoſe Poſſeſſion the Lands of this County were at the Conqueſt. So ends this ſecond and more copious Narrative of the ſaid County Palatine, containing 239 Pages; and has an Index, like the former, at the End of it.

But here follows another Tract, not before ſpoken of in either of the Title-Pages before the Book, or in the Editor's Preface, not being communicated perhaps till they were printed; and it is called Chronicon Ceſtrenſe, written by Samuel Lee, as appears at the End of his Epiſtle to the ſaid Editor his ingenious Friend Mr. D. King, dated May 8, 1656. In this Epiſtle, perceiving the exact Times of the former Rulers of that Province, not ſo much attended as might illuſtrate that Vale-Royal, he deſired to communicate to Paper, what he has obſerved in his Reading, which might conduce to the fixing of the Times and Seaſons, wherein the noble Atchivements of its Rulers and Inhabitants have been performed. And indeed he has ſhew'd himſelf more critically acquainted with all our ancient Hiſtorians, as to Time and Place, the two Eyes of Hiſtory, than both the foregoing Authors put together. His Work begins with a [237] Chapter upon the Romans in Cheſhire, in which we have the various Opinions of ſeveral Authors concerning its Longitude and Latitude; but he prefers Shakerley in his Britiſh Tables, before all the reſt. Then we have, in Chapter 2, the Kings, Dukes, and Earls of Mercia, with the particular Earls of Cheſter from the Conqueſt, and thoſe of the Royal Blood, diſpoſed in their exact Times, in five ſeveral Sections. The third Chapter treats of the Biſhops of Mercia, who had their Seats ſometimes at Coventry, ſometimes at Cheſter, moſt commonly at Litchfield, and therefore are uſually ſo ſtiled; but had Cheſhire under their Epiſcopal Government. Alſo of the Biſhops of Cheſter ſince the Conqueſt; and of the peculiar Biſhops of Cheſter, from the Time of King Henry VIII. in four Sections. The fourth and laſt Chapter diſcourſes of the Parliamentary Barons of the Earls of Cheſter: And firſt of the Barons Temporal, in which we have the Stem of the Barons of Haulton; laſtly, of the Barons Spiritual, being an Account of the Earls, Biſhops, and Abbots. But before we leave this Work wherein the Author has proved himſelf ſo expert in calculating and fixing of ancient Times, as to make us wiſh that Saxon Hiſtory he promiſes in two or three Places, had ſeen the light; we ſhall only remark out of his ſecond Chapter, upon the Mercian Monarchy, how he accounts for many Defects in our old hiſtorical Computations; where he ſays, ‘"Conſidering that all our Monkiſh Writers more skillful in numbering of Beads than Years, did uno tramite follow the Dionyſian Account, a thing diligently to be attended in the reading of our monaſtical Writers, I hope to extricate myſelf out of theſe Difficulties, by treating a little of it before I begin with the Reigns of the Kings of Mercia."’ Then having given an Example to ſhew wherein that Account is deficient, and Direction to ſeveral Authorities for Confirmation thereof, he further ‘"refers this to be proved more at large in its proper Place, when he treats about the Saxons Arrival into our Land, demonſtrating their Entrance to have been in the Vulgar Year of Chriſt 428, and not in 449 or 450, as our old Authors uſually fix'd it; whereby great and knotty Difficulties have tied up the Hiſtory of the Saxon Dominion in this Iſland."’ Thus much of this Chronological Treatiſe, containing 55 Pages. We come now, laſtly, to

A ſhort Treatiſe of the Iſle of Man, &c. illuſtrated with ſeveral Proſpects of the Iſland by D. King, 1556. 'Tis [238] dedicated to Thomas Lord Fairfax, Lord of Man, and of the Iſles, by the Author James Chaloner, one of the Commiſſioners for ſettling Affairs in that Iſland, who dates his ſaid Epiſtle from Middle-Park, Dec. 1, 1653; wherein it appears, he was the rather induced to preſent the ſame to his Lordſhip, becauſe of his Reſpect to Antiquities, ſo ſignally manifeſted in patronizing our notable Engliſh Antiquary Mr. Roger Dodſworth, in his Collections, compoſing and publiſhing of that ſingular Piece his Monaſticon, &c. The Work is divided into ſix Chapters, which, after a Map of the Iſland environ'd with little Proſpects of ſome notable Parts or Places in it, begins, 1. with the Situation of the Iſle of Man. 2. Concerning the Inhabitants, whence derived, their Language the Manks Tongue, and of the Tranſlation of the Bible therein, and of the Conditions of the People. 3. Of the State Eccleſiaſtical; of the Biſhops, Monaſteries, and Free-Schools, with three Proſpects in Sculpture, of Baliſaly Abbey, the Nunnery; and the Biſhop's Court. 4. Of the Civil Government, and the ſupreme Governors, particularly King Edward II. his Grant of the Iſland to Henry Lord Beaumont; and here we have a Sculpture of the Arms of the Beaumonts. Then the Author deſcends to the inferior Officers, and the Judicatories of the ſaid Iſle. The fifth Chapter is concerning the Trade of the Iſle. And the laſt Chapter is of the Strength of the Iſland, where we have three Proſpects in Sculpture, of the Caſtle Ruſhen, Peel Caſtle, and Douglas Fort; upon which Fortifications and others, that might be wanting, our Author concludes, That the Poverty of the Iſland is its greateſt Security. The whole is no more than 32 Pages, followed with a Leaf of Addenda, Errata, and a Table of the true Longitude and Latitude of certain Cities in England, which ends the whole Book.

XXXIX. RELIQUIAE BODLEIANAE: Or ſome Genuine Remains of Sir THOMAS BODLEY; containing his LIFE, the firſt Draught of the STATUTES of the PUBLIC LIBRARY at OXFORD, (in Engliſh) and a Collection of LETTERS to Dr. JAMES, &c. Publiſh'd from the Originals in the ſaid Library. Octavo, 1703. Pages 383.

[239]

THESE Remains of that famous Founder of the Public Library at Oxford, are pretty well known to have been publiſhed, tho' their Editors Name appears not to them, by the late Mr. Hearne. In his Preface, after having touch'd upon the Antiquity of Letters and Libraries, and ſhewn how ancient they were in Egypt; what a magnificent Collection was made there by Ptolemy, and what Ambition the Greeks and Romans had of this kind; he deſcends to obſerve how early Learning flouriſh'd in Britain; and that in King Alfred's Time, there were divers Libraries for the Preſervation of Learning; but is more particular of Richard de Bury, Biſhop of Durham, his noble Gift of Books to this Univerſity in 1295, as may be further gather'd from his own Account in his Philobiblos, ſive de Amore Librorum, firſt printed at Paris, afterwards at Oxford, 4to, 1599, and ſince in 8vo. Alſo of Thomas Cobham, Biſhop of Worceſter's Building for a Library in the ſaid Univerſity in 1320. That after this, another Library was built there by Duke Humphrey, and famous in 1439, which falling to Ruin towards the end of Queen Elizabeth's Reign, Sir Thomas Bodley, a ſecond Ptolemy, began to reſtore it in 1597, finiſh'd it in two Years, and in a few more ſo nobly endow'd it with Books, Revenues, and other Buildings, that it is accounted one of the moſt famous Libraries in the World; excelling, according to the Accounts of Travellers, the Vatican at Rome; that being ſo full of Corruptions and Forgeries. The Hiſtory of the Bodleian Library is given us by the Oxford Antiquary (Anthony Wood) at large: But the Catalogue of the Printed Books, by Dr. Hyde: We have had one ſince alſo of the MSS; but both being imperfect, we are here told, an Appendix [240] to the former, as big as the Doctors Catalogue, was now ready for the Preſs; and that an Appendix alſo to the latter, was in ſome time to be publiſh'd; yet are we ſtill in expectation of them. The Editor likewiſe ſays, 'Twas for the ſake of this noble Library, that lately, in his ſearches therein, finding the Life of Sir Thomas Bodley; the firſt Draught of its Statutes, and a Collection of his Letters to Dr. James, the firſt Keeper of it, all written by Sir Thomas his own Hand, he took a Tranſcript of them, and ſent them to the Preſs; that others, imitating Sir Thomas his Zeal and Induſtry for the good of Learning, might become Benefactors themſelves to ſuch a noble Repoſitory; which they cou'd not do at a better time, ſince the Act of Parliament for ſending certain Copies thither, of Books printed at London, was expired. The Life, he ſays, has been printed ſome Years before, and two Letters to Sir Francis Bacon, lately, at the end of Archbiſhop Uſher's Letters; but the Copies of the former, being diſperſed, and the latter, containing Matter of Moment, it was thought fit to reprint them.

In the LIFE of Sir THO. BODLEY written by himſelf, conſiſting of 15 Pages, he tells us he was born at Exeter in Devonſhire, the 2d of March 1544, of Worſhipful Parents. That his Father, a known Enemy to Popery, fled in Queen Mary's Reign into Germany, ſent for his Family and ſettling at Geneva, when our Author was twelve Years of Age, had him inſtructed in Hebrew and Greek, by Chevalerius and Beroaldus; and in Divinity by Calvin and Beza, beſides Domeſtic Teachers. In the beginning of Queen Elizabeth's Reign, they return'd to London, and he was ſent to complete his Studies at Oxford, where he took his Batchelor of Arts Degree, and was choſe Probationer of Merton College in 1563, and the Year after admitted Fellow. In 1565 read the Greek Lecture. Proceeded Maſter of Arts 1566, and read for that Year, Natural Philoſophy; was elected one of the Proctors in 1569. Supply'd for a long time, the Place of Univerſity Orator. Travell'd into Italy, France, and Germany, to acquire the Modern Tongues in 1576. In 1585, was ſent by the Queen to ſeveral German Princes, to procure their Aid for the King of Navarre. Alſo to Henry III. of France, both for this King's Advantage and that of the Proteſtant Cauſe. In 1588 was ſent to the Hague, and there admitted one of their Council of State, and acquitted himſelf in his Charge, ſo much to the Queen's Satisfaction, that thenceforward he rarely received any Inſtructions in [241] theſe Proceedings of State. After his return from near five Years Foreign Employment, he was ſent to the Hague again but return'd in leſs than a Year: Yet was no ſooner come home, but the Queen pleas'd with his Diſcoveries, ſent him again to the States, with Charge to purſue, what he had ſecretly propos'd; whereby all was brought to the Iſſue deſir'd. In all which Employments, he had no one more to his Friend among the Lords of the Council, than the Treaſurer Burghly, who was of Opinion there was no Man ſo ſit for the Office of Secretary of State, and whoſe Intention was, when he advanced his own Son thereto, to make Sir Thomas his Collegue. But before he return'd from the United Provinces in 1597, the Earl of Eſſex in Oppoſition to the Cecils, had ſo prodigally recommended his Sufficiency to the Queen for the Poſt aforeſaid, that ſhe (who hated the Earl's Ambition) was not the readier to prefer him, tho' they were to be jealous of him. Thus finding his Preferment on this Quarter obſtructed, and conſidering what a ſlender holdfaſt the Earl had with the Queen; withal his declining Years, and the eaſy Circumſtances of his own Fortune, he reſolv'd to retire; and tho' he had afterwards, both in the Queen's Reign, and King James's, many honourable Invitations, as well to Foreign as Domeſtic Employments, he concluded at laſt to ſet up his Staff at the Library Door in Oxon, and accommodate that ruin'd Place for the Public Uſe of Students; finding himſelf competently furniſh'd with the fourfold Aid neceſſary thereto, which was a Knowledge in the Learned and Modern Tongues, as well as ſundry kinds of Scholaſtic Literature; a Purſe-Ability; Store of Honourable Friends, and Leiſure to follow the Work: But how well he has ſped; he thinks that which is already perform'd in ſight, that which beſides he has given for the Maintenance of it, and which he afterwards purpoſes to add, will ſo abundantly teſtify, that he needs not be the Publiſher of the Worth of his own Inſtitution. Written, &c. 1609. Signed T. B. Then follows:

Sir THOMAS BODLEY's firſt Draught of the STATUTES of the PUBLICK LIBRARY at OXON, tranſcribed from the Original Copy, written by his own Hand and repoſited in the Archives of the ſaid Library. Herein, upon the Conſideration that no Inſtitution can have the good Effects intended, unleſs there be Statutes to encounter and reſtrain the Diſorders of ill-affected Perſons, it is ordain'd, by the Chancellor, Vice-Chancellor, Doctors, Proctors, Maſters, Regents, [242] &c of the great Convocation of the Univerſity upon their frequent Conſultation with Sir Thomas, That ſome one be deputed to the keeping of this Library, who is a diligent Student, Truſty, Active and Diſcreet; a Graduate, a Linguiſt, unmarried and unbeneficed. That the manner of electing ſuch a Keeper, ſhou'd be like that yearly practis'd in the choice of their Proctors; and firſt the Electors to be tender'd one Oath, then the Elected another, which are here ſpecified. That the ſaid Keeper is not to be diſplaced but by his own Aſſent, unleſs for ſome heinous Offence or apparent Inſufficiency. That his Buſineſs ſhall be to keep and continue the great Regiſter-Book, chain'd to the Desk at the upper Window of the Library, in which are to be inroll'd the Names of Benefactors thereto, whether mean Perſons or great: Which Book to be fairly written, and laid to open ſight, as a Token of thankful Acceptation and Inducement of Imitation to Poſterity. He is further alſo to range all his Books according to their Faculties, to aſſign to every Family its Catalogues and Tables, diſpoſe of the Authors therein named Alphabetically, and beſides their Names and Title of their Works, expreſs in what ſized Volume printed, the Place where, and the Year when. Upon Gifts of Books to the Library, what Order to be taken, that they be put up in good plight, and the Charge to be ſupply'd by the Vice-Chancellor, (Receiver of the Library Rents) and upon Gifts in Money; how it is to be diſpoſed of to the Donors ſatisfaction. That for the Accommodation of Students, the Keeper is not to be exempted one whole Day in the Year upon Penalty of 20 Shillings, except Sunday, Chriſtmas-day, and ſome others here named: But to come conſtantly to the opening of the Library Doors, and give acceſs to others from Eight to Eleven in the Morning, and Two till Five in Afternoon, from Eaſter to Michaelmas; but the reſt of the Year, from One to Four in the Afternoon; a Warning-Bell to be rung at his Ingreſs and Egreſs. None to enter by Night, with Candle, Lamp, &c. Next, of the care to be taken by Students in reading the Books, faſtning the Claſps and Strings, untangling the Chains, and leaving the Volumes in the Places they found them. And for the ſmaller Volumes within the Grates, and under the Cuſtody of the Keeper alone, he is to deliver them out by Hand and Tale, and with Condition, that they be peruſed in ſight, and preſently reſtor'd to him or his Aſſiſtant, who is to look out and deliver Books ſo ask'd for, and but ſix at a time of one ſort or [243] other, unleſs he be won to gratify ſome Perſons to exceed that Number. No Books to be lent out of the Library upon any Security whatever; and in Caſe of Books to be ſold as unprofitable, or chang'd for better Editions, or carried out to be new bound, the Keeper to conſult the Overſeers to be appointed. The Keeper's Abſence to be diſpenſed with in caſe of Buſineſs, ſeven Days every Quarter; but his Office to be ſupply'd by ſome able Graduate, who is of known Fidelity, or ſhall take the Oath. And if the Caſe is ſuch, that longer Abſence is allow'd by common Suffrage in Convocation, to be accorded with. For this continual Attendance and Engagement, the Keeper tho' he has greater Advantages to advance his Knowledge and Credit than other Students, is to have, beſides the Annual Stipend of 20 Nobles, which was the Donation of King Henry IV. iſſuable from the Univerſity Treaſure, 33 Pounds, 6 Shillings and 8 Pence, and to be paid half-yearly out of the Library Revenue, and his Aſſiſtant Ten Pounds; and Four Pounds more to a poor Scholar or Servant, for ſweeping, wiping, &c. The choice of theſe to be at the Keeper's Diſcretion, their Payment at the Vice-Chancellor's care, and diſplacing of them in the power of the Overſeers. That for the ſafer Cuſtody of the Revenue aforeſaid, it ſhou'd be lock'd up where the Univerſity Rents are kept, in an Iron Cheſt, under three different Locks, with double Keys, to remain with the Vice-Chancellor and two Proctors; which laſt two are to be Witneſſes of the Sums brought in or taken out and regiſter'd by the third. The Perſons to be admitted as Students are next diſtinguiſh'd; beſides all Graduates, Benefactors, &c. Strangers, or ſuch as have no Univerſity Education, or been Contributors, may for the furtherance of their Study obtain the Freedom of Recourſe; the ſame being craved as a Grace in the Convocation Houſe, and the Oath of Fidelity to the Library, here exhibited, firſt by them, as by all other Perſons, before the conſtant Liberty of Entrance, taken; and a Penalty impos'd upon thoſe who intrude without Permiſſion before they are ſworn; unleſs accompanied with one who is ſworn; as alſo upon any who ſhall be convicted of diſmembering, purloining, or corrupting the Senſe of any Books. Leſt the Keeper ſhou'd be tardy in his Duty, eight principal Graduates are appointed perpetual Overſeers and Viſitors of the Library, every 8th Day of November, (the Day of firſt opening or free Acceſs,) who are not only to examine how well the Keeper has perfom'd his Charge, but [244] direct him in doubtful Matters, and reform him in erroneous ones; alſo to appoint the Exchange, or diſpoſal of ſuperfluous, and Purchaſe of new Books; and to have forty Shillings for a Dinner or Supper that Day, alſo Gloves of Ten Shillings a Pair, to the five Profeſſors of the King's Lectures, and the two Proctors, which two are alſo to have forty Shillings each, for the Cuſtody of the Keys; one Pair of Gloves at five Shillings to the Beadle then attending; one Pair of 20 Shillings to the Vice-Chancellor, with 20 Nobles in regard of his Trouble, he only being to deal with the Employment of the Annual Rents of the Library: Yet at the end of the Year to let the Viſitors and Keeper ſee the Money remaining in the Iron Cheſt, with the Account of Receipts and Disburſements, which they are to audit, ſo deliver up his Keys and Accounts to the New Vice-Chancellor, relating the State thereof, at the next Convocation; who are to take notice of the laſt Vice-Chancellor's Diſcharge of his Truſt, according to his Merit; and in all former Acts and Decrees, expound, alter, abrogate, or innovate, and provide in all Events for the Indemnity of the Library, as for a Treaſure, to Students, of incomparable Worth. So we come to

The LETTERS; which are 234 in Number; and moſtly written by Sir Thomas Bodley himſelf, from London, Fulham and Burnham, to Dr. Thomas James, the firſt Keeper of his Library. Few of them have the Date of the Year when written, but the earlieſt Date we meet with, is in 1602; to Dr.Rives, Vice-Chancellor of Oxon, about opening the Library and conſtituting the Statutes thereof, therefore, perhaps, ſhou'd have ſtood the firſt in this Collection; and the lateſt is dated in 1611. Though one, towards the end, without any Date, was written much ſooner than the former, being to his Couſin Francis Bacon when he was a Youth in France, containing Advice to him in his Travels; and the laſt Letter in the Book is written to Dr. James, by Laurence Bodley after the Death of his Brother Sir Thomas, (which was in 1612.) Except another Letter from Sir Thomas Bodley to the ſaid Sir Francis Bacon, which is alſo ſomewhat Foreign to theſe Collections, as containing both a Cenſure and Commendation of ſome Maxims of Modern Philoſophy in his Novum Organum; that which the Reader is to look for in theſe Letters, might be ſorted and comprehended under theſe five Topics. The Founder; the Benefactors; the Books; the Library, and the Librarian: But we, for the Reader's Facility of finding the Particulars here [245] extracted, ſhall give a tranſient View of the moſt obſervable among them, in the ſame Order as they occur; which, tho' in the Collection itſelf, ſhort, diſſever'd, often repeated, and unconcluded in many Points, as the Nature is of Occaſional Letters, in ſuch familiar Intercourſe; yet may yield many Hiſtorical Hints, relating to the Encouragers of this Foundation, or the manner of collecting and preſerving the Writings of Learned and Ingenious Men.

Such therefore are the Founder's Expoſtulations with his Librarian, upon his ſudden thoughts of a married Life; the ſame being utterly deny'd; alſo concerning the Advantages he had of improving his Knowledge, and the Opportunities there might be of augmenting his Salary; his Notice of ſeveral Benefactors, as Mr. Hariot the Mathematician, Mr. Haidock, Mr. Ridley, Mr. Urrey, and Mr. Farmer; his Judgment of a Tranſcriber, and of Duplicate Copies; Advice about making the Catalogues, and advertiſing each other of ſuch Books as were given or new bought, and not to let the knowledge of defective Copies be divulged. Of the Courſe to be taken with ſuch as had been Promiſers of Contributions, but no Performers. Further Advice about the Catalogue, as when divers Authors are bound in one Volume, not to bury them all under the Name of the firſt Author, but to name every Author diſtinctly in his proper Letter of the Alphabet, and to place the Name before, not after the Title of the Book. Notice of the Arrival of many Books from John Bill at Venice, and more expected. The Founder's Approbation of a Table to enliſt the Names of Benefactors and their Gifts, till the Regiſter be finiſhed. The Lord Treaſurer's Donation of an Hundred Pounds unto the Library. The Founders Conſent that any Gentleman Stranger, after requeſt to the Congregation, and taking the Oath, may have free Acceſs to the Library. That John Bill had bought Four Hundred Pounds worth of Books abroad. That ſuch as give only a little Book or two, may not expect to be recorded on the Regiſter. That the Lord Cobham had given Fifty Pounds to the Library, and promis'd divers MSS. out of St. Auguſtine's Library in Canterbury. The Founder's Suppoſal that there are not to be had Twenty Pounds worth of the Books of Proteſtant Writers, which he has not already, and that of thoſe in Folio, thinks they have all that can begotten. His Opinion about ſorting and faſtning the Books, alſo of figuring them with great Letters. Some Defects specified in the Librarian's Catalogue. [246] Further Intimations of Benefactors, as the Earl of Cumberland, Mr. Helmeſton, Mr. Ledſham, Dr. Bond, Mr. Burhil, Mr. Canning. The Founder's Care for every thing to be in Order at the opening of the Library. His Advice how the Librarian ſhould receive Sir John Forteſcue, ſuitable to his Dignity and Deſert. Concerning the Frankfort Catalogues of Books, containing all from 1564 to 1592, and another from thence to 1600, alſo in 4to. The Biſhop of Durham's Promiſe of Fifty Pounds. The Founder's Opinion what Officer only ſhou'd be under the Keeper of the Library. The Lord Mountjoy's Gift of an Hundred Pounds. Further Advice about the Duplicates. The Librarian's Labour in copying of Catalogues acknowledged, but withal their Imperfections, as being taken in haſte, with Advice about a new Catalogue. The Founder's Intention of intreating the Vice-Chancellor, to move the Univerſity for their Letters of Public Thanks, to the Lord of Northumberland, who gave an Hundred Pounds; to Sir Walter Raleigh, who gave Fifty Pounds; and to Sir Edmund Udal, who gave as much to the Library; with Intimations in the ſame Letter of the King's being expected at Oxford. The Books of Worceſter Library to be ſelected for this at Oxford. Mr. Comptroller's Promiſe of Fifty Pounds. Of placing the Manuſcripts, figuring the Books with Letters, and fixing of Catalogues for a Tryal to the Tables; with the Founder's Caution to avoid Cenſure. His Conſiderations about the Regiſter-Book. Some mention of the Earl of Eſſex's Gift, and Sir Robert Sidney's, and Mr. Barkham's. The Founder's Opinion that there ſhou'd be no Vacation at all in the Library; but that the Keeper being abſent upon urgent Occaſions, another might ſupply his room till he return, in regard of the Time good Students wou'd loſe. A reaſon for binding ſundry Authors together, that the multiplicity of Chains might not take away the ſight and ſhew of the Books. The Earl of Southampton's Gift of an Hundred Pounds to the Library. The Founder's Character of himſelf, as to matters of Literature, in theſe Words: ‘"As touching your Title-Page and your Epiſtle, I am no Judge for you to build on: For in my own Writings, I am altogether negligent, and in cenſuring other Men's, ſomewhat too curious."’ Some notice of Dr. Reynolds his Gift, and of ſome Books from Windſor; but if not to be had without his Majeſty's leave, to let them alone, he not thinking it proper to be a Suitor for them, unleſs the Gift were [247] greater, his Majeſty having given him larger Expectations. Lady Vere's Requeſt, that in the Inſcription to her Gifts, there ſhou'd after Vidua, be ſet down & Filia Jo. Tracy de Tuddington Militis. The Founder's Recommendation of his Librarian's Suit to the Archbiſhop of Canterbury. A ſingular Courteſy of lending out the Manuſcript Epiſtles of Nazianzen, to Sir Henry Savile, his Affection to the ſtoring and preſerving of the Library being ſingular. The Lord Cranborn's Gift of Fifty Pounds to the Library. The Founder's Gladneſs at the Aſſurance of his Librarian's Information, that in England there are more Books to be found, than are worth Five Hundred Pounds, which are not in the Library. ‘"For, ſays he, you ſhall never ſee, that any good Books ſhall be loſt for want of buying, tho' I find no Contributors: Albeit you need not doubt, but I ſhall always find ſufficient."’ Further Expoſtulation with his Librarian about leaving his Charge, and betaking to a private Courſe, and about his engaging Sir Thomas Lake to obtain him two Prebends, with Sir Thomas his Offer of Twenty Pounds a-year to be Chaplain in his Houſe, to the diſlike of the Founder, who cou'd not promote ſuch Motions, and thought that all Promiſes of Livings, when they fall, and Letters of Recommendation, are to very ſmall purpoſe unleſs they be follow'd and effected; and tho' Sir Thomas cou'd procure many of thoſe, none of them all wou'd relieve him. The Inſcription upon Sir Francis Vere's Gift of Books this Year (when the King of Denmark was in England) to be, Donavit jam tertio 10 Libras. Mr. Worſeley's Preſent of ſome MSS. of Roger Bacon, and Notice of the King's Grant of ſome Books. An Obſervation that the Libraries at Cambridge were meanly ſtored, and Trinity College worſt of all. Of the Duke of Brunſwick's Entertainment at Oxford, and of his Promiſe made to the Library. The Founder's Opinion about the choice of a Librarian or his Deputy; that he ſhou'd be one whoſe Perſon, as well as Learning were to be liked, in regard of the great Acceſs of great Perſons oftentimes of both Sexes; therefore that he who attends upon them, ſhou'd be a perſonable Scholar, and qualified with a Gentleman-like Speech and Carriage. A Computation of the room to be allow'd for Books of Law and Phyſick, and that the former Faculty will require five times more than the latter. Notice of the King's Warrant for the choice of any Books in any of his Libraries. The Errors of the Librarian's Hebrew Words (in his Catalogue) [248] obſerv'd by the Founder, and concerning the Dedication, he ſays, ‘"I do not mean the King, as you ſuppoſed, but the Prince; for that to the King, there are daily Books dedicated, and, for aught I can hear, few Rewards beſtowed; whereof I do think you may have more hope at the Prince's hands, by the means of good Friends."’ Of the Founder's Speech, for the Librarian to receive his Majeſty with; and of his firm denial to lend any Books out of the Library. The Lord Paget a Donor of ſome Books, and Dean Wood of an Hundred Marks. Preparations appointed againſt the King's coming. Concerning Buchanan's Book (againſt the Queen of Scots) the Founder ſays, ‘"it is in your Catalogue, and it will not avail to conceal him in his Desk, neither do I think, that it will be thought on; or if it be, as yet we have no reaſon to take any Notice of the King's diſlike."’ The Founder's Conjecture, that when thoſe Books he has laid out for are brought in, there will not be above Two Hundred New Books to be added yearly. His Reaſons againſt an Aſſiſtant Librarian or Deputy. Dr. Abbot, Biſhop of Litchfield, ſolicites the Archbiſhop of Canterbury, and the Biſhop of London, to beſtow a Prebend upon the Librarian. Mr. Thomas Allen's Gift of Greek MSS. and other Books. The Founders Opinion about buying new Editions of Books they already had. His Preference of Sir Henry Savil's Judgment of his Building. Several Obſervations further about the printed Catalogue, and about the Precedency of Faculties, as Law before Phyſick, &c. The Librarian's intended Undertaking to compare the Fathers approv'd, if it will not require a Diſpenſation of his Perſonal Attendance. The Biſhop of London's Gift of Fifty Pounds. And the Founder's Brother Laurence Bodley, Canon of Exeter, his Addition of Twenty Pounds to his former Gifts. Further Eſcapes noted in the Librarian's Catalogue of the Hebrew Books. The Founder's Opinion for excluding Almanacks, Plays, and Numbers more daily printed, hardly one in forty being worth keeping. That in other Nations, Plays may be more eſteem'd for learning the Languages, and being compiled by Men of Wiſdom and Learning, ſeldom the Caſe among us; and tho' ſome little Profit might be reaped from ſome Play-Books, it will not countervail the Scandal they will bring on the Libary, when it ſhall be given out, it is ſtuff'd with Baggage Books; and that a few wou'd be multiply'd by ſuch as purpoſe to diſgrace it. Sir H. Savil, by what he has given and [249] purpoſes to give, likely to prove the greateſt Benefactor. That Sir Thomas Knevet, and Sir Peter Young, dealt very much underhand to ſtop the King's Grant of Books. The Founder's free Opinions of the Librarian's Work to prove the Corruptions of the Fathers. His Cenſure of Dr. Howſon's laſt Sermon, utterly void of all Honeſty and Wit. An Account of young Druſius coming to Oxford. One Hundred Pounds gotten by the means of Sir Edwyn Sandys to the Library. Advice againſt the Repetition of Authors in the Catalogue. The Founder's diſlike of his Librarian's Propoſal of a Library for the younger Sort. Mrs. Owen's Gift of an Hundred Pound to the Library. The Founder congratulates his Librarian for the Opportunity he had of ſhewing himſelf in the Speech, he was to make to the King. His further Opinion about their collating of the Fathers, and about the Speech aforeſaid, that it ſhou'd not be above half a quarter of an Hour long, &c. His mention of other Benefactors, Mr. Barneſton, Mr. Evan Jones, Mr. Dorel, and Mr. Edward Jones. His Opinion that Wickliffe is not inferior to Scotus in Subtilty; his Caution to the Librarian, to be well adviſed in what he ſhall publiſh from that Author, which in regard of his Office, may be thought the Act of the Univerſity. No Notice to be taken of ſome Books the King prohibited in Scotland. Of Joſippus Barbatus the Egyptian coming to Oxford. Further of the Founder's Undertaking to collate the Fathers. His further Advice about the Librarian's Speech to the King. That it muſt be ſhort and ſweet and full of Stuff. His Orders to put Sir Henry Wotton's Name before a little Alcoran with Points, as the Donor. His Reſolution to be determin'd by the Delegates about the Statutes, and mention of Sir Tho. Smith's Gift to the Library, and for Dr. Budden to be admitted one of the Delegates. Other Donors, as Sir William Roper (who gave the Works of Sir Thomas More) Mr. Hakewell, &c. mention'd by the Founder. His further Enquiries after Dr. Howſon, and Opinion that he ſhou'd be ſeverely cenſur'd, and made to recant his malicious Taxation of thoſe he terms Gloſſers, or not ſuffer'd to hatch his new-fangledneſs in the Univerſity. His Orders for placing the Book, which Mr. Coryat, the famous Traveller, writ and beſtow'd on the Library, in ſome ſuch Place during the Act, at which the Author was to be preſent, as might ſeem to magnify both him and his Work. The reſt of this Collection conſiſts only of the three Letters, written by the Founder, to Dr. Rives, and [250] Sir Francis Bacon; and one by his Brother Laurence Bodley, to Dr. James, as was obſerved, with their Purport, in the beginning of this Extract thereof.

XL. The DIFFERENCE between an Abſolute and Limited MONARCHY; as it more particularly regards the ENGLISH CONSTITUTION. Being a Treatiſe written by Sir JOHN FORTESCUE, Kt. Lord Chief-Juſtice, and Lord High Chancellor of ENGLAND, under King HENRY VI. faithfully tranſcribed from the MS. Copy in the Bodleian Library, and collated with three other MSS. Publiſhed with ſome Remarks, by JOHN FORTESCUE-ALAND of the Inner-Temple, Eſq F. R. S. 8vo. 1714. Pages 148. Beſides the Editor's Dedication; and his Preface, which contains 82 Pages, and a Table of Contents*.

THIS moſt excellent Treatiſe was written by the Author in the Language of thoſe Times in which he lived; participating much of the Nature of the Saxon: And therein are uſed many Words, Terminations, and Phraſes, no where to be met with in the Modern Engliſh, which may therefore ſeem uncouth and obſolete; but by the Etymological Remarks of the Learned Editor, theſe ſeeming Improprieties vaniſh; and the Author appears with great Advantage in his Native Dreſs.

The Editor in his Dedication to Sir Thomas Parker, Knt. Lord Chief-Juſtice of England, having ſhewn the Office of [251] a Judge over the People of England; that he is Guardian of their Laws and Liberties, and Mediator between Prince and Subject, extols the great Abilities and Integrity of the Author and of his Patron too; and compliments Sir Thomas with this beautiful Simile; ‘"That your Lordſhip now appears with ſuch a Luſtre, is, in ſome meaſure, owing to your high Station; tho' the latent Cauſe exiſted long before: So the Sun itſelf when riſing, ſhines only to the Eaſt; but is the ſame with that, which, when elevated to the Meridian, enlightens the whole Hemiſphere."’

He then opens his Preface, to Sir John Holland, Bart. with the Grand Diviſion of Law, into Divine and Natural; and ſhews that the Law of England comes neareſt to the Law of Nature, and the Divine Pattern. Next he treats of its Certainty; proving that legal Beings in general, are capable of the beſt Certainty, even Demonſtration, and Mr. Lock's Notions of Morality applicable to them; and after ſhews the ſpecial Care of the Law of England, in defining Terms, raiſing Axioms, drawing Deductions therefrom, ſearching the Truth of Facts by Juries of 12 Men, and giving Judgment upon mature Conſideration: Then of its Antiquity; and here he cites our Author de Laud. Leg. Angl. that neither the Roman nor Venetian Laws can claim ſo great Antiquity; and lays down, that all Laws have their Origin from Nature, and thoſe that are founded on her are equally ancient; that the Law of England conſiſts of the Laws of Nature, poſitive Inſtitutions, and Cuſtoms. That Ethelbert the firſt Chriſtian King, in 561, with the Advice of his Wiſe-Men, made the firſt Saxon Laws, after the coming of Auſtin the Monk; and many Saxon Kings after him in like manner, made and confirmed Laws; that Alfred, firſt ſole Monarch after the Heptarchy, with the Advice of his Wiſe-Men, collected the Laws of former Saxon Kings into one entire Codex (ſuppos'd to be the ſame with the Dome-Book) ut in Jus Commune totius Gentis tranſiret; that his Succeſſors Edward the Elder, Aethelſtan, Edgar, Ethelred, and Canutus confirmed theſe Laws, and commanded their Judges to give right Judgment according to the Dome-Book, and that the Folc-Right ſhould be preſerv'd to all their Subjects: And from hence the Editor concludes, that the Common Law of England under the Name of Folc-Right, exiſted under Alfred; and that Edward the Confeſſor only collected, as Alfred had done, the Laws then extant, which had not been obſerved during the Uſurpations of [252] Harold I. and Hardicanute, and may well be called the Reſtorer of the Engliſh Laws; and this he backs with the Oath of William I. to keep inviolable the Laws of the pious Kings of England, and eſpecially King Edward, which, ſays he, were not only thoſe enacted in his time, but of all his Anceſtors, and the with Confirmation of King Edward's Laws by Henry I. Stephen, Henry II. Richard I. John, and Henry III. and Magna Charta, which as Lord Coke obſerves, is only a Confirmation of the Common Law of England: He then ſpeaks of the Salic Laws among the German Franks, and briefly of the Engliſh Conſtitution. Afterwards he paſſes to the Author's Life and Character, his Pedigree and Works. Then follows, the Reaſon of his Remarks on the Author's Language; and here he obſerves, that ‘"tho' an Etymology, ſtrictly ſpeaking, is no more than a Derivation of the Word or Name; yet Etymologies from a Saxon Original, will often preſent you with a Definition of the thing, in the Reaſon of the Name."’ And this he illuſtrates with many remarkable Inſtances: he likewiſe gives the Etymology of ſeveral Law-Terms, particularly * Withernam, Heriot, Huſting, Murder, Homicide, &c. and of the Words King and Queen, and ſeveral others, which come from Saxon Originals. He then ſhews the Uſe, nay neceſſity, of the knowledge of the Saxon Tongue in almoſt all Sciences. And gives an account of Books proper for attaining it; and to that end is the reſt of the Preface.

We come now to the Work itſelf, conſiſting of XX Chapters. Chap. I. Contains the difference between Dominium Regale, & Dominium Politicum & Regale. II. The Reaſon of this Difference. III. The Fruits of theſe different Governments; wherein is inſtanced the extreme Poverty and Miſery of the Commons of France, and the Wealth of the Engliſh. IV. Treats of the Revenues of France and England. V. Of the Harmes that come of a Kyng's [253] Povertie. VI. Of the Kyng's Ordinary Charges. VII. Of the Kyng's Extraordinary Charges. VIII. That, if the Kyng's Lyvelyhood ſuffyce not, his Realme is bounden by Right to ſuſteyn hym, in every thyng neceſſary to his Eſtate. IX. Of the Perils that may come to the Kyng by over-mighty Subjects. X. How the Crown may be belt endowed. XI. What of the Kyng's Lyvelyhood gevyn away may beſt be takyn ageyn. XII. What Harme would come to England, of the Povertie of the Commons. XIII. That lacke of Heart, and Cowardiſe keep the French from ryſing. XIV. That there ought to be a Reſumption by Act of Parliament of the Kyng's Revenue, and a Subſidie granted to him, for making Gifts and Rewards, with Advyſe of his Counceile. XV. How the Kyng's Counceile may be choſyn and eſtabliſhed. XVI. How the Romans proſpered whiles they had a grete Counceile. XVII. Advertiſement for the gevying of the Kyng's Offices. XVIII. For gevyng Corodies and Penſions. XIX. Of the grete Good that will growe of the firm endowyng of the Crowne. XX. Advertiſement for making of Patents of Gyfts.

Of ſeveral ancient Words, Cuſtoms, &c. in theſe Chapters, the Editor has from learned Authorities, given many curious Explanations; as in ſhewing whence Talys ſignify Taxes. The Etymology and Definition of King, and of Fellowſhip; the Uſe of Negatives in our Language; the Etymology of Scute a Coin; of Eſquire, and Eſcutcheon; of Guild, Dome, and Domeſday-Book; of Right, and Worſhipful, of Knight, Fee, Marches, Rover, and Caryk or Ship, of Ambaſſador, Procurator, and Meſſenger; of Surples, Bawderick or Belt, of Law, and Man; with the reaſon of Writing our Genitive Cafe, as Man's Son, with an Apoſtrophus; next he gives the Etymology of Chriſten, Earl, Ealdorman, Thane and other Titles of Honour, City and Burgh, of Demeſne, Queen, Gabel, Gavelkind, and Kyrk, of Sowdan or Sultan. The Penny and other Saxon Coins, Lordſhypp, Taylys or Entailes; of Jakke, a Coat of Mail; Pall-Mall, Harneſs, Quinſime and Diſme; Taxes of Englond, Theſe, True Man, Scotland, Larcenye, Brochage, Kynne or Kindred; Frank, a French Coin; Sheriff, Bullion, Moneth or Month, Eſcheker, Clerk or Maſter of the Rolls, Bayliff and Bayliwick, Array, Arraignment, Steward, Conſtable; Mark, a Denomination of Money; Firm and Farm, Mortmain, and Biſhoprick. After theſe Etymologies we have an Account of the Saxon manner of ſinging and praying, and of their Piety; next an Etymology of the word Year. He then gives a Catalogue of the Authors quoted in [254] his Remarks; and laſtly concludes the whole Work with the Saxon Alphabet.

XLI. The Antiquities and Practice of the COURT of EXCHEQUER. MS. Quarto. Pages 71.

THUS, the better to underſtand the Contents of this Work, is its Title here enlarged; which otherwiſe is no more than barely Exchequer; as if it were a Part of ſome larger Performance, which had a more comprehenſive and explanatory Title at the beginning. And this we are the rather inclin'd to believe was the Caſe, in that we have been inform'd, the late Lord Chief Baron Gilbert wrote Two Diſcourſes upon the Courts of the King's-Bench and the Common-Pleas, and a Third upon the Exchequer; of which laſt, this, before us, is preſumed to be a Copy. It was certainly wrote by an Author who was familiarly acquainted with the Laws of this Court, or Courſe of Practice therein, both Ancient and Modern; and that it was written ſince Mr. Maddox publiſh'd the Hiſtory of the Exchequer, appears by our Author's frequent Quotations from it; beſides, there is the Form of a Writ of Scire Facias iſſued under the Teſte of the ſaid Chief Baron Gilbert, in the fourth Year of his late Majeſty's Reign, recited in the 56th Page of the ſaid MS; which was imparted to us out of the Collections mention'd in our Account of the MS, we deſcribed in our last Number.

It is divided into Ten Chapters, which for want of room we ſhall only repeat, as follows: 1. Shewing that the Exchequer was the ancient and ſovereign Court in Normandy. 2. How to underſtand the Revenue and Buſineſs of the ancient Exchequer. 3. How, when Baronies, towards the latter end of the Norman Period eſcheated, they were wont to be broken into ſmall Tenures. 4. That, in the Saxon Times, the Lords Spiritual held by Frank Almoigne. 5. How the King's Tenants, who held per Baroniam, did Suit and Service at his own Court. 6. How all Debts to the King bind from the Time they are contracted. 7. What Acts and Inſtruments paſs by the King's Chancellor under the Broad-Seal. 8. The uſual Revenue which aroſe from Fines and Amerciaments. 9. The Receipt of the Exchequer. 10. The Sheriffs Accounts; and with this, concludes the Treatiſe, at leaſt as far as our Copy extends.

The End of Number IV.
[255]

XLII. TULLIUS his Book of OLDE AGE: Whereunto is added his Book of FRENDSHIP, and the Declaracyon, ſhewing wherin HONOURE ſhold reſte. Tranſlated into Englysſh, by the Erle of WORCESTER. Enprynted by William Caxton, 1481. Fol.

THIS threefold Work is ſo ſufficiently explained in the Prefaces and Concluſions of its ſeveral Parts, that the Reader cannot have a better Account thereof than by a Recital of them: We ſhall therefore begin with his Preface to the firſt Part, which is as follows.

"Here begynneth the Prohemye upon the reducynge, both out of Latyn as of Frensſhe, into our Englysſh Tongue, of the Polytyque Book, named Tullius de Senectute; which that Tullius wrote upon the Diſputations and Commynycacions made to the puiſſant Duc Cato, Senatour of Rome, by Scipion and Lelius, then beyng yong noble Knyghtes, and alſo Senatours of the ſaid Rome, of the Worſhippe, Recommendacyon, and Magnyficence that ſhold be gyven to Men of olde Age, for theyr Deſertes and Experyence in Wyſedom of polytyque Governaunce, and blamed them that reproven or lothen olde Age; and how Caton exhorteth and counſeileth olde Men to be joyful and bere pacyently olde Age, whan it cometh to them: And how Tullius, at reverence of Caton, declareth, by ways of Example, how Ennius, thauncyent Philoſophre, purpoſeth and wryteth in three Verſes compendyouſly unto his Frende Atticus, alſo a Senatour of Rome, how he toke grete Thought and Charge for the Governaunce of the comyn Prouffyght; for which he deſerved grete Lawde and Honoure, in preferring the ſame, named in Latin, Res Publica, kepyng the Romaynes prosperous, and defendyng them fro theyr Adverſaryes and Rebelles. Whiche Book was tranſlated and thyſtoryes openly declared by the Ordenaunce and Deſyre of the noble auncyent Knyght, Syr Johan Faſtolf, of the Countee of Norfolk, Bannerette, lyvyng the Age of fourſcore Yere; excercſyng the Warrys in the Royame of Fraunce, and other [256] Countrees, for the Diffence and unyverſal Welfare of bothe Royames of Englond and Fraunce, by forty Yeres endurying, the Fayte of Armes hauntyng, and in admynyſtryng Juſtice and polytique Governaunce, under thre Kyngs; that is to were, Henry IV. Henry V. Henry VI and was Governour of the Duchye of Angeou, and the Countee of Mayne, Capytayne of many Townys, Caſtellys, and Fortreſſys, in the ſaid Royame of Fraunce; havyng the Charge and Saufgarde of them dyverſe Yeres, ocupyeng and rewlynge thre hondred Speres, and the Bowes acuſtomed thenne; and yeldyng good Acompt of the forſaid Townes, Caſtellys, and Fortreſſes to the ſeyd Kyngs, and to theyr Lyeutenauntes, Prynces of noble Recommendacion; as Johan, Regent of Fraunce, Duc of Bedford, Thomas, Duc of Exeter; Thomas, Duc of Clarence and other Lyeutenauntes; prayeng to take this reducyng pacyently, and ſubmittyng me to the Amendyng and Correction of the Reder and Underſtonder, that is diſpoſed to rede, or have any Contemplacion in thiſtoryes of this Book, whiche were drawn and compyled out of the Bookes of thauncyent Phyloſophers of Grece, as in thorygynal Text of Tullius de Senectute in Latin, is ſpecifyced compendyouſly, which is in manner harde the Texte: But this Book reduced in Englysſh Tongue, is more ample emnowned, and more ſwetter to the Reder, kepyng the juſte Sentence of the Latyn.

Thence for as moche as this Book thus reduced into our Engliſh, is with grete Inſt [...]ce, Labour, and Coſte comen into myn honde; which I advyſedly have ſeen over, redde, and conſidered the noble honeſte and vertuous Mates, neceſſarily requyſite unto Men stepte in Age, and to yong Men, for to lerne how they ought to come to the ſame, to whiche every Man naturelly deſyreth to atteyne. And the Matter and Commynycacion of this ſaid Book bytwene that wiſe and noble Man Cato, on that one part, and Scipio and Lelius, two yonge Knyghtes, on that other part, is moch behoefful to be knowen to every Man, vertuous, and wel diſpoſed, of what ſome ever Eage reſonable that he be. Thenne by cauſe I have not ſeen ony of the ſame here to fore, I have endevoured me to gete it with grete difficulte, and ſo gotten, have put it in Enprynte, and dilygently, after my lytil Underſtandyng, corrected it, to thentente that noble vertuous and wel diſpoſed Men myght have it to loke on, and to underſtonde it. And this Book is not requyſite, ne eke convenyent, for every rude and ſymple [257] Man, which undeſtandeth not of Science, ne Connyng, and for ſuche as have not herde of the noble, wiſe and grete Lords, Gentilmen, and Marchauntes that have ſeen, and dayly been ocupyed in Maters towchying the publyque Weal. And in eſpecial unto them, that been paſſed theyr grene Yongthe, and eke their myddle Age, called Virylyte, and ben approchid unto Senectute, callyd olde and auncyent Eage; wherin they may ſee how to ſuffre, and bere the ſame pacyently; and what Surete and Vertue ben in the ſame: And have alſo cauſe to be joyous and glad, that they have eſcaped and paſſed, the manyfolde Peryllys and doubteous Adventures, that ben in Juvente and Yongthe, as in this ſaid Booke here followyng, ye may more plainly ſee. Whiche Booke endyted and wrote in Latyn, by the noble Philoſopher and Prince of Eloquence, Tullius Conſul Romayn; within the Breſte of whom, Phyloſophye Naturel and Morall, had choſen her Domicill: Out of whiche it hath ben tranſlated into Frenſh, and after into our Englysſh Tongue, as hier after al a longe ye may ſee.

Alſo, whan the ſaid Tullius had made his Book, De Senectute, he aftir made another Book, called De Amicicia, that is to ſay, of Frendſhip. In which he reherceth of two yong Knyghtes of Rome, that one named Sevola, and that other Faunyus, both Sones-in-law unto Lelius, a noble Senatour of Rome, and felawe and alyed in Frendſhip with Scipio Affrycan; whiche within fewe days to fore was deed. How they deſyred to knowe of the Frendſhip that was betweene the ſaid Scipio whyles he lived, and Lelius theyr ſaid Fader-in-law: And of the Diſputation in Frendſhip, as alſo playnly it appiereth in the ſame; which Book was tranſlated by the vertuous and noble Erle, therle of Wurceſtre, into our Englysſh Tongue. And by cauſe it is accordyng and requyſite to have Frendſhip joyned to olde Eage, I have enprynted the ſaid Book of Frendſhip, and annexed to it the Book of Eage; which Book of Frendſhip is full neceſſary and behoefful unto every Eſtate and Degree: And aftir, I have ſette in this ſaid Book, followyng them bothe, a Noble Treatys of the Declaracion of two noble Knyghtes Romaynes, in makyng of two Oracions to ſore the Senate, to knowe wherin Nobleſſe reſteth? And thus this Volume is dyvyded into three particuler Werkes; whiche ben of grate Wyſdom in old Age, very Love in Frendſhip, and the Queſtion wherin Nobleſſe reſteth? Which lytil Volume I have empryſed tenprynte under the Umbre and Shadowe [258] of the noble Protection of our mooſt dradde Soverayne and naturel Lyege Lord and mooſt Criſten Kyng, Kyng Edward the Fourth, to whom I moſte humbly byſeche to receyve the ſaid Book of me William Caxton, his mooſt humble Subget and litil Servaunt, and not to deſdeyn to take it of me ſo poure, ignoraunt, and ſymple a Perſone: And of his mooſt bountynous Grace to pardonne me ſo preſumyng; beſchyng Almyghty God to kepe, mayntene, and graunte to him longe Lyf and proſperous, and thaccompliſhment of his hye and noble Deſyres: And aftir this ſhort and tranſitorye Lyf, everlaſtyng Lyf and Joye in Heven, Amen."

After this general Preface, follows a Table of the Heads in the firſt Part or Diſcourſe of Old Age; which being almoſt eight Leaves, is too long to be here recited, and much more any tollerable Abstract of the Diſcourſe itſelf; which extending as far as the Printer's Mark I.2. for this Book has Signatures at the bottom of it, though no Numbers on the Pages at top, concludes with theſe Words: ‘"Thus endeth the Boke of Tulle of Old Age, tranſlated out of Latyn into Frenſhe, by Laurence de Primo Facto, at the Commandment of the noble Prynce Lowys Duc of Burbon, and enprynted by me, ſymple Perſone, William Caxton, into Englysſhe, at the Playſir, Solace, and Reverence of Men growing into Olde Age, the 12 Day of Auguſt, the Yere of our Lord 1481."’ To this is joined the Second Treatiſe, beginning with theſe Words.

‘"Here foloweth the ſaid Tullius de Amicicia, tranſlated into our maternall Englysſhe Tongue, by the noble famous Earl, the Erle of Wurceſtre, Sone and Heyre to the Lord Typtoft, which in his Tyme flowred in Vertue and Cunnyng, to whom I knewe none lyke emonge the Lordes of the Temporalite, in Science and Moral Vertue. I byſeche Almyghty God to have Mercy on his Sowle, and praye all them that ſhall here or rede this lityl Treatys, moch vertuous of Frendſhip, in like wiſe of your Charyte, to remembre his Soul emong your Prayers. And by cauſe this Werke was made by the Prince of Eloquence, Tullius, intitled De Amycicia, after that he had achevid his Boke De Senectute, as hertofore ye may more playnly ſee at large, thene me ſemeth it requiſite and neceſſarye that I ſette in folowing the ſaid Book, this Book De Amicicia, which, by Goddes Grace, ſhal playnly folowe."’ This Treatiſe is marked with Signatures, in the ſame manner as the former, that is to [259] ſay, an alphabetical Letter repeated on every Leaf, with a numerical Figure as far as four, then four Leaves blank without any Signature: ſo that this Treatiſe beginning at A, 1. and ending at D, 4. has 28 Leaves in it, and concludes in this manner. ‘"Thus endeth this Boke, named Tullius de Amicicia, which treateth of Frendſhip, uttered and declared by a noble Senatour of Rome, named Lelyus, unto his two Sones-in-lawe, alſo Noble Men of Rome, named Faunyus and Sevola. In which they deſyred him to enforme them of the Frendſhip that was betweene the ſaid Lelius and the noble Prynce Scipio Affrican. Wherin he hath anſwered, and tolde to them the noble Vertues that be in Frendſhip, and without Vertue, veray Frendſhip may not be, as he prevyth by many Exſamples and notable Concluſions, as heretofore is moch playnly expreſſyd, and ſaid all alonge. Whiche Werke was tranſlated by the vertuous and noble Lord and Erle, therle of Worceſtre; on whoos Sowle I becheſe Almyghty God to have Mercy; and alle ye that ſhal rede or here this ſaid Werke, of your Charyte, I beſeche you, to praye for hym. And by cauſe this ſaid Book, De Amicicia, is ful neceſſarye and requyſite to be had and knowen, I have put it in emprynte, to thentent, that veray Amyte and Frendſhip may be had, as it ought to be, in every Eſtate and Degree; and Vertue, without whiche Frendſhip may not be had, may be encreaced, and Vices eſchewid. Thenne whan I had enprynted the Book of Olde Age, whiche the ſaid Tullyus made, me ſemed it acordyng, that this ſaid Booke of Frendſhip ſhold folowe, by cauſe ther cannot be annexed to olde Age a bettir thynge than good and very Frendſhip: which two ſaid Bokes here to fore wreton ben of grete Wiſdom and Auctoryte, and full neceſſarye behoeffull and requyſite unto every Age, Eſtate and Degree. And that they prouffyte in encrecyng of Vertue, I beſeche the bleſſyd Trynyte, to geve and graunte unto alle them that ſhal rede and here thiſe Bokes, and ſo to flee and eſchewe Vices and Synnes, that by the Merytes of vertuoſe honeſte and good Werkes, we may atteyne, aftir this ſhorte tranſytorye Lif, the eternall bleſſyd Lif in Heven, where is Joye and Glorye withoute ende. Amen."’

Laſtly, follow the Two Declarations, made by Publius Cornelius Scipio and Gayus Flamyneus, Competitors for the Love of Lucreſſe; ſhewing wherein True Honour and Nobleneſs conſiſts: The former placing it in Blood, Riches, [260] and the worſhipful Deeds of his Anceſtors, without urging any thing of his own Life or Manners; the latter inſiſting, that Nobleneſs cannot be derived from the Glory or Merits of another Man, or from the flattering Goods of Fortune, but muſt reſt in a Man's own proper Virtue and Glory. After theſe Orations, which, with the Argument or Introduction, take up nineteen Leaves, the whole Book is concluded by our Editor in theſe Words. ‘"Here I make an ende of this Mater for this tyme; prayeng and requyryng all theym, that in this ſaid Werke ſhal have ony Playſyre, that ye wil remembre hym that tranſlated it into our Maternal and Englysſh Tonge. And not only this ſaid Werke, but the Book of Tullius de Amicicia, here to fore enprynted, which treateth ſo wel of Frendſhip and Amyte; I mean; the right vertuous and noble Erle, therle of Wurceſtre, which late pytouſly loſt his Lif*; whos Soul I recommende unto youre ſpecial Prayers; and alſo in his Tyme made many other vertuous Werkes, whiche I have hard of. O good bleſſyd Lord God, what grete Loſſe was it of that noble vertuous and wel-diſpoſed Lord? whan I remembre and advertyze his Lif, his Science, and his Vertue; me thynketh God not diſplesyd ouer grete Loſſe of ſuch a Man, conſyderyng his Eſtate and Conning; and alſo thexcerciſe of the ſame; with the grete Laboures in gooyng on Pylgremage unto Jheruſalem, viſytyng there the holy Places that our bleſſyd Lord Jheſu Criſte halowed with his bleſſyd Preſence, and ſhedyng there his precious Blood for oure Redempcion, and from thens aſcended unto his Fader in Heven. And what Worſhip had he at Rome, in the Preſence [261] of our holy Fader the Pope? And ſo in alle other Places unto his Deth; at which Deth, every Man that was there, might lerne to dye, and take his Deth paciently; wherin I hope, and doubte not, but that God receyved his Soule into hes evirlaſtyng Blyſſe. For, as I am enformed, he ryght advyſedly ordeyn'd alle his thynges, as well for his laſt Will of worldly Goodes, as for his Sowle Helthe, and pacyently and holyly without grudchyng in Charyte to fore, that he departed out of this World, whiche is gladſom and joyous to here. Thenne I here recommend his Sowle unto your Prayers; and alſo, that we, at our departyng, maye departe in ſuche wyſe, that it may pleaſe our Lord God to receyve us into his evirlaſtyng Blyſſe. Amen. Explicit per Caxton."’

XLIII. The Boke named the GOVERNOUR; deviſed by Sir THOMAS ELYOT, Knyght. Imprinted at London, in Flete-ſtrete, in the Houſe of THO. BERTHELET, cum privilegio ad imprimendum ſolum. 8o. 1553. 216 Leaves, beſides Tables, &c.

THIS Sir Thomas Elyot, for his Learning, and vertuous Accompliſhments, was an Honour to the Gentry and Nobility of England, in his Time; and tho' his younger Years were much employed in Court and State Affairs, eſpecially certain Embaſſies into Italy, &c. yet did he apply the Knowledge thereby acquired rather to the Improvement and Communication of his Studies, than to the more faſhionable Attainments of worldly Riches, Offices and Dignities. He is ſaid, by Bale, to have been the Son of Sir Richard Elyot, and born in Suffolk; but his chief Houſe and Eſtate was at Carleton in Cambridgeſhire; of which County, we find him in the Liſt of High Sheriffs, in the 24 and 36th of Henry VIII. and at which Town he was buried in 1546, having a handſome Monument over his Grave. His Works, partly original Compoſitions, partly Tranſlations, from Greek and Latin, are all upon grave and important Subjects. They need not, upon this occaſion, be here enumerated, being at leaſt a Dozen in number; [262] which, perhaps, in little more than ſo many Years, he ſet forth in the Engliſh Tongue; whereof his Dictionary is not the leaſt conſiderable. But we may here obſerve, that the Accounts which have hitherto been given of them, are very imperfect, eſpecially that of Anthony Wood. As to this Book, named the Governour, we find it to be the firſt he publiſhed; and it has been ſo well received, as to have had as many, if not more Editions than any other of his Writings. This Edition we make uſe of, is not mentioned in the Author laſt quoted; and its having the Date of 1534, in the ornamental Border, from a wooden Print, in the Title-Page, gives room to conjecture the Book was firſt printed that Year.

It is dedicated by the Author to King Henry VIII. and in his ſaid Proheme, or Dedication, he has theſe Words, which verify in part what we have above obſerved, and at the ſame time ſhew you the ſubject Matter of his Work. ‘"I have now enterpryſed to diſcribe, in our Vulgare Tonge, the Forme of a juſt publike Weale; which Mattier I have gathered, as well of the Saiyings of moſt noble Autors, (Greekes and Latines) as by myne owne Experience; I being continually trained in ſome daielye Affaires of the publicke Weale of this your moſt noble Realme, almoſt from my Childhood; which Attemptate is not of Preſumpcion to teache any Perſon, I myſelf having moſt nede of teachyng; but only to the entent that Men, which will be ſtudious about the Weale publyque, may find the thynge thereto expedient, compendiouſly written. And for as muche as this preſente Boke treateth of the Education of them, that hereafter maie be deemed woorthy to be Governours of the publike Weal under your Highneſſe, which Plato affirmeth to be the firſt and chief Parte of a Publike Weal; Solomon ſaiynge alſo, where Governours be not, the People ſhall falle into ruine; I therefore have named it the Governour, and do now dedicate unto youre Hygheneſſe, as the fyrſt Fruits of my Study, &c."’

After the Table of Contents, our Author enters upon his Work, which is divided into Three Books, with explaining the Signification of a Publick Weal, and why it is called in Latin Reſpublica; giving the Reaſon of Government, and ſhewing why Man, for his Underſtanding, and the Honour which is due to it, is beſt fitted for the ſame. Further, that one Sovereign Governor ought to be in a Publick Weal; and what Damage hath happened, when a Multitude has had [263] equal Authority, without any Sovereign? This is illuſtrated by many Examples, eſpecially from our own Hiſtory of the Saxon Invaſion and Diviſions of this Kingdom, till it was reduced to its primitive Eſtate, by the noble King Edgar: But here not propoſing to deſcribe the Office or Duty of a Sovereign Governor, he diſtinguiſhes his Intention to treat of the two Parts of a Publick Weal, named due Adminiſtration and neceſſary Occupation, which ſhall be divided into two Volumes. ‘"In the firſt, ſaith he, ſhall be comprehended the beſt Form of Education or brynging up of noble Children from their Nativitie, in ſuch manner, as thei may be found worthy, and alſo able to be Governours of a Publyke Weale. The ſecond Volume, which God grantyng me Quietneſe and Libertee of Minde, I will ſhortly after ſende forth: It ſhall conteyn all the Remenant which I can, either by Learnyng or Experience, find apt to the Perfection of a juſt Publike Weale; in which, I ſhall ſo endeavour myſelf, that all Men, of what Aſtate or Condicion ſoo ever thei bee, ſhall fynde therin Occaſion to be alwaie vertuouſly occupied, and not without pleaſure, yf they be not of the Schools of Ariſtippus, or Apitius; of whom, the one ſuppoſed Felicitee to bee onely in Lecherye; the other, in delicate Feedynge and Gluttonye; from whoſe ſharpe Talones, and cruelle Teethe, I beſeeche all gentyll Readers to defende theſe Warkes, which for theyr Commoditee is only compiled."’ Then he proceeds to obſerve in the third Chapter, That in a Publick Weal there ought to be inferior Governors, called Magiſtrates, which ſhould be appointed, or choſen by the Sovereign Governor. In the next Chapter, he treats of the Education or Form of bringing up the Children of Gentlemen, which are to have Authority in the Publick Weal: ſo proceeds to the Order of Learning, that Noblemen, in their Minority, ſhould be trained to, and at what Age Tutors ſhould be provided, and what belongs to their Office. In what wiſe Muſick may be neceſſary to a Nobleman. The Commendation of Painting and Carving in a Gentleman. The exact Care required in chuſing of Maſters. The Order to be uſed in Learning, and which Authors to be firſt read. The Reaſons why Gentlemen at this time be not equal in Doctrine to the ancient Noblemen, which are Pride, Avarice, and Negligence of Parents, with the want or ſcarcity of ſufficient Maſters or Tutors. Here we have a Character of Henry Beauclerk, King of England, [264] and his Brothers: Alſo a Commendation of Eloquence and of Poetry, with Tranſlations of ſome Verſes from the ancient Poets, ſhewing what good Advice, even the wanton Writers often contain; and that it were no Reaſon, for ſome little matter that is in their Verſes, to abandon therefore all their Works. ‘"No wiſe Man entreth into a Gardein, (ſais our Author) but he ſoon eſpieth good Herbes from Nettils, and treadeth the Nettils under his fete, whiles he gadreth good Herbes, whereby he taketh no damage; or if he be ſtungen, he maketh light of it, and ſhortly forgetteth it: Semblably if he do rede wanton Metter myxte with Wiſedome, he putteth the worſt under fote, and ſorteth out the beſt; or if his Courage be ſtered or provoked, he remembreth the litteil Pleaſure and great Detriment that ſhulde enſue of it, and withdrawyng his Mynde to ſome other Study or Exerciſe, ſhortly forgetteth it."’ From hence, we paſs to the Law, and ſome Obſervations upon the Improvements to be made in the Study thereof. The Cauſe why, at this day, there be in this Realm ſo few perfect School-Maſters. Sundry Forms of Exerciſe mentioned, as neceſſary for every Gentleman; ſome of which are referred to in Galen's Book, De Sanitate tuenda; ‘"which is tranſlated into Latine wonderfull eloquently, by Dr. Linacre, late moſt woorthy Phiſicion to our Moſt Noble Soveraigne Lord Kyng Henry VIII."’ And thoſe mentioned are Wreſtling, Running, Swimming, Art of Defence, Riding and Vaulting; and here ſpeaking of Horſes he ſais, ‘"It is ſuppoſed, that the Caſtle of Arundel in Suſſex, was made by one Beauvize, Erl of Southampton, for a Monument of his Horſe, named Arundell, which in far Countries hadde ſaved his Maiſter from many Perils."’ Then we come to the ancient Hunting of the Greeks and Romans; alſo of Hawking; and next of Dancing; ſhewing, that it is not all in general to be reproved. The Antiquity of Dancing, and wherefore in the good Order of Dancing, a Man and Woman dance together. How Dancing may be an Introduction to the firſt moral Virtue, called Prudence. Of the Motions in Dancing, and what they are called; as the Honour, the Braul; with an Explanation of the word Maturity; the Singles and Reprinſe, or Indication of Circumſpection, which gives our Author an Opportunity, under that Conſideration, to deliver a laudatory Character of King Henry VII. Other Branches of Prudence are alſo further deſcrib'd, from other [265] Motions or Steps in Dancing. This ends with a Criticiſm on the words Modeſty and Diſcretion, not hitherto known in the Engliſh Tongue, and of the word Manſuetude, till this time, alſo unknown in our Tongue; with Reaſons for naturalizing Words from the Romans, as they did from the Grecians. Hence we paſs to other Paſtimes, expedient, if moderately uſed. Here Dicing is ſhrewdly cenſured, its ill Conſequences expos'd, and the vicious Motives to it; with Examples how contemptible it was held by the Ancients. Cards and Tables are more favourably cenſured, as depending more on Wit, and truſting leſs in Fortune; eſpecially were ſuch Improvements made in theſe kinds of Gaming, that Knowledge or Science in higher things might thereby be advanced delightfully, and ſo as to tender Study moſt commodious, whether in military Contentions, or thoſe between Virtue and Vice, or any other laudable Invention. To this end, is the Game of Cheſſe commended, and as moſt pleaſant to thoſe Players at it, who have read the Moralization of it, and think thereof in their Play; which Book is in Engliſh but very ſcarce, becauſe few, in their Play, ſeek for Virtue or Wiſdom. Thus we come to Shooting in the Long-Bow, which he commends as the principal of all other Exerciſes, not only for being more moderate, but more ſerviceable; having been our beſt Defence, and made us moſt victorious, fam'd, and fear'd, as may be ſeen in the Hiſtories of King Richard I. and King Edward I. Hence our Author takes occaſion to exclaim againſt the Decay of Archery in his Time, and the Neglect of putting in Execution thoſe Laws and Proviſions which were made for reſtoring the ſame: And here he concludes the firſt Book, containing 27 Chapters, and 84 Leaves.

The Second Book begins with laying down ſuch virtuous Admonitions, as ſhould be premeditated by whomſoever is appointed a Governor of a Publick Weal; with ſome Examples produced to prove, that as the Governor is, ſuch is the People; and more refer'd to in Hiſtory; the Readers of which, our Author moſt deſires ſhould be, of all others, Princes and Governors. Thoſe Admonitions our Author would have delectably written, and ſet in a Table within the Governor's Bedchamber, with thoſe Verſes of Claudian to the Emperor Honorius added, which he has here translated, and of which we ſhall give our Reader only this Taſte:

[266]
What thou mayſt do, delight not for to know;
But rather what thing will become thee beſt:
Embrace thou Vertue, keep thy Courage low,
And think that always Meaſure is a Feaſt.

And juſt before:

If Luſt or Anger do thy Mind aſſail:
Subdue Occaſion, thou ſhalt ſoon prevail.

Then proceeds he to the Expoſition of Majeſty, which he calls ‘"The Fountain of all excellent Manners, the whole Proportion and Figure of noble State; and is properly a Beauty or Comelineſs in Countenance, Language and Geſture, apt to his Dignity, and accommodate to Time, Place and Company; which like as the Sun doth his Beams, ſo doth it caſt on the Beholders and Hearers a pleaſant and terrible Reverence," &c. Next, we have his Judgment and Advice about the Apparel fit for a Nobleman, who is a Governor or great Counſellor; alſo concerning the Furniture of his Houſe; the Definition or Deſcription of true Nobility, and whence it took its Denomination; in which Chapter he has this Alluſion: ‘"We have in this Realm Coynes, which be called Nobles; as long as thei be ſene to be Golde, thei be ſo called; but if thei be counterfeited and made in Braſs, Coper or other vile Mettall; who, for the Print onely, calleth theim Nobles? wherby it appereth, that the Eſtimation is in the Mettall, and not in the Print or Figure."’ Hence he proceeds to the Praiſe of Affability, and the Uſe thereof in every State, more particularly in the Facility of Addreſs or being ſpoken to; with Examples of the diſmal Condition of a Prince and his Realm, where Liberty of Speech is reſtrain'd. The notable Virtue of Placability is alſo here illuſtrated; and here he gives us at large, a domeſtick Example of this Virtue, comparable with the beſt that ever was recorded of any other Princes or People, in the notable Story of King Henry the IV. his Thankſgiving to God, upon hearing that the Prince of Wales, afterwards our renowned King Henry V. was committed to Priſon, and the Reaſon thereof; in that he was bleſs'd with ſuch a Judge, as feared not to adminiſter, and ſuch a Son, as ſcorned not to obey Juſtice *. From hence we paſs to Arguments and Examples, ſhewing [267] that a Governor ought to be merciful, with the difference between Mercy and vain Pity. Here we have the choice Example of Mercy ſhewed by the Emperor Auguſtus to his Enemy Lucius Cinna, from Seneca. Then he deſcants upon the other principal Parts of Humanity; the Excellency of Benevolence, Patience, Charity, adorn'd with many ancient Examples. Of Beneficence, Liberality, and Prodigality. The true Deſcription of Friendſhip. The wonderful Hiſtory of Titus and Giſippus, whereby is fully declared the Figure of perfect Amity, with ſome Cautions to know a Friend from a Flatterer. The Diviſion of Ingratitude, and the Diſpraiſe [268] thereof, with Inſtances of Kindneſs in Beaſts. Of the Election of Friends, and the Diverſity of Flatterers, illuſtrated alſo with ancient Examples and Obſervations. That many Friends are neceſſary for a Governor: and herewith ends the Second Book, at the 141 Leaf, containing 14 Chapters.

The third and laſt Book, begins with a Diſcourſe on the noble and moſt excellent Virtue named Juſtice; whereupon it is obſerved from whence the Name of King firſt proceeded; the Diſtinctions between commutative and corrective Juſtice; ſo proceeds to the firſt Part of Juſtice diſtributive. And here is firſt recommended the Love and Honour of God, and the Example of the Gentiles inſtanc'd, who in ſuch Honour placed the chief Part of Juſtice. This leads us to obſerve the Tranquillity that is cauſed by Devotion, and to conſider the Places conſecrated for the ſame. Here we have the Juſtice of raiſing Temples for that purpoſe, and offering our Worſhip therein with convenient Ceremonies. Next he treats of the three Counſellors of Juſtice, Reaſon, Society and Knowledge, and of its two Enemies, Violence and Fraud; with Examples ſhewing, that Juſtice ought to be between Enemies. Diſtinctions of the Word Fides, which is the Foundation of Juſtice; as when it may be called Faith; when Credance; when Truſt; alſo when named Loyalty, according to the French, or Fidelity, from the Latin; with ſeveral hiſtorical Illuſtrations of the ſame. Then we come to that Part of Fidelity, which concerns the keeping of Promiſes or Covenants: and here ends his Diſcourſe upon Juſtice. So we enter upon the noble Virtue of Fortitude, and the two extreme Vices, Audacity and Timeroſity: more particularly in what Acts Fortitude conſiſts; and that Painfulneſs is the firſt Companion of Fortitude, with ancient Examples verifying the ſame, according to the Method hitherto purſued. Thus we come to his Recommendations of Patience: Advice how it may be obtained, and a Remedy againſt Impatience. Of Patience in ſuſtaining Wrongs and Rebukes; alſo in Repulſes, or Hinderance of Promotion, with the Commodities which happen from the Advancement of good Men. Hence we proceed to the Praiſe of Magnanimity: And in this Chapter, among other Examples, we have that of King Edgar's Treatment to the King of Scots, who wondered, that himſelf, and other tall able-bodied Princes and Commanders, ſhould ſuffer themſelves to be ſubdued by ſuch a little Body as Edgar was: Proving, that by this Virtue, and not by Chance, he was [269] preferred to the Sovereignty over ſo brave a People. Here follow the Vices attending this Virtue, ſuch as Obſtinacy and Ambition. Abſtinence and Continence are next treated of, as the Companions of Fortitude; the former eſpecially with relation to Rewards; with Examples ſhewing, how backward good Men have been againſt being led into the Bondage thereof; and of the latter, we have alſo Examples in ſeveral eminent Perſons. Next of Conſtancy, Temperance and Moderation. Of Sapience, and the Definition thereof. The Signification of the Muſes; of Science; the Underſtanding. Of paſt Experience, and a Defence of Hiſtory, wherefore it is commendable, what it ſignifies; with an Anſwer to the Objections of thoſe who would ſlight the Advantages thereof, becauſe it has been ſometimes corrupted with fabulous Inventions. Next we are taught the other Part of Experience or Practice, neceſſary in the proper Perſon of a Governor; and then, as a Vice neceſſary to be diſcouraged in Men in Authority, we have a Eſſay upon Detraction, with a Deſcription of the Picture which Apelles painted thereof. Laſtly, the three concluding Chapters are upon Counſel and Conſultation, in what form they ought to uſed in a Publick Weale, and what therein ought to be chiefly conſidered. As the Choice of good Counſellors, and Regard to be paid them; with the Method of Belinger Baldaſine, to diſcover what would be the Reſult of Opinions in Council; and the Matter to be conſulted of; in which Generals are to be conſidered before Particulars: And with this Head concludes the third and laſt Book of this preſent Work; which Book contains 30 Chapters, and the Volume ends with the Number of Leaves obſerved at the Beginning.

XLIV. A COLLECTION, HISTORICAL and POLITICAL, of Letters, Diſcourſes, Memorials, &c. concerning ſeveral Perſons and Places of Note, in the Reign of Queen ELIZABETH: Gather'd, chiefly, from the Papers of HENRY Earl of DERBY, Lord Lieutenant of Lancaſhire and Cheſhire, and one of her Majeſty's moſt Hon. Privy Councill. MS. Fol. 1589. about 280 Pages.

[270]

IT was a Cuſtom, in the Reign when this Collection was made, and indeed one or two Reigns after, not fuller of Induſtry than Modeſty, and publick Spirit, for Gentlemen, of good Intelligence, thus to copy over and tranſmit in Volumes to Poſterity, ſo many little, obſervable and authentic Memoirs, as otherwiſe, for their Incongruity, could never have been preſerved; but for their Uſe have been much prefer'd to our beſt Libraries. In a Collection of this kind, there is all the Toil of writing, which in a continued Hiſtory is employed, but none of the Partiality; all the Uſe of Hiſtories compiled for the Preſs, but none of the Profit: as if only the Information of After ages were intended thereby; and all Praiſe, Reward, or Memory of thoſe, who were Inſtrumental to it, ſtudiouſly declined: For from the Generality of theſe Collections, which we have ſeen, it ſeldom does appear, otherwiſe than from what may be preſumed, as in the preſent Caſe, who was the Collector, or the Scribe; or by whom, and for what end they were ſet to work; yet the end may be commonly underſtood in moſt of theſe Collections; ſeeing many Particulars may be too well known, or contain too much Truth, or be Matter of too private a Concern, or need the further Illuſtration of correſponding Authorities, to be put in print in their Collectors own Time; but tranſmitted thus, in a Miſcellany, or Cluſter of indifferent Matters, they are preſerved, like Fruits that find a Safeguard in their own Leaves, till they arrive at that Maturity, in which it is fit they ſhould be, occaſionally, gathered for publick Uſe.

The preſent Collection, may, perhaps, as to ſome Parts of it, be looked upon in this light. Tho' the Tranſcriber's [271] Name does not directly appear, ſeveral Parts of the Collection may ſufficiently authoriſe the Title we have drawn out for it, as above. The Period of Time it relates to, may be comprehended between the Years 1584 and 1589; they being the earlieſt and lateſt Dates we find therein; and hence have we ſettled the Date in the ſaid Title we have given it; as believing nothing in the Book to be written below that Year. It begins with a Letter from the Privy Council to the Earl of Pembroke, informing him of her Majeſty's Pleaſure, that the ſix hundred Foot, and thirty-two Demilances to be levied for the Service in the North out of the County of Salop, ſhould be taken out of the trained Numbers only, in reſpect of the preſent Neceſſity, and the Importance of the Service wherein they are to be employ'd; alſo cenſuring ſome Negligence in his Lordſhip's Care for her Majeſty's Service, touching the Certificates of his Deputy Lieutenants of Salop and Wigorne; for that the Proviſions and Weapons they had ſupply'd were nothing anſwerable to Expectation. And further, deſiring his Lordſhip's Opinion, if the contagious Sickneſs now at Ludlow ſhould continue, whether her Majeſty's Houſhold ſhould be removed to ſome other Place, and his Lordſhip not repair into Wilts till it was over, &c. This is the Subſtance of the ſaid Letter, which is ſubſcribed with the Names of ſome Privy Counſellors; but the Leaf is ſo much damaged, and the Writing blinded by ſome Wet which has befaln it, that all we can further read, and this with great Difficulty, is the Name of Comptroller, Chamberlain and Walſingham; but may gueſs, from the hazardous Times ſpoken of in it, that it was written at the firſt arming of the Nation againſt the Spaniſh Invaſion, about the Year 1586. The next Piece, is a remarkable Letter from the Earl of Leyceſter, then Governour of the Low Countries, to Sir Thomas Hennage, dated the 23d of September 1586, beginning thus: ‘"Sithens my other Letters of the 20th, yt fell oute that yeſterday Morninge ſome Intelligence was broughte, that the Enemie was bringing a Convoye of Victuall, garded with 300 Horſe. There was ſente out to ympeache yt, 200 Horſe and 300 Footemen, and a Nomber more both Horſe and Foote to ſecond them: Among other young Men my Nephew Sir Philip Sydney was, and the rather for that the Coronell Norrice himſelfe went with the Stande of Footemen, to ſecond the reſt; but the Vangard of the Prince was marched and came with this Convoye, [272] and being a myſtie Morninge, our Men fell into the Ambuſcade of Footemen, who were 3000, the moſte Musketts, the reſte Pykes. Our Horſemen being formoſte by their haſte indeede, woulde not turne, but paſte throughe and charged the Horſemen that flede at the backe of their Footmen ſo valientlie, as albeyt they were 1100 Horſe, and of the verie Chieffe of all his Troupes, they brake them, being not 200. Many of our Horſes hurt and killed, among which was my Nephewes owne. He wente and changed to another, and woulde needes to the Charge again, and onſte paſte thoſe Musketters; where he receyved a ſore Wounde upon his Thighe, three Fingers above his Knee, the Bone broken quite in Peeces; but for whiche Chance, God did ſend ſuch a Daye as I thinke was never many Yeres ſeene, ſo fewe againſte ſo many."’ Here the Earl proceeds to enumerate the Commanders and other Perſons of Diſtinction in this Rencounter, whoſe Names were Colonel Norrice, who had the Charge of the Foot, my Lord of Eſſex, Sir Thomas Perrot, ‘"and my unfortunate Phillip, ſais he, with Sir William Ruſſell, and divers Gentlemen, and not one hurte but only my Nephew. They killed four of their Enemies chief Leaders, and carried the valient Count Hannibal Gonzaga away with them upon a Horſe; alſo took Captain George Creſier, the principal Soldier of the Camp and Captain of all the Albanez. My Lord Willoughbie overthrew him at the firſt Encounter, Horſe and Man. The Gentleman did acknowledge it himſelf. There is not a properer Gentleman in the Worlde towards than this Lord Willoughbie is; but I can hardly prayſe one more than another, they did all ſo well; yet every one had his Horſe killed or hurt."’ And it was thought very ſtrange, ‘"that Sir William Stanley, with 300 of his Men ſhould paſs in ſpight of ſo many Muskets, ſuch Troops of Horſe, three ſeveral Times, making them remove their Ground, and to return with no more Loſs than he did. Albeyt, I muſt ſay (continues the Earl) yt was too much Loſs for me, for this young Manne was my greateſte Comforte next her Majeſtie of all the Worlde, and if I could buy his Lieffe with all I have, to my Sherte, I woulde geve yt. How God will diſpoſe of him I know not, but feare I muſt needes, greately, the worſte; the Blow is in ſo dangerous a place, and ſo great; yet did I never heare of any Manne that did [273] abide the dreſſinge and ſettinge his Bones better than he did: And he was carried afterwards in my Barge to Arnheim, and I heare this Daye he ys ſtill of good hearte, and comforteth all aboute him as much as maye be. God of his Mercie graunte me his Lieffe, which I cannot but doubt of greately. I was abrode that tyme in the Fielde, givinge ſome Order to ſupplie that Buſineſs, which did indure almoſte twoe Owres in continuall Fighte; and metinge Phillip commynge upon his Horſebacke, not a lytle to my Greafe. But I woulde you had ſtode by to heare his moſt loyall Speeches to her Majeſtie; his conſtant Minde to the Cauſe, his lovinge Care over me, and his moſte reſolute Determmation for Deathe, not one Jott appalled for his Blow; which ys the moſte greevous that ever I ſawe with ſuch a Bullet; ryding ſo, a longe myle and a halfe, uppon his Horſe, ere he came to the Campe; not ceaſing to ſpeak ſtill of her Majeſtie; being glad, yf his Hurte and Deathe mighte any waye honour her Majeſtie; for her's he was whileſte he lyved, and God's he was ſure to be yf hee dyed: Prayed all Men to thinke that the Cauſe was as well her Majeſtie's as the Countrie's; and not to be diſcoraged, for you have ſeene ſuche Succeſſe as maye encorage us all; and this my Hurte is the Ordinance of God, by the happe of the Warre. Well I praye God, yf yt be his Will, ſave me his Lieffe; even as well for her Majeſtie's Service ſake, as for myne own Comforte."’ Theſe are the Earl's Words, concerning his ſaid worthy Nephew; and we thought it wou'd be excuſable to tranſcribe thus particularly all he has there ſaid of Sir Philip Sidney, being a Man of ſuch particular Merit; even tho' it ſhould oblige us to be the more general and conciſe in ſucceeding Topicks. The reſt of the Letter, above a Page of ſmall Writing more in folio, relates to the Account of their Enemies Retreat, the Priſoners taken, and the chief Spaniards who were at the Charge, with the Number of their Forces; the hazardous Enterprizes of the Lord North, who tho' bruiſed on the Knee with a Musket-Shot, yet leaving his Bed, haſtned to this Skirmiſh, one Boot on and t'other off, and went to the Matter very luſtily: Alſo of two hopeful young Gentlemen in the Camp, Mr. Hatton and Mr. Umpton, who were as ready in the Service as the meaneſt Soldiers, and got with their Pikes into their Fore-ranks, under Rowland Yorke, to ſecond Sir William Stanley's Company; [274] ‘"and till we ſee what the Prince will do, theſe notable young Fellows, ſais the Earl, will not away:"’ And to this Effect ends the Letter: Signed Robte: Leyceſter.

The next Piece may be entitled, Arguments for the ſudden Execution of Mary Queen of Scots. We have not Leiſure now to examine whether it has ever been printed, nor can we certainly ſay that the Earl aforeſaid was the Author of it; therefore ſhall only obſerve, that it here makes four Pages, and begins with theſe Words: ‘"It may ſeeme a vayne Labor to goe about to heape upp Reaſons for the perſuadinge of that which is of ſuch Neceſſitie, as yt were againſte all Reaſon any waye to thinke it mighte be deſuaded."’ It is written in the ſame Hand with the former, and followed by another Letter of the ſaid Earl's writing, giving a further Account to ſome Nobleman here in England, of their Succeſs in winning a Town by Battery, and the Enemies yielding before Aſſault; in breaking their Horſemen in a moſt valiant Skirmiſh; getting from their Footmen two moſt ſtrong Forts by Aſſault, and making them forſake the third by Night, the Prince himſelf being at hand with his whole Army; and never attempting after the firſt Skirmiſh to empeach them: Which he only ſpeaks in general of here, expecting the Earl of Eſſex, or ſome other that come over, will be more particular. And now that the Prince is retired, intends to diſmiſs his Army into Garriſon, and make a Skip over to ſee his Friends, &c. Dated at the Camp, 14 Octo. 1586. After this, we have a Letter, ſigned Richard Hollande, to a noble Lord, intreating that his Lordſhip would be preſent at the hearing of a Cauſe in the Star-Chamber, wherein his Brother-in-Law, Mr. Dokenfield was concerned: Tis dated from Heaton, 3 May, 1586. And then follows, Queen Elizabeth's Speech in Parliament, alſo the ſame Year, concerning the Form of proceeding againſt the Queen of Scots; and the Delay of her immediate Anſwer to their Petition for the Execution of the ſaid Queen, till ſhe had firſt, ‘"with earneſt Prayer, beſeeched his divine Majeſty, ſo to illuminate her Underſtanding, and inſpire her with his Grace, as ſhe may do and determine that, which ſhall prove to the Eſtabliſhment of his Church, preſervation of their Eſtates, and Proſperity of this Commonwealth under her Charge."’ This Speech conſiſts of four Pages and a half, and begins with theſe Words: ‘"The bottomleſs Graces and immeaſurable Benefits beſtowed upon me [275] by Almighty God, are and have been ſuch, as I muſt not only acknowledge them, but alſo admire them, &c."’ The next is Queen Elizabeth's Speech, in anſwer to the French Ambaſſador, Monſieur Believre, and the reſt of his Company, juſtifying her Proceedings againſt the Queen of Scots. It begins thus: ‘"My Lords Ambaſſadors, I truſt ſo much upon the Goodneſs of the King my good Brother, &c."’ And therein her Majeſty ſais; ‘"I aſſure you, that all the Sorrows and Afflictions which ever I did receive, as concerning the Deaths of the King my Father, the King my Brother, and the Queen my Siſter, have not been ſuch a Grief unto my Heart as the Matter we ſpeak of. I call God to witneſs if ever I would uſe her as ſhe hath done me: All this I take upon my Salvation or Damnation. I have ſeen many Hiſtories, and read I believe as many, I believe, as any Chriſtian Prince or Princeſs, but I never found one Matter like unto this. I remember well your Diſcourſe, and all that you have alledged unto me, but it cannot intice me to change my Will, &c."’ Then follows the moſt ſorrowful and deſperate Letter of Margaret, Queen of Navarre, to Monſieur de Sarlant, complaining of the Queen her Mother's abandoning her to ſhameful Ruin; and proteſting, ‘"That as her Heart wou'd not let her fall into the Hands of her Enemies alive, ſhe would never eat more; and that the first News her Mother ſhoud hear of her ſhoud be her Death."’ After this we have, The Booke of the whole Navie, containing the Names of all the Queen's Majeſtie's Shippes, with their Tonnage, and nomber of Mariners, Gunners and Souldiers the 27 of December, 1585. From hence we learn the Royal Navy then conſiſted of 36 Ships; that the biggeſt, named the Triumph, was of 1000 Tun Burden, carried 350 Mariners, 50 Gunners, and 200 Soldiers. Of the reſt, two were of 900 Ton, one of 800, one of 650, and ſeven of 500, ſo leſſening down to 20 Ton ſome of them. This Liſt is followed with a Diſcourſe, entitled, An Analogie or Reſemblance between Joan Queene of Naples, and Mary Queen of Scotland. It conſiſts of three Leaves; and the Facts or Circumſtances are drawn for Queen Joan, chiefly from Ran. Collenutius, Lib. 5. de Regno Neapolitano; Pet. Mexia in vita Vencelai; Platina; and Leonardus Aretinus, in Hiſtoria Florentina; and thoſe for Queen Mary are gather'd from Buchanan, de Nuptiis Mariae, alſo his Hiſtory of Scotland, and her own Letters. This is followed with [276] an Addition to the ſaid Analogy, of 17 Pages; containing hiſtorical Examples or Precedents of Sovereign Princes being condemned and put to death, in a formal and adviſed Manner; in the Stories of Queen Joan aforeſaid, who was deliberately executed by Charles, King of Naples, thro' the Advice of Lewis King of Hungary; and Conradine King of Naples, who was in like manner condemned and publickly executed; and the moſt Chriſtian Conſtantine, who put to death the Emperor Licinius, with a Compariſon between this Caſe and that of the Queen of Scots; and here we have a Book of this Queen's referr'd to, called Expetit. Cauſarum, &c. Then follows a ſecond Precedent of an Emperor, Tiberius, who put the King of Thrace to death, as we have it in Livy, Tacitus and Suetonius: Alſo a third Precedent in the Emperor Henry VII. who deprived Robert King of Naples, and gave Sentence of Death againſt him. Nay, we have ſeveral Examples alſo produced of Popes, who cannot err, as themſelves affirm, giving their Judgment for the putting of Kings to death; as of Pope Clement IV. againſt Conradine, King of Sicily; alſo Pope Boniface, who put Pope Caeleſtine to death, leſt he ſhou'd, for his ſingular Virtue, be called again to the See; and Pope Urban VIII. who not only put to death eight Cardinals, who are accounted part of his Body, called his Brethren, and in Offence to whoſe Perſons, the Crime of Treaſon lies, according to Gigas and Julius Clarus, but carried three of their Carkaſſes, dried in an Oven, about with him in Portmanteaus, and had their purple Hats born up before him, in terror to others; which Examples, and others, are taken from Collenutius, Guildefingenſe, Corn. Agrippa, Platina, Pedro Mexia, Auguſtine, beſides ſome from the ancient Romans; and confirming Authorities from Hugoline, Johan. Delignano, and others; and all to encourage the execution of the unquiet Queen of Scots.

The next Piece is a Letter of a private Nature, from Sir Edward Standley to my Lord his Brother, intreating him to move the Archbiſhop of Canterbury to make his Friend John Kine a Proctor of the Arches; and contains ſome Acknowledgments for the receipt of ſome Monies from his Lordſhip for his Charges in a Law-Suit: It is dated from Winwycke, 29 December, 1586. And then follows Liber Pacis 1584; or the Names of all the Juſtices of Aſſize in the ſeveral Counties of England and Wales. This Liſt, in double Columns, takes up 29 Leaves. After this, [277] we have another Liſt, which is called alſo, a Book of the Number, Names, and Burden of all the Ships, Barques, and Veſſels, with the Names of all Maſters and able Mariners belonging thereto, within or appertaining to the River of Cheſter. It was written by William Wale, the Mayor, at the Command of the Earl of Derby; to whom it is addreſſed in an Epiſtle, by the ſaid Mayor; bearing Date 18 February, 1586; and it appears in theſe Liſts, that the Number of Ships, Barques, &c. from the Burden of twenty, to ſixty Tons, were fifteen in Number; and that the Owners, Maſters, and Mariners, with the Places of their abode are named, and number'd at 152. To this is joined, the like Account of all the Barques, &c. belonging to the River of Preſton, (in Lancaſhire) called the Water of Rible; and this is perform'd by Laurence Walle, Mayor of Preſton, at the Command of the ſaid Earl of Derby, he being Lord Lieutenant alſo of this County, as appears by this Mayor's Letter to his Lordſhip. This Liſt of Veſſels is contained in one Page; and they are eight in Number, from the Burden of four to ten Ton. The like Book or Liſt of all the Veſſels belonging to the River Wyer in Lancaſhire, as well abroad as at home, with their Burden, Maſters, &c. is addreſſed to the ſaid Earl of Derby, according to his Command, the ſame Year, by Henry Butler, Eſq and William Skillicorne, Gent. The Number of theſe Veſſels are 28, and the Burden between four and eighteen Ton. This is followed with ſuch another Account of the Veſſels, belonging to the Peele of Foodre and the Creeks thereof, in Fournes and Cartmeale, within the ſaid County of Lancaſhire; directed to the ſaid Earl of Derby, the ſame Year, according to his Command, by John Bradley, Eſq and John Richardſon, Gent. They are but five Veſſels in Number, from the Burden of two to twenty Ton. And to this is joined one more ſuch Liſt of all the Veſſels in the Port of Liverpoole, in the ſaid County, taken the ſame Year; with the Names of the Places they were bound to; the Owners, Mariners, &c. They appear to be twenty-eight in Number, and from eight to forty Ton Burden. Then follows a Note concerning the intire Subſidy, and the two Fifteenths and Tenths granted in Parliament; the firſt Payment whereof was to be in November next (viz. 1587) and the ſecond in November 1588: With the Manner of appointing the Collectors thereof. After this we have a Letter from Captain A. Cosbye, dated at Utrecht the 16 [278] February, 1586, to Sir William Stanley; adviſing him to retain the Town of Deventer for her Majeſty's Uſe, notwithſtanding the Contentions between him, and Taxis for the Government, or the Expectation of great Forces from the Prince to remove him; as what will no doubt recover his Credit, Pardon, and her Majeſty's Favour: And offers himſelf to be employ'd into England to further this Service. The next Paper is a Liſt of all the Soldiers and Munition in the Caſtle of Rusſhen and Caſtle Peele in the Iſle of Man, directed to the Earle of Derby, with a Note at the Bottom of all the Proviſions wanting there, which it is hoped his Lordſhip will ſpeedily ſupply: And to this is joyned the Number of all ſort of ſerviceable Men within the ſaid Iſland. Here it appears, the Number of Horſemen were 41, Calliver-men 18, Bow-men 286, and Bill-men 357; but all much unprovided with Weapons and other Furniture, as appears by a Note of their Wants, at bottom; ſigned by R. Sherburne, H. Scarisbricke, W. Lucas, T. Burſcoghe, and H. Radclyff. The next, is, A particular Valuation of Guddiſden Demain; where it appears that the Sum total of Acres is 352, and the total Value per Annum 113 l. 14s. 5 d. To this is joined, a Particular alſo of St. Leonard's Rents; being 33 Shillings. Then follows a ſtrange Account of Madam St. Marcian's Viſion, on April 18, 1587, being Shrove-Tueſday, of three Ladies, with Hawks on their Hands, hawking as it were at Sheep in the Meadow before her; but being ſent to, the Meſſenger cou'd ſee nothing. The Lady with other of her Company ſtill ſeeing them from her Chamber, ſent again, but no body appeared: She, ſtill ſeeing them, and fearing ſome Violence, ſent a number of Men with Arms, charging them to fire at whatever they ſaw; they found at laſt a Cow, but that vaniſhed from them; at which inſtant Madam St. Marcian and her Company ſaw the three Ladies with their Hawks, Sheep, Cow, &c. all throw themſelves headlong, with great noiſe into the River, out of which a Flock of Swallows mounted into the Air: At the ſame inſtant alſo, the Mayor of Saints in Xanctoign coming through a Meadow near the Town, ſaw three fair Ladies kneeling and eating of Graſs; of whom taking pity, he invited them to better Fare, but they made him reproachful Anſwers; yet he invited them again afterwards by his Servant, whom they alſo anſwered dtſdainfully, wiſhing him to be gone, ſaying, we are Three whoſe Names are Death, Famine, and Peſtilence.

[279]Then follows the Warrant of Sir Peter Leigh, Provoſt-Marſhal of Lancaſhire and Cheſhire, and Juſtice of the Peace, to the Keeper of Cheſter Goal, to receive and detain therein the Body of Randulph Northburie, Husbandman, for very heinous and ſlanderous Words ſpoken againſt Robert Earl of Leiceſter; dated at Lyme in Handley, 26 April, 1587. And next we have the Charge that is given to the Queſte of Howſehoulde, as well at the Caſtle, as at the Peele, (in the Iſle of Man) with particular Inſtructions to the Officers there; in one Sheet. After this we have an Addreſs from Cambridge to the Lord Treaſurer Burghley, Chancellor of that Univerſity, to rectify ſome Grievances therein mentioned; ſigned by nineteen Perſons, among whom are John Bentley, John Weſton, Rob. Ruſſel, Will. Gager, Jo. Holland, Leonard Hutton, John King, Tho. Crane, Rich. Thorneton, &c. Then follows a Tranſcript of ſome Letters: The firſt of which is from the Earl of Leyceſter to a Friend, concerning ſome Perſons who had, as he intimates, wrongfully treated or repreſented him in his Abſence, of whom he ſais: ‘"Touching my Lord Buckhurſt, Norris, and Wilkes, I doubt not but her Majeſty and my Lords do ſufficiently underſtand of their Doings by this: For dealing with Wilkes, to have his Reſolution I deſire it not, nor like not to deal with ſo ungrateful and unthankful Wretches; let him and they do their worſte; they ſhall be found as they are, and I as I am, I truſt. The Bruits touching Sluce, if they be ill, and believed againſt me I have the more Wrong; I will never write three Lines to ſatisfie ſuch Perſons; I know I have done as much as any lyving in my Place, and it ſufficeth me that I know it to be ſo: I am ſorry my Friends ſhould be troubled to excuſe me, when in Conſcience I have done all that became me. I have deſerved better of my Countrymen's Hands than lightly to believe of me: But they ſhall ſeke another hereafter to deal as I have dealt for them, if they reward me ſo, &c. Dated from Dorte, 22 Auguſt, 1587."’ The next is a Letter to the Earl of Derby, ſigned by the Vicar of Great Marlow in Buckinghamſhire, whoſe Name was Thomas Browne, and the Churchwardens, &c. teſtifying, That, Jane Boulde, (Wife of Richard Boulde Eſq) who was reported to have abſented herſelf from the Church, and not to uſe the ſame according to the Injunctions thought meet, did frequent his Church, tho' it was two Miles diſtant from her Houſe at [280] Harleford; and ſhe had been out of order: Dated 12 April 1587. The next is a Letter from Arthur Aty, to the Right Honourable Mr. John Wooley, of her Majeſty's Privy Council; ſhewing what indifferent Opinion was held of the Engliſh Aids in Holland, as if ‘"her Majeſty had already agreed upon the Conditions of Peace with the Duke of Parma, and that ſhe would endeavour to enforce the States General thereunto, as he had heard from Monſieur Averſons, Secretary to the ſaid States. And though his Lord (Leiceſter we ſuppoſe) had travell'd much about to the Towns, with great Diligence, inſtill'd the moſt honourable Thoughts of her Majeſty, and brought the Matter in good Terms, as well for Satisfaction of thoſe who are miſled, as to encourage their treating with her Majeſty in the Peace, yet thinks it will be very difficult; for moſt who miſlike the Peace, or England, or him, ſeek nothing more than to abaſe his Credit, upon the ſurmiſed Grounds before written, and the earneſt Preſſing of the ſaid Peace from England; which yet, he hopes, will do well this Way; but in his Opinion, wou'd have fall'n out the other Way his Lordſhip firſt took, to her Majeſty's good liking, tho' not in haſte, &c."’ 'Tis dated at the Haghe, 15 Octob. 1587.

After theſe Letters, we have the Anſwer of Chriſtopher Sothworthe, Prieſt, (born in Lancaſhire, Son of Sir John Sothworthe, and aged 31 Years) to ſeveral Articles againſt, and Examinations of him; which Anſwer he made before Dr. White, Dr. Beacon, Rich. Topclyff, and Rich. Yonge; whereby it appears, that he being earneſtly required to conform himſelf in Religion according to the Laws of her Majeſty, now eſtabliſhed, refuſed utterly, ſaying, ‘"He is taught that Doctrine and Religion at Rome, wherein he will ſtand and hopeth to die."’ Theſe Anſwers contain three Pages. Then follows two Letters by the Earl of Leiceſter to Mr. Woolley aforeſaid; both written from the Low Countries. From the firſt, conſiſting of ſix Pages, we learn, That Mr. Woolley had conveyed to her Majeſty his Lordſhip's Replications to the Lord Buckhurſt, Sir John Norris, and Wylkes; and that he had adviſed his Lordſhip not to be ſevere in following Revenge, for her Majeſty hath them ſtill in her Diſpleaſure; and they give it out that it is only for his Lordſhip's Cauſe. In this Letter he further declares, they have Friends to help them to execute their foul Facts; and he, few to help to deliver him in his [281] juſt Defence: And asks what he ſhould have been thought of if he had left their Declaration unanſwered. That in what her Majeſty has ſpared them for herſelf, they ought the more to acknowledge it, and what ſhe laid upon them for his Sake, he is upon his Knees, with all Humbleneſs, to yield moſt dutyful Thanks. As to his Succeſſor that is talked of, and whether he was to be Governor General as his Lordſhip is, or only have the Government over her Majeſty's People there, he thinks it will ſoon be reſolved; for that the States have found ſuch a ſweet Taſte in commanding as well Men as Money, that they will hardly yield to any more Governors till they muſt by force; therefore that it ſhou'd be ſeen his Lordſhip would be the laſt. We are here informed alſo, of the Diſpute his Lordſhip had with the States, about the Payment of the 5000 Men he carried over with him. Alſo concerning Sluce Haven, what he has written about it, and Mr. Beal is to deliver. And that nothing can be done but by Count Maurice, of whoſe bad Dealing her Majeſty doth know. That the Talk of Peace holds all Things in ſuſpence: That it is greatly preſs'd by ſome, to make it conceived, that it will be better for themſelves to deal by themſelves, than to join with her Majeſty; and herein doth Maurice and Hollock join and practice for life againſt her, as they have done ever ſince his Lordſhip came over; and that he ſhall hazard ſomewhat to impeach their Doings, as he intends. And a little further: ‘"What a Tyme of Faction I have ſuffered! and now more than ever; for that the Aſſurance of Peace dothe drawe many from me and my Authoritie, and ſo falleth it out every Day more manifeſte than other. I am here withoute eyther Nobleman, Officer, or Councellor. Killigrewe I am fayne to leave at Hage, where the Councel are; my ſelf, for her Majeſties Service, to wander upp and downe, bothe in daylie Danger of my Lyffe, and yet withoute ſo doing ſhoulde not be able to ſtaye Men's Mindes as they ought to bee. And if her Majeſties Letter had bene delivered to the States that Atye broughte, never Man had receyved ſo undeſerved a Shame as I had, and utterlie diſhonoured her own Doing withall. Such Comfort I am ſubject unto! And all this while not one Perſon ſent over to confirm my Doings, which were meet ſo to bee; nor to expoſtulate to theſe Men as it had bene convenience, in ſo dangerous a Tyme as this ys, for yt ys not the haſte of Peace, [282] nor the Shewes of yt that will bring ſuch a Peace as ſhould bee, &c."’ This Letter is ſigned with the Earl's Name, and dated 3 of Octob. 1587. The next Letter by the ſaid Earl to the ſame Perſon, informs us, That this Peace in hand begins to make great War in thoſe Parts, for that none wou'd hear of it but ſuch as wholly depended on her Majeſty. And here he further expreſſes his Uneaſineſs under his Charge, thus, ‘"I aſſure you my Lyffe was never weariſome to me till nowe: I woulde my Eſtate here were eyther felte, hearde, or underſtood; I knowe, of ſo many profeſſed Friendes as I have, I ſhall finde ſome woulde ſeeke to releyve yt."’ And further, that he was near Horne in North Holland, and means to ſtay a few Days thereabouts; deſires to be excuſed to the Lords, for that all his Secretaries are employ'd abroad; hopes to hear from him ſpeedily the bleſſed Sound of Retreat; that he is diſpatching the Soldiers as faſt home as he can; that he truſts the Lords will conſider how little Cauſe he has to ſtay there any longer, except, now he has worne out all his Company, they intend he ſhall weare out himſelf. So ends, in haſte, the 9 of Octob. 1587.

Then follow ſome more private Accounts, relating chiefly to the Eſtates, &c. of the Earl of Derby, as we gather by Circumſtances; beginning with a Note of the Particulars of my Lord's Stand at Pilkington: This is an Inventory of the Goods or Furniture in the Apartments there. The next Paper is an Account of Wood ſold; in this Method. The firſt Column contains the Names of the Commiſſioners; the next, the Names of the Woods; the next, the Year when ſold, and the Valuation; next, the Earneſt Money; and laſtly, Earneſt Money received. Theſe Woods were named Stretlie, Gorynge, Burciter, Middleton and Arncot; Whichford, Ardington, Brackley, Gadeſden and Wynnington: And the Sales were made between the 25 and 28th Years of the Queen's Reign. To this is added, a ſeparate Paper of the Earneſt of my Lord's Woods for thoſe Years, the Sum total whereof is 108 l. 9 s. 4 d. To this is alſo join'd, an Account of the riding Charges allowed by the Auditors to the Commiſſioners, for ſale of the ſad Woods in thoſe three Years. And this is followed with Orders ſet down by my Lord, for Earneſt Money due unto his Lordſhip for the Sale of Woods. Theſe Orders are agreed to by the Commiſſioners aforeſaid, whoſe Names are Tho. Harte, Edw. Clarke, Jam. Kenwicke and Edw. Gunne: And the [283] Agreement is witneſſed, amongſt others, by Edward Rigby, Gent. who is expreſſed in the next Page to be a Receiver for the Earl of Derby in the ſouthern Parts of England, and whoſe Receipts we have here audited in the 28th of the ſaid Queen's Reign; at the End of which Account is mentioned the Sale of the aboveſaid Woods in this laſt mention'd Year, for upwards of 1200 l. Then follows a ſhort Bill of ſome yearly Payments. The next Paper is called a Note what Lybertie Mr. Butler of Bewſey Eſq had by Vertue of the Conveyance paſſed between the Earl of Leyceſter and him, to lymmit and appointe to his Wieffe or Wyves. The next is entitled, Rygate in Com. Surrey; and contains the Particulars of three Woods, that is, Erle's Wood, deſcribed to be well ſet with great Oaks and Beeches, containing 240 Acres, valued at 3000 l. Petrydge Wood, containing 30 Acres, valued at 207 l. 13 s. 4 d. and Raye Wood, containing 16 Acres, valued at 50 l. The next Memorial ſeems to be a very curious and particular Account of the whole yearly Revenue of the Kingdom of Spain: Firſt, beginning with the Revenues of all the States belonging to that Crown: The Mines; Cuſtoms of them, and of the Slaves; amounting to above ten Millions, four Hundred Thouſand Duckets. Next, of the King's yearly Penſion from the five Orders of Knighthood, and his Profits upon beſtowing the Encomendas belonging to three of them; with the particular Names, Number, and Value thereof; where it appears, the whole Order of St. James amounts to 385915 Duckets: The whole Order of Calatrava to 254450 Duckets, including that of Monteza: The whole Order of Alcantara to 171300 Duckets: Beſides the Order of St. John, at this time divided between Don Antonio de Toledo, and the baſe Son of the Duke of Alva. Further, that out of the Rents of the three Orders of Encomendas that King receives, as Great Maſter, for his Part yearly, two Hundred and ſeventy Thouſand Duckets. Then follows an Account of the yearly Charges which that King is at, amounting to above ſeven Millions of Duckets; which compared with his Receipts leaves him above two Millions eight hundred Thouſand clear.

Next, we come to a few Papers of more private or particular Concern again, as a Remonſrance to the Lord Chanceller Hatton, and Lord Treaſurer Burghley, with the reſt of the Council aſſembled in the Court of Star-Chamber, againſt John Crapnell, who was to have a Cauſe heard in this [284] Court; being a violent Invective againſt him; perſuading, that he is, and has been, a Rogue in all manner of Lights or Practices: But we here want the Concluſion of it. After this we have an Eſtimate of the Livings of John Salusburie of Lleweny, Eſq in Poſſeſſion and Reverſion. And the next is a very odd Story; entitled, The Confeſſion of Edw. Burnell: 'Tis compriſed in ſix Pages, and the Subſtance of it is this; This Mr. Burnell, as appears by his own Complaint, had met with hard Uſage in the Court of Wards and Liveries; was turn'd out of ſome Poſſeſſions; and had brought his Adverſaries into the Star-Chamber for Perjury and Forgery: But here, the Equity of his Cauſe not being heard; he thought he had a right to ſay, her Majeſty wanted faithful Hearts, to ſee, according to her Diſpoſition, Juſtice executed. Hereupon he prepares a New-Year's Gift for her Majeſty, which was a Latin Oration; but he was taken up and examined before Sir George Carey and Ralph Lane Eſq the very Day, yet ſo early as two o'clock in the Morning, that he was to have made his ſaid Speech, which was January 1, 1586. This Examination we have here, with that alſo of Mr. Burnell's Servant, John Cartwright; and therein it appears, when they demanded what his New-Yea's Gift was to be, he anſwer'd, he had it about him; ſo opening his Doublet, he ſhewed his naked Breaſt, and ſaid, that after declaring to her Majeſty his good Meaning towards her by the Oration he had made in Latin, he would have ripped his Body as far as he cou'd, and his Breaſt, ſo far as he might, without Danger of Death, to have ſhewn her Majeſty his Heart. They demanded, whom he acquainted with this Device? He anſwered; he had adviſed with Paul Warren and one Gyles, two Surgeons; had asked them, whether a Man being ripped down the Body might not yet live? They anſwer'd, hardly; but upon his importuning Warren, who was his Relation, he promiſed, if he continued reſolute, that he wou'd meet him at Greenwich (where the Court lay) this Morning. Being required to ſet down the Oration he meant to have pronounced; alſo to give them an Account of what Places and Company he had been in for eight Days before: He anſwered, by writing the ſaid Oration down, which we have here, in half a Page; with the Cauſes that moved him to give this Gift; alſo the Particulars where, and with whom he had been, ſince Chriſtmas Day laſt. And thus much for Mr. Burnell's New-Year's Gift.

[285]This is followed with a Note of the Mannor of Wymington in Com. Bedford, the Rents and Parcels thereof, as they have been letten before the Leaſe made to Mr. Edw. Onley by the Earl of Derby. A like Note we have here alſo of Preſcot Rectory, both as to the old Rents, and an Eſtimate of the thirteen ſeveral Tithes demiſed thereunto: Where it appears that the Sum total of the Value was then, in January 1586, near 500 l. per Annum. The next Piece is entitled, The Manner of the Execution of the Queen of Scotts, the 8 of Feb. in the Preſence of ſuch whoſe Names are underwritten. This takes up two Sides, and leads us in the next Leaf to the Accounts of Sir Richard Shirburne, of Moneys receiv'd and paid by Warrant from the Earl of Derby, to Henry Stanley of Crosſhall Eſq Muſter-Maſter, for buying Arms for the train'd Soldiers in Lancaſhire, and repairing of Beacons there. The next is entitled, Fees allowed yearly to the Earl of Derby, as Forreſter of Bleaſdall, &c. Another of Moneys received by Sir John Byron, and paid to Henry Stanley and others, as before, by the Earl of Derby's Warrant. A Note of the Number of Loads of Hay gotten to Lathome this Year, 1589; which were 228 Loads. The next is a Letter from the Engliſh Ambaſſador at Paris to a Privy Counſellor, commending the good Offices and Qualities of his Nephew there; and informing him that the King will receive the Order on Thurſday next, with as great Honour and ſhow of Good-will as is poſſible. The next Leaf contains an approved Medicine for the Stone; which is, in a Gallon of new Milk, to steep, Pellitory of the Wall, wild Thyme, Saxifrage, Parſly, each a handful, with two or three Radiſh Roots ſliced, one Night; then diſtill it all over a moderate Fire: So drink, ſix Spoonfuls of the Water, with as many of Rheniſh Wine, adding a little Sugar and Nutmeg, lukewarm, faſting; and eat nothing three Hours after: It ſhould be drank, the firſt Week, three times together, and every Week after, but twice; for it forceth very much Urine. If no great Pain is felt in the Kidneys, 'tis better to drink it but once every eight Days three Mornings together. Next, after a Note of the Bedding in the Lodge at Pilkinton (a Seat of the Lord Derby's aforeſaid) we have Copies of two Letters in French; the one called, Reſponce de la Royne a la Harangue de Monſieur de Bellieure Ambaſſadeur pour le Roy de France touchant le Pardonne enſemble la Liberte de la Royne D' Eſcoſſe; and the other, Coppie de la Lettre de la Royne de Navarre. [286] Neither of which need be further here particulariz'd, the Tranſlations of both into Engliſh being tranſcrib'd at the beginning of this Volumne, as we have before obſerved. The next is a Latin Letter, dated from Rome 10 May, 1586. beginning with an Exclamation againſt Sir Francis Drake as a Pirate: And next to this, is inſerted a Latin Propheſy now apply'd to Sir Francis Drake, ſpeaking no leſs in his Commendation, and ſubſcribed Merlin; and in the ſame Page we have a Rehearſal of Sir Walter Ralegh's five Preferments (in the Year laſt mention'd, or that following) the Words whereof are theſe: 1ſt. That he is appointed Lieutenant General of all Cornwall. 2d, To be Deputy Lieutenant, under the Lord Bath, of all Devonſhire. 3d, To be Marſhal of all the Forces raiſed in five whole Shires. 4th, To have the Charge of twelve hundred Men. 5th, and laſtly, is made Warden of the Stanneries. In the next Leaf we have an Engliſh Sonnet of ſix Stanzas, and for Sir Walter Ralegh's being the Author of it, we are referr'd to good Authority, by a marginal Note, in the Leaf where it is written. There are three or four little Memorials more in the Volume, of which we need only mention, firſt, a Liſt of New-Year's Gifts, beginning with my Couſin Katherine Howard's New-Year's Gift, a Pillow-bear, wrought with black Silk, and a Sweet-bag: In reward to the Man that brought it, twenty Shillings. And ending with theſe; my Lord of Leyceſter's New-Year's Gift, a Garter, ſet with Diamonds and Rubies; and all the Letters curiouſly enamell'd, in form of Pictures: In reward to Mr. Arderne, who brought it, three Pounds. My Lord Admiral's New-Year's Gift, a Ring ſet with five fair Opals: Reward mention'd, but not particulariz'd. And laſtly, another Liſt of the twelve Counſellors of State in Ireland.*

XLV. The DESCRIPTION of LEICESTERSHIRE: Containing, Matters of Antiquity, Hiſtory, Armory, and Genealogy. Written by WILLIAM BURTON Eſq Fol. 1622. Pages 320.

[287]

THE Title of this approved Work, is in a graved Frontiſpiece, which contains Emblematical Repreſentations (as was uſual in theſe Times) of Fame crowning the Pourtrait of Leiceſterſhire, and Truth crowning that of Antiquity; with the Sun, in a Compartment between them, in Eclipſe, and this Motto, Relucera; over a Cave, the Entrance of which is cover'd with a Curtain, upon which the ſaid Title is inſcribed; and at the Bottom a Proſpect of our Author's Seat, named Lindley. In another Leaf, facing that Frontiſpiece, we have the Author's Effigies in his Lawyer's Gown; Aetat. 47. 1622. his Arms at the Corners; and for an Emblem at bottom, the Sun, with this Motto, Relumbre: Both graved by Franciſco Delaram.

He dedicates the Book to George Villers, Marqueſſe and Earl of Buckingham, Lord High Admiral, &c. He being a Native of that County, and none having the like Power to defend his Work againſt the Adverſaries of Truth. In the Preface he apologizes for applying himſelf to Studies beſide his Profeſſion, by intimating that if the Law admitted [288] any Partner, the moſt neceſſary would be this Study of Antiquities: And that his Conſtitution being weak, it diſabled him from following the Practice which his Calling required; which obliging him to the Retirement of a Country Life, and depriving him of thoſe Helps the City wou'd have afforded, muſt render his Diſcourſe leſs equal to the Worthineſs of the Subject; yet rather than his Country ſhould longer lie obſcur'd in Darkneſs, he adventures to reſtore her to her Worth and Dignity, animated by the Examples of the never enough admir'd Antiquary W. Camden, and that induſtrious and well deſerving Maſter John Speede, who in his elaborate Hiſtory of England has well ſpoken of all the Shires, and by his great Travail and Expences added the Maps of each Shire, with the Plot of every City and great Town therein inſerted, never before performed by any: Alſo by the grave and ſage Lawyer W. Lambert, who from the Depth of Antiquity has reſtored the County of Kent. Alſo the eloquent and noble Gentleman Richard Carew Eſq who very worthily has ſurveyed all Cornwall; and that excellent Surveyor John Norden Gentleman, who has briefly deſcribed the Counties of Middleſex and Hertfordſhire; and ſince has made certain chorographical Tables of ſome Weſtern Shires, and a fine Proſpective of the City of London. He alſo acknowledges the Encouragments he had from ſome of his Friends, as John Beaumont of Gracedieu Eſq and that expert Genealogiſt, his Kinſman, Mr. Auguſtine Vincent, Rouge-Croix, who imparted many worthy Notes to him from the Tower; and whoſe Labours in this kind for the County of Northampton, wou'd ere long come to light. Further, that in this Deſcription he has run through, in every Town, thoſe four Sections above mention'd in the Title-Page. As for the Topography of the County, he rectified ſome Years paſt Chriſt. Saxton's Map thereof, with an addition of 80 Towns; which was graved at Amſterdam, by Jodocus Hondius, 1602, (and ſince imitated by Speede, with an Augmentation of the Plot of Leiceſter) and reduced into a leſſer Form, is here inſerted. Of the more eminent Places he has ſpoken ſomething throughout; and where any natural Paſſage offer'd, he has not thought it impertinent to ſatisfy the Reader a little in this kind; alſo adorn'd it with ſome hiſtorical Digreſſions, which have dependance upon the Work; has obſerv'd, as near as he cou'd, when Monaſteries, Churches, noble Seats, and other memorable Buildings were founded; alſo diſtinguiſhed [289] the Deſcent of Titles to Lands, whether by Heirs or Grants; that the Antiquity of Continuance in a Name might be diſcover'd, and the antient Owner known; not intending to derogate from any Man's Right, or move Doubts or Queſtions thereunto. But in ſetting down of Tenures he has been very ſparing: The Soccage Tenure he has expreſs'd; but no Certainty of any other, unwilling to give any Cauſe of Offence, as knowing there are more Differences and ſtrange Proceedings in theſe Buſineſſes than in any one Thing of ſo common a Nature; tho' they might be rectified if the trueſt and moſt probable Records and Evidences were accepted. As for the Law Caſes which have latterly happen'd in the Shire, he has briefly remember'd them. Touching the Genealogies and Arms of the Gentry he only ſpeaks of the Ancient, whoſe Families are extinct, leſt not contenting the Living, he ſhould be queſtion'd without Cauſe; yet has in this reſpect remember'd ſome few of his Friends. In Church-Matters he has follow'd an old Manuſcript, compil'd Anno. 1220,* wherein is diſcover'd what Churches were Rectories, what, Appropriate: If Rectories, who was Patron, who Incumbent; what Chapels belong'd to them, and how to be ſerved: If Appropriate, to what Monaſtery, or religious Houſe belonging, &c. Has further added from the Records in the Office of the Auditors of the Impreſt, their Value in the King's Books; and ſhewn, who are the preſent Patrons of every Church. The Roman Antiquities and others he has briefly touch'd as far as came to his Knowledge. And laſtly, has added all the Arms in all the Church-Windows in the Shire; and the Inſcriptions of the Tombs; which he took by his own View and Travel; for that they may correct many Errors in Armory or Genealogy, and end many Differences in Law; the Evidence of a Church-Window having been accepted by a Jury at an Aſſizes. Has alſo added the Names to moſt of the Coats; not following herein the conceited Blazonry of Gerard Leigh, or others of later Times; but uſed ſuch Terms as himſelf was beſt acquainted with, and might beſt ſerve for any one's underſtanding. Thus we have the whole Scope of his Intention, or a general View of the Topicks, not only treated of in this Book, but to be treated of in Books of the like nature.

[290]After the Preface, whereof we have here given the Subſtance, we have Saxton's Map, therein ſpoken of, graved by William Kip. Then we enter upon a general Deſcription of the County, wherein 'tis obſerved, from Mercator, to be in the Latitude of 54 Degrees, and in the Longitude of 20. It borders, on the Eaſt, upon Lincolnſhire and Rutlandſire; on the Weſt, upon Warwickſhire, ſeparated from it by the great Road called Watling-Street; on the North upon Nottinghamſhire and Derbyſhire; and on the South, upon Northamptonſhire. It extends in length from the fartheſt North Angle in the Vale of Belvoir to the uttermoſt South Point beyond Lutterworth, to about 33 Miles, and in breadth, from Eaſt to Weſt, at the broadeſt Place, about 27 Miles. Next we come to the ſcite and nature of the Soil; the Names of ancient Buildings, as Caſtles, Abbeys, &c. Market-Towns, Rivers, Parks, Forreſts, Civil and Eccleſiaſtical Government; and hence we are led to a particular Diſcription of the County, deſcourſing of all the Towns, &c. in an Alphabetical Order. In the Entrance of the Work we have ſome occaſional Remarks upon the Antiquity of bearing Arms in England, the meaning of Knights-Service, old Tenures and Eſcuage. In the Mannor of Allexton, we have a little Pedigree of the ancient Lords thereof, the Bakepuiz, with an Account how it came to Sir Walter Blunt and his Widow by purchaſe. In the Mannor of Appleby, we have Accounts of the monumental Effigies; alſo a Pedigree of the Family bearing that Name, and their Arms repreſented in a wooden Figure at the Side thereof. At Aſhby-de-la-Zouch, we have an Account of the Deſcent of the Zouches, a Character of William Lord Haſtings, beheaded, 1483, with an Account of the Coats of Arms in the Church relating to this Family; alſo ſome Figures of the Arms, and a Pedigree of the Zouches and Haſtings. At Aſhby Folvile, we have the Arms and Pedigrees of the Woodfords and the Folviles, and at Aſhby Magna ſome Account of the Eſſebys. At Atterton, we have the Lord Wake's Pedigree, and at Bardon Park we have a Deſcription of Bardon Hill, with a little Digreſſion upon the natural Cauſe of Hills and burning Hills, and the Authors who have writ upon that Subject, as G. Agricola, Leand. Alberto, Conrade Geſner, &c. In the Mannor of Barrow, we have the Arms and Pedigree of the ancient Families of Somery and Erdington. In Barwell, we have an Explanation of Tenants in ancient Demeſne, and their [291] Privileges. In Beaumannor, we have the Arms and Pedigree of the Lord Viſcounts Beaumont, down to William Viſcount Beaumont, Lord Bardolf. In Belgrave, he takes occaſion to ſhew us how ungratefully John Bale has treated Leland's Book, de Scriptoribus illuſtribus Angliae. Alſo obſerves, that thro' the Liberty granted to Leland of uſing what Manuſcripts he pleaſed in any of the religious Houſes, he collected many Things together in divers Books, ‘"four Volumes of which I have in my Cuſtody, ſays he, and muſt truly acknowledge them to have afforded me many worthy Notes of Antiquity."’ Here we have alſo the Arms and Pedigree of the Belgraves. In Bittesby, we have an Account of the Marriage and Death of the renowned John Talbot Earl of Shrewsbury, and thereby the Revolt of the Dutchy of Aquitaine in France, with our Loſſes therein. In Boſworth, a ſhort Notice of the Battle of Boſworth-Field, and Slaughter of King Richard III. with the Antiquity of the Family of the Harecourts. In Bradgate, we have an Account of the Body of Thomas Gray Marqueſſe of Dorſet, removed out of his Vault at Aſtley in Warwickſhire in 1608, being 78 Years after he was buried, and it was uncorrupted, in every reſpect, like an ordinary Corps newly to be interr'd: With a ſhort Digreſſion upon the Care all Ages have had to the preſerving of dead Bodies; and a Reference to thoſe Authors who have written on the Manners and Faſhions of Funerals. In Brokesby, we have the Praiſe, Arms and Pedigree of George Villiers Marqueſſe of Buckingham. In Brougton Aſtley, we have the Arms and Genealogy of the Aſtleys. In Burton-Lazers and the large Hoſpital for leprous People formerly there, we have a ſhort Digreſſion upon the Leproſy. In Burton-Noverey, we have the Arms and Pedigree of Meignell, in whom that Mannor continued for three Deſcents, then came to the Fitzherberts. In Carleton-Curley, it is obſerv'd the Natives have a harſh and rattling kind of Speech, uttering their Words with much Difficulty, and wharling in the Throat, and cannot well pronounce the Letter R. which whether it be by ſome peculiar Property of the Water, Soil or Air, or ſome ſecret Effect or Operation of Nature, our Author thinks he cannot well diſcover; yet he hereupon takes occaſion to digreſs upon ſome remarkable Effects of thoſe Elements. In Charnwood, we have a particular Diſcourſe of the Forreſt; the Deed for diſafforreſting it; the Diſtinctions between a Chaſe and a Forreſt, and the Forreſt Laws referr'd to, in [292] Mr. Manwood's learned Treatiſe thereof. In Cleybroke, we have an Account of ſome Roman Antiquities and Coins found hereabouts, which might give ſome light of the ancient Roman City which once ſtood near that Town: Two of theſe Coins we have here deſcrib'd, one of the Emperor Caligula, the other of Conſtantine the Great; and then, as his Cuſtom is, a Reference to thoſe Authors who have written of theſe Coins or given Sculptures of them; And alſo to thoſe who have written of Roman Inſcriptions. In Cotes, the Inheritance of Sir Henry Skipwith, we have a Commendation of his Father Sir William Skipwith, among other Proofs of his Learning and Ingenuity, for his acute Epigrams, Mottos, Devices, but chiefly his apt and fit Impreſſes; with the Recital of ſeveral Authors Names who have written on this Subject. In Croxton, a ſhort Account of the Death of King John, by reaſon of the Abbot of the Monaſtery there, embalming his dead Body. In Dadlington, we ſee the Conveyance of that Mannor to our Author. In Dalby Magna, the Deſcent of the Lords de Segrave. In Dalby on the Woulds, a little Hiſtory of that famous religious Order, the Knights Hoſpitaliers of St. John of Jeruſalem, which began about 1124, after the recovery of Jeruſalem, by Godfrey of Bullen. Here, in the Account of the Conveyance of this Mannor from Sir Andrew Noel, our Author takes occaſion to ſpeak of his Brother Mr. Henry Noel Gentleman-Penſioner to Queen Elizabeth, who, tho' he had nothing but his Penſion certain, equall'd the Barons in Pomp and Expence; and of whom the ſaid Queen made this Aenigmatical Diſtich.

The Word of Denial, and Letter of Fifty,
Is the Gentleman's Name, who will never be thrifty.

In Drayton, we have an Encomium upon the Poet of that Name; his Progenitors receiving their Denomination from hence: Alſo a Pedigree of the Purefoys, Lord of that Mannor. In Edmundthorp, ſome Remarks on the painting of Arms and Pictures in Church-Windows, and Reflections upon demoliſhing them; the Lady Wiche's Action againſt the Parſon of St. Margaret's, Lothbury, for taking down the Trophies of her Husband, Sir Hugh Wiche Mayor of London; with the Reaſon why a Sword is hung up in the Church at the Funeral of a Knight. In Elmeſthorp, the Pedigree of the Charnels and Truſſels. In Evington, ſome Account of the Cavendiſhes, particularly the moſt renowned Thomas of that Name, who ſailed round the World, and [293] whoſe Courſe, as alſo Sir Francis Drake's, with all their memorable Paſſages and Accidents, is exactly ſet down in a Globe-Map, by that excellent Graver and cunning Mathematician Jodocus Hondius of Amſterdam. In Foſton, a Hiſtory of the Family of the Faunts, particularly Arthur Faunt the Jeſuit, who died 1551; alſo their Pedigree. In Foleſworth, that of the Wolfes. In Gerendon, the Antiquity of the Ciſtercian Order. In Gracedieu, we have the Arms and Pedigree of the Beaumonts; and in Groby the like of the Greys of Groby. In Higham, an Account of certain old Coins and other Treaſure found Anno 1607, many whereof were little ſilver Pieces of King Henry III. each weighing three pence, repreſenting on one Side the King's Head with a Scepter in his Hand, circumſcribed Henricus Rex; on the Reverſe, a Croſs Molin between Roundels, with this Circumſcription, Fulke on Luid: Alſo ſome Gold Rings, and a Silver one with a ruddy Stone in it, whereon was engraved Arabick Characters, importing a kind of Charm or Deprecation from Miſchief; with our Author's Reaſons why they ſhou'd be ſome Jew's Treaſure. In Houghton, we have an Explanation of the Words Villein and Villenage, with Breton's Opinion of their Antiquity, and our Author's Obſervation that many great Houſes now are, whoſe lineal Anceſtors were Villeins; who by their Surnames might eaſily be challenged, but that he liſts not to lay any Imputation. In Humberſton, we have the Arms and Pedigree of the Kebles; and in Huncote of the Burdets and the Staffords. In Keythorp and Kettleby, ſome Account of the Digbys. In Kibworth-Beauchamp, an Explanation of Tenants by Grand-Sergeanty, and Tenants by Eſcuage. In Kirby, the Arms and Pedigree of the Herles; in Kirkby-Malory, thoſe of the Malorys. In Knighton, it is obſerved to be the Birth-place of the learned Hiſtorian of that Name, whoſe Work extends from William the Conqueror to King Richard II. in whoſe Reign he died. In Knipton, we have an Explanation of Tenants by the Curteſy of England. In Langley, ſome Obſervations of the Virgin Chaſtity affirmed to be viſible in the ſhining Brightneſs of ſome holy Women's Faces. In Weſt Langton, a ſhort Account of Walter de Langton Biſhop of Coventry and Litchfield, a great Benefactor in his Time, who died 1321. In Leiceſter, he ſhews that it was called Caër-Lerion, from it's ſtanding on the River of Legra or Leir now called Sore according to Leland, and not from the fabulous King Leir, whom Geoffrey [294] of Monmouth wou'd have the Builder, and alſo Founder of the Temple of Janus which was here; it being well known that Janus was neither adored nor thought of by any but the Romans, and this King Leir died at leaſt 300 Years before Rome was built; which, with many other ſuch Contradictions, will eaſily convince this forged Hiſtory of Brute, and of his Progeny. Then follows an Account of ſome Roman Antiquities found in this City, when it was made firſt an Epiſcopal See, and when united to Lincoln. A ſhort View of the ancient State of this City; the Foundation of a College there, and the Abbey, and of ſome famous Men who were Abbots thereof, as Gilbert Foliot * Biſhop of London, who died 1187; alſo Henry de Knighton , before mention'd, and Philip Ripington a great Defender of Wickliffe; others who were Archdeacons of Leiceſter, as Robert Groſthead Biſhop of Lincoln 1235, who wrote near 200 Books, and tranſlated out of Greek in 1242 the Testament of the twelve Patriarchs, which, as Nich. Trivet, and John Abbot of Peterborough ſay, was long withheld from the Chriſtians by the Malice of the Jews: He died at Bugden 1253, and had a marble Tomb with his Image in Braſs on it. See more of him in Leland, Bale and Godwin. Further, alſo, of ſome eminent Perſons born here, and ſome who alſo died here, as Cardinal Wolſey. Matthew Paris his Story of the religious Maid, who died here in 1225, after having been ſhut up ſeven Years and taſted no kind of Suſtenance but the Sacrament of Bread and Wine upon the Sabbath Days; refuted by John Wier in his Book de Commentitiis Jejuniis. Alſo of ſome ancient Buildings here; the Market and Fair; Patronage of the Churches, Arms in the Windows, Valuations of the Livings; with the Arms and Pedigrees of the Earls of Leiceſter from Earl Leofric, Anno. 716, down to Robert Sidney Viſcount Liſle, Son of Sir Henry Sidney; who was created Earl of Leiceſter by King James I. Of Lindley, we have, as might be expected, a particular Account, where it appears, how a third Part of that Lordſhip deſcended to one of our Author's Anceſtors, by marriage with the Daughter and Coheir of John Herdwik, Guide to King Henry VII. at Boſworth-Field, and by [295] that means to our Author himſelf, who aſſures us it has been obſerved in this Lordſhip, that thereon was never ſeen Adder, Snake, or Lizard, tho' in all the bordering Confines they have been found very often. And here follow the Arms and Pedigrees of the Herdwiks and of the Burtons. In Loughborough, we have ſome Account of the Family of the Haſtings, to one of whom this Mannor was given; another, who was Edward Lord Haſtings, Chamberlain to Queen Mary, our Author obſerves to have been of a Diſpoſition ſomewhat melancholy, and was much delighted with Cheſſe Play, upon which Game our Author makes ſome ſhort hiſtorical Digreſſions, ending with a Note of thoſe Authors who have written thereupon; with other Games which have been invented in imitation thereof, among which he mentions Metromachia or Ludus Geometricus, made by Dr. Fulk of Cambridge, and printed in London 1566. In Lubbenham, we have ſome Remarks upon the Appropriations of Churches, and how they muſt be made. In Lubbeſtorpe, the Arms and Pedigree of the Zouches. In Lutterworth, a ſhort Account of John Wickliffe, who wrote above 200 Treatiſes, many of them againſt the Pope's Authority, and Abuſes in the Church: Moſt of them were burnt in Bohemia, by Subincus Archbiſhop of Prague, as Aeneas Sylvius writes; and for which, the Author was put to great Trouble in his Life-time, tho' much favour'd by King Edward III. and his Son John of Gaunt. He died 1384, and Dr. Thomas Gaſcoigne has written ſome Particulars of the Manner of his Death, preſerv'd by Leland in his Collectanea. Forty one Years after his Death, his Corps, after Excommunication by Archbiſhop Arundell, was by the Command of Pope Martin V. &c. burnt by Richard Fleming Biſhop of Lincoln. In Miſterton, we have an Account of Sir John Poultney, four times Lord Mayor of London, and a great Benefactor, witneſs the Church of St. Laurence Poultney, Allhallowes, &c. He died 1349, and we have his Arms and Pedigree here drawn down, to our Author's time. In Muſton, we have the Arms and Pedigree of the Charnels and the Binghams. In Newbould-Verdon, the Arms and Pedigree of the Lord Verdons. In Newton-Burdet, we have a ſhort Account of the Conqueſt made over the King of Jerusalem and all the Holy Land in 1187, by Saladine, upon Occaſion of Sir W. Burdet's ſpending ſeveral Years in thoſe Wars. Here is alſo mention'd, among others of this Family, that Thomas Burdet, who, upon hearing that King [296] Edward the IV had killed a favourite white Buck in his Park, at Arrow in Warwickſhire, having wiſh'd the Buck's Head and Horns in his Belly, who moved the King to kill it, was accuſed of Treaſon and beheaded, 1477; but the true Cauſe was his being a Friend and Counſellor to George Duke of Clarence, his Brother, between whom there had been great Enmity. And here follow the Arms and Genealogy of the Burdets, Camviles, Marmions, and Bruyns. In Normanton Turvile, the Arms and Pedigree of the Turviles. In Norton, or Hog's-Norton, we have a curious old Deed of the Grant of that Town, Anno 951, by King Eldred a Saxon, to his Servant Elfeth. In Nouſeley, among other Church Monuments thoſe of the Haſelrigs, with their Arms and Pedigree. In Orton, there is a Conteſt decided in Law about the Preſentment made to this Vicarage. In Coal-Orton, ſo call'd of the Coal-Mines which are there, we have an Obſervation that theſe Mines burnt for many Years together unquenchably in the Reign of King Henry VIII, as in Staffordſhire they did at this time of our Author's writing; Whence we have a Digreſſion upon the ſubterraneous Fires in Italy, Sicily, Mount Heklia, Mons Cruris, Terra del Fuego, &c. Here we have the Arms and Genealogy of the Beaumonts, and in Osbaſton of the Wichards, Suttons and Blunts. In Pekleton, upon a certain Occaſion of the vexatious Differences which happen'd between the Iſſue of a firſt and ſecond Wife, we have ſome Reflections on the ſecond Marriages of old Men: Here alſo we have the Arms and Pedigree of the ancient Family of the Mutons, and of the Vincents. In Preſtwould, the Arms and Pedigree of the Neals and the Aſhbys. In Querndon, of the Farnhams. In Radclive, of the Cuileys. In Raunſton, upon obſerving this Mannor, tho'encompaſſed with Leiceſterſhire, is part in the County of Derby, we have ſome Conjectures upon ſuch Diſtinctions and other Diviſions of the Land, particularly the Antiquity of dividing it into Shires in the Britons time, about the time of King Arthur; and that King Alfred was a Reformer of that Diviſion. In Rodely, ſome Account of the Order of the Knights Templars, which began 1113; of their Seat and Church in the Temple; their Suppreſſion in 1313; and that the Inner Temple is the Mother or moſt ancient of all the other Houſes of Court; into which Society our Author was admitted 1593. Here, upon mentioning one Parker a famous Farrier, we have a Digreſſion upon this Science (relating to Horſes) ſo neceſſary in England, [297] as thoſe uſeful and willing Creatures are more abuſed here than in any other Country in the World: Together with a Recital or Reference to the moſt eminent Authors who have written upon this Subject. In Sapcot, we are informed what the Qualification or Income of the ancient Barony was, and of how much yearly value the Knights Fee conſiſted; alſo how thoſe Baronies were held. And here we have the Arms and Pedigree of the Baſſets; as in Shepey Magna, thoſe of the Shepeys, and in Shepey Parva thoſe of the Odingſels: Here alſo we have an Account of one John Poultney, who uſed to walk and do many other Actions in his Sleep; but was afterwards frozen to death in Sir Hugh Willoughby's Expedition. Our Author having touched upon the Cauſe of this Diſtemper refers to a German Doctor, who has written of the Nature, Cauſes, &c. of thoſe who walk in their Sleep. In Skiffington, ſome Reflections upon Jealouſy; on occaſion of a Knight of that Name, who was infected therewith. In Sproxton, Reflections upon leaving Eſtates to younger Brothers; allowing they ſhould be provided for, but without Prejudice to the Dignity of the Houſe and Injury of the Heirs. In Staunton Herold, we have the Arms and Pedigree of the ancient Families of thoſe Names. In Stoke, the Steeple being ſhaken down by the general Earthquake in 1580, we have here a ſhort Digreſſion upon Earthquakes, and the three Sorts of them diſtinguiſhed; with a Reference, as our Author's Manner is, to ſome Writers on that Subject. In Stockerſton, we have an Account of a fictitious Caſe of Perpetuities argued, and the Judgment thereupon; alſo the Arms and Pedigrees of the Boiviles and Southills. In Swannington, on occaſion of mentioning Sir John Talbot, who was of an extraordinary great Stature, and whoſe Tomb is to be ſeen at Whitwick near adjoining, we have a ſhort Digreſſion upon Giants. In Swimford, the Arms and Pedigrees of the Malorys and the Vincents; and in Temple of the Temples. In Thurcaſton, the Arms and Pedigree of the Falconers and Champaines. In Tilton, we have the Caſe of Sir Everard Digby, who convey'd this Mannor with other Parts of his Eſtate to his Son and Heir in Tail, before he was concern'd in the Gunpowder Treaſon, and the Queſtion reſolv'd, which after his Execution, thereupon aroſe, whether the Wardſhip of the Heir, or the third Part of the ſaid Eſtate ſhould be in the King? as recited from the Lord Coke's Reports. In Twicroſſe, the Arms and Pedigree of the Fitzherberts; and in Upton, a ſhort Account [298] of Sir Anthony Fitzherbert the Judge. In Wanlip, the Arms and Pedigree of Walleis or Welſh; and in Welleſburgh, thoſe of the Family of that Name. In Wikin, a ſhort Account of Wightman the Heretick, who was burnt at Litchfield: Alſo of other Herericks, as Hacket, &c. In Willoughby, an Account of Richard, Son of Sir Richard de Angervile; who being born at Bury in Suffolk, and taking upon him religious Orders forſook his paternal Name, and was called de Bury, from the Place of his Nativity, as appears in Jo. Trithem. de Script Eccleſ. and Biſhop Godwin; but is yet called de Angervile by Rous, Leland, and Bale: With ſome Obſervations upon this Cuſtom; and further, of this Richard, who was Biſhop of Durham, Lord Chancellor and Lord Treaſurer of England, but moſt famous for his Love of Books, having more in his own Library than all the Biſhops in England, which afterwards he gave to the Library he founded at Oxford; but in the ſpace of an Age it was pillaged of thoſe excellent Manuſcripts, till Duke Humphrey repair'd it again: But in the hot zealous Times of the Reformation this Treaſure was alſo embezled, till of late, thro' the Bounty of Sir T. Bodley and his Friends the publick Library there was, at the Coſt of many thouſand Pounds, reſtored equal to the beſt in Europe. In Wimondham, we have the Arms and Pedigree of the Berkeleys. In Woodhouſe, we have an Account of the fair and ſtately Chapel, built of Aſhler Stone 1338, by Henry Lord Beaumont, and repair'd by Robert Farnham, the 28th of Henry VI. as appears by the Deed of Covenant between him and a certain Free-Maſon, for new building the Steeple and repairing the Church: Alſo a Blazon of all the Coats and Matches in the Windows there, as is perform'd for thoſe of the reſt of the Churches. After the ſhort mention of a Village or two more, we come to an end of this alphabetical Account of what is moſt obſervable in the Antiquities of Leiceſterſhire, which our Author winds up with a modeſt Concluſion. To which is join'd, one Table, ſhewing, to what Abbies, Priories, Nunneries, or other religious Houſes the Churches in this County were appropriated: Another, of the Names and Arms of thoſe Knights of the Garter which were of this County, either by Title, Birth, or Dwelling: Another, of the Names and Arms of the Knights in this County who ſerved King Edward I. in his Wars; and another, of all thoſe Perſons to whom the Counties of Leiceſter and Warwick were committed, and were Sheriffs thereof: [299] And laſtly, we have a ſhort Table or Index of the principal Matters in the whole Work.

Thus we end our brief Recapitulation of this Book; not without ſome wonder to obſerve, that after near ſixſcore Years ſince this Author thus broke through thoſe Clouds of Darkneſs and Oblivion, wherewith the Luſtre of this County had been overſhadowed, ſo few others ſhould ſee the way to imitate his Example, by their further Illuſtrations thereof: Inſomuch that we know not of any one County in England, which in that compaſs of Years has had fewer Publications beſtowed upon it relating either to its Antiquities, or natural Hiſtory. Nay even our Author's own improved Copy of this Work, very much enriched with Roman, Saxon, and other Antiquities, has, to this day, been deny'd the Light. Wherefore we thought it a Debt due to his Merit, as well as to the Subject he has celebrated, to take the Notice we have here done of them, in order to excite thoſe whom it may concern, to oblige the Publick either with that enlarged Work of this Author, with further Continuations thereof, or any other ſuch Memorials of the Place and its Products, as may render them, with what Juſtice they deſerve, no leſs conſiderable than other Counties, and their Productions appear in this Iſland.

XLVI. A RESTITUTION of decay'd INTELLIGENCE in ANTIQUITIES, concerning the moſt noble and renowned ENGLISH NATION. By the Study and Labour of R. V. London. Quarto, 1634. Pages 338, beſides Table, &c.

THIS approved Book is well known to be the Work of Richard Verſtegan, a ſecular Prieſt, who has printed his Name at the End of his Dedication thereof to King James; for this is at leaſt the third Edition, publiſhed here at London ſoon after the Author's Death; the firſt, which he printed himſelf at Antwerp, being in the Year 1605. The Author was skilful in Drawing and Limning; and has embelliſh'd his Work with ſeveral Draughts, which are neatly graved, and have not a little advantaged the Sale of the [300] Work; inſomuch that there have ſince been two Editions more of it in Octavo, but the Impreſſion of the Cuts are therein worn faint, and not ſo valuable as thoſe in the firſt Quarto Editions.

The Author, in his Epiſtle to the noble and renowned Engliſh Nation, among other Motives for his Undertaking, intimates, his finding our Engliſh Writers to ſtand ſo much upon the Deſcent of the Britains to be one; as if it concern'd the Original and Honour of the Engliſh Nation; whereby and through the want of due Diſtinction between the two Nations (an Overſight which the Britains in their Account of us will never commit) our true Original and honourable Antiquity lie involv'd and obſcur'd, &c. Thus John Boden wou'd make us believe, it is in Caeſar's Commentaries to be found, That the Engliſhmen of his Time had but one Woman to ſerve for ten or twelve Men: Whereas Caeſar never heard the Name of Engliſhmen, who came not into Britain near 500 Years after his Death. And thus, not to let ſlip the Opportunity of a Laſh at Mr. Fox, he is cenſur'd for beginning his Acts and Monuments, with ſaying that Conſtantine was the Son of Helen an Engliſh Woman: Thus another entitles his Dictionary, which is in Latin and Engliſh, Theſaurus Linguae Romanae et Britannicae; which wou'd have been proper enough had it been written in Latin and Welſh. Having reflected on the Confuſion which ſuch Indiſtinctions create, he ſhews that Engliſhmen cannot but from the Saxons derive their Deſcent and Offſpring, and can lack no Honour in deſcending from ſuch an honourable Race, as this Work will ſpecify; which our Author was induced to publiſh for his love to this noble Nation, moſt dear to him, becauſe it was his Birth-place, tho' his Grandfather (who was driven into England by Wars and loſs of Friends) was born in Geldres. Towards the Concluſion of this Epiſtle he informs us that if in his Etymologies he differs from ſome Germans, 'tis where he has found them miſtaken by having look'd little further than the Language uſed among themſelves, even like thoſe who have alſo written in the Netherlands; whereas the underſtanding of the Teutonic uſed by our Saxon Anceſtors, as alſo that of the ancient Franks, is moſt requiſite; and thereunto the High, Low, and Eaſterland Teutonic, with reſpect alſo to the dependant Daniſh and Swediſh, beſides our modern vulgar Engliſh: ‘"In all which, ſays he, I have beſtowed ſome time of Travell; for that hereby, and not otherwiſe, the [301] true Reaſon and Concurrence of Things, properly appertaining to the true Original Teutonic Tongue, is beſt to be found out, and made manifeſt."’

After ſeveral Copies of Latin Verſes by Richard White of Baſinſtoke, Richard Stanihurſt and others, and ſome Engliſh Verſes by Tho. Shelton, Fr. Tregian, A. Greneway, Ralph Badclyfe, and the Author himſelf, we enter upon the Work, which is divided into Ten Chapters. The Firſt is, Of the Original of Nations, and conſequently that from which Engliſhmen are deſcended. In this Chapter the Author diſcourſes, (after ſhewing that the Engliſh are of German Deſcent, heretofore called Saxons, and ſtill in the Britiſh, as alſo the ancient Iriſh Tongue, ſo called) of the Original of Nations from the Diviſion, after the Deluge, at the Tower of Babel; and upon the numerous Increaſe of Poſterity, illuſtrated in the Example of the Iſſue of one Perſon near our Author's Time, and that was a Woman named Yoland Baillie, who died at Paris 1514, aged 88 Years, and in the eighth Year of her Widowhood; by whoſe Epitaph in the Church-yard of St. Innocents, it appears there were 295 Children iſſued from herſelf while ſhe lived. Then we have an Account how the People after the Flood inhabited the Mountains; how Nimrod took upon him the firſt Government. Particulars of the Tower of Babel, as to its width and height, from Joſephus and Iſidore. Of the Confuſion of Tongues; whence the Original of Nations; whence the Hebrews were ſo called. The Poſterity of Sem, Cham and Japhet. That the People were not mixed by the Confuſion of Tongues. Concerning the Inhabitants of the Weſt-Indies, we are referr'd to Auguſtine Carate's Hiſtory of thoſe Parts. How the Dutch are deſcended from Tuiſco. Whence ſome Days of the Week are derived. That the Germans were the firſt and only Poſſeſſors of their Country. Touching their Name of Germans and Almans; with their divers other Names. A Remark upon Leland's aſſerting that the Cimbri and Sicambri received their Names of Cambria the Daughter of Belinus King of Britain. Explanations of the Names of the Freiſlanders, Swevians, Goths, Danes, Normans, Vandals, Longobards, and Saxons, who were ſo called from the crooked Weapons they wore like a Scithe, ſtill called in the Netherlands a Saiſen. The watch Word Nem eowr Seaxes. Examples of other People receiving their Denomination from their Weapons, as the Scythians from Shooting, the Galliglaſſes from their Poleaxes, [302] as others anciently from the Clothes and Gowns they wore. And theſe are the chief Contents of this Chapter.

The ſecond Chapter ſhews how the ancient noble Saxons, the true Anceſtors of Engliſhmen, were originally a People of Germany. And here he aſſerts, That all our Writers agree the Engliſhmen came from Germany. That all had their Beginning in Aſia. That the Affinity between the German and Perſian Language, affirmed by ſome, extended not to half a ſcore Words, as our Author was inform'd from the beſt Interpreters in the Train of Sir Ant. Sherley and Cuchin Ollibeag, Ambaſſadors from Perſia, in Italy, Anno 1601. That the Gauls and Germans were by the Grecians called Celtae, from their frequent Riding. A Specimen of the Perſian Tongue, into which the Beginning of the firſt Chapter of Geneſis is here tranſlated. A fabulous Narration of Occa Scarlenſis, concerning Friſo, Saxo, and Bruno, with a Confutation thereof. That Brunſwick took its Name of Bruno Son of Ludolph Duke of Saxony, who firſt began to build it in the Year 861. This is followed with Arguments to prove that our Saxon Anceſtors were originally of Germany, and did not come from other Parts thither; with the Concurrence of Lipſius. Obſervations that no Nations call one another, as each calls himſelf; and that the Germans who were the continu'd Poſſeſſors of Germany, were never ſubdued; alſo unmixed both in People and Language. That the French iſſued from the Franks in Germany; to whom the ancient Gauls gave place, much about the Time that the Saxons came thence into Britain. That the Longobards or People of Lombardy, and alſo the Normans iſſued from the Germans; as the Nobility of Spain from the Goths. Then we have many ancient Teſtimonies of the Worthineſs of the Germans; with a Deſcription of the Country, as it was antiently; alſo the Vertues and Manners of the People: Arguments and Examples to prove, That it is not the Climate or Temperature of the Air makes the People of any Country more or leſs learned or ingenious. A Recital of ſundry rare Inventions, in Arts and Sciences, which had their Original in Germany. Reflections upon their national Vice of Drunkenneſs.

The third Chapter deſcribes the antient Manner of living among our Saxon Anceſtors: The Idols they adored while they were Pagans; and how they grew to be of greateſt Name and Habitation of any other People in Germany. Here our [303] ſaid Anceſtors are very particularly deſcribed, as to their perſonal Appearance in Attire, Arms, Exerciſe, the Orders or Degrees of People among them, their Cuſtom of Gavel-kind, Give all kind, or give each Child his Share; the nurſing of Children by their own Mothers; their counting of Time by the Nights, as Se'nnights and Fortnights, and the Ages of their own Lives by Winters. Their Computatation of Time they notched upon ſquare Sticks, called Almon-aght, or All moon heed, whence our Almanac. Here we have the old Saxon Names of the twelve Months in the Year, with their Explanations; which we now call by Names of French and Latin Derivation. Next of the ancient Government of Saxony; the four ſorts of Ordeal, or Trial of Right, by Combat, hot Iron, hot Water, and cold Water: But, not thought fit to be continued among Chriſtians, they were aboliſh'd by Pope Stephen. Here we enter upon the Idolatry of the Pagan Saxons, and their ſuperſtitious Cuſtoms for preſaging of Events. More particularly of their Idols for the ſeven Days in the Week, which we have here neatly repreſented in Sculpture; as firſt, the Idol of the Sun, whence comes the Name of Sunday; next that of the Moon, whence Monday; next the Idol of Thyſco, whence Tueſday; next is their Idol Woden or God of Battle, whence Wedneſday; the next is their Majeſtic Thor, ſitting under a Throne with a Circle of Stars behind his Head, whence Thurſday; the next is Friga, an Idol that repreſented both Sexes, with a Sword in one Hand and Bow in the other; was reputed the Giver of Peace and Plenty, the Cauſer of Love and Friendſhip, and from the Day of her Adoration we yet retain the Name of Friday. The laſt is the Idol of Seater, repreſented ſtanding on the ſharp-finn'd back of a Pearch, to ſignify, the Saxons, for ſerying him, ſhould paſs without Harm in dangerous Places; alſo holding a Wheel in his left Hand, to betoken their Unity and Concurrence in one Courſe; and a Pail full of Water, Flowers and Fruits in the right Hand, to denote that with kindly Rain he wou'd nouriſh and diſpoſe the Earth to ſuch Productions. After theſe, we have an Account of two other Saxon Idols, as that named Ermenſewl, or the Pillar of the Poor, which the Franks, with other Germans, as well as the Saxons ador'd: And that alſo named Flynt, from the Stone it ſtood on; beſides three or four more, which are only named. And here we have our Author's Reaſons why the Romans miſtook the German Idols to be derived from their own, as Thor from Jupiter, Friga from Venus, and [304] Seater from Saturn: Alſo his Remarks on the horrible Exceſs of Idolatry their Votaries were arrived to, in that Harold I. King of Norway ſacrificed two of his Sons to his Idols, that they might grant ſuch a Tempeſt as would diſperſe and confound the Fleet which Harold VI. King of Denmark was preparing to ſend againſt him. Further, that in Britain none of their Idols were in greater Requeſt than Woden, as by ſeveral Places in Kent, Staffordſhire, and Wiltſhire may appear, which retain their Appellations from him. But theſe Idols were all demoliſh'd by Ethelbert, the firſt Chriſtian Engliſh Saxon King, and others of thoſe Kings in their ſeveral Territories. Next we are inform'd how the Saxons extended their Bounds in Germany beyond any other People there; and how they were tranſported by Charles the Great into Tranſilvania and other Regions; which introduces an incredible Story of a Tranſportation which happen'd in Saxony not many Ages paſt. For there came into the Town of Hamel in Brunſwick a Man, whom, partly from his patch'd or motly-colour'd Coat, they called the Pied-piper, who having agreed with them to rid their Town of Rats, wherewith it was much annoyed; he with his Pipe drew all the ſaid Vermin after him into the River Weaſer, where they were drown'd. But the Townſmen then ſwerving from their Agreement, the diſcontented Piper gave them another Tune thro' the Town again, but it was a revengeful one, drawing all the Children therein, to the Number of 130, after him, till they came to a Hill, which opening on the ſide, let them in, Piper and all, ſo cloſed up again, and they were never more ſeen or heard of, to the great Lamentation of the Parents in that Town. In memory whereof, it was ordain'd, that no muſical Inſtrument ſhould be ſounded in the Street which led to the Gate, through which they paſs'd; that no Oſtery ſhould be there held; and that in the dating of all publick Writings, the Year from the going forth of their Children, ſhould be added to that of our Lord: Which they have accordingly ever ſince continued, ſays our Author. And this great Wonder happen'd the 22d of July, 1376.

Chapter the fourth, Of the Iſle of Albion, afterwards called Britain, and now England, Scotland, and Wales: And how it ſhewed to be Continent or firm Land with Gallia or France, ſince Noah's Flood. Here having ſhewn the different Opinions of the Derivation of the Word Albion from the Greek and Latin, and from the Name of ſome chief Governor, he proceeds to diſplay the like variety of Conjectures [305] touching the Name of Britain, from Sir T. Eliot, Humphrey Lhuyd, and Becanus, not withholding his own Opinion that the Iſland had the Name of Britain from Brute; however many fabulous Circumſtances may have been by a few obſcure Authors heretofore added to this Hiſtory, and ſo have made the whole to be doubted of. Next he ſets forth the imagin'd Deſcents from the Trojans; the Cauſe of which fond Conceits poſſeſſing ſo many, he attributes to the want of Learning in former Ages, their Druids themſelves not having any Knowledge of Letters. Our Author queſtions not only theſe Deſcents from the Trojans, but the Hiſtory of Troy itſelf; ſhewing that Queen Dido never knew Aeneas, who was dead a number of Years before ſhe was born; and that Brute was more probably a Gauliſh Prince than a Trojan. So proceeds to ſhew how this Iſland was anciently firm Land with Gallia; naming ſeveral Authors of the ſame Opinion, among whom are Sir Tho. More, John Twine, and Dr. Richard White; alſo producing many Arguments and Examples to maintain ſuch a Conjunction, and that there was an Iſthmus which join'd our Iſland at Dover to Calais, about ſix Miles wide, whereby the Iſland was ſome time Peninſular. Here we have ſeveral Inſtances of the Intruſions and Demolitions which have been made by the Waters; how divers Steeples in the Netherlands do yet appear at Low Water of the Towns and Villages that have been drowned. And that it is reaſonable to think theſe flat and level Countries have been Sea; the great Evenneſs thereof being ſo made by the Waters wherewith they have been cover'd. This is proved by the Obſervations here made of the Shells and Bones of Sea-Fiſhes found two Fathoms deep in theſe Plains diſtant from the Sea; and we have here a Sculpture of ſome which our Author had ſeen. As for the Fir-Trees found alſo buried in theſe Netherlands, with the Roots commonly lying South-Weſt; as the Soil is not by nature apt to produce them, our Author thinks they might be driven hither in the time of the Deluge. Anchors are alſo obſerved to have been found deep in the Earth, and the Skeleton of a Sea-Elephant in theſe Parts; whence it is concluded, that as theſe Parts of Flanders and Brabant are of Sea become Land, and cannot by any Inundation become Sea again, it muſt be owing to the breaking of the German Ocean thro' that Iſthmus which joined Albion to Gallia. An Argument that this Separation from the Continent was ſince the Flood, is urged from the great [306] Plenty of Wolves wherewith this Iſland was anciently infeſted, which no Man wou'd tranſport for the Goodneſs of the Breed out of the Continent into any Iſland, no more than they will carry Foxes out of our Continent into the Iſle of Wight. They are therefore preſumed to have paſſed over of themſelves, and grew moſt numerous till by King Edgar's Orders they were deſtroy'd throughout the Realm, before whoſe time two Britiſh Kings, Madan and Mempricius had been killed by them.

Chapter the Fifth. Of the Arrival of the SAXONS out of Germany into BRITAIN, and how they received the Chriſtian Faith; poſſeſſed the beſt Part of the Country, called it England, and leaving the Name of Saxons, came generally to be called Engliſhmen. Here, after a little Note upon Brute's Entrance into Albion, about 3000 Years after the Creation, and dividing Britain between his three Sons, Locrine, who had England; Albanact, who had Scotland; and Camber, who had Wales; we have a ſhort Remark upon the Original of the Scots, and another on the Picts, ſhewing they were not ſo called from painting of their Bodies, but from their being ſuch notable Fighters. Next we learn that the Britains were ſubject to the Roman Government from Julius Caeſar to Valentinian the Third, that is, almoſt 500 Years; till relinquiſh'd by them, they ſought Protection in the ſecond Year of King Vortiger againſt the Scots and Picts of the Saxons, who then Anno 447 arrived under Hingiſtus and Horſus in three great Ships to the number of 9000, according to Pomarius: And here we have a Sculpture repreſenting their landing on the Britiſh Coaſt, with thoſe who were the firſt Engliſhmen in this Iſland; and particular Accounts we here have of thoſe two Leaders, as to their Birth, Arms, Names, Building and Settlement in Kent. Alſo an Account of Old England or Anglia, whence they came, which was ſituate near Sleſwick, with the Signification of Angle, Engel, or England; and that it was firſt cauſed to be ſo called by King Egbert: Alſo of the other Saxons called Vites and Juites. The Signification of Waſſail. The Creation of Hingiſt King of Kent. The Arrival of a ſecond Supply of Saxon Forces. The Breach between the Britains and Saxons. The depoſing of Vortiger, enthroning of his Son Vortimer. The Slaughter of Horſus; and Return of Hingiſt into Saxony for more Forces. Vortiger's Re-aſcenſion of the Throne, and Alienation from the Saxons. The bloody Banquet on May-Day at Salisbury Plain, in which 300 of [307] the Britiſh Nobility, or more, were treacherouſly maſſacred by the Saxons under Hingiſt, at the watch Word Nem eowr Seaxes, or take your Seaxes, which was their Swords or crooked Daggers, whence they derived their Name. The Donation of Kent, &c. to Hingiſt confirm'd; and he reigned thirty four Years. After the miſerable Death of King Vortiger, we have a Series or ſhort Liſt of the Britiſh Kings, and the Years of their Reign to the Death of Cadwalladar, whoſe Reign ended 685, when began ſix Kingdoms more of the Saxons in Britain: So that in all, with that of Kent they made an Heptarchy; and they are here diſtinguiſhed. Here alſo we have the Names of ſeveral Places in Britain mention'd, which were changed by the Saxons, particularly of London, that it was not ſo called by the Britains from Ludstown; Town being no Britiſh, but a Saxon Word: Beſides then Julius Caeſar wou'd have called it after that Name, but it was ſo called from the famous metropolitan City of Lunden in Sconia, ſome time of greateſt Traffic in all the Eaſt Parts of Germany: Nor that Ludgate was ſo call'd from King Lud, becauſe Gate alſo is no Britiſh Word, but was call'd Leod-geat, the Gate of the People or popular Paſſage, in reſpect of the greater Concourſe thro' the ſame than any other in thoſe Days. York the Saxons call'd Euerwyc and Eberwyc, which by vulgar Abbreviation came to be boric, uoric, and ſo York: Euer or Eber ſignifying a wild Boar, and Wye, a Refuge, or Retreat; thoſe Beaſts heretofore much infeſting the Foreſt of Gautries within a Mile of the Town, inſomuch that there remains a Toll call'd Guid-Law, which is paid for Cattle at one of the Gates of the City, which was granted for ſafe Conduct thro' the ſaid Foreſt. Here follow ſome Examples ſhewing how Auxiliaries or Aſſiſtants to diſtreſſed Inhabitants make themſelves Sharers in their Country; ſo returning to Hingiſt, and his Succeſſors; we have a more particular Account of Ethelbert, who was the fourth in Deſcent from him, and the firſt of our Saxon Monarchs who embraced the Chriſtian Faith; and of certain Engliſh Pagan Children, who being a few Years before ſold at Rome, were ſo admired by Gregory for their Beauty upon his hearing they were called Angles, that he thought them not without reaſon ſo called, for that, as he ſaid in alluſion thereto, they had Faces like Angels. This St. Gregory who was himſelf coming to England, being afterwards made Pope, ſent St. Auguſtine hither, who landed in the Iſle of Tanet, where King Ethelbert reſorted to him. And here we have a Repreſentation in Sculpture of the [308] ſaid King on his Throne under a Tree, with the Manner of St. Auſtin's bringing and preaching the Chriſtian Faith, as deſcribed in Bede. An Account of the ſaid King's Converſion and others of the Saxon Kings; the Fruits thereof, and their Manner of executing Deeds: With an Obſervation that 900 Years paſt our Language, that of Saxony, and the Netherlands were all one. How our Country came in general to be called England by King Egbert, about the Year 800; with the Reaſon of our ancient Coin of Angels, both thought to be promoted by the Alluſion of Gregory aforeſaid. The Names of Shires given by King Alfred. And why the Name of Welſhmen was given to the Britains becauſe they were of the ancient Gauls; with ſeveral Examples from other Countries to illuſtrate the ſame.

The ſixth Chapter. Of the Danes and the Normans, and their coming into ENGLAND, and how the ENGLISH People have ſtill retained the Body of the Realm. Theſe Danes are here obſerved to have renewed their ancient Wars againſt the Saxons, now after they had been Britain about 350 Years, and about 156 Years after they were become the ſole Poſſeſſors of that Part now called England. Here we have an Account of the Antiquity of theſe People, and the Cauſe of their invading this Country. The Martyrdom of St. Edmund. The dividing of the Kingdom between Canutus the ſecond King of Denmark, and Edmund Ironſide, and by what Acquiſitions that Dane became the greateſt King for extent of Dominion that England ever had. Of his Succeſſors Harold and Hardicanute; which three Daniſh Kings reigning about 27 Years, the Race of the Danes were expell'd, and the Engliſh Line recovered again under Edward the Confeſſor, who declared Edgar Heir of the Crown; but Harold ſupplanting him, wore it till he loſt both it and his Life in Battle againſt William Duke of Normandy, near Haſtings in Suſſex, in October 1066. Thus we enter upon the Hiſtory of the Normans: From whence they iſſued: That they were Robbers by Sea: Of their other Invaſions, and their Cruelty therein. Of Rollo's firſt coming into England, and of the ſeven Norman Dukes from him down to that William. His Reſolution upon the Enterprize of England, with the three Cauſes thereof, tho' the Crown was never intended him, by Edward the Confeſſor, as by Reaſons alſo appears. The Particulars of this Expedition from Megiſſier, Oudegerſt, Crantzius, &c. His great Number of Ships. The Place and Time of his landing, [309] and his Victory. The Miſeries of the Engliſh Nobility and Gentry thro' the Inſolence of the Normans; not undeſerved by ſuch as rejected Prince Edgar the lawful Heir to the Crown. The Honour of Kent. The Engliſh flying into Scotland, and their Tongue firſt ſpoken there. The Union between the Crowns of Scotland and England. The Revival of the Engliſh Credit; and the Death of the Conqueror after about 20 Years Reign; with an Account of his Burial, and Epitaph in Latin and Engliſh. A Computation, that of the 3 or 400 Gentlemen he brought into England with him, whoſe Names are in the Roll of Battail-Abbey, ſcarce one quarter of thoſe Names are now remaining; whence it is concluded that Engliſhmen are not ſuch a mixed Nation as ſome ſuppoſe.

The ſeventh Chapter. Of the great Antiquity of our ancient Engliſh Tongue; and of the Propriety, Worthineſs and Amplitude thereof; with an Explanation of ſundry our moſt ancient Engliſh Words. Here it is aſſerted that the Ground of our Engliſh is the Teutonic Tongue; and that this Language was undoubtedly that, which, at the Confuſion of Babel the Teutonic People, or thoſe conducted by Tuiſco did ſpeak: One Inſtance given, is our uſing the Word babble, or babbling, from Babel, when one ſpeaks confuſedly or vain: Other Inferences from our Language, being at firſt moſtly Monoſyllables. Here we have an Account of Becanus his Opinion, That the Teutonic was the Language Adam ſpake in Paradiſe, with his Reaſons from the Interpretation of the Words Adam, Eve, Cain, Abel, Seth, Enoch, &c. Alſo of God, Devil, Heaven, Hell, Man, Woman, &c. Here we have the Authorities of Toletanus and Lipſius for the vaſt Extent of this ancient Language, and a Cenſure upon the Wantonneſs of borrowing Words from the French or Latin in writing or ſpeaking it. Inſtances of this Age being given more to Variety than others. An Example of the Nearneſs of our Language to the Dutch. How France and Spain came to ſpeak broken Latin. Whence the Word Romance or Romant is derived. Examples, ſhewing the Old French and Old Engliſh were much alike; from Du Haillan; Otfridus his Preface to the Goſpels, tranſlated about 800 Years paſt; and Willeramus the Abbot, his Tranſlation, into Old French, of Canticum Canticorum. Of the Norman Mixture with our Tongue; and that afterwards Chaucer was a great Mingler of Engliſh with French; wherefore, tho' our Author reverences him as [310] an excellent Poet for his Time, he is not of their Opinion who call him the firſt Illuminator of the Engliſh Tongue; and thinks he might have the greater Affection to the French Language, becauſe he was deſcended of a French or rather Walloon Race. That ſince his Time, more Latin and French have been admitted, than left out of our Tongue. From whence it is inferr'd that our Language is diſcredited, by borrowing ſo much, even to the making our ſelves unintelligible in our own Country, as that ſuperfine Orator did who declared, That ‘"as he itinerated, he obviated a rural Perſon, and interrogating him concerning the Tranſition of the Time, and the Demonſtration of the Paſſage, found him a meer Simplician:"’ Never dreaming 'twas himſelf who made him ſo; and that if he had ask'd him in plain Engliſh, What it was o'clock? And which was his way to the Place he wanted? he might have had a ſatisfactory Anſwer. As ſuch Examples are apt to raiſe Deriſion even among our ſelves, much more may Strangers be inclined to be merry with us at them; ſince they have nought elſe for the Loan of their Words; diſdaining to borrow of our Store, which we have rendered ſo obſolete and uncouth, by deſpiſing the Uſe of it our ſelves. As an Example of this Neglect, our Author here gives an Alphabet of our moſt ancient Engliſh Words with their Explanations in above thirty Pages, and herewith concludes this Part.

The eighth Chapter conſiſts of the Etymologies of the ancient Saxon Proper Names of Men and Women. This begins with ſome general Rules to diſcern the Saxon Proper Names; which leads us to the Alphabet of them, containing above thirty Pages; and concludes with ſome Remarks upon the Wiſdom of our ſaid Anceſtors in the Choice and Significancy of them, according to the Cuſtom of the Hebrews, who ſo adapted, or had the like Propriety in their Proper Names.

The ninth Chapter ſhews how by the Surnames of the Families of England it may be diſcerned from whence they take their Originals, whether from the ancient Engliſh-Saxons, or from the Danes or Normans. Here, after obſerving how the Saxons having given Names to Places in England, which Places afterwards gave Names to the Inhabitants, the Method is preferr'd, becauſe our Surnames are infinite, and it wou'd be tedious to ſpecify a Multitude of them at length, of chuſing out the moſt uſual Terminations, [311] each to ſerve for a kind of general Rule, how to appropriate all ſuch Names as do ſo end, or more clearly diſtinguiſh thereby our ancient Engliſh Families; beginning with thoſe ending in all, proceeding to thoſe ending in beke, berie, and ſo thro' the whole Alphabet. After this we have another Alphabet of our ancient Surnames which are of one Syllable, and ſometimes ſerving for Terminations of other Surnames: Some alſo of two Syllables, and not uſed to terminate other Surnames. At the end of this we have a general Rule for the knowing of Engliſh Families, which is if there be a k or a w in the Name, neither the Latin, nor any of the three Languages depending thereon, uſing thoſe Letters; which ſometimes cauſes Confuſion in their writing of our Names: A notorious Example whereof we have in our renowned Sir John Hawkwood, who in the Latin Epitaph upon his Monument at Florence, is written Joannes Acutus; the h being left out as uſeleſs, the k and w as unuſual; and ſo, returned into Engliſh, they have made John Sharp of him. Here follows an Obſervation upon ſuch Surnames as have been ſuppoſed to take their Original from the Danes: And laſtly, the Surnames coming from the Normans; the whole Chapter ending with a Remark upon the Britiſh or Welch Names which are thought to have been mixed with thoſe of the Romans, the Britains being under Subjection to theſe People about 500 Years. And hence concludes, the honourable Family of Cecils, being iſſued from Wales, is originally deſcended from the Romans.

The tenth and laſt Chapter treats Of our ancient Engliſh Titles of Honour, Dignities, and Offices; and what they ſignify: Alſo the Signification of our Engliſh Names of Diſgrace or Contempt; beginning, in the firſt Part, with the Name of King, and ending with Yeoman and Groom: And in the ſecond Part, beginning with Baud, and ending with Thief. And this, with Notice of the Table or Index at the end, of the ſpecial Points in the Book, may give a ſufficient View or Intimation of what is comprehended in the whole Work.

We ſhall here take our leave of it, with recommending, whenever it arrives at another Impreſſion, thoſe Animadverſions to be added or ſubjoined in their proper Places, which have been ſince occaſionally made on ſome Miſtakes in it, by ſome learned Searchers into our Antiquities: As thoſe made by Mr. Sheringham on his Fancy of the Vitae, being the ancient Inhabitants of the Iſle of [312] Wight; on the Saxons being in Germany before they came into the more northern Countries; and on Tuiſco's coming from Babel, and giving the Name to Tueſday: But more eſpecially ſhould be admitted, the Corrections of the learned Mr. Somner, he having left large marginal Notes upon Verſtegan's whole Book, as we are informed by Biſhop Kennet, the late accurate Author of his Life.

XLVII. The FOUNDATION of the UNIVERSITY of OXFORD, with a Catalogue of the principal Founders and ſpecial Benefactors of all the Colleges, and total Number of Students, Magiſtrates, and Officers therein, &c. Quarto, 1651. Pages 17.

THE accurate Author of this compendious Tract, having recited the various Opinions which have been advanced about the time of the Foundation of this Univerſity, which is juſtly reputed one of the moſt famous in the World, ſays, it is chiefly concluded and agreed, that Alfred King of the Weſt Saxons, about the Year 872, was the principal Founder thereof. And tho' by Wars, both before and ſince the Conqueſt, its ancient Glory was much eclipſed, yet ſo has it been reſtored by ſucceeding Princes, and other Benefactors, as to become conſpicuous among the moſt famous Academies in Europe: And however, the Hoſtels, Halls, Inns, Schools, and Religious Houſes, whereof, ſince the Conqueſt it did conſiſt, but now defaced or converted into the preſent Foundations there, were for their Number and that of the Students in them beyond thoſe now extant; yet true and ſolid Learning has latterly prevailed there more than ever, and at this preſent there are eighteen goodly Colleges and Houſes maintained with the Lands and Revenues of their Founders, and ſeven Halls, where Students live at their own Charge: Beſides there are publick Schools, and a Library, whoſe Fabric by the Bounty of many royal, noble, and religious Perſons was of late Years finiſhed, which no Univerſity in the World can in all Points parallel. Here follows their Names, the Times when, and Perſons [313] by whom they were founded, with an Account of their preſent State.

I. Univerſity College: Founded by King Alfred, Anno Dom. 872, or in the ſecond Year of his Reign, and the Students were maintained out of the King's Exchequer till William the Conqueror took the ſame from them. William, Archdeacon of Durham repaired and endowed it anew in 1217, and ſince by the Bounty of Dr. Walter Skirlaw, Henry Earl of Northumberland, Robert Dudley Earl of Leiceſter, Charles Greenwood, and others, the Society and Revenues of this College are much encreaſed, ſo that there is at preſent therein, a Maſter, eight Fellows, one Bible Clerk, with Officers, Servants, and other Students to the number of 73.

II. Baliol College: Founded 1262, by John Baliol, born in the Biſhoprick of Durham, and his Wife Dervorgilla, Parents of John Baliol, King of Scots; giving thereto Lands and Revenues for maintaining a Maſter, ten Fellows, and eleven Scholars, which is recorded to be the firſt endowed College in this Univerſity. It has ſince, by the Liberality of ſome Benefactors here named, and divers others, been much enlarged and adorned. The number of Fellows are at the Diſcretion of the Viſitor, Maſter, and three ſenior Fellows, as the Revenues thereof encreaſe or decreaſe. There are at preſent one Maſter, eleven Fellows, eleven Scholars for Exhibitioners, beſides Officers and Servants, in all 138.

III. Merton College: Founded 1274, by Walter de Merton Biſhop of Rocheſter, Lord Chancellor of England, and Counſellor to King Henry III. and Edward I. Endowing it in effect with all the Lands, &c. which at preſent belong to it, appointing a Warden and no definitive number of Fellows. Yet ſince, by the Bounty of Dr. John Williot, Sir Thomas Bodley, Dr. Wilſon, Sir Henry Savil Provoſt of Eton, who founded two Mathematic Lectures in the Univerſity and took care for the Enlargement and Enrichment of this College; beſides ſome others; it is ſince much improv'd. There are at preſent one Warden, twenty one Fellows, fourteen Scholars, beſides Officers, Servants, and other Students, in the whole 80.

IV. Exeter College: Founded 1316, by Walter Stapuldon, Biſhop of Exeter, Lord Treaſurer, &c. under King Edward II. by the Name of Stapuldon Hall; endowing it for the Maintenance of one Rector and twelve Fellows, from whom, one to be yearly choſen for the Government of the reſt. In 1404 Edmund Stafford Biſhop of Exeter gave [314] two Fellowſhips, reformed the Statutes, and altered the Name. Afterwards Sir William Peter Secretary of State to King Henry VIII. &c. gave eight Fellowſhips, and augmented the Wages of the Fellows on the ancient Foundation; Sir John Periam gave 560 l. Sir John Acland 800 l. and Dr. George Hakewell (all three Devonſhire Men) built the new Chapel. There are at preſent one Rector, twenty two Fellows, two Penſioners, and one Bible Clerk, beſides Officers, Servants, and other Students to the number of 230

V. Oriall College: Founded 1337, by King Edward II. who began the Foundation, dedicating it to the Virgin Mary, and endowing it for the Maintenance of one Provoſt and ten Fellows; afterwards augmented by King Edward III. and ſeveral other liberal Benefactors, ſo that there was now one Provoſt, eighteen Fellows, twelve Penſioners or Exhibitioners, and one Bible Clerk, beſides Officers, Servants, and other Students, in the whole 106.

VI. Queen's College: Founded 1340, by Robert Egleſfield Chaplain to Queen Philippa, Wife of King Edward III. endowing the ſame for the Maintenance of a Provoſt and twelve Fellows, to encreaſe with the Revenue; but by the Royal Bounties of King Edward III. King Edward IV. Queen Elizabeth, and King Charles, beſides ſome Archbiſhops and Biſhops, &c. here mention'd; there were at this time one Provoſt, fourteen Fellows, ſeven Scholars, two Chaplains, and fourteen Under-graduates; beſides Officers, Servants, and other Scholars to the number of 160.

VII. New College: Founded 1375, by William of Wickham alias Perot, who was Secretary to King Edward III. Keeper of the Privy Seal, Biſhop of Wincheſter, Lord Treaſurer and Lord Chancellor of England; endowing the ſame for Maintenance of a Warden, ſeventy Fellows and Scholars, ten Chaplains, three Clerks, one Organiſt, ſixteen Choiriſters, beſides Officers and Servants. He alſo founded a College at Wincheſter with one Warden, ten Fellows, two School-Maſters, and ſeventy Scholars, &c. all maintained at his Charge; out of which School, the beſt Scholars are choſen, to ſupply the vacant Places of the Fellows in the College at this Univerſity. Since by the Bounty of ſeveral Benefactors this College is much enrich'd, and the number in it is 135.

VIII. Lincoln College: Founded 1420, by Richard Fleming [315] Biſhop of Lincoln, which he endowed for the Maintenance of one Rector, ſix Fellows, and two Chaplains; afterwards augmented by other Benefactors, particularly Thomas Scot alias Rotheram, Archbiſhop of York, Chancellor of England and of Cambridge, and Secretary to four Kings; who when he was Biſhop of Lincoln did much enlarge the Buildings of this College, and augment the Fellowſhips, as did afterwards ſeveral others: And there were now one Rector, fifteen Fellows, two Chaplains, four Scholars, beſides other Students and Officers, amounting to 109.

IX. All Souls College: Founded 1437, by Dr. Henry Chichely Archbiſhop of Canterbury, who procured King Henry VI. to give thereto four Priories Alians, and endowed his Structure for maintaining one Warden and forty Fellows, who were to be Divines and Civilians, appointing that the number of Fellows ſhould never be augmented nor impaired; and that all Vacancies ſhould yearly be ſupply'd: He alſo gave Maintenance for Chaplains, Clarks, and Choiriſters ſans number. Since then, Cardinal Pole, Sir W. Peter, King Edward, Queen Mary and Elizabeth were Benefactors thereunto. And there were now one Warden, forty Fellows, two Chaplains, three Clerks, ſix Choiriſters, beſides other Students and Officers, in all 70.

X. Magdalene College: Founded 1459, by William Pattin, commonly called Wainfleet from the Place of his Birth, having been Provoſt of Eton, Biſhop of Wincheſter, and Lord Chancellor of England. He endowed the ſame for the Maintenance of one Preſident, forty Fellows, thirty Demies or Scholars, four Chaplains, eight Clerks, and ſixteen Choiriſters. It has ſince had ſeveral Benefactors, here named: The Fellows and Scholars never have been nor may be encreaſed, but to the number mention'd are added a School-Maſter, and Uſher, three Readers of Divinity, natural and moral Philoſophy; beſides other Officers, &c. to the number of 220.

XI. Brazen-Noſe College: Founded 1515, by William Smith Biſhop of Lincoln, Chancellor of Oxford, &c. but dying before it was finiſhed, it was perfected by Richard Sutton Eſq eſtabliſhing a Principal and twelve Fellows, maintained partly at the Founder's Charge and partly at their own: Since, by the Liberality of other Benefactors much improv'd, ſo that there now were one Principal, twenty Fellows, beſides Scholars, Officers, and Servants, to the number in all of 186.

[316]XII. Corpus-Chriſti College: Founded 1516, by Richard Fox Doctor of Laws, Biſhop of Durham, Secretary of State, &c. who endowed it for the Maintenance of a Preſident, nineteen Fellows, twenty Scholars, two Chaplains, two Clerks, and two Choiriſters. To this College Hugh Oldham Biſhop of Exeter contributed ſo bountifully, that, next to the Founder, he is entitled the principal Benefactor: Since much improv'd by others, ſo that the whole number is 70.

XIII. Chriſt-Church College: Founded 1546. It was begun by Cardinal Wolſey, and deſigned to be called Cardinal's College; but he being himſelf demoliſh'd before it was raiſed, King Henry VIII. added to his Intentions, and altered the Name; eſtabliſhing therein a Dean, eight Canons, three publick Profeſſors, ſixty Students, eight Chaplains, eight Singing-Men, an Organiſt, eight Choiriſters, twenty four Alms Men, and a Free-School for Scholars; and the Revenues were advanced in Queen Mary's time to the Maintenance of forty Students more, making up an hundred. Since that time Otho Nicholſon expended 800 l, in building and furniſhing the Library: And there were now of all ſorts 223.

XIV. Trinity College: Founded 1556, by Sir Thomas Pope, in the room of Durham College, who endowed it for the Maintenance of a Preſident, twelve Fellows, and twelve Scholars. Since, by the Lady Elizabeth Powlet and others, much augmented; ſo that the whole number is 133.

XV. St. John's College: Founded 1557. Archbiſhop Chichely laid the firſt Foundation, and called it St. Bernard's College. After its Suppreſſion by King Henry VIII. it was in a Dream (as reported) ſhewed to Sir Thomas White Merchant Taylor of London, and thereupon by him new built to the Honour of St. John Baptiſt. He endowed it with Maintenance for a Preſident, fifty Fellows and Scholars, a Chaplain, Clerk, ſix Choiriſters, and four Singing-Men. After many other bountiful Contributors, the whole number now maintain'd therein were 110.

XVI. Jeſus College: Founded 1572, by Hugh Price Doctor of the Civil Law; or the Foundation procur'd by him; Queen Elizabeth being ſtiled Foundreſs thereof in Mortmain: She confirm'd 27 Junii Anno Regni ſui 13, Collegium Jeſu, infra Civitatem et Univerſitatem Oxon. ex fundatione Reginae Elizabethae. Wherein ſhe eſtabliſhed a Principal, eight Fellows, eight Scholars: And Dr. Price is only ſtiled [317] a Benefactor, as building one Part thereof. Since much augmented by others, and hath at preſent a Principal, ſixteen Fellows, ſixteen Scholars, beſides others, 109.

XVII. Wadham College: Founded 1613, by Nicholas Wadham Eſq who in the ſeventh Year of King James, dying, bequeathed 400 l. per Annum, and left in ready Money 6000 l. to purchaſe more Land for endowing this College; and gave Orders for raiſing 5000 l. more upon his Lands for the building of it, leaving Directions with Dorothy his Wife, Siſter to John Lord Peter, for erecting the ſame; who ſo effectually diſcharged his Will, that no College in Oxford, for the Quantity, exceeds the ſame; expending between 11 and 12000 l. in building thereof; and ſettled a perpetual Eſtate of her own and her Husband's of near 800 l. per Annum in preſent. Afterwards, Dr. Philip Biſſe gave near 1850 Books for their Library, valued at 1200 l. And there are here maintained a Warden, fifteen Fellows, fifteen Scholars, two Chaplains, two Clerks, beſides other Students, Officers, &c. The whole number being 129.

XVIII. Pembroke College: Founded 1620, by Thomas Tiſdale Eſq who bequeathed 5000 l. for the Maintenance of ſeven Fellows, and ſix Scholars; with which Money, Lands were purchaſed to the Value of 250 l. per Annum for that Uſe. And Richard Wightwick Rector of Eaſt Iſley in Berkſhire gave Lands to the Value of 100 l. per Annum, for three Fellows and four Scholars. And a Charter was obtained for the Foundation by the Name of Pembroke College, with Mortmain of 700 l. per Annum; ſo called in reſpect to William Earl of Pembroke, then Chancellor of the Univerſity. It conſiſts of a Maſter, ten Fellows, ten Scholars, with others, to the number of 169.

There are alſo ſeven Halls in this Univerſity, in which many Students live at their own Charge, viz. Glouceſter Hall, firſt built by John Lord Grifford, for five Monks of Glouceſter, afterwards augmented for the Benedictine Monks; laſtly, converted to a Houſe for Scholars by Sir Thomas White, ut prius, and nine Students. Edmund Hall, was built by St. Edmund Archbiſhop of Canterbury; wherein is a Principal and ninety three Students. St. Alban's Hall, built by the Abbot of St. Albans for the Monks; wherein is a Principal and ninety nine Students. Hart Hall, was built by Walter Stapuldon Biſhop of Exeter; wherein is a Principal and a hundred and four Students. New Inn was [318] in the Tenour of New College, wherein is a Principal, and one hundred and forty Students. St. Mary Hall, was founded by King Edward II. wherein is a Principal, with one hundred Students. Laſtly, Magdalen Hall, founded by William Wainfleet Biſhop of Winton: And herein is a Principal with two hundred and twenty Students.

The Total of Students of all Degrees in this Univerſity of OXFORD, who had Names in every particular College, with the Magiſtrates and daily Officers thereunto belonging (beſides divers young Scholars who were relieved therein, and had no Names in any of the Colleges aforeſaid) were, in the Year 1622, 2850. And at this time (of our Author's writing) 3247.

The FOUNDATION of the UNIVERSITY of CAMBRIDGE; with a Catalogue of the principal Founders, and ſpecial Benefactors of all the Colleges; and total number of Students, Magiſtrates, and Officers therein, &c. Quarto, 1651. Pages 17.

THIS Tract, written by the ſame Hand with the former, as appears by the Manner and Method of it, begins alſo with reciting the various Opinions about the Foundation of this Univerſity; but ſays, the chiefeſt agree, That Sigebert King of the Eaſt Angles was the principal Founder thereof, about the Years 630 and 636; who aſſigned divers Hoſtels and Houſes for the Students, giving them large Privileges and Charters, whereof ſome are yet extant; and procuring alſo great Immunities from Pope Honorius I. which Sergius I. confirm'd. Since which time, tho' by Wars, both before and ſince the Conqueſt, it was much defaced; yet recovering itſelf, it is reputed one of the moſt famous Univerſities in the World. Much Honour it has received by the many Sons and Nephews of Kings who have been Earls thereof. And tho' the ancient Hoſtels and Houſes were more numerous, yet at preſent it conſiſts of ſixteen goodly Colleges and Halls, erected and maintain'd with the Lands of their ſeveral Founders; ſome whereof no Univerſity can in all Points parallel: And they are as follows.

I. St. Peter's College or Houſe: Founded 1280, by Hugo de Baſham, afterwards Biſhop of Ely. He ſettled the Endowments two Years after for one Maſter and fourteen Fellows, and died before all Things were finiſh'd. Other Biſhops [319] of Ely afterwards added to their Means; and in proceſs of time aroſe many Benefactors, who are ſeveral of them here named. This College being the firſt, now ſtanding in this Univerſity, hath in it a Maſter, nineteen Fellows, twenty nine Bible Clerks, eight poor Scholars, beſides other Students, Officers, &c. in all 106.

II. Univerſity Houſe, now Clare Hall: Founded 1326, by Richard Badew, Chancellor; wherein the Students lived the firſt ſixteen Years at the Univerſity Charge. Afterwards, the firſt Foundation was reſigned into the Hands of Elizabeth Counteſs of Clare, ſometime Wife of John de Burgo Earl of Ulſter; which Elizabeth had formerly beſtowed Favours upon this College. She then, under Licence of King Edward III. altered the Name to her own. By whoſe Benefactions and thoſe of others after her, there is a Maſter, eighteen Fellows, thirty ſix Scholars, twenty poor Scholars, beſides other Students, Officers, &c. 106.

III. Pembroke Hall: Founded 1343, by Mary St. Paul Counteſs of Pembroke, Daughter of Guido Chaſtillon Earl of St. Paul in France, and third Wife of Audomarus de Valentia Earl of Pembroke. She endowed the ſame for one Maſter, ſix Fellows and two Scholars; which are ſince encreaſed by other Benefactors to one Maſter, nineteen Fellows, one Tanquam, thirty three Scholars of the Houſe, beſides other Students, Officers, &c. in all 100.

IV. Corpus Chriſti College: Founded 1351, by Henry Monmouth, ſurnamed Torto Collo, Duke of Lancaſter. By his Endowments and the Augmentations made to it by others there is a Maſter, twelve Fellows, thirty ſeven Scholars, beſides other Students, Officers, &c. 126.

V. Trinity Hall: Founded 1353, by Dr. William Bateman, afterwards Biſhop of Norwich, to whoſe Endowments others being added, there is a Maſter, twelve Fellows, fourteen Scholars, beſides Officers, &c. in all 60.

VI. Gonvil and Caius College: Founded 1353, by Edmund Gonvil, Rector of Terrington and Ruſhworth in Norfolk. Afterwards John Caius, Doctor in Phyſick and a learned Antiquary in 1557 was made a Co-Founder by Letters Patents; who cauſed it to be called after both their Names. He added to the former Quadrangle his fair Building of Free Stone, encreaſed the Treaſury, and enriched it for maintaining three Fellows, twenty Scholars, and a Porter. Since it had many other Benefactors, ſome of whom are here named, who farther augmented it: So [320] that there is a Maſter, twenty five Fellows, one Chaplain, ſixty nine Scholars, beſides Officers, &c. in the whole 209.

VII. King's College: Founded 1441, by King Henry VI. conſiſting of one Maſter and twelve Scholars: He two Years after enlarged it, and there is in it one of the faireſt Chapels in the World; but, by his untimely death, left his Foundation incomplete. King Henry VII. partly finiſhed the Stone-Work of the Chapel, and his Succeſſor pav'd, glazed, and finiſhed it. By ſucceeding Benefactors the whole has been much enriched; and the College maintains at preſent, a Provoſt, 70 Fellows and Scholars, three Chaplains, one Maſter of the Choiriſters, ſix Clerks, ſixteen Choiriſters, ſixteen College Officers of the Foundation, beſides twelve Servitors to the ſenior Fellows, ſix poor Scholars, with other Students, in all 140.

VIII. Queen's College: Founded 1448. Being begun by Margaret Andegavenſis, Daughter of Reyner Duke of Anjou, titular King of Sicily, Naples, and Jeruſalem, and Conſort of King Henry VI. But ſhe dying left it imperfect; and it was finiſhed by Queen Elizabeth Wife of King Edward IV. Since, by the Liberality of other Benefactors here named, encreaſed to the Maintenance of a Preſident, nineteen Fellows, twenty three Scholars, eight Bible Clerks, and three Lecturers of Hebrew, Arithmetic, and Geometry, beſides other Officers, &c. to the number of 190.

IX. Katherine Hall: Founded 1475, by Dr. Robert Woodlarke Chancellor of this Univerſity; who dedicated it to the Honor of St. Katherine; and therein eſtabliſh'd a Maſter and three Fellows. Since, by the Bounty of others here mention'd, encreaſed to a Maſter, ſix Fellows, ten Scholars, nine Exhibitioners, beſides others, in all 150.

X. Jeſus College: Founded 1496, by Dr. John Alcock Biſhop of Ely, and Lord Chancellor of England; who converted thereinto the ancient Nunnery conſecrated to St. Radegund; and eſtabliſhed one Maſter, ſix Fellows, and ſix Scholars. Since, by others, encreaſed to one Maſter, ſixteen Fellows, twenty four Scholars, beſides others, in all 110.

XI Chriſt College: Founded 1505, by Margaret Counteſs of Richmond and Derby, Widow of Edmund Earl of Richmond, and Mother of King Henry VII. endowing the ſame for a Maſter, twelve Fellows, forty ſeven Scholars and Officers: Which number has been ſince encreaſed by [321] other Benefactors to one Maſter, thirteen Fellows, ſixty Scholars, beſides other Students and Servants, in all 166.

XII. St. John's College: Founded 1508, by the aforeſaid Margaret Counteſs of Richmond, who obtain'd a Licence of King Henry VIII. to convert an Hoſpital of Regular Canons into this College; but left the perfecting thereof to her Executors Biſhop Fox, Biſhop Fiſher, &c. Whereby, and the Bounty of many others here named, there is in it a Maſter, fifty four Fellows, eighty four Scholars, beſides others, in all 282.

XIII. Magdalene College: Founded 1519, by Edward Stafford Duke of Buckingham, who entitled it after the Name of his own Dukedom; but in 1542 the Lord Chancellor Audley alter'd the Name to that it now retains, and alſo endowed the ſame; which now, with ſubſequent Bounties, maintains one Maſter, eleven Fellows, and twenty two Scholars, beſides others, in all 140.

XIV. Trinity College: Founded 1546, by King Henry VIII. who united three Halls or Houſes in this one; and endowed it with 1640 l. per Annum. It was afterwards augmented by Queen Mary, beſides many other noble Benefactors; ſo that it is one of the goodlieſt Colleges in Europe, maintaining one Maſter, ſixty Fellows, ſixty ſeven Scholars, four Conducts, three publick Profeſſors, thirteen poor Scholars, one Maſter of the Choiriſters, ſix Clerks, ten Choiriſters, twenty Alms-Men, beſides others, to the number of 440.

XV. Emanuel College: Founded 1584, by Sir Walter Mildmay Chancellor of the Exchequer, &c. for the Maintenance of a Maſter, thirty Fellows and Scholars, &c. For encreaſe of which Foundation Queen Elizabeth gave a ſmall Annuity out of the Exchequer, and by other Donations, there are in it one Maſter, fourteen Fellows, fifty Scholars, ten poor Scholars, beſides others, to the number of 310.

XVI. Sidney Suſſex College: Founded 1598, by Frances Sidney Counteſs of Suſſex, Siſter of Sir Henry, Aunt of Sir Philip Sidney, Widow of Thomas Radcliffe Earl of Suſſex: Bequeathing by her laſt Will (beſides her Goods) 5000 l. wherewith her Executors built and endowed the ſame for a Maſter, ten Fellows, twenty Scholars; which being augmented by other Benefactors, hath one Maſter, twelve Fellows, thirty three Scholars, beſides the Additions of Sir. F. Clarke, and others; the whole number of Students and Officers is 210.

[322]The Total number of Students of all Degrees in this Univerſity, who had Names in every College, with the Magiſtrates and Officers, beſides divers Scholars relieved therein, whoſe Names were not entered, was 3050, in the Year 1622; and by reaſon of the Sickneſs in 1629 many were diſperſed to OXFORD, &c. and no Supply came the Year following; whereby there is now in the ſame but 2848.

The End of No. V.
[323]

XLIX. Sir THOMAS WRIOTHESLEY's COLLECTIONS relating to the Inſtitution, Arms, and Characters of the KNIGHTS of the GARTER: With the Ceremonies of the ancient ORDER of the BATH; illuminated in their proper Colours, and adorn'd with the Pourtraits or Limnings of ſeveral noble Perſonages, &c. Fol. MS.

THIS ancient and valuable Collection begins with a Copy of the Interpretation of, and Additions to the Statutes of the Order of the Garter, made by King Henry VIII. with the Advice and Aſſent of the Companions of the ſaid Order on the 29th Day of May, in the eleventh Year of his Reign. There are Additions and Interlineations in ſeveral Places, of ſome Corrections or Amendments in the hand-writing of Sir Thomas Wriotheſley; and is intitled at the top of one of the Pages, The now Statutes. This conſiſts of nine Pages, and is followed with The Ordonnaunces for the Officers of the Order; in the beginning of which, the ſaid King Henry is called Renovator of the noble Order of St. George, in the 13th year of his Reign or 1521. This Part treats of the five Officers of the ſaid Order; who are the Prelate, Chancellor, Regiſter, King of Arms called Garter, and the Huiſſier of Arms named the Black Rod; declaring the Charge or Duty of every one of them, and their Privileges, Habits, Wages, and Liveries; alſo the Liberties and Privileges granted to the thirteen Poor Knights, as is expreſſed in the Introduction thereof. Moreover, here are the Pourtraits or Limnings of theſe five Officers, in their proper Robes and Enſigns of the Order, and all in their proper Colours. This Part fills eight Pages, but there ſeems to be a Leaf wanting at the end, becauſe it breaks off abruptly in the Account of the Uſher of the Black Rod and his Salary; and there is wholly wanting the Privileges of the Poor Knights as before promiſed. Next follows, which perhaps ſhould have been bound firſt in the Book, a Tranſlation of the firſt Founder King Edward's Statutes of the Order. Beginning thus, ‘"In the worſhipp of God, Seynt Marie the glorious Virgyn, and Seynt [324] George; our Sovereygn Lord, Edward the Thirde Kyng of Englonde aftir the Conqueſt, the 23 Yere of his Reigne, hath ordeyned, eſtablisſhed and founded, in his Caſtell of Wyndeſore, a Company named the Order of the Gartier, in the Maner as foloweth: Firſt Hymſelf, Sovereygn; his eldeſt Sone the Prince of Walys, the Duke of Lancaſter, Therle of Warwyke, the Captan of Bueth, Therle of Stafford, Therle of Salisbury, the Lord Mortymer, Sir John Liſle, Sir Barthelmewe de Burgherſh, the Sone of Sir John Beauchamp, the Lord Mahun, Sir Hugh Courtnay, Sir Thomas Holland, Sir John Gray, Sir Richard Fitzſymon, Sir Miles Stapulton, Sir Thomas Wale, Sir Hugh Wryotteſley, Sir Neele Loryng, Sir John Chandos, Sir Jayms Dandeley, Sir Oetes Holland, Sir Henry Eme, Sir Sauchett Daprichecourt, Sir Walter Panell. And it is accorded" &c. Theſe Articles are compriſed in fourteen Pages, ending with theſe Words: ‘"And alſo the ſaid Colier ſhall not be ſold, put to pledge, given, nor aliened, for neede, or cauſe whatſoever that it be."’ There are ſome marginal Notes on it, in the ſame Hand as in the foregoing Draught; and in the Margin at the End this Inſcription, TH. WR. A. R. Greek; which as we have been inform'd by a very knowing Perſon in theſe Studies, ſignifies Thomas Wriotheſley King of Arms of Grekelade; and under that in the ſame hand, is alſo this Inſcription, Statuta Regis H. VIImi tempore tranſlata Anglice per JO. WR. ſignifying, that theſe Statutes were thus tranſlated in the time of King Henry VII. by John Wriotheſley King of Arms. Following this, in the ſame Page there is written, but in another Hand, (which has been ſuppoſed to be John Stow's) Neceſſaryes of a ſtrange Prince choſen a Brother and a Companion of the Order of the Garter. Alſo, The Othe of a Kyng byeng a Stranger when he recevyth the Order of the Garter.

After a Copy of an old Deed, in another hand, upon the next Leaf, executed in the Reign of King Edward III. we enter upon a View of the Arms and Creſts of the Knights of the Garter, blazon'd all in their proper Colours. There may be near two hundred, moſt of them finiſh'd, in the compaſs of about ſeventy Pages; and what is a very great Curioſity in a Work of this nature, we have the Badges to about fourſcore of them, painted or drawn with a Pen, againſt, or at the ſides of ſo many of the ſaid Coats. Further, what ſtill inhances its value to the hiſtorical Inſpector, is, that not only the Names of moſt of the Knights Companions [325] are appropriated to the greater part of thoſe Arms, but Characters alſo given of upwards of threeſcore of them, containing a ſhort Account of their Actions, Marriages, Iſſues, Benefactions, Death and Burial. Which Particulars of ſuch ancient Record, as this Writing, and theſe Draughts ſeem to be, muſt be eſteemed moſt authentic, as being ſo near the original Fountains of Intelligence. In the ſeventh Page of theſe Draughts we find, againſt one of the Coats, this Writing; ‘"John King of Portugal 20 li Gowne, JO. WR."’ and againſt the next, ‘"Maximilian King of Romains, tranſolatt to the Princs ſtall; Gowne, Clothe of Gold, furred with Martres; the Cape of Bever. JO. WR."’ and againſt the next, ‘"Phillipp King of Caſtille, Archiduc of Awſtriche: Gowne, Clothe of Gold, lyned with Damaske; 40 Scutes for Dobelet. TH. WR."’ The former part of this Work ſeems plainly as old as King Henry VII. becauſe in the third Page of theſe Draughts, where his Arms and Badges are diſplay'd, it is thus written of him, ‘"and nowe gloriouſly reigneth owre Soveryne Lord King Henry the VII. whiche in his Youthe hathe endured many greate Dureſſe; and bleſſed by God hathe wonne two great Bataillis; the fyrſt, the Bataile of Redmore, &c. the ſeconde, the Bataile of Stoke, &c."’ Yet four Leaves further we have this Inſcription over the Arms of that King's Son, ‘"The Duc of Yorc, Henry, aftir Prynce, and aftir King Henry the Eight; wiche conqred the Cytes of Terwen and Tourney with their Appurtenances, Anno quinto R. 1513."’ From theſe Obſervations it may appear that Sir John Wriotheſley Garter King of Arms was Author of ſome of theſe Characters, and Sir Thomas, who was Garter afterwards, and died 26 Henry VIII.* Author of others, and probably the greater part; wherefore we have entitled the Collection to him.

The principal Perſonages whoſe Arms, Badges, and Characters are thus drawn forth, are firſt, King Edward III. who, in his beginning did many great Acts, here briefly mention'd. After him, King Richard II. who kept a triumphant Houſhold, built Weſtminſter-Hall, and made many Dukes and Earls, &c. After him, King Henry IV. which diſtreſſed King Richard, &c. After him, his Son King Henry V. that won Normandy and the Subſtance of the [326] Realm of France, proclaimed Regent and Heyritor thereof, &c. founded the Monaſteries of Syon, Charter-houſe, Schene; the Officer of Garter Principal King of Arms, and divers other Foundations. After him, King Henry VI. an holy Man; for whom God ſhewed many Miracles; for he was more heavenly than worldly: He was firſt buried at Chartſey, and now is removed to the Colege of Wyndeſore, where he was born. Next, King Edward IV. Flower of Knighthood, Beawte, Liberalite, and Wiſdome with Manhod, &c. After him his Brother King Richard III. whiche being evill counceyled, diſenherited his Nephewis, under whome, alſo, they dyed; which, byfore he was King, and did that foule dede, was preyſed for a coragious Knyght, &c. The next is King Henry VII. of whoſe Character we have given a part as above. So we go on to Henry Earl of Derby, Duke of Lancaſter, Hugh Earl of Stafford, and Edward Lord Spencer. Then we have no Characters to four Coats following till we come to Humphrey Duke of Glouceſter, againſt whoſe Arms and Badges, it is written, that he was a wiſe Prince, a greate Clerk, and a greate Benefactoure to the Univerſitees of Oxenford and Cambrigge: Brake the Sege of Cales; put Duc Phillip of Burgoigne to flighte, and brent ſeveral Places in Flanders: Bilded Grenwiche and Baynardis Caſtell: Murdred at Bury, and buryed at Seynte Albons. We have alſo little ſaid of any others till we arrive at the noble Duc Richard of York Regent of France, &c. And after him, an Account of Richard Nevil Earl of Warwick, Capeteyne of Cales, and Admyrell of the See; who wan the greate Hulkis, and faught with the greate Shippis of Bretegne, and kepte oure Sees well in his Dayes, thet all Nacions dred oure Engliſh Shippis; and made goode Roodis into Scotland, and was with King Edwarde in his begynning, both at the Bataile of Northampton and of Towton: And he was ſleyne at Barnet. The next Character, of Engliſh Extract, is that ſhort one above related of King Henry VIII. After theſe we have alſo ſome brief Characters of Edmund Earl of Stafford, Richard Nevill Earl of Salisbury, William Earl of Arundel, Edmund Earl of Cambridge, Sir Walter Mawny, Thomas Earl of Buckingham, Anthony (Wydeville) Earl Ryvers who did Armys, bothe on horsbak and on foote, with Anthony, Baſtard of Burgoygne, in Smythfeld; kepte, triumphantly, Turney at Weſtminſter; a couragious Knyght, and a gentill; pituouſly put to dethe at Pumfret, and by [327] ried in the Quere of the Parisſhe Churche. After him alſo Sir John Conyers, Humphrey Earl of Stafford, the Lord Sudeley Rauff, Sir William Stanley Steward of Houſholde with Prince Edward, afterwards called King Edward V. and Chamberlen to King Henry VII. with whom he was at the Bataille of Redmore; and after comytted high Treaſon, for the which he was beheaded at the Towre-Hill; and, at Wyndeſore, diſgradid of the Ordre of the Garter, &c. John Lord Dudeley, George Earl of Shrewsbury, Sir John Cornwall, Sir John Aſteley, and Sir John Savage. After theſe we come to the Character of the noble Prince Edward; who in his Youth, at ſixteen Yere olde, faughte in the fowarde, at the Bataille of Creſey, where the Frenſhe King was put to flight, another King ſlain, and beſides many other Perſons of Diſtinction, 30,000 other People; and there he wan the Oſtriche Feather. At Poitiers he wan the Bataille, toke King John of Fraunce Priſoner, and with him the Flower of Knighthode of his Partie: Wan the Bataille of Nazaroth in Spayne, put King Henry of Spain to flight, and then toke Bertram Coneſtable of Fraunce Priſonnier, and reſtored King Peter; faught on the Sea with the Spainardes and wan themme; and he is buried at Canterbury. The next Characters are of John of Gant, the Earl of Pembroke, and the Duke of Bedforde, George Duke of Clarence, Ralph firſt Earl of Weſtmoreland, and Sir John Faſtolff, a riche Knight, a grete Bilder, who bilded Caſter-Hall in Northfolk, and a Royal Palace in Southwork, another in Yarmouthe; a ſpeciall goode Maiſter to the Officers of Armes; and was moſt thriumphantly brought in Erthe that I have hard (ſays our Author) of a Man of his Degre. His Arms are, Or and Azure quarterly, three Scollops Argent in a Bend Verd. The Creſt, a Plume of Oſtridge Feathers. Badges, a Book with a Pencil in it; and a Shield with a Branch of Laurel ſpringing out of it. Next follow ſome ſhort Accounts of Thomas Lord Stanley Earl of Derby, Sir Barth. Borowaſhe, John Lord Menil, Thomas Lord Scalles, Sir Tho. Holland, Henry Earl of Northumberland, Sir John Stafford, Sir Edward Wideville, and Richard Earl of Warwick, a noble and courageous Knight; he did Armes three Dais ſyngly on horsback, beſide Calais, againſt all Commers; Gouvernour of King Henry VI. in his tender Age; a Fader in nourture, and a Patron; died in the Caſtell of Rouen; nobly enterred in the College of Warwick. Afterwards we have ſuch another ſhort Character of Waultier firſt Lord [328] Hungerford, and Richard Earl of Rivers. Alſo of Sir James Audeley, a noble Warrior, who accompanied Prince Edward in all his Warres: One of the ſpecial Cauſers, thro' his Courage, of the wynnyng of the Bataille of Poitiers: And of John Lord Talbot Earl of Shrewsbury, the nobleſt Warrior that was in his Dais; and of his Eſtat: His noble Actes, ſo many folde doon in the Realme of Fraunce, to his grete Renoune, ſprenge over all Creſtendome: a very trew Engliſhe Knight; a great Juſticier: Be his Counſeill, Pope Nicholas bilded the Caſtell Sainte Aungell of Rome: Died be Fortune of Warre in Fraunce; buried at Whichurch. The two laſt Knights Companions of this Order, who are, in this Manner, moſt ſignally ſpoken of, are firſt Gaillard Lord Duras; who, for England's Sake, left Gaſcongue; was long Marſhall of Calais; attended King Edward in Flanders, &c. And laſtly Sir Thomas Mongomery a wiſe Knight, and of King Edward the IVth's Counſeil, and with him in all his noble Deeds; whiche ofte was ſente in Ambaſſade to Ducs, Princes, &c. And thus we end our Survey of this Part, containing the Arms and Characters of our ancient Knights of the Garter down to, about the middle of King Henry the VIII. his Reign.

On the ſecond Page of the ſame Leaf where the former Work ends, begins another of a different kind, being nothing but Pourtraiture without any Introduction or verbal Explanation, and continues for twenty four Pages ſucceſſively. It contains a diſtinct Repreſentation in ſo many painted Draughts of the ancient Ceremonies uſed in creating the Knights of the Bath. The Figures in theſe Limnings, tho' they are not every where in exact Proportion, or finely finiſh'd off to the Eye, are yet ſo very obſervable for the punctual Regard that ſeems to have been paid to the due Repreſentation of all Parts of the Solemnity, all proper Perſons that ſhould appear, all Officers and Attendants, with all the Diſtinction of Habits, Ornaments, &c. that above fourſcore Years ſince theſe Draughts were thought worthy of being graved and brought into Print*; wherefore we ſhall only obſerve further of them here, that in the ſaid Sculpture they are nothing ſo intelligent as in theſe the original Paintings, becauſe the whole Ceremony being contracted all into one Sheet Print, and the Colours all reduced to black and white, we are deprived of ſeveral remarkable [329] Diſtinctions in the ſaid Copy, which in theſe Illuminations might give great Light to ſome Parts of our Hiſtory and Antiquities.

After theſe Views of this Ceremony we have, two or three Tables or Genealogies of Hungary; of the Kings of Caſtille, and the Fitzhardings, &c. Then we come to ſome Pourtraits of certain noble Perſonages two in a Leaf, at full length, painted in their proper Habits and Robes for twelve Pages together. Among theſe are King Edward I. and his Queen; Richardus de Monthermer Earl of Glouceſter and Hereford, with Joanna Lady Acres his Wife, Daughter of that King; Tho. de Monthermer his Son, and Edward his Son: Alſo John the Son of William de Montacute, and Margaret Daughter of Thomas de Monthermer; John Earl of Salisbury, and Thomas his Son, with their Counteſſes; Richard Nevyle Earl of Salisbury, and his Lady Alice; Richard Nevil Earl of Warwick, and Anne his Lady; King Richard III. and his Queen Anne; William Lord Ferres of Groby, and Lady Margaret his Wife; alſo the Duke of Exeter and his Dutcheſs. Of which Pictures the Men, being moſt of them in Armour; have their Helmets cloſed over their Faces, all but the two King Richards, and Thomas and Edward Sons of Richard de Monthermer. After theſe we have in four Pages more, ſome unfiniſhed Draughts of the Standard Bearers; between two of which are ſome of the Knights Companions of the firſt and ſecond Stall mention'd.

Then follow a few Leaves of ſome Coats of Arms without Creſts or Badges, and a Pedigree of Dampetre, Earl of Flanders; with a Draught of two or three monumental Figures: And then we come to an Account of the Fees that William Brugys alias Garter had of the Prelate and Knights of the Order, beſides the Sovereign: Which Brugys was in the time of King Henry V. and King Henry VI. in his Beginning. Alſo a Memorandum of about ſixteen Knights who were created Peers in the Reign of King Henry VI. and the Days when. The next is a Liſt of the Knights of the Garter the Third of King Edward VI. in French; but either the Account is not finiſhed, or the number of them were then but Eighteen including the Sovereign. The next Piece is the Pedigree of the Lord Perſe of Luxemburgh Earl of Saint Poule. Towards the Concluſion of this Pedigree, we learn that it was made for the Lady Margaret Vaux, and that the Brother of this Lady was named William Lord of the Vaux, who was then alive: And further we have theſe [330] Words, ‘"Lo now have ye the Pedigree of the Fader, of the Moder of my Lady Margaret of the Vaux now beyng alyve, Moder unto Therle of Sent Powle, and unto Thebaut Lord Fynes, now beyng Bisſhop of Manns, and of my Lord Jakes of Lugburgh, and of the Doghter my Lady Jaquetto Duches of Bedford, my Lady Iſabell Counteſs of Mayn, and of my Lady Kateryn Duches of Britayn, now all beyng on lyve."’ And here ends, as we conjecture, the ancient Collections in this Book which were made, for the moſt part, by the Wriotheſleys, that is, all but a few of the odd Pedigrees, and perhaps alſo one or two of the laſt Articles which are here mention'd. For we obſerve all the Paper (except one Leaf, containing only an Illumination of ſome monumental Ornament, and might be inſerted at the laſt binding up of the Volume) from the Beginning of the Knights of the Garter's Arms to this Place, has one Maker's Mark upon it, viz. Three Flower de Luces in a Scutcheon with a Coronet over it.

What follows in this Volume (bound into it by a later Owner) are, firſt, two Sheets printed in Queen Elizabeth's time, the one from a Copper-Plate, and is called, The Union of the Roſes of the Families of Lancaſter and York: With the Arms of thoſe who have been choſen of the moſt Honorable Order of the Garter, from that Time to this Day, 1589. It was compoſed, that is the Arms and Dates were ſettled by Thomas Talbot a noted Antiquary of thoſe Times, and graved by Jodocus Hondius of Flanders in London the Year abovemention'd. The other Sheet is ſtuck upon Canvas, and is ſo ſoil'd 'tis ſcarce legible; but it contains a ſhort Account in Latin of all the Orders of Knighthood Eccleſiaſtical or Civil that are famous thro' the Chriſtian World. I think it is dedicated to Dr. Tho. Hesketh by John Clapham.

There are further two Latin Tracts in this Volume, which alſo never belonged originally to the aforeſaid Collections, but are both bound in with them, (Parchment Covers and all) the one called Libertates Collegii. The other contains the Accounts of Owen Oglethorp Treaſurer of St. George's Chapel, from the laſt Day of October in the 38th of Henry VIII. to the laſt of September in the firſt of King Edward VI. The reſt of the Book conſiſts only of ſeveral Sheets of the printed Titles and painted Arms of ſome Knights of the Garter in King Charles the Second's time; ſuch as are uſually diſperſed at their Inſtallations, and only bound in here, at the End, to make it a Volume as portly and magnificent [331] to outward Appearance, as it is intrinſically valuable. The Care of thus gathering and binding together theſe Collections is owing to that eminent Antiquary and Herald Mr. Elias Aſhmole, whoſe Book it appears to have been by the Impreſſion of his Arms which we ſee on the Cover: But the Liberty of thus obliging the Publick with the Contents of it, we owe to the gracious Favour of a noble Peer, who is moſt worthily poſſeſſed thereof; having beſides the Generoſity of this Communication, alſo been at no ſmall Expence in honouring the Memories of thoſe illuſtrious Perſonages whoſe Pourtraitures are before mention'd.

L. A DEFENSATIVE againſt the Poyſon of ſuppoſed PROPHESIES: Not hitherto confuted by the Penne of any Man; which being grounded eyther uppon the Warrant and Authority of olde paynted Bookes, Expoſitions of Dreames, Oracles, Revelations, Invocations of damned Spirits, Judicialles of Aſtrologie, or any other kinde of pretended Knowledge whatſoever, de futuris contingentibus, have been Cauſes of great Diſorder in the Commonwealth, and chiefly among the Simple and Unlearned People, &c. London printed by John Charlewood Printer to the Earl of Arundell. Quarto, 1583. Pages 324.

THIS Work, repleniſh'd with Variety of learned Authorities from the Ancients, and hiſtorical Examples of all Times, is dedicated to Sir Francis Walſingham, from Howard Houſe, by Henry Howard, afterwards Earl of Northampton and Lord Privy Seal. The noble Author, ingeniouſly beſpeaks the Patronage of his Friend, in the ſaid Dedication, by introducing it with an Alluſion from Vitruvius; who allows, ‘"no Building to be fully finiſhed, which wants a Cover to bear out a Storm."’ Therefore, having made an end of this rude Pile, preſumes to grace it with the Louver of his honourable Name. Further confeſſing his particular Affection and Zeal to him was ſo much increaſed from his ſtedfaſt Friendſhip in the Days of Proof, that not only his Hand was ready to ſubſcribe, but his Heart withall to acknowledge the great Merit of his undeſerved Favour. [332] For who may be more ſecurely truſted in the Port of Liberty, than he that once vouchſafed with a favourable Hand to waft him out of the Surges of uncertain Chance? And a little further, we obſerve, that from the ſixteenth Year of his Age till this Day, his Cuſtom had been, in the Courſe of his Reading to ſtore up all ſuch Reaſons and Examples as occurr'd in Philoſophy, the Civil Laws, Divinity, or Hiſtories, to the Ruin of pretended Prophets and their Propheſies. The Readers, of whoſe Cenſure he is moſt apprehenſive, are of three Sorts: The firſt, looking not into the Subject but the Writer, with ſuch Partiality, that Battus ſhall ſooner be crowned with Laurel, if he bear their Livery, than Homer with an Ivy Garland, &c. The ſecond Sort, are the cloſe ſullen Cenſors, who injure no leſs by ſilent Scorn and malicious Innuendos, than by open Exclamations. And the laſt kind, are the falſe Prophets and their Favourites, who neither upon Spleen againſt the Writer, nor overweening of themſelves, but only with a mortal Fear leſt their Diana ſhould be robb'd of her ſilver Shrine, are like to bend their whole Endeavour againſt the Contempt of their inveterate Abuſes. This is followed with ſome curious Reflections upon the Vanity of Propheſies and Oracles; by the utmoſt Pretenſions whereof, we cannot alter the determinate Courſe which is prefixed in the Providence of God, nor prognoſticate of any future Accident. We may change our Veſſel, like Sea-ſick Paſſengers, but not our Pain; our Bed, but not our Fit; our Climate, but not our Quality: For he that ſtinted and confined us to Government upon the Ground, forbade us, as it were by Conſequence, ambulare in Mirabilibus; and he that made us ignorant of many preſent Matters for our own Behoof, would not entangle us with Gueſſes and Conjectures de futuris, for a greater Inconveniency. The Trees which are moſt backward in putting forth their Bloſſoms, proſper long; whereas Almonds are moſt commonly decay'd and ſtarv'd by the Froſt, for putting out before their Fellows. Of Time paſt, there is no Comfort; of Joy preſent, no Stay; of Chance future, no Certainty. Why then ſhould not all Sorts of feigned Prophets look into the Devil's Craft? Who deals like the Eagle with a Shell-fiſh, or a cunning Wreſtler with his Mate, in hoiſting us up to the niceſt, and moſt fickle Points, that afterwards the Fall may be more dangerous, and his Prey eaſy; which would never come to paſs, if Men would look into the Works of God with the Eyes of Humbleneſs, [333] not pry into the Secrets of his Purpoſe, with the Spectacles of Vain-Glory, &c. Then, after ſubmitting to the Judgment of his ſaid Patron, whether this Work ſhould be deſtroy'd or committed to the Preſs, and praying that he might be bleſſed with his heavenly Favour in as ample Meaſure as himſelf had taſted of his honourable Friendſhip, he concludes this Dedication; which is followed with a ſhort Epiſtle to the Reader. Wherein we perceive he has reformed to advantage his firſt propoſed Method of diſpatching all his Anſwers to the ſeveral Branches of Propheſy together in one Maſs or Lump, before the winding up of the Diſcourſe, by anſwering every Part diſtinctly under its proper Head, for good Reaſons here given. After which he had ſome Thoughts of detecting the falſe Virtues and Properties impoſed upon Herbs and Stones; but conſidering how deſpicable theſe Abuſes were held in the Days of Sozomen, and that ſuch Fantaſies come never further out of Seaſon, than when grave Matters are debated with Authority, he purſued no further this Purpoſe: So cloſes his Epiſtle with his good Wiſhes to his Reader.

The Work it ſelf is introduced with the Story of Ulyſſes loitering with Circe the Sorcereſs, in his return from Troy; and the Confeſſion of Echinis a reputed Prophet, how vain all Pretenſions are this Way. Here we have a Diviſion of Propheſies, into divers Kinds, with a Rejection of them, and a compendious Way offer'd to be ſatisfied in the Juſtice of ſuch Treatment thereof. Firſt, by pointing out the Cauſes which induce Men to embark their Hope on ſo faithleſs a Bottom as that of Propheſies. Secondly, by diſproving all theſe Kinds thereof, to make it appear what Pains have been taken to ſeduce the illiterate and unthinking Part of Mankind. Thirdly, by ſhewing how our adhering to ſuch Vanities is inconſiſtent with the Duty of a true Subject or a good Chriſtian; from which Data or Principles is to be known what kind of Prophets may be tolerated in a State. Fourthly and laſtly, by giving a full Anſwer to ſuch Arguments as have been uſed in Defence of ſuch Practices. The firſt Cauſe then, is a Deſire in Man to ſoar above the State he was put in by God. Secondly, a Diſtruſt of God; while we think he is not as willing by his Mercy, as able by his Might to help us. Thirdly, a Credulity in being apt to believe things we wiſh may come to paſs: Alſo ſhewing that many Times there needs no more to the making a Prophet than a natural and eaſy Deduction [334] of an Effect from a Cauſe; with ſeveral Inſtances hereof. Fourth and laſtly, an Impatience to know beforehand, the Revolutions of Government, &c. Here we have ſome Reflections on the Burden of Honour, the Depravity of Ambition, and Vanity of Divination; that it is unwarranted both by Divinity and Philoſophy: That if Reaſon cannot compaſs it, neither will any other Principle in Man; and in what Caſes he may be provident, but not prophetic: That Melancholy is inſufficient to qualify Men with this Faculty: And that Paſſion is the Parent thereof, as Porphiry maintain'd, is proved erroneous. Hence we paſs to

Chap. II. Of Dreams. Plato the chief Patron of them. No Certainty to be gathered from any Thing he has writ on this Head. Ariſtotle nearer the Truth; who maintains, That the Limits of our Knowledge are adequate only to the Strength or Abilities of the Soul, which in its preſent State, being always immerſed in Matter, &c. ſeems unable, upon the Reception of Images in ſleep, to judge whether they are anſwer'd by any Thing external or no. If Sleep were a Means to diſcover Things to come, then the ſounder and deeper the Sleep, the greater would be the Diſcovery; but we find contrariwiſe, that Things of Moment are revealed in ſlumbers. This Kind of Divination moreover is contingent to the Vulgar, and not to the beſt and wiſeſt ſort of Men; and Dreams are the Amuſement alſo of Infants, and even Brutes as well as human Creatures: The moſt affecting, often broken, confuſed and effaced out of the Memory. After ſome Reaſons of the Ancients for raiſing our Regard to Dreams, we have our Author's for not heeding them. As 1. That ſince they are ſo ſoon forgot, the Print they make muſt needs be ſhallow. 2. That no judicious Man will chuſe Fancy for his Guide; but Dreams are Fancies. 3. If Allegories pleaſe us, Apollo's Robe was of Purple with a Gloſs, not ſhadowy. 4. The Gods are wont to reveal their Myſteries to Men ſober and diſcreet; but we find none dream more than the Fickle and Ungodly. 5. God, who is Purity itſelf, will not make Dreams the Shadows of his ordinary Grace. 6. We may not expect him to give ſo fair a Colour for Man to depend more upon the Pride of his Nature which is frail, than upon the Rule of Providence which is certain. 7. To be exploded, as what would be Cauſes of Strife and Debate. 8. And withdraw our Mind from our Duty. 9. As they could not be diſtinguiſhed, the Certain from the Frivolous. 10. As they could not be [335] valued for Grounds of Truth without detracting from the ſacred Majeſty. 11, and laſtly, As we are not to meaſure Truth by the Line of Imagination. Moreover, if any Aim were to be taken or Guide deſign'd from Dreams, ſome Interpreters would be found ſo expert that we could not err; but they appear not: And tho' the Events ſhould anſwer ſome Expoſitions, who can ſay this is not Chance? As for admitting ſome Dreams to have been ſuggeſted by Angels, they cannot be admitted for ordinary Dreams, therefore make not for the Diviner's Trade. And ſince neither any Dreams bring one Effect to divers Perſons, nor to the ſelf-ſame at all Times, it may be taken for a ſenſeleſs Practice to juſtify the Follies of a number by the Events of ſome. And concerning God's not revealing himſelf by this Means, as well now, as he may have anciently done, here are Reaſons given to ſhew that his Will in this Point is not correſpondent with his Power. Hence we proceed to

Chap. III. Of Oracles. And here we have the ridiculous Accounts which the Heathens gave of Divinations thereby, expoſed. With Cicero's Notion, That the Mind being inſpired or blown up by certain Vapours or Exhalations, deliver'd thoſe Oracles. And Cotta's Queſtion to the Collectors of Apollo's Offering, viz. If he were a God, why did he ſhrowd himſelf in the Bowels of the Earth? That the Iſland Delphos, where ſtood the Idol of Apollo, was inſpired by Exhalations from the Ground, as maintained by Plutarch, but diſproved by our Author; who aſcribes the Propheſies from ſuch Effect, more to the Ploughmen than the Prieſts. His Compariſon of the Fable, which ſuppoſes the firſt Prophet to have been found by Chance in an old Vault in Hetruria, to the Tale in Nubrigenſis, concerning two young Children brought to Wolpet in Suffolk with an Eaſtern Wind. The Anſwer of Apollo's Proctors to the Queſtion of ſome Philoſophers, why Delphos remaining the ſame in Subſtance, Situation, and Quality as uſual, was notwithſtanding deprived of the Virtue of affording Oracles, if Exhalations were intereſted in the Cauſe: With the Shift of Demetrius upon this Objection. Alſo, the Argument of a wild Man for the Silence of this Oracle; who ſaid, Apollo was doing Penance for certain Familiarities with Daphne, &c. So could not attend as uſual, to the giving out Oracles. Cicero confeſſes this Silence; but evades the Debate of the Cauſe. And the Opinions of others [336] are produced; but the coming of Chriſt is concluded to be the real Occaſion of ſuch Silence.

Chap. IV. Of Aſtrology. Its Definition. That the Houſes, Faces, Images, Aſpects, &c. which it aſcribes to Planets, are neither apparent to Senſe, nor revealed in Philoſophy: That it is impoſſible for one or all the Planets to ſuppreſs the Properties of Nature; as that a Child which is born under a frowning Planet ſhould never laugh. A cold Property in Planets vainly aſſerted. The Peripatetic Principle, that no Planet, the Moon excepted, changes Property, but by regard of Place. The Opinion of others, that all Planets are favourable in their Kind, but forced to degenerate by Malice in the Bodies on which they work. That they work according to the Matter which they find, without giving a ſecond Nature, or correcting the firſt. The Reaſon why St. Auguſtine renounced this Study of the Stars, with the ridiculous Subdiviſion of the Zodiac by the Pretenders to this Art. The Conceits about the Aſpects of the Planets, ſufficiently ſhaken by this Rule in Philoſophy: That the Diſpoſition of divers Cauſes tending to one certain End, cannot forego their Virtue by meer Diſtance, and nothing elſe. Things ſublunary only ſubject to Paſſions and Affections; and, therefore, not the ſupream Bodies or their Beams, as Aſtrologers imagine. Upon what the Conſideration of Aſpects depends. The Notion of Aſpects taken up, in the Author's Opinion, from the ſundry Shapes and Figures of the Moon. Next is the Divination from certain Parts of a Planet confuted, by the Authority of its Inventors. That the Chaldees admitted but eleven Signs: the Forms of which accounted for by our Author. The abſurd Reaſonings of Aſtrologers from theſe Signs; as alſo their Inability to account for ſuppoſed Images in the Front or Face of every Sign; with their want of Reaſon or Authority for culling out only a certain number of fixed Stars as influential. Ptolemy's allowing to the Planets ordinary Luck, but to the fixed Stars Happineſs, inconceivable. Bonatus his Shift againſt the Objection drawn from the Uſe of only a certain number of Stars, followed by the Reaſon why Philoſophers defined Chance and Fortune to be Cauſes not in themſelves, but by Accident. The Argument, That Events, which draw their Virtue rather from the Means which happen by the way, than from the firſt Intent; from Fortune than from Foreſight; ſeem to be brought to paſs by Chance altogether, in reſpect of us; objected to, by a Compariſon [337] which in no wiſe holds, viz. That we may gueſs at the Courſe of Things by poring on the Stars, as well as a Carpenter at the Goodneſs of a Frame by knowing the Timber. Wherefore all Knowledge from remoteſt Cauſes, as from the Planets, is obſcure. Plato, tho' neareſt the Truth, when he ſays, That all Planets are benevolent, is yet oppoſed by the Planetarians to keep up their Scheme. No preſcribing with certainty, where, upon one Change, ſo many others follow; as in this Art. The Diviſions of Aſtrologers in their Fundamentals. Alſo a Queſtion put to them, Whether, touching Things which are perfected in Time, we ſhould gueſs according to the Minute wherein the Work is firſt conceived in our Thought, or when it is begun, or when it is perfected; or when only part and not the whole is finiſhed. Some Opinions herein; with the Application of the Queſtion: As that, ſince the time of Conception is uncertain, we muſt take our Aim by that of the Birth, as the only Mark we have to guide us. Haly's Attempt to prove the time of Conception and Birth to be the ſame; with the divers Accidents concurring before we can take the certain Minute of any Birth. The abſurd Reply of ſome hereto. Commonwealths alſo, as preſumed to have their Fates, the Object of theſe Pretenders. They are queſtion'd again, whether they believe that Influence they talk of, univerſal; from all the Heavens, or from the Planets only? Shewing that it pinches them which way ſoever they take it. And after obſerving, that the Angels know nothing but as God has revealed it to them, concludes, we muſt be Fools in thinking that any Thing can be diſcerned in an Ephemeris, which is but the Device of Man. Here we enter upon the Arguments to be drawn from Experience upon this Subject; and after its Definition we have the Reaſons why it will make nothing in favour for aſtrological Divinations. That from the Flights of Birds and Bowels of Beaſts Gueſſes and Inferences were ſometimes anſwered by Events, but not from the Influence of thoſe Things which were ſuppoſed to be the Cauſes. Thus tho' a War ſhould follow an Eclipſe, we may find a more real and rational Cauſe. Next we have an Examination of the dreaded Events of Comets. How divided the Opinions of the Ancients about them. The Objection drawn from Experience, of Comets that have brought forth one Effect, anſwered. That nothing can be predicted from them, becauſe of their Inconſtancy in time and place of Appearance, Motion, Figure, Continuance, [338] Qualities, &c. The Arguments for their denoting the Deaths of Princes diſproved in every Branch. That they have died oftner after the glaring of a Rainbow. That many great Princes here named, had not their Deaths foretold by any Comets. Obſervations on the Plenty and Proſperity that rather follow'd them; and Health, exemplify'd in Queen Elizabeth, who never was in better State of Body than during the twenty five Years of her Reign, in which many Comets appear'd. And here our Author affirms, as an Eye-Witneſs, ‘"That when divers ſcrupulouſly diſſuaded her Majeſty at Richmond from looking at the Comet which appeared laſt (in 1572) with a Courage anſwerable to the greatneſs of her State, ſhe cauſed the Window to be ſet open, and caſt out theſe Words, Jacta eſt alea; The Dice are thrown: Affirming that her ſtedfaſt Hope and Confidence was too firmly planted in the Providence of God, to be blaſted or affrighted with thoſe Beams, which either had a Ground in Nature whereon to riſe, or at leaſt no Warrant in Scripture to portend the Miſhaps of Princes. Behold a Woman, and a Queen, which ſeem to be the Kinds and Callings, upon which the Comets, if Aſtrologers ſpeak Truth, are wont to prey; and yet ſhe not only relenteth not to common Fear, but inſulteth rather upon common Folly! Then we have a fine Compliment paid to her Majeſty for her numerous Virtues, which might make her an Exception to the common Rule; becauſe Wiſdom governs the Stars."’ Next we have the Fancies of thoſe who aſcribe the Cauſe of Earthquakes to Planets, condemned; with an Anſwer to the Demand why we may not as lawfully ſeek out the Properties of Stars as of Stones, Metals, &c. Shewing, that to ſearch for that in the Sky which may be found nearer hand, is repugnant to Philoſophy. And becauſe ſome countenance their Pretenſions by Aſtronomy, 'tis here diſtinguiſh'd what Parts of Nature this Science conſiders, and in what Manner the Rules or Propoſitions of any Art ſhould be lawful, true and agreeable to Nature, which cannot be found in Aſtrology. Arguments taken from Phyſick, Phyſiognomy, and Navigation to prove it an Art of no avail. Againſt the Aſſertion that it is impoſſible to gather any certain Knowledge of Things which are brought forth by the Concourſe of divers diſunited Accidents; 'tis affirm'd by the other ſide, Poverty, Sickneſs, Death, &c. ſhould rather bear the Name of Adherents than of Accidents, foraſmuch as they claeve to [339] the Subject, having a certain Foundation or Ground at the Bottom of our Natures; and the falſity of this Affirmation expoſed. Did Planets convey ſuch Qualities and Influences as are pretended? then muſt they work the like Effects on Beaſts. No Credit to the Art, that Ariſtotle affirms, theſe lower Parts or Earth do confine upon the higher; nor that Perſons inhabiting under the Meridian are exceeding timorous, effeminate, &c. Nor laſtly, what Melanchton affirms, That Children which are born in the eighth Month never live. The Doctrine of Inundations, Plagues, &c. proceeding from the Contagion of the Air; the Air receiving this Contagion from the Planets, and the Planets being the Cauſes of our Miſery, conſider'd and anſwer'd, by a parallel Caſe of the Heart in Man. Haly's Inſtance alſo of Floods, and parching Heats from Planets, being ſome cold, others hot, excepted to. With the Author's Advice to well-diſpoſed Wits, to direct their Enquiries only to Things that may be known.

Chap. V. Of Conference with Familiars or damned Spirits. Herein is ſet down, the belief of ſome, That there neither is certain Hell, nor ſhall be Spirits till the latter Day: However, the Exiſtence of Spirits argu'd for. To diſpute about the Manner or Mean, where the Meſſenger is wicked, or the Meſſage falſe, wou'd be needleſs. The Means whereby Spirits may be thought to gueſs at Things future, propoſed in ſeveral Inſtances. That the Illuſions of Sedechias the deceitful Jew, preſented before Lewis the Emperor; and of others, ought not to ſeem ſtrange, ſince the Works of God are far more deep: And ſince Scotto the Italian Jugger could play ſuch Slights before Queen Elizabeth, that thoſe who undertook to diſcry them were no leſs beguiled than the reſt, who preſumed leſs upon their own Penetration, 'tis thought we may deem Familiars to be more fine and nimble. Further, of theſe incorporeal Meſſengers, as the Demon of Socrates, the Spirit that daily called upon Alaricus, and that named Orthon, which brought Intelligence from all Corners of the World to Gaſton Earl of Foix, as Froiſſart has at large (and perhaps too largely) related. Some Arguments in defence of Familiars, and wicked Spirits, conſider'd, and refuted: But the Abettors of this Art being at a Nonplus for want of Reaſons to defend the ſame, appeal to the pretended Apparition of Samuel; and tell us that as the Sorcereſs called him up, ſo ſurely may the Conjurers of theſe Times invoke the Souls of godly Men. But [340] our Author denies that it was the real Samuel. If it be urged, Why are Conjurers ſometimes ſo deſirous of a dead Hand, as Athanaſius was accuſed to have cut off that of Arſenius to abuſe with magical Practices; or that a Hair, a Pin, &c. is deſired by wicked Spirits and Witches, of the Parties they would have Power over? 'Tis anſwer'd, the Gift is naked and impotent, unleſs veſted with Conſent: The Hand no more able to ſway the Soul, than the Forecaſtle of a Ship to guide the Stern; that the Belief is rather craved than the Benevolence; the Heart than the Hand; the Truſt than the Token. That the Souls of Men indeed ſleep not after death, but Bodies do; and ſhall not be awaked before the Knell which rings all in to Condemnation or Paradiſe: Wherefore he concludes, That neither Souls nor Bodies can appear to Conjurers but by a Figure or Shadow of Illuſion, ſo far as it may take a ſeeming Colour by the Practice of our Enemy; and ſhews how unlikely it is in the Caſe of Samuel, That either God ſhould ſuffer a Prophet of his own chuſing to turn Deceiver, as Samuel certainly had been, had he deliver'd himſelf to Saul in ſuch Terms as the Spirit did, or that the Devil by his niceſt Art could reſtore a Body to its former Shape, which was long before this diſſolved to Duſt and Aſhes.

Chap. VI. Of the Cabaliſtick Art. Its Antiquity, Meaning, and why ſo called. The two Species thereof defined. From theſe Definitions hardly conceivable, how this Art can afford either Help or Credit to the Prophet. Here we have an Account of the Conference held by our noble Author, ſix Years before, with one Brocado a Jew, then in the Court, who was a Pretender to this whimſical Art of expounding the Scriptures; and from thence took upon him to divine what Fortune ſhould betide the Low Countries, as he ſaid he had foretold what ſhould befall Paris, at leaſt five Years before the Maſſacre fell out. But our Author, among other Arguments, told him, ‘"That Examples which fell out by Chance, were never current where the Cauſe was to be juſtified by Reaſon: And therefore, till he could as readily product a certain Ground to make his Gueſſes good, as ſcore up a Regiſter of blind Events, I muſt (ſays he) rather praiſe his Luck than his Learning; for as well might he prognoſticate that the Cock-pit in Shoe-lane ſhould ſink on the third of June, becauſe a Theatre fell down about that time at Rome in the Reign of Claudius; as that either Antwerp or Paris [341] ſhould be plagued by the Pattern of Edom or Samaria. We may be generally taught by the Precedents of God's righteous Judgments upon former States, that whoſoever ſins or tranſgreſſes againſt either Table of the Moral Law, ſhould either be corrected by his Juſtice, or forborne by his Mercy; but by whether of theſe Means God purpoſeth to cure the Carbuncle of Man's Iniquity is concealed from our Knowledge, and therefore were it vain to gueſs what his Pleaſure is to execute. The ſafeſt Courſe is to ſuſpect the worſt, becauſe Extremities are due; but yet we cannot determine and reſolve of neither."’

Chap. VII. Of the Scripture Authorities for Prognoſtication. Shewing how, in ſeveral Inſtances, it is there prohibited. The falſity of the Aſſertion made by the Pretenders to theſe Arts, That they never make Enquiries into any thing unlawful. The High German's Proof of the Certainty of Star-Divinity, in the Warning given to Frier Savanorola, by Bellantius the Aſtrologer, expoſed; evidencing how vain and ineffectual ſuch Warnings are; ſince what is decreed by Deſtiny, cannot be prevented by Intelligence. Then the Enquiry is made, Whether the Warning that this Frier ſhould be put out of the way for Hereſy were true or not? If he affirm it to be true, then muſt he grant that Doctrine to be Hereſy which himſelf and his Country maintain againſt Rome: That the Pope's Pardons are of no Effect. That he abuſes his Authority, &c. For theſe were the Matters in defence whereof Savanorola died: If he deny theſe Articles to deſerve the Name or Note of Hereſy, which either he muſt do or confeſs himſelf a Heretick; then it is evident that Bellantius was very much beguiled in believing or advertiſing that Savanorola ſhould be ſwept away for ungodly Doctrine. The Caſe is paſſing hard, which drives a Man either to renounce his Faith, or to forſake his Fancy. Were there a Regiſter among the Stars, we needed not to ſeek the Scripture for our Order, but the Planets for our Fortune. In the Moderns, to ſay, they regard the Stars, as Means only, by which God brings his Decrees to paſs, and ſo ought not to be ſet upon a Level with the Ancients, who look'd upon them as Gods; will not ſerve, and wherefore. Obſervations on the two next Centuries after Chriſt being rifeſt with Miracles, as the Air is warmeſt at the ſetting of the Sun, and the People apter to believe the Gifts and Doctrine of Miracles, the freſher their Sufferings [342] were who propagated them. The Antiquity of Aſtrology examined, with its Derivation. The Singularity of Porphiry; who alone of all the Philoſophers gave into it. And the vain Aſſertion of Melanchton, That Moſes, Eſſay, &c. impugn not all kind of Divination, but rather the Pride of Man, in preſuming to underſtand thoſe Secrets which are reſerved to God alone, as the Laſt-Day, &c. The Objections drawn from Scripture, as Moſes being learned in the Myſteries of Egypt; and from theſe Words, Mine Hour is not yet come, &c. and from the Star which conducted the wiſe Men at the Birth of Chriſt; conſider'd, and anſwer'd. Cardan's Error in aſſigning the Hour of that Birth; with the fooliſh reaſoning of him, and others, from the Face of the Heavens at that time. The Knowledge of Seth, Abraham, &c. urged in vain, ſince their Remarks of the heavenly Orbs tended to the Knowledge of their Courſes, Eclipſes, &c. for the Diſtinction of Times and Seaſons, ſo needful in the Obſervance of their religious Feaſts and Ceremonies: Wherefore ſome have gather'd from certain Expreſſions in Scripture, That the Tribe of Iſſachar was bound by Order, to the Study of the Stars; as divers Colleges in Cambridge are enjoin'd by the Statutes of the Founders, to give Allowance to certain Perſons for this End.

The Remainder of the Volume is a Collection of Arguments, Authorities, and Hiſtories further detecting the Deluſions of theſe pretended Prophets, and their Ambition in all times, of ſupplanting what is certain in God's Providence by what is probable in Man's Conjecture. Their Subtilty herein further laid open. Their little Arts, Shifts, and Equivocations to gain themſelves Profit and Honour, where they happen to be lucky in their Predictions; and ſhelter or ſubterfuge, where they anſwer not what they had raiſed the Apprehenſions of Mankind to expect; with abundance of Examples to prove how juſtly ſuch preſumptuous Impoſtures deſerve the Deteſtation of all ſober and ingenuous Men; as conducing to the Miſcarriage of ſo many Undertakings, which have depended on their Authority. Alſo pointing out the various Means of diſcerning ſuch Counterfeits; which by how much more ſucceſsfully they have deluded the Generality in all Ages paſt, ſhould ſo much more effectually arm the Future with Precaution. Among theſe Examples in this concluding Part, we cannot be here further particular than to mention thoſe of Manfredus the Aſtrologer, who promiſed an Italian Prince many Years Life, [343] and that he himſelf ſhould live to diſcover many Wonders by his Art, but died in the approaching Spring before he could declare them. The Experiment of the Earl of Arundel, who would note in his Almanacks, the Changes of the Weather, every where contrary to what had been aſſerted by the Writers of them; and found his own Predictions oftner true than theirs. The Perſages of Dearth in 1558 confuted, by its proving a plentiful Year. The Diſappointment of the Abbot who built him a Houſe on Harrow-Hill, to ſecure him from the threatned Deluge, when it proved a Year of great Drought. The Deluſions, by Figures and Images, in the old painted Manuſcripts, and in the Herald's Books, and thoſe pretended to be preſerved in religious Houſes; as Merlin's Prophecies, which were chain'd to the Desks in many Libraries. The Uſe made of Women in theſe prophetick Cozenages: Thus Montanus wrought by Maximilla, the French by their Pucelle de Dieu, and our Engliſh Anabaptiſts by their Holy Maid of Kent. The vain Preſumption of Verdungus a Prophet in the Reign of King Henry VIII. Inſtances of the Ruin of ſeveral Princes by adhering to the Advice of Magicians, Aſtrologers, and Prophets. Other late Inſtances of ſome learned Engliſh Men deluded thereby: How Bellantius, who predicted Savanorola's Execution, could not foreſee his own. When Cardinal Wolſey ſuperſtitiouſly avoided Kingſton upon Thames, tho' his ready Way from Aſher to the Court, for a quibbling Prophecy, that Kingſton ſhould be his End: Was it not a lying Prophecy? For even Sir Anthony Kingſton, to whoſe Cuſtody the Cardinal was committed, proved not his End, nor brought him to the Tower, as he was charged; for he died of his Illneſs at Leiceſter. And the Rood of Darvill Gathren, how did it burn a Forreſt, according to the Welſh Prophecy that it ſhould? When in ſcorn to ſuperſtition, the Lord Cromwell burnt a Fryer with that Image. But we might quote half the Book to mention the Examples of this kind, wherewith it is all over ſo elaborately embelliſh'd; which would have been much eaſier commanded, had it been furniſhed with a Table or Index, whereof the ſecond Edition in Fol. 1620. is alſo deficient; but we hope it will be ſupply'd therewith, if ever this Work arrives at a Third.

LI. ANCIENT FUNERALL MONUMENTS within the united Monarchie of GREAT BRITAIN, IRELAND, and the ISLANDS adjacent, with the diſſolved MONASTERIES therein contained: Their FOUNDERS, and what eminent PERSONS have been in the ſame interr'd. Alſo the Death and Burial of certain of the ROYAL BLOOD, the NOBILITY and GENTRY of theſe Kingdoms entombed in foreign Nations, &c. Illuſtrated with variety of hiſtorical Obſervations, &c. from approved Authors, Records, Leiger Books, Charters, Rolls, old MSS. and the Collections of judicious Antiquaries. Whereunto is prefix'd a Diſcourſe of FUNERAL MONUMENTS, &c. by JOHN WEEVER. Fol. 1631. Pages 770. beſides Preface, Index, &c.

[344]

THIS Collection of Antiquities is adorn'd with a neat Frontiſpiece, repreſenting the Figures of Death and the Reſurrection: Alſo with another Sculpture of the Author, in a laced Cap, with his Hand on a Skull; round the ſame there is an Inſcription in Latin, ſhewing that he was fifty five Years of Age at this time that the ſaid Work was publiſh'd; and at the bottom, four Engliſh Verſes, informing us he was born in Lancaſhire, and educated in the Univerſity of Cambridge: Both which Prints were engraved by Thomas Cecil.

The Work is inſcribed by the Author to King Charles; and in his Preface or Epiſtle to the Reader we find he had not only obſerved what Honour Foreign Nations had received by thus putting into print their monumental Antiquities, but that he had with painful Expences travell'd over moſt Parts of England, and ſome Part of Scotland to collect the Funeral Inſcriptions of all the Cathedral and Parochial Churches: But being much diſcouraged to proceed by the many malignant and avaricious Defacements he beheld of thoſe venerable Remains, and the many Obſtructions and Troubles he met with from petulent Officers and Churchwardens for want of a Commiſſion, he had Thoughts of burying all in ſilence, till he was animated afreſh, to publiſh [345] what he had thus gather'd, by Auguſtus Vincent Eſq Windſor Herald and Keeper of the Records in the Tower; Sir Robert Cotton, newly dead, on whom we have here a Latin Elegy ſet forth; Sir H. Spelman, Sir Simon D'Ewes, John Selden Eſq beſides Sir Richard and Sir Henry St. George, John Philpot and W. Le Neve Eſqrs. From all whom he had Aſſiſtance, which encouraged him thus to finiſh this firſt Part; and to compleat the reſt of the Work, now in good forwardneſs, he intreats the Communications of the Publick*. The remainder of this Epiſtle contains Advice to the Tomb-makers; that they would be careful to preſerve the Inſcriptions which they engrave; with ſome Apologies for extolling the ardent Piety of our Forefathers in theſe their Eccleſiaſtical Liberalities; and for the Method he has purſued; his Punctuality in following the ancient Orthography; and the Poſſibility of ſome Errors which may have eſcaped, thro' his having had the Helps and Collections of many; and others, thro' the common Fate of the Preſs; whereof the greateſt he had met with he has amended. So concludes with a Diſtich from Chytraeus, warning us, from the Funerals of ſo many others in one Book, to conſider the Certainty of our own.

Then follows The Diſcourſe of Funeral Monuments, which compriſes 196 Pages, and is divided into eighteen Chapters. The Firſt, treats of Monuments in general: From the ancient Poets, and ſome of the Moderns, as Du Bellay, Spenſer and Drayton. 2. Of Funeral Monuments, Graves, Tombs, or Sepulchres: Of the ancient Cuſtom of Burials. [346] Epitaphs and other Funeral Honours from ſeveral ancient Authors. 3. Of Sepulchres anſwerable to the Degree of Perſons deceaſed; the various Manner of bearing them to the Grave, and when both Sexes began to be borne alike. 4. Of the exceſſive Expences beſtowed at Funerals in former Times. 5. Why ſo many have made their own Monuments in their Life-time. The Care generally taken for decent Burial. That the Burial of the Dead is acceptable to God; with an Hymn to that purpoſe by Prudentius, tranſlated by Sir John Beaumont. 6. Of the ancient Care and Coſt in preſerving the Bodies of the Dead; with ſtrange Cuſtoms and Faſhions of Burial. 7. Of Cenotaphs, honorary and religious, with the Reverence attributed to theſe empty Monuments. 8. The Sanctity aſcribed to ancient Monuments; and the Deſires of Men to viſit the Sepulchres of worthy Perſons. 9. Of the Puniſhments, Human and Divine, inflicted on the Spoilers of Monuments, and Robbers of Churches. 10. Of the Deſtruction of Monuments under King Henry VIII. and Edward VI. with Queen Elizabeth's Care for the Preſervation of them. Her Proclamation, in the Second of her Reign, againſt defacing them. Here we have Remarks upon ſome Schiſmaticks of thoſe times, as Hacket, Coppinger, Arthington and Penry. 11. Of the Converſion of our Nation from Paganiſm; including the Foundation of Religious Houſes, and the Piety of the Primitive Times, from ancient Authorities, eſpecially of the old Poets, Robert of Glouceſter, Chaucer, Harding, &c. 12. Of their falling from the ſaid Piety; ſhewing the Degeneracy of the Clergy, their ſpiritual Monopolies, Adulteries, &c. in Proſe, from ancient Hiſtories and Records; and in Poetry from Petrarch, Gower's Vox Clamantis, Chaucer, and the Leiger-Book of Rufford Abbey. 13. The Extinction of the Pope's Authority in England; with three Letters of King Henry the VIII. for abrogating the ſame. 14. The Policy uſed by the ſaid King and his Council in expelling the Pope's Authority; beginning with a Letter from the Duke of Norfolk and Viſcount Rochford to Cromwell for the Invitation of P. Melanchton over. A Proof of the Supremacy of Kings, from the Chartulary of King Offa, for the Foundation of St. Albans. A Letter of Biſhop Shaxton to Cromwell, perſuading him to perſevere in ſhaking off the Pope's Authority, with a Character of the King's Council. 15. Their Policy for the extirpation of Religious Houſes and Orders. Of the Reformation of Religion: Of Inſcriptions [347] in Churches. The King's Warrant for the Surrender of religious Houſes. An Information to Queen Elizabeth of the Abuſes of the Power given by her Father for the Suppreſſion of Abbeys. And here we have ſome Inſtruments of Surrendry, as of the Prior of St. Andrew's in Northampton, St. Francis in Stamford from the Records in the Office of Augmentation. Some ancient Inſcriptions, which were defaced, with the Pictures of the Trinity, Chriſt, Holy Lamb, &c. Alſo ſome Indulgences and Pardons on the Walls of Churches, which were defaced; and Inſcriptions on the Bells. 16. The Time of the Inſtitution of Religious Orders in the Church; their ſeveral Names and Authors, with the infinite encreaſe of their Fraternities and Siſterhoods; with their Corruptions, ſet forth by Chaucer, and in the Viſion of Piers Plowman, the Author of which he calls Robert Longland, ſive Johannes Malverne. Among other Orders, here is an Account of the Carmelites, from John Bale's large Treatiſe of that Order, a MS. in the Hands of Robert Treſwell Eſq and a Tranſlation, from his Engliſh Votaries of Nigellus Wircker in Speculo Stultorum, of ſome Verſes upon the Friers and Nuns. After his Summary of theſe Orders, which were at the Diſſolution, he ſpeaks of the Anchorites and Hermits, which were alſo diſperſed about. And of an old Pſalter, tranſlated by Richard the Hermit, extant in the Earl of Exeter's Library, with Specimens of the Old-Engliſh Language; as alſo from another Pſalter, quoted by Selden, engliſhed about the time of Edward II. &c. 17. Of the various Ways by which the Clergy enriched themſelves: Of Pardons, Pilgrimages and Romeſcot. The Articles of the Bull of the Holy Jubilee, copied from a Roll belonging to Sir Simon D'Ewes. The Tax upon thoſe who would receive the Grace thereof. Articles of the Bull of Diſpenſation with Simony, Uſury, &c. Piers Plowman quoted upon the Popes, Cardinals, Pardons, and Pilgrimages. 18. Of Pariſhes, Biſhopricks; the Power and Sanctity of Biſhops and Prieſts; of Sanctuaries; and the Eccleſiaſtical State of England and Wales. Concluding with a Table of all Eccleſiaſtical Promotions at the Taxation of the Firſt-Fruits and Tenths; with the yearly value of each Biſhoprick, Deanery, and Archdeaconry, and the Tenth of the Clergy in every Dioceſſe: At the end of which it appears, the number of Benefices were 8803. And here ends theſe preliminary Diſcourſes, conſiſting of 196 Pages.

[348]In the next Page begins his Collection, with the Funeral Monuments in the Dioceſſe of CANTERBURY. And here, having ſpoken of the Foundation of Chriſt Church, he enters within the ſaid Cathedral, to ſpeak alſo of the eminent Perſons buried there; and begins with Archbiſhop Becket, who was ſlain in this Church by four of the King's Guard on the 28th of Dec. 1170. and of whoſe Life, Death, Sepulture, Shrine, &c. we have here a Narrative in ſix Pages. Hence we paſs to the ſumptuous Monument of Edward the Black Prince, who died 8 June 1376, in the 46th Year of his Age; with his Epitaph in French, and a Tranſlation of it into Engliſh: Alſo a ſhort Character of him from Samuel Daniel, in Engliſh, and from the compendious Chronicle of Canterbury, written by T. Haſelwood a Canon of Leeds, in Latin. This is follow'd with ſome Characters of King Henry IV. alſo buried here; in Poetry, from the Additions to Robert of Glouceſter, from John Harding, and (in Latin) from John Gower's Tripartite Chronicle, a MS. alſo from his Engliſh Ballad to this King; and in Proſe, from Caxton's Continuation of Polychronicon, and Fabian. Alſo a Copy of the ſaid King's Will: With his laſt Words at his Death, as recorded by John Harding. Here are alſo Accounts of his two Wives buried here. And other like Memorials of Margaret Dutcheſs of Clarence, and her Huſbands John Earl of Somerſet, and Thomas Duke of Clarence; with a Character of this laſt from Harding's Chronicle. A little further we have ſhort Hiſtories of the Archbiſhops of this See, buried here; the firſt of whom was Cuthbert, who died 758. The next here mention'd is Odo Severus. Next we have Accounts of Laufranc, who died 1089; and A [...]ſelme, who died 1109. The next are Theobald, Richard, H [...]bert, and Stephen Langton, who died 1228; of which laſt here is a Character out of Harding. Next, of John Peckham, who died 1294; and W. Reynolds. Simon Mepham, John Stratford, John Ufford, and Simon Iſlip, who died 1366. W. Wittleſey, and Simon Sudbury, murdered by the Kentiſh Rebels 1381. Tho. Arundel 1413, whoſe Praiſe is here recorded in Latin Verſe, out of John Gower's Tripartite Chronicle. The next is H. Chichley, who died 1443, whoſe Inſcription we have here. Alſo of John Stafford and John Kemp, who died 1453. Theſe are followed by the like Accounts of T. Bourchier, John Morton, H. Deane, and W. Warham; with a brief Deſcription of the Ceremonies of his Inthronement, the ſumptuous Feaſt upon [349] that Occaſion, and the Verſes celebrating the ſame, taken from the Record thereof more at large, which we find to have been printed many Years before: This Archbiſhop died 1532; and our Author finds no other Archbiſhops buried here, but Cardinal Pole, whom he reſerves for another Book. Next we have ſome Accounts of Sir William Molyneux, Sir John Guilford, Sir Thomas Fogge, &c. Alſo the Epitaphs of ſeveral Priors and other Eccleſiaſtics here buried. Then we proceed to the like Memorials of others interr'd in the other Churches in Canterbury; and likewiſe of the Foundations of the religious Houſes there. Here we have King Ethelbert's Charter, for the Foundation of the Monaſtery of St. Peter and St. Paul, commonly call'd St. Auſtins: With further Memoirs of him, and his Wife, Queen Berta; and of other Kings of Kent. An Account of St. Auguſtine the firſt Archbiſhop of this See, from John Harding, and others: Alſo of ſeveral ſucceeding Archbiſhops, and of ſundry Abbots buried in this Monaſtery, which were at leaſt 70. The Abbots of this Houſe were ever Barons in Parliament: And the yearly Revenues of it in the Exchequer above 1412 l. In Hakington, or St. Stephen's Church by Canterbury, we have a ſhort Epitaph of John Gower Vicar of that Church, who died 1457. And ſome Notice of Sir Roger Manwood's Alms-houſes. The Legend of the Foundation of Minſter Abbey in the Iſle of Tenet, from Capgrave. In Sibbertſwood, an Account of the Philpots; eſpecially that worthy Lord Mayor of London Sir John Philpot, who with Sir W. Walworth, perform'd ſuch good Services againſt Wat. Tyler, and againſt the Spaniſh Pyrates, taking fifteen of their Ships; for which gallant Action he was moſt ungratefully accuſed by the ſloathful Nobility. Chiſelherſt is remarked, only for being the Burial-Place of the Waſinghams. In Dover Church, the Aſhtons. At Folkſton, ſome Reflections on the Policy of the ancient Clergy, in making of Saints. In Lidde, ſome Account of St. Criſpin and Criſpinian. In Bilſington, an Account of the Manſels. In Asford, ſeveral of the Fogges; [350] and ſome goodly Pourtraitures in the Windows, of King Edward III. Edward the Black Prince, Richard Duke of Glouceſter, Richard Earl Rivers, the Lord Haſtings, Scales, &c. In Feverſham, beſides the Monuments, an Account of the Foundation of the Abbey by King Stephen; alſo ſome hiſtorical Remarks upon him and his Queen Maud, and Euſtace their Son. In Settingborn, of the Crowmers, one of whom was ſacrificed in Jack Cade's Rebellion 1450. In Shepey, the Foundation of Minſter Nunnery; with a Liſt of the Conſtables of Queenborough Caſtle. In Ulcombe, of Archbiſhop Courtney, and his College of ſecular Prieſts. In Bocton Malherb, the Family of the Wottons; and in Pluckley, that of the Derings. In Charing, of the Brents; and eſpecially that mad Warrior Fulco de Brent; and of the Church being conſumed in 1590, by the Fire it caught from a Gun, diſcharged at a Pigeon perched thereon. In Sevington, of the Barrys and the Finches. Here ends the Account of Burials and Inſcriptions in this Dioceſſe, which is followed with a Narrative of the Archbiſhops of Canterbury, who were canonized Saints; beginning with St. Auſtin, and the fabulous Legend of the Judgment upon the Natives of a Town in Dorſetſhire, who diſregarding his Doctrine were born with Fiſhes Tails, as written by Alex. Eſſeby; and thoſe of Strode in Kent, for a Contempt of Tho. Becket and his Horſe, in cutting off his Tail, born with Tails of Horſes or other Beaſts, according to the fooliſh Aſſertion of Pol. Virgil. Theſe Archbiſhops thus canonized, of whom we have here a ſhort Hiſtory or Character, are thirteen in number, ending with St. Edmund, who died 1242. And this Part concludes at Page 307, with ſome Obſervations upon the Enlargement of the Archbiſhoprick, and the Contentions between Canterbury and York for the Primacy. Hence we paſs to

Ancient Funeral Monuments within the Dioceſſe of ROCHESTER. ‘"This Biſhoprick, ſays our Author, is ſo overſhadowed by the nearneſs and greatneſs of the See of Canterbury, that it looks but like a good Benefice for one of his Grace's Chaplains; yet for Antiquity and Dignity of a long Succeſſion of Reverend Lord Biſhops, it may equally compare with its Neighbour of Canterbury."’ For they had both one Founder, Ethelbert King of Kent; who built this Church to the Honour of St. Andrew, and endowed it; whereof Juſtus a Roman was conſecrated Biſhop by St. Auguſtine. Here follows a ſhort Deſcription [351] of the City; the Limits of the Dioceſſe, and the four Deaneries it conſiſts of: The Valuation in the Exchequer; Firſt-fruits, and Peter-Pence: That eighty one Biſhops (more by nine than in Canterbury) have ſate in the Chair of Rocheſter; and the preſent Biſhop is Dr. John Bowles; but more particularly of the three firſt Succeſſors of Juſtus, named Paulinus, Gundulphus, and Gilbertus, who were buried here, tho' no Monuments remain of them. Then we come to Walter de Merton Biſhop of this See, who founded Merton College in Oxford; whoſe Monument here was renewed by Sir Henry Savile Warden of that College; and by the Inſcription thereon, it appears the ſaid Biſhop died 1277. After three Biſhops more, here mention'd, our Author obſerves, That he finds no more of this Dioceſſe to have been buried in this Cathedral Church; becauſe commonly they were removed to another See, before they were tranſlated to another Life, this Preferment being only a Step to a higher: Therefore after a Word or two of St. William the Baker and Martyr, here inſhrined from Capgrave; and the like of the Priory, our Author proceeds to other Churches, the reſt of the Funeral Monuments in this, being of later Times; which he reſerves for another Volume. At Ailesford, we have an Account of the Interment of Catigern the Brother of King Vortimer, and Horſa the Saxon, who kill'd each other in a pitch'd Battle. In Otteham, the Foundation of the Abbey there; and alſo of Begham Priory; with ſome Account of the Sackviles, and alſo of Sir Robert Turnham, from Robert of Glouceſter. In Penſherſt, the Monument of Sir Stephen Penſherſt; with the Copy of a Record from the Tower concerning him, dated the firſt of King Edward I. Here alſo is mention made of the renowned Family of the Sidneys, buried in this Place, more particularly Sir Robert, and his elder Brother Sir Philip Sidney, who was ſhot before Zutphen in Gelderland the 22d of September, died at Arnheim the 16th of October 1586, and was buried moſt magnificently at St. Paul's Cathedral, London, the 16th of February following: And here we have his Epitaph, imitated from that compoſed by Iſaac du Bellay in memory of the Sieur de Bonivet, and ſome Elegies made upon him both in Latin and Engliſh by King James. In Tunbridge, we have ſome Account of the Lord Staffords; the Clares and Audleys Earls of Glouceſter, and Andrew Jud Founder of the Free-School here. In Sevenoke, an Account of the poor Foundling there named [352] William Sevenoke, who, in 1418, was Lord Mayor of London, and then built a Hoſpital and a Free-School in the ſaid Town where he was found. In Chidingſton, of the Willoughbys. In Cobham and in Shorne, the ancient Family of the Cobhams; the Braybrokes and Brooks; who were alſo ſince Lords thereof. Swanſcombe, noted for the reſort of Madmen in Pilgrimage, for the help of St. Hildeforth. In Stone, of Sir Richard Wingfield Knight of the Garter. In Dartford, an Account of the Priory. In Leſnes, of the Lucies. In Eltham, of the Ropers. And in Lewſham, an Account of the Foundation of the Priory. In Greenwich, of the Conſecration of the Church to St. Aelphege, with the Foundation of the Friery and the Priory. In Deptford, Pope Martin's Bull to the Staple Merchants for a portable Altar, and a Maſs-Prieſt. Election of their Prieſt and Confeſſor. The Form of an Abſolution. The Definition of a Merchant. What Pedlars are; and what the Staple. In Chetham, a Narrative of a ſtrange Burial by prieſtly Deluſion in this Church-yard, as related by Lambard in his Perambulation of Kent. In Otford, an Account of ſome Battles anciently fought by Saxons and Danes there; where Alrick the laſt King of Kent was ſlain: Alſo of St. Bartilmew a good Purveyor of Poultry for the Parſon of the Town; all the Women therein who deſir'd to have Male Children, offering him a Cock-chicken, and all who coveted Females, a Hen. Likewiſe of the Worſhip paid to St. Tho. Becket in this Town; and the Miracles he wrought here; as the ſpringing a Well out of dry Ground; enjoining no Nightingale to ſing thereabout, becauſe one had diſturbed him in his Prayers; which is as true doubtleſs as that other pious Prohibition of any Smith to thrive in the Pariſh, becauſe one had prick'd his Horſe in ſhoeing. Here, from the Victories of the Kentiſh Men over the Danes in Holmes Dale, and the many brave Warriors interr'd there, our Author takes occaſion to conclude this Part with ſome general Characters of this flouriſhing County of Kent, beginning with Michael Drayton's Encomium, and Mr. Selden's Notes upon the Place; concerning their throwing off the Norman Yoke; with John of Salisbury's Teſtimony, That Kentiſh Men had to his Time the Prerogative of the Vantguard in the Wars. More particularly of the Gentry and Yeomanry of Kent; which with ſeveral Inſtances of their Privileges and Prerogatives; together with the Courage and Happineſs of the Church in upholding [353] her Rights againſt the Monks, and even Archbiſhops, and maintaining her Chair immoveably in this one Place, brings us, at Page 349, to an End of the Obſervations upon this little See of Rocheſter. The next is

Ancient Funeral Monuments within the Dioceſſe of LONDON. Theſe are introduced with ſeveral Commendations of this famous Metropolis in Verſe and Proſe, by John Johnſton, Sir Robert Dallington, Speed, Robert of Glouceſter, Camden, Adrian Junius, W. Warner, and Robert Fabian. So we enter into St. Paul's Cathedral, founded by King Ethelbert; and here we have his Charter, with the Donations and Confirmations of his Royal Succeſſors, and other Benefactors. The preſent Government, Extent, and Value of the Biſhoprick. Whence we proceed to the Monuments; beginning with King Sebba's, ſo paſs to other Saxon Princes, and ſeveral Biſhops of London, who were here interr'd, particularly, that William,a Norman, who was Biſhop of this Dioceſſe at the Conqueſt, and who obtained of William the Conqueror, a Grant to this City, of Liberties in as ample a Manner, as it enjoy'd them under Edward the Confeſſor: Which in our modern Engliſh runs thus, ‘"William, King, greets William, Biſhop, and Godfrey, Portgrave, and all the Borough of London, French, and Engliſh, friendly. And I make known to you, that ye be worthy to enjoy all That Law and Privilege which ye did in the Days of King Edward: And I will That every Child be his Father's Heir after his Father's Deceaſe: And I will not ſuffer that any Man do unto you any Injury. God you keep."’ But becauſe the Words of this Grant (which was ſealed with green Wax) were written in the Engliſh ſpoken at the Conqueſt, that is, the Saxon Tongue; we have here gratified the Curious with a Tranſcript of it at the bottom of the Page*. We have here alſo ſome Inſcriptions and Memoirs of certain noble Perſonages, who were there buried; as John of Gaunt, and his Wives, Henry Lacy Earl of Lincoln, Sir Simon Burley Knight of the Garter, Sir Ralph Hengham Chief Juſtice of [354] the King's Bench. The like alſo of Dr. John Colet the Dean of this Church, William Lily the Grammarian, Dr. Tho. Linaker, W. Harington the Apoſtolic Prothonotary, Sir John Poultney the famous Lord Mayor, John Nevil Lord Latimer, Sir John Beauchamp Lord Admiral, who died 1360, whoſe Tomb by the Ignorant, has been called Duke Humphrey's, but who indeed had none here, he being buried at St. Albans; however, upon that fond Conceit, ſome Men would, latterly, have Meetings here on St. Andrew's-Day, ſays Stow, and conclude on a Breakfaſt or Dinner, as aſſuming themſelves to be Servants, or to hold diverſity of Offices under the ſaid Duke Humphrey. Here we have alſo Margaret the ſecond Wife of John Talbot, the renowned Earl of Shrewsbury; who died in June 1468. And becauſe in our Annals, Brute is reported to have been buried in this City, of his own Foundation, we have here his Story recorded, as it is generally received. Then follows an Account of ſome Jews in this City, who crucified Engliſh Children in deriſion of our Saviour and his Sufferings on the Croſs. An Account of the Cloyſter of Pardon Church-yard, on the north Side of the Cathedral, where the fineſt Monuments were erected, and round the Walls of which was artfully painted the celebrated Dance of Paul's, or Death's Dance, being the Picture of Death, leading forth all Degrees of Men. With an Account of the demoliſhing the Chappel in that Yard, founded by Tho. Becket's Father, and other adjacent Chappels and Monuments in St. Pauls, by Edward Duke of Somerſet. Some further mention of Sir John Poultney and his Benefactions. And of ſeveral Shrines in honour of Holy Perſons buried here. Alſo the Dimenſions of the Cathedral or Edifice itſelf, and Altitude, being 534 Foot high from the Ground, before it was fired with Lightning in 1087. With a Compariſon between this Cathedral and that of Noſtre Dame at Paris. As to the Succeſſion of Biſhops in this See of London, they were 89 in number, Biſhop Laud governing the ſame at this time. And theſe Remarks upon this Church concludes with an Account of the Cardinals thereof. So we move on to St. Faiths, St. Martins, Ludgate, Chriſt-Church, Black-Fryars, and the reſt of the Pariſhes, giving an Account of their Religious Foundations, the Interments, and ancient Inſcriptions in them; of which we cannot be further expreſſive than to obſerve, that the moſt conſiderable Perſons and Antiquities moſt copiouſly treated of are, in St. John Zacharies, [355] Tho. Thorp Baron of the Exchequer, who was beheaded by the Rebels in 1461. In St. Michael's Woodſtreet, the Head of James IV. King of Scots, who was ſlain in the Battle of Flodden-Field, 9 Sept. 1513. with other curious Remarks upon this King, from Stow, the Lieger-Book of Whalley Abbey, Biſhop Leſly, Camden, and John Jonſton's hiſtorical Inſcriptions of the Scottiſh Kings. In St. Mary Aldermanbury, upon occaſion of a Man's Shank-Bone twenty eight Inches long, hanging in the Cloyſter about this Church-yard, we have a ſhort Diſſertation upon Giants, from the Verſes of Havillan a Poet, who flouriſh'd above four hundred Years before our Author's writing hereof, as quoted by Camden in Cornwall; alſo from Robert of Glouceſter's poetical Chronicle, from Ralph the Monk of Coggeſhal, and Selden's Notes on Drayton's Polyolbion. In St. Laurence in the Jewry, we have a ſhort Account of the Family of the Bullens. In Guild-Hall Chappel, on account of an Inſcription upon the Emperor Charles V. and King Henry VIII. is ſhewn why the Title of Defender of the Faith was attributed to them: And in Mercer's Chappel, an Account of the noble Family of the Butlers. In St. Mary Aldermary, ſome Notice of the Blounts Lords Mountjoy. In St. Michael's Pater-noſter, the Foundation of Whittington College, by Richard Whittington four times Lord Mayor of London; who was three times buried in his own Church; with his Latin Epitaph; and ſome further Memorial of his Benefactions. In St. Michael's Crooked Lane, the Burial and Epitaph of Sir William Walworth Lord Mayor of London, who ſlew Wat Tyler the Rebel, and died 1383. In St. Peter's Cornhill, an Inſcription aſſerting it to be the firſt Church founded in London, by King Lucius, Anno 179. and further of the Archbiſhop's See he founded in this City, and the Succeſſion therein. In St. Bartholmew's Exchange, of Empſon and Dudley. In Auguſtine Friers, the Burials of Bohun Earl of Eſſex, Richard Fitz-Alan Earl of Arundel, John Vere Earl of Oxford, William Marqueſſe Berkeley, Edward Stafford Duke of Buckingham, and Edward eldeſt Son of Edward the Black Prince. In Crouched Friers, John Bartelot's Petition to Secretary Cromwell againſt the Prior of the ſaid Croſed Friers, who was found naked in Bed with a Wench at noon-day. In St. Katherine's by the Tower, the Burial of the puiſſant John Holland Duke of Exeter, who died 1447. In St. Botolph's Algate, ſome of the Darcies. In Clerkenwell, of the Foundation and Prioreſſes there. In [356] the Charter-houſe, the Foundation by Sir Walter Manny Knight of the Garter, and famous in the French Wars, who died 1371. In the White Friers, of that valiant and victorious Commander alſo in thoſe Wars, Sir Robert Knolles, and his Benefactions, who was buried in 1407. In Black Friers, in Holborne, a Character of that noble Benefactor Hubert de Burgo Earl of Kent, who died 1243. In the Temple Church, of its Foundation, and the Knights Templars; with ſome Monuments there of the Marſhalls Earls of Pembroke; and others buried there. In the Savoy, of its Foundation by Peter Earl of Savoy; its Deſtruction by the Kentiſh Rebels, and its Reparation by King Henry VII. and Queen Mary; with the Ordinances and Rules of the Hoſpital by the Founder. There are a few more Foundations and Inſcriptions mention'd of the Roll's Chappel, St. Martin's, St. James's, &c. So we come to Weſtminſter. And here, as the Foundation thereof with the ancient Monuments have ſince been more publickly hiſtorized, we ſhall only name thoſe eminent Perſons, with the Dates of their Death, who are moſt diſtinctly commemorated by our Author. And theſe are, Edward the Confeſſor, 1066. and his Wife Edith, 1074. Queen Maud Wife of King Henry I. 1118. King Henry III. 1273. and Edward I. 1307. Queen Eleanor, 1290. King Edward III. 1377. and his Queen Philippa, 1369. King Richard II. 1399. and his Queen Anne, 1394. King Henry V. 1422. and his Queen Katherine, 1437. King Henry VII. 1509. and his Queen Elizabeth, 1503. Margaret Counteſs of Richmond, 1509. Queen Anne Wife of Richard III. 1485. Edmund Earl of Lancaſter, and William de Valence Earl of Pembroke, both in 1296. Simon Langham Archbiſhop of Canterbury, 1376. Tho. Ruthal Biſhop of Durham, 1524. John Iſlip the Abbot, 1510. And laſtly, Geffery Chaucer, 1400. (but falſly, as may appear below*.) With ſeveral Characters of him, as collected in the Narrative of his Life, before an old Edition of his Works, by Tho. Speght. After which, our Author concludes [357] his Account of the Monuments in this Abbey, with Edward the Confeſſor's Charter of Sanctuary, and a Memento for Mortality, in Verſe. Then follow ſome ſhort Accounts of certain Chappels, Hoſpitals, and other Religious Foundations which were adjacent, or in diſtant Parts of the City, and ſeem to have been before omitted. Among theſe are the Chappel of our Lady in the Piew; which, with the Image of our Lady richly deck'd, was burnt to Aſhes; and re-edified by Anthony Wideville Earl Rivers, &c. who was unjuſtly beheaded by Richard III. St. Peter's Chappel within the Tower; where we have a pretty large Account of John Fiſher Biſhop of Rocheſter: With his Letter to King Henry VIII. to clear away the Imputation of his being of the Council with Elizabeth Barton the Holy Maid of Kent, who pronounced ſome treaſonable Menaces againſt the King, if he proceeded in his intended Divorce: Alſo another Letter of his to Secretary Cromwell, concerning the Oath of Supremacy; both from the Cotton Library. Alſo the Tenor of the ſaid Biſhop's Indictment; with Verſes on him, by Adr. Junius and Corn. Muſius in oppoſition. The like Particulars we have of Sir Tho. More; and alſo of the foreſaid Tho. Cromwell Earl of Eſſex; with ſome Letters written by, and Verſes upon them: Concluding with a Liſt of the Services done by the ſaid Cromwell to King Henry, from the Autograph in the Exchequer. Then we have ſome Account of Queen Anne Bullein, and Queen Catharine Howard. So we paſs to the Notice of ſome ancient Burials in the Fields about London; eſpecially certain Britiſh Kings. The uncertain Burial of the young Princes Edward and Richard, murdered 1483. Then we come to the Towns about London; as Chelſey, and the Burial there of Sir Tho. More; with his Inſcription. In Kenſington, an Explanation of the Remembrancer's Office, on occaſion of one buried there who had executed the ſame. In the Account of Sion Monaſtery, Rich. Layton's Letter to Secretary Cromwell, certifying the Incontinence of the Nuns and Friers there. In Hackney, an Explanation of the Offices of Auditor and Filazer, upon the mentioning ſome Perſons buried there, who bore thoſe Offices. And here we have the Monument of Chriſtopher Urſwick the King's Almoner, who died 1521, much praiſed for refuſing ſo many Eccleſiaſtical Preferments, and contenting himſelf with a private Parſonage: Therefore thought an Example for all our great Prelates to admire, and for few or none to imitate, ſays our Author. After a few ancient [358] Inſcriptions more in four or five other Pariſh Churches about London, we come to thoſe in HERTFORDSHIRE, the Eccleſiaſtical Government of ſome Part thereof belonging to this Dioceſſe of London, as the reſt, to that of Lincoln: But becauſe this is ſo large, our Author is ſo free as to borrow the Inſcriptions which belong to that Dioceſſe, and print them with thoſe which are properly for London. Here the Interment of ſeveral ancient Families is mention'd under the reſpective Pariſhes of this County; but none amply commemorated till we arrive at St. Albans, and there we have ſeveral Particulars, in Proſe and Verſe, upon the Protomartyr of that Name; with the Foundation of the Abbey. Alſo ſome Characters in praiſe of Humphry Duke of Glouceſter there buried, from Camden and Abbot Whethamſted; with ſome Intimations of Queen Margaret's fatal Malice towards him; his being ſtrangled in 1446; his Benefactions to Oxford, and this Abbey; the Epitaph pencil'd on the Wall near his Tomb; with an Item of the Miracle which he wrought upon the blind Impoſtor. And here we have the Succeſſion of all the Abbots of St. Albans from the Foundation by King Offa down to John Whethamſted aforeſaid; of whom, more copiouſly than of all the reſt, eſpecially his Benefactions, Buildings, &c. with abundance of Verſes and Inſcriptions in Latin thereon. Here alſo we have an Engliſh Inſcription declaring this Town to be the Birth-place of Sir John Mandevile that famous Traveller, who wrote in three Languages his Itinerary of thirty three Years: Alſo his Latin Epitaph in Proſe and Verſe on his Tomb in the City of Leige, as copied by our Author from thence, by which it appears Sir John died on the 16th of November 1371. Further of ſeveral eminent Perſons buried here, who have no Inſcriptions; as Egfrid King of the Mercians, who died Anno 796. Robert Mowbray Earl of Northumberland, and Monk, who died 1106. And Alexander Necham Abbot of Cirenceſter, who died 1217. Then follow Drayton's Verſes on the Foundation and Fall of this Abbey; a ſhort Memorial of ſome Nobility ſlain in this Town in the Quarrel of York and Lancaſter, from ſome ancient Verſes of John Gower and Harding. Alſo certain Epitaphs in Latin for ſeveral religious Perſons and others here interr'd, by the Abbot Whethamſted aforeſaid: Concluding with a ſhort Account of the Privileges of this Abbey. So we proceed to other Churches in this County, and the Inſcriptions in them till we come to Sopwell, and ſome adjacent [359] Spittles; near which, they have the large Mannor of Gorombery, where the Lord Keeper Sir Nicholas Bacon, a Man of rare Wit and deep Experience, built a Seat; the Ornaments and Inſcriptions whereon, and eſpecially in the Banquetting-Houſe, are here deſcribed. At Redborne, we have an Account of St. Amphibalus the Martyr. In Mergate, the remarkable Petition of three Nuns there, from an old MS. in the Cotton Library: The Words whereof are ſignificant and modeſt, if not miſinterpreted. In Kings Langley, the Foundation of the Friery, and a Character of Edmund Plantaginet Duke of York, from Harding and Stow, who ſays he died 1402. Alſo of Pierce Gaveſton Earl of Cornwall, from Speed, Robert of Glouceſter, Stow, Daniel, Leland, and ſome Records in the Tower. In Standon, a Character of Sir Ralph Sadleir. In Digſwell, an Explanation of the Word Eſquire; and hence, after a Pariſh or two more, we are led into ESSEX, and a View of the Religious Foundations, with the Monuments and Inſcriptions therein, beginning at Weſtham with the Foundation and Interments there: Alſo an Explanation of the Office of Sewar. At Barking, an Account of the firſt Nunnery in England. At Ralegh, Copies of ſome rhiming Deeds of Gift by Edward the Confeſſor, King Athelſtane, and William the Conqueror. At Malden, of Cunobeline or Kimbaline King of Britain, and ſome of the Darcies. At Colcheſter, of the firſt Builder thereof Prince Coel, and of the Abbey founded by Robert Lord Fitzwater. At Earls Colne, of the ancient Family of the Veres; and further of them in Caſtle Henningham. In Sible Heningham, an Account of the famous Sir John Hawkewood a Tanner's Son in this Village, bred a Taylor, but being preſſed into the Wars under King Edward III. perform'd ſuch gallant Actions that he was knighted by that King, married the Daughter of the Duke of Milan's Brother, died 1394, and had a noble Equeſtrian Monument erected to his Memory, by the Florentines; alſo one in this Church, and another in the Priory of Heningham Caſtle. In Saffron Walden, the Inſcription of Thomas Lord Audley. Here alſo ſomewhat of Audley End, and of Geffrey de Mandevile Earl of Eſſex, the Founder of Walden Abbey, who being ſlain with an Arrow, was hung up in his Coffin on a Tree in the old Temple Orchard in London, becauſe, being excommunicated, the Knights Templars could not bury him. Here alſo of Humphrey Earl of Buckingham, and his Character in Latin Verſe, from Gower's Vox Clamantis. [360] In Little Eaſton, of the Bourchiers, Earls of Eſſex. At Little Dunmow, the Burial of Matilda the Fair, Daughter of Robert Fitzwater, the moſt valiant Knight of his time. Here it appears that King John's unlawful Love of this Lady was one Cauſe of the Barons Wars: And for her Refuſal to conſent to him, ſhe was poiſon'd in an Egg, Anno. 1213. Her baniſhed Father then ſerv'd in the French Wars; where he ſo valiantly overthrew one of his own Countrymen who had given a Challenge, that King John received him into his Favour, and reſtored him to his Eſtate, where he flouriſhed long in Honour and Riches, and dying 1234, was here buried near his Daughter. In Boreham, of the Radcliffes Earls of Suſſex, and their ſucceeding to the Inheritance and Honours of thoſe Fitzwaters; with Queen Mary's Grant of Licence to Henry Radcliffe Earl of Suſſex, for wearing of Coifes or Caps in her Preſence. In Pleſhy, of Thomas Plantaginet Duke of Glouceſter, who at Calais was ſmother'd under a Bed 1397, by the Procurement of Thomas Mowbray Earl Marſhal. Here we have the Epitaph of Eleanor his Dutcheſs; and a further Account of him and his Death from Gower's Latin Poem aforeſaid, a MS. in the Cotton Library. In Waltham Abbey, of King Harold the Founder, and of Cordelion, the Title of King Richard I. but the Act of one of his ſpecial Familiars, Hugh Nevill. In Upminſter, the Monument of Gerard Dewes. In Great Thorndon, of the Tyrells; and in Aſhdon, of the Cloptons: And here ends the Monuments in the County of Eſſex.

Then follow Additions of Epitaphs in the City of LONDON, of which few or none are remaining in the Churches. Beginning with part of an Inſcription that was in St. Paul's for Sir Payne Roet, Guyen King of Arms, Father of Catherine Wife of John of Gaunt Duke of Lancaſter, and Anne Wife of Chaucer the Poet. In St. Giles's Cripplegate, the Interment of Sir John Wriotheſley Garter Principal King at Arms, is mention'd; and the Patent for his Creation 18 Edw. IV. recited: And here takes occaſion to give us ſeveral Sections upon the Heralds and their Office, as the Manner of Creating them, the Oath, and Neceſſaries to be provided for the Ceremony: With a Catalogue, ſhewing, what Kings of Arms were in former Ages, and now out of Uſe in this Realm: Alſo the Succeſſion of the King's Heralds, and Purſuivants of Arms, with the Privileges granted to them; their College, and Body Corporate, in 27 Pages; ending with a Reference [361] to Sir Henry Spelman's Account of the Heralds College in his Gloſſary. In St. Michael le Querne, we have an Account of John Leland's laborious Collections of the Antiquities of this Kingdom, as we have it from his own New-Year's-Gift to King Henry VIII. which is here inſerted: But he died frantick in 1552. which is thought the Cauſe that many of his Works were not printed. In St. Botolph's Alderſgate, ſome Inſcriptions of the Cavendiſhes, eſpecially that John Cavendiſh Eſq who ſlew Wat. Tyler, 4 Ric. II. with an Account of the Offices of Clerk of the Pipe, Clerk of the Privy Seal, and Serjeant at Arms. In St. Michael Baſhiſhaw, a further Account of ſome Anceſtors of Sir Simon D'Ewes, with the Feneſtral Portraits of two of them. After ſome few ſhort Inſcriptions that were in three or four Pariſhes more, the Author concludes with theſe Words, ‘"Many Monuments of the Dead in Churches in and about this City of London, as alſo in ſome Places in the Country are cover'd with Seats or Pews, made high and eaſy, for the Pariſhioners to ſit and ſleep in; a Faſhion of no long Continuance, and worthy of Reformation."’ Then, as before of the other Dioceſſes, is deſcribed that of London. Alſo, more particularly, the Situation and Dimenſions of Middleſex and Eſſex; the Battles therein anciently fought; and the Burials of the Dead there; which is followed with a ſhort Account of the Biſhops of London who were canoniz'd Saints. And here ends our Author's Review of the ſaid Dioceſſe of London, at Page 716. The reſt of the Book conſiſts of

Ancient Monuments in the Dioceſſe of NORWICH. Beginning with Dunwich in Suſſex: The ancient State of it, alſo the more modern, from a large Treatiſe of Dunwich, written in Queen Mary's Reign, by a nameleſs Author, to one Mr. Dey; in the Cuſtody of Sir Simon D'Ewes. In St. Edmundsbury, we have a ſhort Hiſtory of the Foundation of the Abbey; the Burials therein; an Interpretation of the Words, Conge d'eſlire, (from Dr. Cowel:) Alſo a Character of John Lidgate Monk of Bury, a noted Poet in his Time, who died about 1440. In St. Mary's, ſeveral of the Drurys: And in Clare, a Dialogue, from an old MS. Roll, in Latin and Engliſh Verſe, between a Secular and a Frier at the Grave of Dame Joan of Acres; ſhewing the lineal Deſcent of the Lords of the Honour of Clare, from the Foundation of the Friery, Anno 1248 to 1460. Further of this Lady Joan, who was Counteſs of Glouceſter, and of Lionell Duke [362] of Clarence, who were both buried here. In Stoke Clare, of Edmund Mortimer Earl of March; his miſerable Bondage and Death 1424. With an Account alſo thereof from Harding. In Sudbury, an Account of the Burial of Simon Sudbury Archbiſhop of Canterbury, and his Foundations, his Preferments, and Slaughter in Wat. Tyler's Rebellion, with an Account thereof from Gower's Vox Clamantis: As alſo a further Deſcription of that Inſurrection from the ſaid Poem. In Hadley, we have a ſhort Hiſtory in Proſe and Verſe of Gurmond the Daniſh King, chriſtened Athelſtane. In Woodbridge and Ufford, the noble Family of the Uffords Earls of Suffolk, particularly Ralph de Ufford the wicked Lord Chief Juſtice of Ireland. In Letheringham, the Wingfields and the Nauntons; with an Expoſition of the Office of the Court of Wards. In Wingfield, of the de la Poles Earls of Suffolk. In Blithborrow, of Anna King of the Eaſt Angles, and his Iſſue. In Brome, the Cornwalliſes. In Neyland, an Obſervation that all the Monuments in this Church which bear any Face of Comelineſs or Antiquity are erected to the Memory of Clothiers. In Stoke, many of the Howards, with their monumental Effigies in Wooden Cuts. A little further we have a Copy of certain Church Collections within this County (of Suffolk) taken by William Harvey Clarencieux King of Arms; among which we find the Faſtolfs, Yaxleys, Walworths, Jernegans, Sulyards, Wingfields, &c. Then we come to NORFOLK, the other Part of this Dioceſſe. Here we have the Foundation of the Biſhop's See at Norwich, with a Succeſſion of the Biſhops thereof. Then follow the Particulars of the Burials there: Some Account of John Baconthorp the reſolute little Doctor, and Sir William Boleyn Great Grandfather to Queen Elizabeth, Robert Walſingham, Frier John Thorp, and many others; ending with the Praiſe of Norwich, from the Latin Verſes of John Jonſton in Camden, and their Tranſlation by Philemon Holland. In Thornage, we have an Account of the Highams; and Montaign's Obſervation that it was the Surname of his Anceſtors: Here alſo of Sir Nicholas Bacon. In Hyngham, of Sir Oliver de Ingham. In Tirrington, of Sir Frederick Tilney. In Narborough and in Stow, of the Spelmans: And in Rougham, of the Yelvertons. In Hunſtanton of the Leſtranges. In the Account of the Founding of Thetford Monaſtery, ſome Memoirs of the Bigots, the Mowbrays, and Howards; with Praiſes of the Duke of Norfolk, from Sir John Beaumont's Poem on the Battle of [363] Boſworth-Field, particularly of Thomas Howard Earl of Surrey, and Duke of Norfolk, who died 1524, and was buried (as his Father John alſo was) here in Thetford Abbey; with a Copy of a long Character inſcribed on a Table affix'd to his Monument. At Eaſt Winch, more of the Howards, and Pictures of their Monuments in Howard Chappel. Alſo Pourtraits of others of this noble Family, in the Churches of Weeting and Farsfield. At Framlingham, of Henry Howard Earl of Surrey, and Frances his Wife; alſo of Sir Thomas Wyat. The principal Names of Note further deſcanted on, are the Heveninghams, Derhams, Knevets, Erpinghams, Filbriggs, and the Glanviles, till we come to Walſingham, where we have an Account of the Foundation of the Priory there, famous for the great Reſort of Pilgrims to our Lady as they call'd her, or the Virgin Mary; with Eraſmus his Account of the ſaid Pilgrimage; the Building, and the Riches wherewith it was adorned. In Loddon, an Account of the Foundation by Sir James Hobard; and in the Priory of Carmelites or White Friers, an Account of the College of St. John Baptiſt, refounded by John Faſtolfe Eſq Father of Sir John Faſtolfe that martial Knight of the Garter, who had a fair Seat at Caſtre. Here we have alſo others of this ancient Family mention'd; for the Souls of whom, the religious Votaries in and about Yarmouth, were bound to pray; from the Collections of Thomas Talbot Keeper of the Records in the Tower; as Margaret Wife of Sir John Faſtolfe, Daughter of Sir John Holbrook; and ſeveral others. In Snoring, an Inſcription of Sir Ralph Shelton; and an Acknowledgement of Thanks to Dr. Robert Pearſon Rector of this Church, our Author's Tutor at Queen's College, Cambridge. Further of the Sheltons, in the Pariſh of that Name. In Tilney Smeeth, an antique Sepulchre, upon which an Axle-Tree and Cart-Wheel are carved, in memory of Hikifrick, who with thoſe Weapons inſtead of Sword and Buckler, put to flight an encroaching Landlord and all his Forces, who would have monopoliz'd their Common. Much like what is here alſo recorded, of one Hay a Scotch Man, who reinforced his Countrymen againſt the Danes, with no other Weapon than an Oxe Yoke, which is here alſo celebrated by Johnſton the Scotch Poet before mention'd. After which follows, The Succeſſion, Names, and Number of the Biſhops of Dunwich, Elmham, and Norwich; and of ſuch as had been reputed Saints. Among which the ninth, [364] was William de Ralegh, who was remov'd to Wincheſter; and the fourteenth, Ralph de Walpole, tranſlated to Ely; and the laſt mention'd is Dr. Francis White, a learned Man, as his Works teſtify. But from deſcribing the Situation, Circuit, Commodities, &c. of this Dioceſſe, as he had done of London, our Author excuſes himſelf, in that it had been already exactly perform'd by Sir Henry Spelman in his Book call'd Icenia. And here ends this Collection of Funeral Monuments at Page 871, as it ſhould have been printed in our Title of this Book; which, becauſe it has preſerved a great many religious Foundations, and many hundred ancient Families (as may appear by the Index alone, at the End) has been, and will be a Work of great Uſe to many ſucceeding Collectors of our Antiquities, and Writers of our Hiſtory, either local or perſonal, general or particular; notwithſtanding ſome Inaccuracies may have eſcaped in it, as was before obſerv'd, whereof other Works are not exempt, which adventure to revive ſuch a Variety of ancient Memorials.

LII. ANTHROPOMETAMORPHOSIS: MAN TRANSFORMED: Or, the ARTIFICIAL CHANGELING; hiſtorically preſented, in the mad and cruel Gallantry, fooliſh Bravery, ridiculous Beauty, filthy Fineneſs, and loathſome Lovelineſs of moſt NATIONS, faſhioning and altering their Bodies from the Mould intended by NATURE; with FIGURES of thoſe Transfigurations. To which artificial and affected Deformations are added, all the native and national Monſtroſities that have appeared to disfigure the Human Fabrick. With a Vindication of the regular Beauty and Honeſty of NATURE. And an Appendix of the Pedigree of the ENGLISH GALLANT. Scripſit, J. B. Cognomento Chiroſophus, M. D. Quarto, London 1653. Pages 559, beſides the Introduction, Table of Contents, &c.

AT the Beginning of this Edition (for the Book was firſt publiſhed in Twelves, 1650, without any Figures or Prints, but one in the Front, of divers diſtorted or diſguiſed [365] Heads and Faces) there is prefix'd a comely Sculpture of the Author Dr. John Bulwer, engraved by W. Faithorne; and likewiſe another Title of the Book, not much differing from the true Title above, but ſeemingly added by the Printer to advance the univerſal reading of the Author, being entitled, A View of the People of the whole World, &c. Next we have a Device in Sculpture, repreſenting the awful Tribunal of Nature, by Commiſſion from Heaven, trying the artificial Changeling, or Miſcreants of all Nations, for the abuſe of their Bodies; with a ſhort Explanation. Then follows a Specimen of the Author's Poetry, in an Anacephalaeoſis or Recapitulation of his Work, intimated by the Frontiſpiece; wherein he briefly recounts the many Scoffs and Rapes made on the natural Form of the Human Body. After this we have the Author's Dedication to his Friend Thomas Diconſon; and likewiſe ſeveral epiſtolary Poems, ſome in Latin, and others in Engliſh, to the Author in honour of his Performance; one of theſe is written by Francis Goldſmith, anoby Adolet Hogereſa of High Croſs. There is alſo a Letter to the Author from R. Maſon of the Middle Temple, diſcovering the Ground of all Man's Prevarications. Next follows a ſhort Hint of the Uſe of this Treatiſe; alſo an anonymous Piece of Latin Poetry, called Diploma Apollinis, being a Bull or Writ of Apollo for tranſlating the Author to the Celeſtial Orb. After, a Liſt of near 300 Authors, Hiſtorians, Phyſicians, Anatomiſts, Travellers, &c. referr'd to in this Work, we come to the Introduction; which highly extols the native Beauty and Excellency of the human Fabrick; ſhews the Impiety of varying from Nature; and the depraved Figures introduced thereby; ‘"inſomuch," ſays the Author, "that it may ſeem the firſt Men only were made by God, but the reſt were of Mens Invention: And," continues he, "while we diſpute in Schools, whether if it were poſſible, it were lawful for Man to deſtroy any one Species of God's Creatures, tho' but of Toads and Spiders; Becauſe this were a taking away one Link of God's Chain, one Note of his Harmony; we have taken away the Jewel at that Chain."’ He then recommends my Lord Bacon's Opinion of the Helps towards Beauty, and good Features, and reducing the Blemiſhes of Perſons to their natural State: And ſo introduces his Work.

The Work itſelf is repreſented in 24 Scenes, and is all along illuſtrated with wooden Prints, of the Forms and [366] Faſhions treated of. Scene 1. Exhibits certain Faſhions of the Head, affected by divers Nations; as Sugar-loaf Heads, long and ſhort Heads, round and broad Heads, thin narrow Heads, ſquare Heads, Dog's Heads, headleſs Nations, whoſe Countenance is in their Breaſt, and their Eyes as it were in their Shoulders, as related, among other Antients, by St. Auguſtine, who ſays he ſaw them, and repeated by Sir John Mandevill, Sir Walter Ralegh, Purchas, and others: Next, of horned Nations; and here is inſtanced the Tale of one Margaret Owen an horned Welch Woman. Hydrocephalos, or Heads extended with Water between the Skin and Muſcles; and Bicipites, or Men with two Heads. Then is ſhewn the Head's true Figure; and laſtly, of Hard-heads and Block-heads; and through this whole Scene are interſpers'd many philoſophical Obſervations upon the Brain's participating of the Figure of the Head, and its being affected thereby. Scene 2. Treats of the Faſhions of the Hair and Hair-Rites; and firſt of bald-pated Men and Women; then of the natural Uſe and Comelineſs of the Hair, fantaſtical Tonſures, long haired Men, the Regulation of the Hair and Tonſure, artificial Affectations of black and yellow Hair; the tinging, anointing, powdering, plating, frizling, and curling of Hair; and laſtly, of Perukes: All illuſtrated with many hiſtorical Examples and philoſophical Reflections, as the other Scenes or Chapters are. Scene 3. Of Frontal Faſhions, and here of low, high, and broad Foreheads, prominent Foreheads, cloudy Foreheads, Foreheads ſtigmatized, ſpotted and painted Foreheads. Scene 4. Of Eye-brow Rites, beginning with Foreheads ſtiff ſtrain'd with Fillets, and Beetle Brows; then of the Beauty of the Eye-Brows, hairleſs and great Eye-Brows, triangular and high-arched Eye-Brows; Painters and Dyers of Eye-Brows. Scene 5. Of Eye-Lid Faſhions; Eye-Lids diſtorted from the Eye, the Uſe of Eye-Lids, and of the Hair on the Eye-Lids, Eradicators of the Eye-Lid Hair; Painters of the Eye-Lid and Eye-Lid Hair. Scene 6. Of Properties and Affectations of Eyes; amongſt which, of one-eyed Nations, Nations without Eyes, others with four Eyes, and Eyes miſplaced; Eye Painters, ſundry kinds of Eyes, and which is moſt elegant. Scene 7. Of Forms of the Noſe; Nations that pare and cut off their Noſes, ſlit Noſes, ſhort, long, and great Noſes, Noſes turned broad upwards, flat and ſaddle Noſes, ape-like and hawk Noſes, the natural Perfection and Beauty of the Noſe; Noſe-Jewels. Scene 8. Of Auricular [367] Faſhions; Men with Ears down to their Feet, others who cover themſelves with their Ears, Ear-Rings, Ears full of gilded Nails, with divers other Marks of auricular Bravery; and of the natural Proportion of the Ear. Scene 9. Of Cheek Gallantry; Nations with artificial Scars in their Cheeks, others that bore Holes in them, and therein put Turquoiſes, Emeralds, &c. and of the modeſt Grace of the Cheeks. Scene 10. Of Mouth Faſhions; wide Mouths, the natural Proportion of the Mouth, Nations without a Mouth, living by Breath and Odours; others with Lips hanging down to their Breaſts, diſcover'd by Mr. Jobſon at the River Gambia; of great thick Lips, and how theſe affect the Speech, and of Hair-Lips. Scene 11. Of Lip Gallantry; Nations with Streaks or Lines in their Lips; others with Holes, in which they wear Pegs, precious Stones, Pearls, &c. of Lip-Rings, the Office and Ornament of the Lips, the decent and proper Manner of eating and drinking; the French Manner; of the Throat, the Windpipe and the Gullet or feeding Channel, and the natural Uſe and Action of the Gullet in conveying Meat to the Stomach, with many philoſophical Obſervations on the Operations of the Muſcles and Fibres in theſe Parts. Scene 12. Of Beards and Manhood about the Mouth; and here the Author ſhews the Cavils raiſed againſt the Beard, which he anſwers, and maintains the Dignity and Uſe of the Beard and of the Muſtachoes, and condemns ſhaving as a Note of Effeminacy; of the Manner of the ancient Britons; of Eradicators of Beards and beardleſs Nations, half Beards, thin, long, and formal Beards, Beard-Dyers, and bearded Women. Scene 13. Of Dental Faſhions; Nations that affect red, white, and black Teeth, others that file and indent their Teeth, others that pull out Teeth for Bravery, the Uſe and natural Beauty of the Teeth; artificial Teeth; the Perfection and Renovation of Teeth. Scene 14. Of Devices about the Tongue; Nations attempting the Improvement of the Body by cleaving their Tongues; ‘"Yet this Device," the Author ſhews, "is deſtructive of the Perfection of the Body, for Nature neither abounds in ſuperfluous Things, nor is defective in Neceſſaries; ſhe does nothing in vain, nor creates any thing diminiſhed, unleſs hindred by Matter; ſo that the Proviſion of Nature being doubled by a ſupernumerary Particle, the Inſtrument is hurt in it's Operations;"’ of the Bridle of the Tongue, and in what Caſe, and how it ought to be cut. Scene 15. Of [368] the Face; the juſt Proportion of the Face, Nations with Platter-Faces, long and ſquare Faces, Dogs Faces, ſome that ſtick Feathers in their Faces, others that cut Streaks in and tear and ſtigmatize their Faces; of Face-Painters, and here we have Inſtances of ſeveral Nations painting their Faces, as related by Grimſton, Capt. Smith, Herbert's and Sandy's Travels, with Dr. Donne's Reproof to the Face-Painters; then is laid down how far Face-Painting is allowable; of Patches; in what Manner the Face is disfigured by performing vocal and inſtrumental Muſick. Scene 16. Of the Neck; the Inconveniency of a long Neck, Nations that have no Neck; the Cauſe of Swelling in the Throat. Scene 17. Of Shoulder Affectations; Men with Shoulders higher than their Heads; others with broad Shoulders; ‘"but theſe laſt," ſays the Author, "are not in Favour with the Women, becauſe they for the moſt part beget great Children;"’ narrow Shoulders and crook'd Backs; of the hereditary Deformities of Parents, and natural Marks. Scene 18. Of Arms, Hands, and Nails; the Portugueſe Artifice of making their Hands long and ſmall; painted Hands and Nails, prodigious long Nails, the natural Growth and Uſe of the Nails; then the Author recommends the Reformation of the Nails as a noble Care, ‘"for," ſays he, "Cleanneſs and the civil Beauty of the Body were ever eſteem'd to proceed from a Modeſty of Behaviour and a due Reverence towards God, towards Society, and towards ourſelves."’ Of Perſons born with many Arms, others without Arms, amongſt whom of the remarkable John Simons of Hagbourne near Abbingdon, born without Arms, Hands, Thighs, or Knees; of ſupernumerary Fingers and Nations without Hands; of the miraculous Helluo Lapidum, Francis Battalia an Italian, who was in London about the Year 1653, born with two Stones in one hand and one in the other, who at his Birth rejecting the Pap, and having thoſe Stones offer'd him, ſwallow'd them down, and fed all his Life on Stones and Pebbles. Scene 19. Of Pap-Faſhions; the Proportion, Uſe, and Decency of the Breaſts, and ſeveral ſtrange Monſtroſities affected therein; why ſhameful Parts; of Male-Nurſes; the Amazonian Amputations, and the needleſs Wiſh of Momus and Don Alonſo for a Caſement in the Breaſt. Scene 20. Of Affectations about the Breaſts and Waiſt; here the Author inveighs moſt bitterly againſt our pernicious Cuſtom of ſwathing and lacing of Infants; ſhewing by many phyſical [369] Arguments what innumerable Diſeaſes enſue from it, as Rickets, Conſumptions, &c. and then gives us the Faſhions of many Nations in this Particular; with the Cauſe of Crookedneſs; and how Children unborn may be disfigured. Scene 21. Of the Privy-Parts; ſeeing the Author could not have anſwer'd to Nature his Silence on this Head; after a modeſt Apology he takes a View of theſe Parts in order, firſt, to ſhew the Abuſes of them, with ſeveral national Deformities; ſecondly, to teach their natural Uſe, Honeſty, and Perfection, by the many grave and curious Obſervations he interſperſes; and firſt he ſpeaks of Yard Balls and Rings, fix'd by many Nations on the Fore-Skin to prevent Venery; of Semi-Eunuchs and Eunuchs; how far the Teſticles are inſtrumental in forming the Voice; the Caſtration of both Sexes; the Trial of Clearke the Sow-Gelder at Lincoln, for ſpading Margaret Brigſtock; of the Jewiſh and Mahometan Circumciſion; and of other Nations, as related by Mr. Jobſon; of the Hymen a Note of untainted Virginity; Hermaphrodites; one buried alive in Scotland 1461 of Female Purgations, Contractions; of Padlocking and ſewing them up; the juſt Proportion of the Virile Member; of the Navel, with Sir Tho. Brown's Opinion of it; Attempts to transform Women into Men, and Men into Women; with other ſtrange Abuſes of theſe Parts. Scene 22. Of Tailed-Nations and Breech Gallantry; the Reaſon why Man has no Tails; Kentiſh Long-Tails recorded in our Chronicles and by divers Popiſh Authors, whereof Delrio gives this Account, ‘"Thomas Becket Archbiſhop of Canterbury being in Diſgrace with Henry II. and riding through Stroud near Rocheſter, the Inhabitants to affront him, cut off his Horſe's Tail, which ever ſince was entailed upon them, inaſmuch as you may know a Man of Stroud by his Long-Tail."’ Of the Iriſh Long-Tails ſlain at the Storm of Caſhell in the County of Tipperary, by the Lord Inchequine; of the tailed Iſlanders of Bornea, of whom Dr. Harvey gives an Account; and other tailed Nations: Of the flagrant and unnatural Sin of Sodomy; ‘"yet," ſays he, "a great Cardinal" (Joannes de la Caſa Archbiſhop of Benevento in his Book in Commendation of Sodomy) "could prophanely ſay it was ſuave et divinum Opus."’ Scene 23. Of Leg and Foot Faſhions; how much little Feet are affected by the Chineſe and Spaniſh Women, ‘"inaſmuch, as the Proverb ſays, in voting for a handſome Woman, let her be Engliſh to the Neck, French to the [370] Waiſt, Dutch below, and for Hands and Feet let her be Spaniſh."’ The natural Proportion of the Feet; the Motion of the Legs, Feet, and Toes in ſuſtaining and transferring the Body; the Inconveniency of little Feet; divers national Forms of Feet; of Monſters partly human and partly mixt of divers Species, whereof ‘"St. Auguſtine denies that they ſhall riſe again,"’ with the Author's Reflections thereon: Nations affecting great Hips, Thighs, and Calves; of riding, and the Fluxion of the vital Spirits; the Way to bring Legs to a convenient Magnitude; Baker and Taylor Legs; national Deformities of Feet; Centaurs and Onocentaurs; of the Peruvians that mingle with Apes; the Indian Satyr deſcrib'd by Tulpius, which was beſtowed on Henry Frederick Prince of Orange; the Original of Satyrs; the Guinea-Drill, ſhewn in 1652 at Charing-Croſs; of Baboons, Monkeys and Apes, and the rational Acts of theſe Kind of Creatures, with the Obſervations of Scaliger and Camerarius on this Head, and of a modern Poet, who ſings;

"When Men began to grow unlike the Gods,
"Apes grew to be like Men."—

Then of Sea-Men and Men-Fiſhes, Semi-Men and Semi-Beaſts; of the Cauſes of monſtrous Deformities, and the Conception of Brutes by Men, and of Women by Brutes; the upright Stature of Man; a Deſcription of divers foreign Monſters, particularly one ſeen by Hoffman at Rome. Scene 24. Of Inventions practiſed by Men to deform the human Fabrick; Nations with embroidered, carbonado'd and painted Skins, diſcover'd by Sir Francis Drake; an Enquiry about changing the Colour of the Body; of feather'd and hairy Men, with the Story of John of Leiden mention'd by Sir K. Digby in his Treatiſe of the Soul; and Lord Bacon's Cauſe of Piloſity; how overfat and corpulent Bodies encounter Nature; the Cauſe of tall Stature, and the Means to accelerate and encreaſe Growth; the natural Magnitude of the Body; Rhaſes and Albertus's Art of getting little Men; Paracelſus his Artifice of forming Men in Horſe-Dung, &c. with the Opinion of the Learned thereupon: A Vindication of the Symmetry and juſt Proportion of Woman's Body for Generation; of Pigmies of divers Nations, and here he inſtances Maſter Jefferey the Queen's Dwarfe, and others; and ſhews the Art of making Dwarfes, with the Reaſon of dwarfiſh Stature; of Giants of divers Countries, ſpoken of by Hakluyt, Sir Francis Drake, Goulart, and others; and Obſervations on the Decay of Stature by too early Marriages; [371] the Devil's venerious Acts with Women; the Art of reſtoring Men to Youth; Man's Metamorphoſis and Tranſmigration into other Creatures; the Power of Witches; that the Soul of Man cannot inform a Beaſt's Body, nor the reverſe; of Tranſubſtantiation; Mr. Scott's Opinion of the Devil's transforming himſelf into divers Shapes; and of the Legerdemaine of Changelings.

We have now gone thro' the 24 Chapters of this Treatiſe, upon which it will be needleſs here to add any Panegyrick, ſince whoever has read it, can't but be acquainted with the Author's Skill and Accuracy in the Philoſophy of the humane Fabrick, as well as his Wit and Humour in cenſuring the depray'd and pragmatical Inventions of Men. We will therefore take a View of his APPENDIX, exhibiting the PEDIGREE of the ENGLISH GALLANT, which he thought proper to annex, (having firſt proſecuted his principal Deſign) to anſwer the Expectation of the Publick, who thought him neceſſarily engag'd to touch upon the Deformity of Apparel, of which almoſt every Scene afforded emergent Occaſion; herein explaining the Proverb, God makes, but the Taylor ſhapes.

The Engliſh, and the more civiliz'd Nations, had hitherto in a great meaſure eſcaped his Sentences of Treaſon againſt Nature, whereof many others were convicted; yet here they muſt bear to have their affected Vanities laid before them; ‘"It were not impoſſible," ſays he, "to prove, that there was never any Conceit ſo extravagant, that ever forced the Rules of Nature; or Faſhion ſo mad, which fell into the Imaginations of any of theſe indicted Nations, that may not meet with ſome publick Faſhion of Apparel among us, and ſeem to be grounded upon the ſame pretended Reaſon."’ Our Sugar-Loaf Hats, he attributes to the ſame Conceit as the Sugar-Loaf Heads of Foreign Nations; our ſquare Caps are owing to their ſquare Heads; our flat Caps to their flat Heads; our French Hoods imitate the Unicorn-like Dreſs of Hair among the barbarous Indians: He then ſhews the foreign Extraction of our Masks, Painting, and Black-Patches, our Pendents and auricular Bravery; our Peaſe-cod-bellied Doublets emulare the Gordian and Muſcovite Faſhion, and other Gorbellied Nations. The ſlaſhing and pincking our Doublets, our Cod-Piece Faſhion, and Trunk-Hoſe have all their Semblances in Barbarian Nations; as likewiſe our indecent Faſhion of naked Breaſts and Shoulders, our vain and fooliſh Verdingales [372] (or Hoops:) Our affected long Shoes, our broad Shoes (which in Queen Mary's Time occaſion'd a Proclamation that no Man ſhould wear his Shoes above ſix Inchches ſquare at the Toes) and our high Shoes have all their Original from abroad. The Vanity of diſguiſing our Shapes is alſo farther expoſed by ſome poetical Quotations from Alex. Barclay's Tranſlation of the Ship of Fools; and from an ingenious old Comedy in the Character of Lupa. He then concludes the Appendix with this apt Recommendation, ‘"That whoever will reduce Cloaths and Garments to their true End, muſt fit them to the Service and Commodity of the Body, whence dependeth their Original Grace, and Comelineſs, which can no way better be done than by cutting them according to the natural Shape and Proportion of the Body; as we may probably imagine the Skin-Garments were, wherewith the Lord God, who beſt knew their Shape, firſt cloathed the Nakedneſs of our firſt Parents."’ And he ſhews that we ought not to allow Faſhions for their Rareneſs and Novelty, when Goodneſs and Profit are not joined to them*.

POSTSCRIPT.

[373]

THUS has the Britiſh Librarian given a Specimen of his Undertaking, to the Extent of one Volume, in a diligent Abſtract of above fifty of our Scarce, Uſeful, and Valuable Books. In the choice of them, tho' here are ſome of conſiderable Valuation extracted; yet the high Price to which many are advanced in the Shops, has been no Temptation for his making that the Rule to prefer them. He has rather thought thoſe which are moſt uſeful, the moſt valuable; and ſuch of them, as are grown moſt ſcarce, moſt needful and deſerving of this Recommendation. Accordingly, 'tis not doubted but they will appear worthy of it, by what is here advanced to the Reader's Notice from them; being all fraught with much obſervable Matter, as may be eaſily perceived by this Scheme, for compaſſing the readieſt Knowledge and Command thereof, which may have eſcaped the Notice or Memory of ſeveral, who are even poſſeſſed of the Books themſelves which contain it; and alſo give Intelligence to others, of many remarkable Things, Places, and Perſons which they would never otherwiſe have known; no Work, of the like ſize among us, having pointed out ſuch a variety of thoſe Particulars, or drawn into ſo cloſe a compaſs, the Subſtance of ſo much Reading. He might perhaps have been more amuſing to ſome Readers, in being more ample upon ſome parts of his Authors; by extracting Pages of Controverſies, or Paragraphs of the pretty Stories, ſurprizing Paſſages, or eloquent Speeches in them; but as many Topicks in an Author muſt be ſacrificed to gratify a few Indulgences in this kind, and to divert ſome, the Enquiries of abundance remain unſatiſfy'd; the Plan has been follow'd which was at firſt laid down, to make it a Work rather of general Information, than particular Entertainment.

Among the Books conducive to this Purpoſe, thoſe for which Gratitude here demands chiefly the Publication of our Thanks, are the Manuſcripts. Such in the firſt place, is that here call'd, Sir Thomas Wriotheſly's Collections; containing [374] the Arms and Characters of the Knights of the Garter, and Views of the ancient Ceremonies uſed in Creating the Knights of the Bath, &c. For that Sketch which the Librarian has here given the Publick of it, they are both beholden to the Permiſſion of his Grace the Duke of Montagu, the noble Owner of that valuable Volume;and to ſome Explanations thereof, which were alſo courteouſly imparted by John Anſtis Eſq Garter, Principal King of Arms, whoſe extenſive Knowlege in theſe Subjects, his own elaborate Publications, in honour of both thoſe Orders, have ſufficiently confirm'd. Nor will it be thought a Repitition unneceſſary, by grateful Minds, that the Librarian here renews his Acknowledgments to Nathaniel Booth Eſq of Gray's-Inn, for his repeated Communications; having been favour'd not only with that curious Miſcellany, containing many of the old Earl of Derby's Papers, which, in one of the foregoing Numbers is abridg'd; but others out of his choice Collections, which may enrich ſome future Numbers, when Opportunity ſhall permit the Contents thereof to appear. Other Manuſcripts herein deſcribed, were partly the Collection of Mr. Charles Grimes, late, alſo of Gray's-Inn, and in the Bookſeller's Poſſeſſion for whom this Work is printed; except one ancient Relique of the famous Wicklife, for the uſe of which, many Thanks are here return'd to Mr. Joſeph Ames, Member of the Society of Antiquaries. The Author of this Work is moreover obliged to the Library of this laſt worthy Preſerver of Antiquities, as alſo to that of his ingenious Friend Mr. Peter Thompſon, for the uſe of ſeveral printed Books which are more ſcarce than many Manuſcripts; particularly ſome, ſet forth by our firſt Printer in England; and others, which will riſe, among the Curious, in Value, as, by the Depredations of Accident, or Ignorance, they decreaſe in Number. We muſt take ſome further Opportunity to expreſs our Obligations to other Gentlemen who have favour'd us with ſuch like Litterary Curioſities; and to ſome hundreds unknown, who have ſhewn a reliſh for the Uſefulneſs of this Performance, by encouraging the Sale of it.

There can be added nothing more for the Reader's further Convenience, to this general Table or Contents, but an Alphabetical Index to it; as a Maſter-Key that will give immediate recourſe to thoſe Topicks, in ſo many Volumes thus abſtracted, which had been lock'd up, or ſecreted from their Knowledge to whom they would have been uſeful. [375] And as from thoſe ancient Springs it is hereby obvious to all Readers, what a new River of Intelligence is conducted for their Benefit; ſo the Author (from the Example of others in ſuch-like Attempts) may be ſure of that Satisfaction which ariſes from the Contemplation of having been inſtrumental to ſo much publick Good. Thoſe who know the nature of ſuch Works, may think one Volume, comprehending the principal Matters in ſuch a Library of Books, and near one half of them Folios, expeditiouſly publiſhed within the Space of one Year: But as, in Performances of this kind, the moſt induſtrious Part, is that which is moſt inviſible, and the Fatigue is accounted of, from the ſmall Quantity of Writing which appears, not the vaſt and unſeen Maſs of Reading required therein; the Operation is apt to be thought dilatory, by thoſe who are unacquainted with the Labour of it. And for the ſame Reaſon, that they convey the Mind to ſuch multifarious Advantages of Information, their own Merits alſo are uſually diſregarded by the Generality, who are unexperienc'd in the Execution, but enjoy the Advantages of the Work. Like thoſe who look down with Admiration, at the Coſt and Pains which are beſtowed upon the curious Compartments into which a Piece of Ground is divided, and the flow'ry Groups, the verdant Mazes, or the fragrant Bowers wherewith it is adorn'd; yet overlook thoſe artificial Mounts and Terras Walks, which they are at that inſtant upon, which give them all that Command over this Variety of Proſpects, and are indeed, the moſt expenſive and laborious Ornaments in the Garden.

All we ſhall ſay more of our Librarian, is, If he is prevail'd on to proceed, in cultivating this Undertaking without Intermiſſion, he will continue his utmoſt Pains to make it anſwer all the Accommodations propoſed from it: Or if thro' other Engagements it ſhould be ſuffer'd to lie fallow for a Seaſon, 'tis in hopes of increaſing its Vigour, and making the Returns equivalent to the Toils thereof.

W. O.
FINIS.

Appendix A INDEX.

[376]
  • ABaſſines, 162.
  • Abbey-Lands, 187.
  • Abbeys, 25. 95. 298. 347.
  • Abbot, Geo. 202. 248.
  • Abbots, 87. 349. 358.
  • Abdelmalec, 147.
  • Abſolution, 352.
  • Abſtinence, 269.
  • Academies, 111.
  • Achelnotus, 82.
  • Acland, 314.
  • Acres, 329. 361.
  • Actors, 62.
  • Adam, 309.
  • Adams, 139. 149.
  • Adders, 295
  • Adhelm, 206.
  • Adminiſtration, 262.
  • Admonitions, 265.
  • Adrian, Pope, 84.
  • Adverſaries, 196.
  • Adultery, 81.
  • Ady, 214.
  • Aegypt, 146.
  • Africa, 33.
  • Affability, 266.
  • Agard, 189. 190.
  • Age, 176. 183.
  • Ages, 24.
  • Agitius, 3.
  • Agriculture, 184.
  • Agrippa, 216.
  • Air, 176. 291. 302.
  • Air-Pump, 118.
  • Alban, 2. 358.
  • Albania, 200.
  • Albertus, 370.
  • Albion, 79. 304.
  • Alchemy, 223.
  • Alciat, 43.
  • Alcock, 320.
  • Alcuinus, 80. 206.
  • Ale, 184. 234.
  • Algebra, 117.
  • Alfgina, 81.
  • Alfred, 135. 189. 239. 296. 312. 313.
  • Algier, 144. 145.
  • Alington, 197.
  • Allen, 62. 248.
  • Allom, 102.
  • Almanacks, 185. 303. 343.
  • Alphabet, 45.
  • Alrick, 352.
  • Alumnus, 45.
  • Alva, Duke, 222.
  • Amazons, 156.
  • Ambaſſadors, 163.
  • America, 33.
  • Americans, 161.
  • Ames, 374.
  • Amiens, 77.
  • Amphabale, 185. 359.
  • Amulets, 222.
  • Angelo, Mic. 48.
  • Angels, 227. 308.
  • Angervile, 298.
  • Angles, 307.
  • Animals, 56. 118. 161. 176. 179. 180. 185.
  • Animals, Artificial, 44.
  • Anjou, Duke of, 70. 320.
  • Anna, King, 362.
  • [377] Anne, Queen, 77. 166. 356.
  • Annealing, 48.
  • Annuities, 94.
  • Anſelm, 12. 13. 83.
  • Anſtis, Mr. 72. 189. 374.
  • Anthonie, Dr. 38.
  • Antichriſt, 80.
  • Antillas, 153.
  • Antipodes, 28.
  • Antiquaries, 188.
  • Antiquities, 185. 188. 289. 292. 294. 299.
  • Apes, 370.
  • Apothecaries, 39.
  • Apothegmes, 65.
  • Apparel, 266. 371.
  • Apparitions, 95.
  • Appleby, 290.
  • Apples, 179.
  • Appropriations, 295.
  • Aquitaine, 77.
  • Arabic Tongue, 160.
  • Archbiſhops, 12. 20. 80. 348. 350.
  • Archer, Sir Sim. 230.
  • Archery, 74. 217. 265.
  • Architecture, 184.
  • Arians, 2.
  • Ariſtotle, 114, to 118.
  • Arithmetic, 113. 117.
  • Arletta, 82.
  • Armenia, King of, 143.
  • Armenians, 162.
  • Armignac, Earl of, 76.
  • Arm, 368.
  • Arms, Coats of, 105. 170. 171. 172. 175. 189. 190. 233. 289. 290. 324. 330.
  • Arms, Officers of, 323. 324. 329.
  • Arnold, 23.
  • Arthur, King, 85. 122. 137. 192.
  • Arthur, Prince, 130.
  • Arts, 42. 58. 184. 302.
  • Arundel, 73, 76. 77. 264. 295. 343. 348.
  • Aſcham, 87.
  • Aſhley, 171, 172.
  • Aſhmole, 72. 119. 120. 121. 331.
  • Aſhton, 349.
  • Aſia, 33.
  • Aſpects, 336.
  • Aſtley, 291.
  • Aſton, 168.
  • Aſtrologers, 41. 336. 337.
  • Aſtrology, 114. 221. 336. 342.
  • Aſtronomical Ring, 27. 30.
  • Aſtronomy, 114. 117. 338.
  • Athanaſius, 340.
  • Atheiſm, 119.
  • Athelſtane, 359. 362.
  • Aty, 280.
  • Auditor, 357.
  • Audley, Lord, 75. 186. 187. 321. 351. 359.
  • Audley, Sir James, 328.
  • Audry, St. 80.
  • Augury, 221. 337.
  • Auguſtine, 12. 80. 307. 349. 350.
  • Auguſtines, 84.
  • Aurelius Ambroſius, 3.
  • Aurum Potabile, 38.
  • Authors, 207.
  • Automata, 44.
  • Auxiliaries, 307.
  • Azores, 148.
B.
  • Babel, 301. 309.
  • Bacon Flitch, 186.
  • Bacon, Roger, 44. 53. 117. 176. 178. 247.
  • Bacon, Sir Nich. 98. 213. 359. 362.
  • Bacon, Sir Fran. 46. 117. 118. 244.
  • Baconthorp, 83. 362.
  • [378] Badew, 319.
  • Badges, 324.
  • Bagot, 179.
  • Baillie, 301.
  • Baker, 222.
  • Bale, 78. 80. 83, 84. 86. 291. 347.
  • Baliol, 313.
  • Ballad, 25.
  • Balſham, 182. 318.
  • Bankers, 98. 99.
  • Bankrupts, 104.
  • Banks, 58. arbary, 147.
  • Barckley, 27. 372.
  • Barking, 82.
  • Barlow, 60.
  • Barnes, 58. 196.
  • Barometer, 118.
  • Barons, 108. 109. 190.
  • Baronies, 254, 297.
  • Barres, 76.
  • Barry, 350.
  • Bartilmew, 351.
  • Barton, 219. 343. 357.
  • Baskervile, 155.
  • Baſſet, 297.
  • Baſſompierre, 167.
  • Baſtards, 81. 181.
  • Bateman, 319.
  • Bath, Order of, 323. 328.
  • Battalia, 368.
  • Battles, 352. 361.
  • Beachamp, 354.
  • Beards, 367.
  • Beaſts, 56. vid. Animals.
  • Beaumont, 238. 288. 291. 293. 296. 298. 346.
  • Beauty, 365.
  • Beauviſe, 264.
  • Becanus, 309.
  • Becket, 12. 13. 18. 76. 84. 348. 350. 352. 354. 369.
  • Beer, 25. 185. 186.
  • Bees, 185.
  • Bedford, Dutcheſs of, 64. 330.
  • Beggars, 195.
  • Behmen, 113.
  • Belgrave, 291.
  • Bel, 69. 70.
  • Bellantius, 341.
  • Bells, 189. 190.
  • Benedictines, 84.
  • Benefactors, vid. Colleges.
  • Benefices, 25. 347.
  • Benevolence, 267.
  • Bentley, 279.
  • Berengarius, 82.
  • Berkeley, 298. 355.
  • Bermudas, 154.
  • Berthelet, 5. 261.
  • Beſance. 76.
  • Berwick, 74, 75.
  • Bibles, 60. 188. 204. 209. 238.
  • Bigots, 362.
  • Biography, 121.
  • Birds, 57. 58. 180.
  • Births, 181.
  • Biſhops, 12. 19. 20. 80. 82. 83. 84. 85. 183. 351. 353. 354. 361. 362.
  • Biſhopricks, 347.
  • Biſſe, 317.
  • Bleſenſis, 84.
  • Blindneſs, 182.
  • Bloet, 83.
  • Blood, 117.
  • Blount, 355.
  • Boadicia, 2.
  • Boars, 307.
  • Bocace, 127.
  • Bodin, 72. 216. 217. 219. 300.
  • Bodley, 208. 239. 248. 250. 298. 313.
  • Boethius, 200.
  • [379] Boëtius, 43.
  • Bohun, 355.
  • Boniface, 6. 19. 80. 94. 225.
  • Books, 207. 208. 239. 245. 247. 298. 317.
  • Booth, 286. 287, 374,
  • Borough, 141.
  • Borough Engliſh, 181.
  • Boſco, 2.
  • Boſo, 83.
  • Boulde, 279.
  • Bourchier, 67. 68. 76. 348. 360.
  • Bourgh, 144.
  • Bowes, 141.
  • Bowles, 351.
  • Boyle, 118.
  • Bradſhaw, 233.
  • Brahe, Tycho, 43.
  • Bramble, 76.
  • Brandon, 222.
  • Braſil, 156.
  • Bread, 23.
  • Breaſts, 368.
  • Brereton, 235.
  • Brerewood, 159. 234.
  • Bretaylles, 64.
  • Bridges, 189.
  • Bridgman, 173. 229.
  • Brent, 350.
  • Brewing. 184.
  • Brigſtock, 369.
  • Brinſley, 113.
  • Briſtol, 138. 139.
  • Britain, 1. 80. 189. 198. 304. 305.
  • Britains, 12. 133. 190. 300. 306.
  • Britiſh Tongue, 199.
  • Brocades, 49.
  • Brocardo, 340.
  • Brokers, 23. 24.
  • Brooke, 352.
  • Broughton, 189.
  • Brown, 175. 198. 230. 369.
  • Bruce, Rob. de, 73. 74.
  • Brunſwick, 102. 247. 302. 304.
  • Brute, 79. 200. 294. 305. 306. 354.
  • Buchanan, 248.
  • Buck, 62.
  • Buckhurſt, 279. 280.
  • Buckingham, 75. 167. 168.
  • Buildings, 82. 85. 177. 184. 189.
  • Bullen, 355. 357. 362.
  • Bulenger, 47. 48.
  • Bulwer, 365.
  • Bungie, 226.
  • Burdet, 293. 295.
  • Burghley, Ld. 98. 133. 141. 151. 279.
  • Burgo, de, 359.
  • Burials, 345. 346. 352. 357. 361.
  • Burley, Sir Sim. 76. 353.
  • Burnell, 284.
  • Burning-Glaſſes, 53.
  • Burrough, Sir J. 148.
  • Burton, 172. 287. 295.
  • Bury, Rich. de, 208. 239. 298.
  • Butler, 283. 355.
  • Byron, Ld. 105.
C.
  • Cabaliſts, 221. 340.
  • Cabota, 139. 149. 156.
  • Cade, 350.
  • Cadenet, 166.
  • Cadiz, 142. 148. 158.
  • Cadwallader, 307.
  • Caius, Dr. 319.
  • Calais, 74.
  • California, 152.
  • Calixtus, 83.
  • Calvin, 206. 228.
  • [380] Cambria, 200.
  • Cambridge, Earl of, 75.
  • Cambridge, Univerſity of, 318.
  • Camden, 160. 287.
  • Campian, 43.
  • Canaries, 146.
  • Candia, 144.
  • Candiſh, 151. 292.
  • Canol, 75.
  • Canterbury, 348.
  • Canute, 81. 82. 308.
  • Caradoc, 2. 132.
  • Cardan, 225.
  • Cardinals, 82. 354.
  • Cards, 265.
  • Carew, 288.
  • Carleton, 165.
  • Carlile, 151.
  • Carmelites, 347.
  • Carve, 109.
  • Carving, 263.
  • Cautares, 223.
  • Caſtles, 190. 350.
  • Caſtile, King of, 76.
  • Caſtorius, 135.
  • Caſtration, 369.
  • Cathay, 139.
  • Catigern, 351.
  • Cavendiſh, 361.
  • Caxton, 47. 63. 65. 66. 127. 191. 255.
  • Celtae, 302.
  • Cecylls, 135. 142. 155. 311. 344.
  • Celſus, 83.
  • Cenotaphs, 346.
  • Ceremonies, 61. 163. 268.
  • Chaldee Language, 160.
  • Chaloner, 144. 230. 238.
  • Chancellors, 173. 190.
  • Chancellors, of the Exchequer, 254.
  • Chandos, 75.
  • Changelings, 364. 371.
  • Chaplains, 82. 83.
  • Charity, 267.
  • Charles the Bald, 94.
  • Charles V. 75. 355.
  • Charles I. of England, 314. 344.
  • Charles II. 11. 120. 121. 169. 183. 187.
  • Charms, 221.
  • Chartereuſe, 84.
  • Charters, 22. 25. 230.
  • Chaſtity, 80. 81. 84. 85. 293.
  • Chaucer, 88. 89. 138. 218. 223. 309. 346. 347. 356. 360.
  • Cheeks, 367.
  • Cheeſe, 25. 234.
  • Chenay, 165.
  • Cheſſe, 265. 295.
  • Cheſter, 229.
  • Cheſter, Earls of, 83. 135.
  • Cheſter, Shipping of, 277.
  • Children, 212. 301. 304. 307. 335. 354. 369.
  • Chichely, 315. 316.
  • Chilton, 153.
  • China, 147. 157.
  • Chio, 144.
  • Chivalry, 191.
  • Chorography, 28.
  • Chriſt, 6. 21. 196. 341. 342.
  • Chriſtiana, St. 217.
  • Chriſtianity, 11. 12. 80. 160.
  • Chryſoſtom, 209.
  • Chronology, 237.
  • Church, 9. 61. 81. 298.
  • Churches, 24. 25. 95. 184. 289.
  • Church Windows, 289. 292.
  • Cicely, 82.
  • Cicero, 255.
  • Cinque Ports, 138.
  • [381]Circumciſion, 161. 162. 369.
  • Ciſteans, 84.
  • Cities, 190.
  • Clapham, 330.
  • Clare, 361.
  • Clarence, 348. 362.
  • Clarendon, E. of 14. 173.
  • Clearke, 369.
  • Clench, 173.
  • Clerc, 165.
  • Clergy, 3. 6. 7. 12. 13. 19. 81. 346. 347.
  • Climates, 30. 302.
  • Clocks, 31. 42.
  • Clog, Staffordſh. 185.
  • Clopton, 360.
  • Cloth, 24. 48. 49. 97. 101. 102. 104.
  • Clothiers, 362.
  • Coals, 177. 296.
  • Cobham, 239. 245. 352.
  • Cock-fighting, 62.
  • Coenalis, 199.
  • Coins, 139. 189. 190. 253. 292. 293.
  • Coke, 173.
  • Cokers, 224.
  • Colet, 354.
  • Colfride, 80.
  • Collars, 122. 170. 324.
  • Colleges, in Oxford, 313.
  • Colleges, in Cambridge, 318.
  • Collier, Jer. 62.
  • Columbus, 149.
  • Colures, 29.
  • Comets, 176. 337.
  • Comfort, 196.
  • Commandments, 21.
  • Commonwealth, 9.
  • Companies, 101. 102. 104.
  • Compaſs, 32. 54. 56. 118.
  • Conanus, 3.
  • Conjuration, 224. 340.
  • Conſtantine, 3. 11.
  • Conſtantinople, 143. 145.
  • Continence, 269.
  • Continents, 161.
  • Cophtics, 162.
  • Cornwallis, 362.
  • Corodies, 25.
  • Corpulence, 370.
  • Corraghes, 54.
  • Cortez, 152.
  • Coryate, 249.
  • Cosbye, 277.
  • Coſmography, 26. 28. 114.
  • Cotta, 34.
  • Cottington, 106.
  • Cotton, 190, 345.
  • Covetouſneſs, 22. 195.
  • Councel, 253.
  • Councils, 202. 204.
  • Conſultation, 269.
  • Courteney, 75. 350.
  • Courts of Juſtice, 169.
  • Crapnell, 283.
  • Craſhaw, 207. 209.
  • Creed, 21.
  • Crema, 83.
  • Creſſy, Battle of, 74.
  • Crew, 173. 230.
  • Criſpin, 349.
  • Cromwel, Oliver, 62.
  • Cromwel, Tho. 81. 197. 343. 346. 355. 357.
  • Croſs, 116.
  • Crucifix, 85.
  • Cryptography, 45.
  • Cumberland, E. of, 148. 149. 154. 157.
  • Cuneglaſſe, 3.
  • Cunegunda, 226.
  • Cuningham, 26. 46.
  • Cunobeline, 359.
  • Curates, 23.
  • Curioſity, 85.
  • Curtana, 108.
  • Cuſtom, 183. 186. 253.
  • [382]Cuſtoms, 183.
  • Cuthbert, 80. 348.
  • Cut-work, 185.
D.
  • Damps, 177.
  • Dance, of Death, 47. 354.
  • Dance, Hobby Horſe, 186.
  • Dancing, 264.
  • Danes, 12. 81. 82. 308.
  • Darcie, 355. 359.
  • Davenant, 62.
  • David K. of Scots, 70. 75.
  • Davie, 216.
  • Davis, 150.
  • Dawes, 124.
  • Day, 26. 33.
  • Days, 24. 303.
  • Deafneſs, 182. 372.
  • Death, 183. 195.
  • Declination, 28. 29.
  • Dedication, 248. 331.
  • Dee, Dr. 44. 53. 114. 138. 141. 142.
  • Deeds, 24. 25. 308. 359.
  • Defence, 9.
  • Deformations, 364.
  • Degradation, 125. 126.
  • Degree, 28.
  • Delaram, 287.
  • Demonologie, 214.
  • Derby, E. of, 74. 77. 143. 270. 277. 282. 285.
  • Dering, 350.
  • Deſcents, 230.
  • Detraction, 269.
  • Devil, 216. 219. 220. 224. 226. 227. 228. 371.
  • Devotion, 268.
  • Dewes, 360. 361.
  • Dials, 42. 184.
  • Dicing, 265.
  • Diconſon, 365.
  • Dido, 305.
  • Digby, 44. 57. 293. 297. 370.
  • Digges, 165.
  • Dignities, 311.
  • Diocleſian, 2. 4.
  • Dioptrics, 118.
  • Diſcretion, 265.
  • Diſeaſes, 35. 36.
  • Diſinheriting, 212. 213.
  • Diſputes, 81.
  • Divination, 220. 226.
  • Divines, 201.
  • Divinity, 113. 115.
  • Divinity, Writers, 60. 61.
  • Domeſday Book, 189. 253.
  • Dockenfield, 274.
  • Dockwray, 144.
  • Dodderidge, 190.
  • Dodſworth, 238.
  • Dole-penny, 183.
  • Dollars, 100. 102.
  • Donations, 186.
  • Dorſet, Ld. 291.
  • Douglaſs, E. 76.
  • Dove, 222.
  • Drake, Sir Fran. 148. 152. 153. 154. 156. 157. 286. 293. 370.
  • Drake, George, 151.
  • Drake, John, 156.
  • Drapery, 101. vide Cloth.
  • Drayton, 292.
  • Dreams, 220. 334.
  • Dreſs, 371.
  • Drugs. 146.
  • Drunkenneſs, 302.
  • Druids, 79. 305.
  • Drury, 361.
  • Druſius, 249.
  • Dubartas, 52.
  • Duddely, 26. 154. 158. 313.
  • Dugdale, 169.
  • Dukes, 107.
  • Dulwich Col. 62.
  • [383]Dumbneſs, 372.
  • Duncalf, 183.
  • Dunmow, 186.
  • Duns Scotus, 5.
  • Dunſtan, 81.
  • Dunwich, 361.
  • Durham, Bp. of, 76.
  • Durham, William of, 82.
  • Dwarfs, 370.
  • Dyars, 25.
  • Dyer, Sir Ed. 86.
E.
  • Earls, 107. 108. 235. 236.
  • Ears, 367.
  • Earth, 29. 177.
  • Earthquakes, 177. 297.
  • Eaſter, 80.
  • Eaſt Indies, 145. 146.
  • Ebbs, 32.
  • Eccleſiaſtical Supremacy, 11. 14. 18.
  • Echoes, 176. 225.
  • Eclipſes, 30. 337.
  • Ecliptic, 28.
  • Eden, Rich. 139. 147. 153.
  • Edgar, 81. 137. 268. 308. 309.
  • Edinburgh, 76.
  • Editha, 81. 356.
  • Edmund, K. 81.
  • Education, 61. 263.
  • Edward, Confeſſ. 12. 189. 356. 357.
  • Edward, St. 82. 84.
  • Edward, I. 17. 19. 20. 138. 329. 356.
  • Edward, II. 314. 318.
  • Edward, III. 68. 71. 73. 74. 75. 122. 125. 138. 314. 325. 350. 356.
  • Edward, IV. 63. 139. 146. 258. 296. 314. 315. 326.
  • Edward, VI. 139. 150. 187. 286. 346.
  • Edward, Pr. of Wales, 69. 74. 75. 327. 348. 350. 355.
  • Edwin, 80. 81.
  • Effigies, 173.
  • Effingham, Lady, 164.
  • Egbert, 306.
  • Eggs, 129. 180. 360.
  • Eglesfield, 314.
  • Eldeſt Sons, 212. 213.
  • Eldred, King, 296.
  • Eldred, Abbot, 84.
  • Eleanor, Queen, 356.
  • Elements, 24. 29. 291.
  • Elephants, 57. 161.
  • Elfled, 135.
  • Elgine, Queen, 81.
  • Elizabeth, Queen, 99. 140. 141. 144. 145. 146. 149. 157. 187. 194. 270. 274. 275. 292. 314. 315. 316. 320. 321. 338. 346. 356.
  • Elizabeth, Princeſs, 164.
  • Elmer, 82.
  • Eloquence, 52. 264.
  • Elphegus, 81.
  • Elyot, 89. 189. 199. 261.
  • Emma, 82.
  • Empericks, 35.
  • Emperors, 82.
  • Empſon, 355.
  • England, Contents of, 24. 33.
  • England, Charter of, 25.
  • England, Abbies of, ib.
  • England, Kings of, 105.
  • England, Arms of, 110.
  • England, Dimenſions of, 190.
  • England, Names of, 190, 200. 308.
  • England, Chancellor of, 190.
  • [384] England, Vale Royal of, 229.
  • England, Converſion of, 92. 94. 308. 346.
  • England, Taxes of, 253.
  • England, Conqueſt of, 308. 309.
  • England, Eccleſiaſ. State of, 347.
  • Engliſh Church, 80.
  • Engliſh Hiſtory, 20. 288.
  • Engliſh Divines, 59.
  • Engliſh Poets, 86.
  • Engliſh Tongue, 128, 129. 308. 309. 347.
  • Engliſh Voyages, 136.
  • Engliſh Policy, 138.
  • Engliſh Laws, 169. 251.
  • Engliſh Deſcent, 300. 302. 306.
  • Engliſh Families, 311.
  • Engliſhmen, 306. 309.
  • Envy, 195.
  • Epact, 32.
  • Epitaphs, 190. 197. 346.
  • Ephemerides, 117.
  • Equinoxial, 28.
  • Eraſmus, 44. 203. 209.
  • Erigena, 143.
  • Erkenwald, 80.
  • Eſcuage, 290. 293.
  • Eſdras, 161.
  • Eſquire, 191. 359.
  • Eſſeby, 350.
  • Eſſex, Earl of, 108. 142. 158. 241. 246. 272. 274.
  • Eſſex, County of, 359. 361.
  • Ethelburge, 80.
  • Ethelbert, 304. 307, 349. 350. 353.
  • Ethelwold, 81.
  • Etymologies, 252. 253. 310.
  • Eunuchs, 369.
  • Europe, 33.
  • European Languages, 162.
  • Eutyches, 162.
  • Evelyn, 118.
  • Evenus, 181.
  • Events, 336.
  • Examples, 95. 212.
  • Exchange, 97. 98. 101.
  • Exchequer, 173. 253. 254.
  • Executions, 276.
  • Exeter, Earl of, 165.
  • Exhalations, 335.
  • Exorciſts, 224.
  • Experience, 35. 36. 41.
  • Eye-biters, 217.
  • Eyes, 366.
  • Eyſt, Bp. of, 93. 94.
F.
  • Fabian, 146. 150.
  • Faces, 368.
  • Fairy Circles, 176.
  • Faithorne, 173. 365
  • Fairfax, 183. 238.
  • Familiars, 217. 227. 339.
  • Families, 311.
  • Fanſhaw, 48.
  • Farriery, 296.
  • Farthings, 101.
  • Faſcination, 226.
  • Faſhions, 366. 371.
  • Faſting, 182. 294.
  • Faſtolfe, 255. 260. 327. 362. 363.
  • Fathers, 202. 203. 204. 205. 208. 209. 249.
  • Faunt, 293.
  • Fauſtus, 47.
  • Feaſt, 25. 124. 125. 170. 171.
  • Feathers, 50. 85.
  • Feet, 369.
  • Fenton, 157.
  • Fern, 235.
  • Ferral, 215.
  • Feſtivals, 61. 95.
  • [385] Fiat, de, 167.
  • Fidelity, 268.
  • Field Mice, 179.
  • Filazer, 357.
  • Finch, 350.
  • Fines, 170. 254.
  • Finett, 163.
  • Finger Stocks, 185.
  • Fires, 14. 24. 197. 296. 350.
  • Firrs, 179. 305.
  • Fiſh, Sim. 195.
  • Fiſher, Bp. 206. 321. 357.
  • Fiſhery, 101.
  • Fiſhes, 180.
  • Fitzalan, 355.
  • Fitzharding, 329.
  • Fitzherbert, 297. 298.
  • Fitzrauf, 206.
  • Fitzwalter, 186. 359. 360.
  • Flatterers, 268.
  • Flax, 49.
  • Fleming, 89. 91. 170. 295. 314.
  • Fletcher, 141.
  • Floods, 32.
  • Florida, 152.
  • Flud, Dr. 115.
  • Fogge, 349.
  • Foix, E. of, 70. 76. 339.
  • Folc Right, 251.
  • Foliot, 294.
  • Folvile, 290.
  • Fools, 183. 372.
  • Foreheads, 366.
  • Foreſta, 190.
  • Fornication, 181.
  • Forreſt, 291.
  • Forteſcue, 170. 171. 246. 250.
  • Fortitude, 268.
  • Fortune, 194.
  • Founders, 344. vid. Oxford & Cambridge.
  • Fox, John, 5. 144.
  • Fox, Bp. 316. 321.
  • France, 304.
  • Frank Almoigne, 254.
  • Franks, 302.
  • Free Maſons, 183.
  • French, 76.
  • French, Tongue, 160. 170. 309.
  • Freſne, du, 72.
  • Frideſwide, 82.
  • Friendſhip, 255. 257. 258. 267.
  • Friers, 84. 347. 357.
  • Frith, 196.
  • Frobiſher, 148. 150.
  • Froiſſart, 67. 68. 69. &c. 76. 77. 122. 200. 339.
  • Fruits, 180.
  • Frying-Pans, 180.
  • Fulco, 85.
  • Fulk, Dr. 295.
  • Fuller, 157.
  • Funerals, 291.
  • Funeral Monuments, 344.
  • Furniture, 266.
G.
  • Gabor, 167.
  • Gale, Dr. 2.
  • Gallantry, 371.
  • Galliglaſſes, 301.
  • Gallileo, 53.
  • Game Cocks, 185.
  • Gardiner, Bp. 190.
  • Garments, 49.
  • Garter, Order of, 72. 74. 119. 122.
  • Gaſcoigne, 88. 91. 267. 295.
  • Gauls, 302. 308.
  • Gavel-kind, 253. 303.
  • Gaveſton, 359.
  • Genealogies, 289. 329.
  • Genethliacs, 221.
  • [386] Geffery, Archbiſhop, 85.
  • Gemma, 32.
  • Generation, 217. 218. 370.
  • Gentry, 230. 344.
  • Geography, 26. 28. 117. 118. 198. 199.
  • Geomety, 113. 117.
  • George, St. Order of, 74.
  • Gerard, 124. 147.
  • Germans, 301. 302.
  • Gerſon, 196.
  • Gervaſs, 176.
  • Giants, 297. 355. 370.
  • Gibbon, 213.
  • Gifford, 94.
  • Gilbert, 150. 151. 254.
  • Gilbertines, 84.
  • Gildas, 1. 201. 206.
  • Glamorgan, 135.
  • Glanvill, 116, 363.
  • Glaſs, 52.
  • Glouceſter, D. of, 26. 64. 67. 138. 360. 361.
  • Gluttony, 85. 195.
  • Glyndoure, 135. 136.
  • Goia, 55.
  • Golden Number, 200.
  • Golding, 73. 89. 90.
  • Godiva, 185. 235.
  • Gods, 227. 228.
  • Gondomar, 165. 166.
  • Gonvile, 319.
  • Gonzaga, 272.
  • Goodfellow, Rob. 218. 227.
  • Goodrick, St. 85.
  • Googe, 89.
  • Gooſe, 186.
  • Goths, 302.
  • Gourney, 143.
  • Governments, 252. 306.
  • Governor, 261.
  • Gower, 87. 346. 348. 349. 359. 360. 362.
  • Grammar, 113.
  • Granada, 24.
  • Grant, 198.
  • Grants, 102. 187. 296. 353.
  • Graunge, 89. 91.
  • Gray's-Inne, 171.
  • Greaves, 190.
  • Greek Tongue, 159.
  • Greenfield, 135.
  • Greenwood, 313.
  • Gregory, St. 94. 307.
  • Grenvile, 148. 151. 152.
  • Greſham, Sir T. 98.
  • Greſham, John, 144.
  • Gretſer, 202. 205.
  • Grimbald, 170.
  • Grimes, 374.
  • Grocery, 25.
  • Groſthead, 294.
  • Guddeſden, 278.
  • Guiana, 155.
  • Guid Law, 307.
  • Guilford, 349.
  • Guinea, 146. 147. 148.
  • Guttenburg, 46.
H.
  • Hacket, 298. 346.
  • Hair, 49. 366. 370.
  • Hakewill, 189. 314.
  • Hakluyt, 136.
  • Hamel, 304.
  • Hanaper Books, 187.
  • Hands, 368. 372.
  • Hanging, 182.
  • Harding, 83.
  • Hare, Kts. of the, 74.
  • Harington, 354.
  • Hariot, 152. 155. 245.
  • Harley, 188.
  • Harold, 12. 304. 308. 360.
  • Harp, 81.
  • Harpyngham, 76. 363.
  • Harvey, 86, 89. 92. 362. 369.
  • [387] Haſelrig, 296.
  • Haſtings, 290. 295.
  • Hatton, 273.
  • Hawking, 264.
  • Hawkins, 147. 153. 154. 155. 156.
  • Hawkwood, 143. 311. 359.
  • Hay, 363.
  • Haynault, Sir J. 69. 72.
  • Head, 366. 372.
  • Hearing, 372.
  • Hearne, 23. 188. 199. 239.
  • Heart, faithful, 284.
  • Heath, 173.
  • Hebrew Tongue, 160.
  • Hegeſias, 92.
  • Heirs, 211. 212. 297.
  • Helena, 142.
  • Hell, 30.
  • Helmont, 56.
  • Hemp, 49. 184.
  • Hengeſt, 306.
  • Hengham, 353.
  • Hennage, 271.
  • Henrietta, Queen, 167.
  • Henry I. K. 83. 87. 263.
  • Henry II. 82. 85. 143.
  • Henry III. 14. 16. 17. 18. 135. 293. 356.
  • Henry IV. 68. 138. 144. 266. 325. 348.
  • Henry V. 138. 266. 325. 356.
  • Henry VI. 25. 26. 138. 315. 320. 326.
  • Henry VII. 125. 149. 264. 320. 324. 325. 356.
  • Henry VIII. 67. 139. 144. 187. 262. 316. 321. 323. 325. 346. 355. 357.
  • Heptarchy, 307.
  • Heralds, 190. 360.
  • Herbert, 83.
  • Hereſies, 80.
  • Hereticks, 195.
  • Herrings, 25.
  • Hermaphrodites, 369.
  • Hermits, 347.
  • Hertfordſhire, 358.
  • Heyla, 82.
  • Hickifrick, 363.
  • Higham, 362.
  • Hildebrand, 82.
  • Hildeforth, 352.
  • Hildegard, 83.
  • Hills, 290.
  • Hiſtory, 20. 269.
  • Hiſtorians, 61. 73. 85.
  • Hiſtoriographer, 120. 121.
  • Hobard, 363.
  • Hobgoblins, 220. 227.
  • Hogs, 185.
  • Holbrook, 363.
  • Holland, Joſ. 190. Dr. Phil. 46. John, 279. Sir John 76. 355. Rich. 274.
  • Hollands, 49.
  • Hollar, 173.
  • Hollock, 281.
  • Holy Land, 143. 295.
  • Hondius, 288. 293. 330.
  • Honorius, 49.
  • Honour, 120. 255. 259.
  • Hop Garden, 214.
  • Hopkinſon, 267.
  • Horns, 181. 366.
  • Horizon, 28. 32.
  • Horſa, 306, 351.
  • Horſes, 57. 223. 264. 296.
  • Horſe Stealers, 223.
  • Hours, 42.
  • Howard, 137. 142. 148. 155. 331. 357. 362. 363.
  • Howel, 163.
  • Howel Dha, 135.
  • Howſon, 249.
  • Hubertus, 205.
  • Hudgin, 227.
  • Hugh, Bp. 85.
  • [388] Humphrey, Duke, 239. 298. 326. 354. 358.
  • Hunnis, 88. 91.
  • Hunſdon, 154. 157.
  • Hunting, 264.
  • Huſſey, 101.
  • Hyde, 239.
  • Hydraulics, 44. 45. 51.
  • Hydrography, 26. 114.
I.
  • Jack of Hilton, 186.
  • Jacob's Staff, 31.
  • James IV. of Scotland, 355.
  • James I. of Eng. 96. 164. 177. 214. 351.
  • James II. 175.
  • James, Tho. 202. 239.
  • Jane, Queen, 287.
  • Janus, 294.
  • Japan, 147.
  • Java, 156.
  • Iceni, 185.
  • Idol, Speaking, 81.
  • Idols, Saxon, 303.
  • Idolaters, 161.
  • Idolatry, 304.
  • Jealouſy, 297.
  • Jeffery, 370.
  • Jenkinſon, 144.
  • Jernegan, 362.
  • Jeruſalem, 143. 295.
  • Jewel, Bp. 204.
  • Jewels, 164.
  • Jews, 61. 161. 354.
  • Images, 44. 80. 195. 222.
  • Imitations, 182.
  • Impatience, 268.
  • Impreſſes, 292.
  • Improvements, 116.
  • Ina, 135.
  • Inchequine, 369.
  • Incubus, 217.
  • Indices Expurg. 205.
  • Indulgences, 347.
  • Ingham, 362.
  • Ingratitude, 267.
  • Ingulphus, 143.
  • Inheritances, 211:
  • Ink, 25.
  • Innocent, Pope, 15.
  • Inns of Court, 170. 190.
  • Inoioſa, 166.
  • Inſcriptions, 160. 170. 173. 234. 289. 292. 345. 347.
  • Inſects, 180.
  • Inſtallation, 123.
  • Inventions, 302.
  • Inveſtiture, 123.
  • Joan, Pope, 81. Queen, 275. 276.
  • Jofrancus, 32.
  • John, King of Eng. 14. 15. 17. 18. 143. 292. 360.
  • John, K. of France, 74. 75.
  • John of Gaunt, 186.
  • John, Oliver St. 135.
  • Johnſon, 62 355.
  • Jonas, Arn. 142.
  • Jones, 189. 190. 249.
  • Joſippus, 249.
  • Joſſeline, 2.
  • Joyner's Work, 184.
  • Ireland, Deſcription of, 33. Duke of, 76. Kings of, 77. Wars of, 99.
  • Iriſh Long-Tails, 369.
  • Iron, 25.
  • Iron Works, 184.
  • Iſabella, Queen, 72. 76. 77.
  • Iſeland, 142.
  • Iſland, 305.
  • Iſlip, Sim. 47. 348. 356.
  • Iſraelites, 161.
  • Italian Language, 160.
  • Ives, St. 82.
  • Jubilée, 347.
  • Judd, 351.
  • [389]Judges, 169. 173.
  • Jugglers, 223. 339.
  • Juites, 306.
  • Juſtice, 268. Courts of, 169.
  • Juſtices, Liſt of, 276.
K.
  • Katharine, Queen, 356. 357.
  • Keble, 293.
  • Kelliſon, 94.
  • Kemp, 59, 348.
  • Kenred, 83.
  • Kent, 288. 309. 352.
  • Kent, Earl of, 74.
  • Kentiſh Long Tails, 80. 350. 369.
  • Kercher, 118.
  • Keymis, 155.
  • Killegrew, 139.
  • King, Dan. 229.
  • Kings, 11. 12. 14. 80. 96. 105. 106. 138. 231. 276. 307. 308. 346. 357.
  • King's Evil, 166. 177.
  • Kings of Arms, 360.
  • Kingsfield, 223.
  • Kingſton, 343.
  • Knevet, 249. 363.
  • Knighthood, 120. 121. 190. 191. 283.
  • Knights of the Garter, 119. 298. 323. 329. 330.
  • Knights of the Round Table, 122. 125. 192.
  • Knights Hoſpitaliers, 138. 292.
  • Knights Templars, 296. 356.
  • Knight's Fee, 109. 297.
  • Knight's Service, 290.
  • Knighton, 239. 294.
  • Knolles, 356.
  • Knowledge, 116.
L.
  • Lacy, 353.
  • Lake, Sir Tho. 189. 247.
  • Lambard, 138. 171. 288.
  • Lambert, 111.
  • Lancaſhire, 277.
  • Lancaſter, Duke of, 72. 75. 76. 77. 319. 353. 360.
  • Lancaſter, Jam. 156.
  • Lands, 210. 289.
  • Lane, Hen. 140. 141. Ralph, 152. Tho. 175. John, 183. 185.
  • Lanfranc, 82. 83. 348.
  • Langbain, 188. 190.
  • Langham, 356.
  • Langley, 27.
  • Langton, 293. 348.
  • Languages, 113. 129. 133. 159. 162. 199. 238. 301. 302. 309. 310.
  • Lathom, 285.
  • Latitude, 30. 155.
  • Laud, 190.
  • Law Caſes, 289. Sutes, 101. 104.Terms, 252. 253. Salic, 252.
  • Laws, 6. 10. 25. 169. 189. 211. 251.
  • Layton, 357.
  • Learning, 111. 116. 263.
  • Leaſes, 187.
  • Leder, 197.
  • Lee, 236.
  • Legerdemain, 222.
  • Legs, 369.
  • Leiceſter, Earl of, 98. 144. 145. 271. 279. 280. 281. 283. 286. 294. 313.
  • Leiceſterſhire, 287. 290.
  • Leiden, John, 370.
  • Leigh, 190. 289.
  • Leir, 293.
  • Leland, 291. 301. 361.
  • Leofric, 185. 235.
  • Leporius, 80.
  • [390]Leproſy, 291.
  • Leſpagnol, Dr. 92.
  • Leſtrange, 362.
  • Letchery, 82. 85.
  • Letters, 25. 26. 197. 245. 270. 346. 357.
  • Letters, initial, 64. 161.
  • Levant Trade, 144. 146.
  • Leveller, 111.
  • Lewis, 22.
  • Lewkner, 163. 167.
  • Ley, 189. 190.
  • Lhewelyn, 135.
  • Lhoegr, 200.
  • Lhuyd, 73. 131. 132. 198.
  • Liberality, 267.
  • Liberties, 353.
  • Librarians, 45. 242. 243. 247. 373.
  • Library, Theological, 59.
  • Library, at Oxford, 190. 208. 239. 298. 312.
  • Library, Vatican, 209.
  • Licanthropia, 218.
  • Lightning, 176.
  • Likeneſs, 36. 183.
  • Lilly, 90. 354.
  • Limning, 47.
  • Linacre, 264. 354.
  • Lincoln's-Inn, 171.
  • Lindley, 287. 294.
  • Linum Vivum, 49.
  • Lioba, 94.
  • Lion, 51.
  • Life, 21.
  • Linne, 43.
  • Linne, Nicholas of, 138.
  • Linnen, 49.
  • Linſchoten, 148.
  • Lips, 367.
  • Liquors, 25.
  • Liſle, Lord, 163.
  • Litchfield, 185.
  • Liturgies, 162.
  • Lives, 93. 119. 121.
  • Loadſtone, 56. 178.
  • Lock, Mat. 141. 144. John 144. 147. William, 144.
  • Loe, Kath. 218.
  • Logarithms, 117.
  • Loggan, 173.
  • Logick, 113. 115.
  • London, 22. 23. 138, 307. 353.
  • London Bridge, 25. Biſhop of, 361.
  • Longcamp, W. 85.
  • Longing, 181. 183.
  • Longitude, 29. 31. 155
  • Longland, 347.
  • Looking Glaſs, 54.
  • Lords, 108.
  • Lotteries, 221.
  • Lotherwits, 181.
  • Low Countries, 271. 281.
  • Lucie, 352.
  • Lucius, 11. 355.
  • Ludgate, 307.
  • Lupus, Hugh, 235.
  • Luſt, 22.
  • Luther, 5. 195. 220.
  • Lydgate, John, 88. 121. 361.
  • Lynſey, Sir Jam. 76.
M.
  • Madan, 306.
  • Madera, 146.
  • Madoc, 135. 149.
  • Maddox, 254.
  • Madmen, 352.
  • Madre de Dios, 149.
  • Magic, 222.
  • Magiſtrates, 263.
  • Maglocune, 3.
  • Magna Charta, 25.
  • Magnanimity, 268.
  • Magnus, St. 25. 26.
  • [391] Magus, Sim. 218.
  • Mahumetans, 160.
  • Maidens, 21.
  • Majeſty, 266.
  • Malborne, 225.
  • Malcolm, 84.
  • Malory, 293. 297.
  • Malverne, 347.
  • Malynes, 96. 97.
  • Man, Iſle of, 230. 237. 278. 279.
  • Mandeville, 25. 96. 358. 359. 366.
  • Manfredus, 342.
  • Manny, Sir Walt. 74. 326. 356.
  • Manſell, 349.
  • Manufactures, 102.
  • Manwood, 349.
  • Manuſcripts, 21. 105. 120. 187. 189. 208. 209. 254. 267. 270. 323. 343.
  • Maps, 28. 31. 149. 157. 175. 232. 288. 290. 293.
  • Marcian, St. 278.
  • Mareth, 165.
  • Margaret, Queen, 320. 358.
  • Margaret, Lady, 320. 321. 356.
  • Maronites, 162.
  • Marqueſſe, 107.
  • Marriage, 22. 61. 79. 80. 81. 82. 83. 84. 94. 183. 186. 213. 296.
  • Marſhall, 356.
  • Mary, Virgin, 357. 363.
  • Mary, Queen, 139. 315. 321. 356.
  • Mary, Abbeſs, 84.
  • Maſon, 365.
  • Maſſacre, 307.
  • Maſſes, 82.
  • Maſs-Mongers, 80.
  • Mathematicks, 113. 117.
  • Maurice, Count, 281.
  • May, 209.
  • May-Day, 306.
  • Mayors, 23.
  • Maximus, 2.
  • Meaſuring, 24. 29. 139. 146.
  • Mecca, 145.
  • Medal, 267.
  • Medicine-Mongers, 35.
  • Meekneſs, 21.
  • Melancholy, 216.
  • Melanchton, 342. 346.
  • Meliader, 70.
  • Men, 118. 181. 364.
  • Men, Artificial, 370.
  • Mercator, Ger. 141.
  • Merchants, 25. 139. 352.
  • Mercia, 231. 237.
  • Mercy, 267.
  • Meridian, 28. 30.
  • Merlin, 80. 133. 135. 218. 343.
  • Merton, 313. 351.
  • Metius, 43.
  • Mexico, 152. 153. 154.
  • Microſcope, 53. 118.
  • Middleton, 63.
  • Middleſex, 361.
  • Mildmay, 167. 321.
  • Milk, 182.
  • Mills, 44. 184.
  • Milton, 2.
  • Miracles, 80. 81. 94. 341. 358.
  • Mirandula, 195.
  • Miſcellanies, 270.
  • Moderns, 117.
  • Modeſty, 265.
  • Moluccas, 150. 156.
  • Molyneux, 349.
  • Monarchy, 250.
  • Monaſteries, 13. 80. 95. 344.
  • [392]Money, 98. 103. 146. 189.
  • Montgomery, 328.
  • Monks, 12. 24. 80. 81. 82. 83. 84. 85.
  • Monmouth, Geff. 298.
  • Monopoly, 101. 102.
  • Monro, 182.
  • Monſoons, 146.
  • Monſters, 370.
  • Montagu, 329. 374.
  • Montaigne, 73.
  • Montanus, 205.
  • Months, 303.
  • Monuments, 344. 346.
  • Moon, 30. 31. 32. 53. 176.
  • More, Sir T. 194. 218. 249. 252. 357.
  • Morocco, 147.
  • Morſes, 151.
  • Mortimer, Earl, 74. 135. 362.
  • Morton, 25. 348.
  • Morwin, 190.
  • Moſaic Work, 48.
  • Moſely, 183.
  • Moſs-Wood, 179.
  • Mottos, 190.
  • Mountains, 161.
  • Mountjoy, 246.
  • Mouths, 367.
  • Mowbray, 143. 358. 360. 362.
  • Munday, Ant. 89.
  • Moſcovy, 139.
  • Muſes, 269.
  • Muſick, 50. 61. 82. 113. 263.
  • Muſick, Meetings, 186.
N.
  • Nails, 368.
  • Names, 72. 182. 183. 310. 311.
  • Namure, Sir Rob. 69.
  • Napier's Bones, 117.
  • Nations, 301.
  • Natural Hiſt. 118.
  • Naunton, 362.
  • Navarre, Q. of, 275.
  • Navel, 369.
  • Navigation, 26. 136.
  • Navy, 275.
  • Neal, 296.
  • Necham, 358.
  • Neck, 368.
  • Negatives, 253.
  • Neſtorians, 161.
  • Nevill, 75. 326. 354. 360
  • Newbery, John, 146.
  • Newfoundland, 150.
  • Newnam, 212.
  • New-Year's-Gift, 284. 286.
  • Nicholas, Pope, 23. 24. 82.
  • Nicholſon, 21. 22. 23. 73. 174. 316.
  • Nigellus, 84.
  • Nobles, 76. 105. 106.
  • Nobility, 107. 263. 266. 344.
  • Noel, 292.
  • Norden, 233. 288.
  • Norfolk, 362. Duke of, 346. 362. 363.
  • Normans, 12. 302. 308.
  • Norrington, 219.
  • Norris, 175. 271. 272. 270. 280.
  • North, Ld. 273.
  • Northampton, E. of, 331.
  • Northburie, 279.
  • North-Eaſt Paſſage, 141. 142.
  • North-Weſt Paſſage, 150.
  • Northumberland, E. of, 75.
  • Norwich, Map of, 28. Bp. of, 75. Sir William of, 84. Dioceſſe of, 361.
  • Noſes, 366.
  • Nourſe, 190.
  • [393] Nova Hiſpania, 153.
  • Novaunt, Bp. 85.
  • Nubrigenſis, 335.
  • Numerals, 72.
  • Nuns, 12. 13. 84. 347. 357. 358.
  • Nunnery, 82. 359.
O.
  • Oaks, 179. 182.
  • Oaths, 24.
  • Occham, W. 5. 206.
  • Ocland, Chriſt. 86.
  • Octher, 137.
  • Odingſells, 297.
  • Odo, Abp. 81.
  • Odoricus, 143.
  • Odger, Bp. 94.
  • Odulphus, 81.
  • Offa, 189. 346. 358.
  • Offering, 23. 81.
  • Offices, 311. 357. 361. 362.
  • Offley, 179.
  • Oglethorp, 330.
  • Okeover, 180.
  • Old Age, 183. 255.
  • Oldham, 316.
  • Oldſworth, 190.
  • Onley, 285.
  • Opticks, 113. 117. 118.
  • Oracles, 216. 220. 335.
  • Orange, Pr. of, 224. 370.
  • Ordeal, 170. 303.
  • Orders of Knighthood, 121. 323. 330.
  • Orders Religious, 84. 293. 347.
  • Ordination, 61.
  • Orenoque, 155.
  • Ores, 178.
  • Organs, 44. 50. 54.
  • Ortelius, 199.
  • Orthography, 64.
  • Orthon, 339.
  • Oſalineskie, 166.
  • Osborne, 105. 145.
  • Oſith, St. 80.
  • Oſmond, Bp. 83.
  • Oſwald, 81.
  • Otters, 185.
  • Outlawries, 170.
  • Owen, of Wales, 75. 136.
  • Owen, Thomas, 212. Mrs. 249. Margaret, 366.
  • Oxford, 80. 190. Univerſity of, 189. 312. Benefactors of, 313. Students of, 318. Earl of, 88. 110. 198.
  • Oxgang, 109.
  • Oxnam, John, 154.
  • Oyl, 95. 151.
P.
  • Paget, 248.
  • Painting, 47. 263.
  • Palatine, Count, 164.
  • Palatine, County, 231.
  • Palumbus, 82.
  • Papacy, 80. 82.
  • Paper, 46.
  • Paracelſus, 370.
  • Paradiſe, 30.
  • Parallels, 30.
  • Pardons, 24. 347.
  • Parents, 212. 213.
  • Pariſhes, 347.
  • Parker, 135. 250. 296.
  • Parkhurſt, 151.
  • Parmenius, 151.
  • Paſſports, 145.
  • Paſture, 177.
  • Patents, 187. 253.
  • Pater Noſter, 21.
  • Patience, 21. 268.
  • Patriarchs, 162.
  • Patrick, St. 80.
  • Pauls, St. 353. 354.
  • [394]Pawn-Houſes, 104.
  • Pearſon, 363.
  • Peckham, Abp. 135. 348.
  • Peckham, Sir Geo. 151.
  • Pedigrees, 267.
  • Pedlers, 352.
  • Peireskius, 43. 44. 48. 53.
  • Pelagius, 80. 142.
  • Pembroke, Earl of, 75. 271. 317. 319. 356.
  • Pens, 46.
  • Pennance, 80. 81.
  • Penſherſt, 351.
  • Penſions, 253.
  • Pepper, 100.
  • Percy, 76.
  • Pern, 189.
  • Perpetuities, 297.
  • Perrot, 272.
  • Perry, 182.
  • Perſia, 140.
  • Perſian Tongue, 302.
  • Perſpective, 223.
  • Perukes, 366.
  • Peter, St. 6.
  • Peter Pence, 85. 351.
  • Peter, King, 75.
  • Peter, Sir Wm. 314. 315.
  • Petit, 201.
  • Pews, 361.
  • Phaer, Dr. 88. 90.
  • Philip, K. of Fran. 74.
  • Phillippa, Queen, 69. 74. 356.
  • Philoſophers, 63.
  • Philoſophy, 83. 113. 114. 115. 116.
  • Philpot, 349.
  • Philtres, 181. 219.
  • Phyſick, 34.
  • Phyſiognomy, 372.
  • Picts, 2. 200. 306.
  • Pictures, 48. 185. 222.
  • Pigeon, 222. 350.
  • Pigmies, 370.
  • Pilgrims, 80.
  • Pilgrimages, 13. 94. 145. 195. 347. 363.
  • Pious Works, 182.
  • Piper, 304.
  • Pirates, 100.
  • Placability, 266.
  • Planets, 28.
  • Plantagenet, 171. 359. 360.
  • Plantin, 47.
  • Plants, 118. 178. 184.
  • Plate, 99. 103.
  • Play-Houſes, 62.
  • Plays, 248.
  • Plot, Dr. 175. 186.
  • Ploughman, Piers, 88. 347.
  • Pneumatics, 44. 45.
  • Poetry, 86. 87. &c. 194. 264.
  • Pointing, 64. 191.
  • Poiſons, 85. 218.
  • Poitiers, Battle of, 74.
  • Pole, Cardinal, 315.
  • De la Pole, 362.
  • Poles, 28.
  • Polybius, 30.
  • Polygamy, 61.
  • Pope, Sir Tho. 316.
  • Popes, 12. 13. 19, 82. 346.
  • La Popeliniere, 72.
  • Popham, 155.
  • Porphiry, 2. 334. 342.
  • Porta, 52. 53.
  • Portugueſe, 146. 148.
  • Poſſevine, 202.
  • Poſt Fines, 187.
  • Potters, 177.
  • Poultney, 295. 297. 354.
  • Poultry, 352. 354.
  • Pourtraits, 329. 350. 361. 363.
  • Poverty, 238.
  • Powell, 42. 131.
  • [395]Power, 5.
  • Powlet, 316.
  • Powys, 135.
  • Precedence, 163. 166
  • Prelates, 82. 83.
  • Premonſtratenſes, 84.
  • Presbyterians, 61.
  • Preſcot, 285.
  • Preſcription, 9.
  • Preſton, Capt. 154.
  • Price, Hugh, 316.
  • Pride, 195.
  • Prieſts, 12. 24. 79. 80. 81: 82. 83. 84. 85. 218. 220.
  • Primacy, 350.
  • Primogeniture, 211.
  • Prince, 107.
  • Printing, 46. 63. 118. 191. 209.
  • Prints, Wooden, 26. &c. 134. 365.
  • Prints, Engrav'd, 173. 176. 230.
  • Prior, 25.
  • Priſe, Sir John, 4. 133.
  • Privileges, 9. 148. 231.
  • Privities, 369.
  • Proceſſions, 124. 125.
  • Proclus, 29.
  • Promiſes, 268.
  • Promotion, 268.
  • Prophecies, 220. 331. 333. 343.
  • Prophets, 118. 332. 342.
  • Proſodia, 86. 92.
  • Proxies, 123.
  • Prynne, 11. 14. 17. 20.
  • Punick Language, 160.
  • Purbeck, Lady, 168.
  • Purgatory, 80. 82.
  • Putherbeus, 206.
  • Pynſon, Rich. 67. 68.
  • Pythoniſts, 219.
Q.
  • Quacks, 35. 37.
  • Quadt, 167.
  • Quakers, 61.
  • Quarries, 178.
  • Queen, 252. 253.
  • Queenborough Caſtle, 350.
  • Quicken Tree, 179.
  • Quintin, St. 135.
  • Quivira, 152.
R.
  • Raby, Ld. 187.
  • Radcliffes, 360.
  • Radegund, 320.
  • Ralegh, 142. 148. 149. 151. 152. 155. 165. 169. 172. 246. 286 364. 366.
  • Ralph, Abp. 83.
  • Rain, 177.
  • Ramea, 151.
  • Ramſey, Abbey, 83. 84.
  • Ramuſio, 141. 149.
  • Randolf, 83.
  • Raſtal, 175. 194.
  • Rats, 304.
  • Rates, 25.
  • Read, 45. 144.
  • Readers, 332.
  • Real Character, 113.
  • Record, Dr. 29.
  • Records, 15. 18. 20.
  • Redſhanks, 200.
  • Reformation, 346.
  • Regalia, 106.
  • Religions, 159.
  • Reliques, 94. 95. 195.
  • Repulſes, 268.
  • Reſumption, 253.
  • Revelations, 85.
  • Revenue, 25. 253. 254. 283.
  • Rewards, 269.
  • Reynolds, 246.
  • [396] Rhodes, 144.
  • Richard, St. 94.
  • Richard I. King, 11. 12. 23. 85. 143. 169. 360.
  • Richard II. 70. 71. 75. 76. 77. 138. 325. 356.
  • Richard III. 193. 195. 291. 326. 329.
  • Riches, 95.
  • Rights, 211.
  • Rings, 43. 44. 293.
  • Ripley, 234.
  • Rives, Dr. 177.
  • Rivers, Earl, 63. 64. 326. 328.
  • Roe, Sir Tho. 122. 123.
  • Robert, St. 84.
  • Robert, D. of Normandy, 82.
  • Robin Hood, 227.
  • Rocheſter, 350.
  • Rollo, 308.
  • Rolls, Maſter of, 173.
  • Roman Tongue, 159. 160.
  • Roman Government, 306.
  • Romances, 309.
  • Romans, 2. 11.
  • Rome-Scot, 81. 82. 347.
  • Rood of Grace, 219.
  • Roper, 197. 249. 352.
  • Rotheram, Tho. 315.
  • Roy, Sir Raynold, 76.
  • Royal Society, 61. 116. 118.
  • Rozencrantz, 167.
  • Rubens, 48.
  • Rupert, Prince, 184.
  • Ruſh, Friar, 227.
  • Ruſſel, 272.
  • Ruſſia, 139. 140. 141.
  • Ruthal, 356.
  • Ruttiers, 155. 156.
  • Rygeway, 182.
  • Rymer, 72.
S
  • Sabbath 61.
  • Sackvile, 351.
  • Sacrament, 84 196.
  • Sacrifices, 221.
  • Sacro-boſco, 29.
  • Sadlier, 359.
  • Sailing, 32. 54.
  • Saints, 79. 80. 195. 349. 350.
  • Salisbury, Counteſs of, 74.
  • Salisbury, Earls of, 75. 326. 329.
  • Salt, 231. 234.
  • Salusburie, John, 85. 284. 352.
  • Samothites, 79.
  • Sanctorius, 53.
  • Sanctuary, 82. 95. 347. 357.
  • Sandys, 249.
  • Saracens, 25. 76. 159.
  • Sarmiento, 148. 165.
  • Satyrs, 370.
  • Sauvage, Denis, 73.
  • Savanorola, 52. 341.
  • Savile, 209. 247. 248. 313. 351.
  • Saxons, 12. 80. 251.
  • Saxons, Language, 252. 253. 300. 301. 302. 304. 306. 312.
  • Saxton, 288.
  • Sayings of Philoſophers, 63,
  • Scarborough, 139.
  • Schiſmatics, 346.
  • Schiſms, 61.
  • School Divinity, 113.
  • Schoolmaſters, 264.
  • Schoolmen, 83. 84.
  • Schools, 112.
  • Science, 269.
  • Scot, Reginald, 213. 371.
  • Scot, Tho. 315.
  • Scotland, 33. 85. 200.
  • Scots, 1. 74. 75. 76. 306.
  • Scots, Queen of, 248. 274. 275. 276. 285.
  • [397]Scriptures, 61. 196. 202. 341.
  • Sea, 138. 139. 161.
  • Seaſons, 24. 29.
  • Seaxes, 301. 307.
  • Sectuaries, 61. 161.
  • Selden, 72. 170.
  • Seraglio, 146.
  • Serjeants, 170. 173.
  • Serjeanty, 293.
  • Sermons, 201.
  • Seville, 158.
  • Sevenoke, 352.
  • Sewar, 359.
  • Seymore, 287.
  • Shadows, 30.
  • Shapes, 372.
  • Sheffelde, 129.
  • Shelton, 363.
  • Sheriffs, 23. 173. 298.
  • Sheringham, 311.
  • Shipping, 54. 137. 138. 158. 277.
  • Shirley, 155. 167.
  • Shires, 189. 296. 308.
  • Shoes, 372.
  • Shoulders, 368.
  • Showers, 176.
  • Shrewsbury, E. of, 83. 175.
  • Shooting, 184.
  • Short Hand, 45.
  • Shriving, 25.
  • Sidney, Lady Frances, 321. Sir Philip, 86. 131. 271. 273. 351. Sir Henry, 132. 133. Sir Robert, 246.
  • Sigebert, 318.
  • Signs, 336.
  • Signior, Grand, 146.
  • Silence, 65.
  • Silk, 48.
  • Simons, 215. 368.
  • Simony, 83. 347.
  • Sin, 7. 22.
  • Skelton, 88. 125. 130.
  • Skipwith, 292.
  • Skrymſher, 180.
  • Slavonic Tongue, 160.
  • Sleepers, 182. 297.
  • Sleidan, 6. 73. 200.
  • Sloth, 195.
  • Smith, W. 229. 230. 315. Dr. Tho. 190. Sir Tho. 249.
  • Snakes, 295.
  • Soap, 25.
  • Sobize, 166. 168.
  • Socrates, 65.
  • Sodomy, 83. 85. 369.
  • Solyman, 144.
  • Somner, 312.
  • Somerſet, Earl of, 164. Duke of, 187. 354.
  • Somervile, 186.
  • Sommers, 154.
  • Sophy, 141.
  • Soul, 22. 52. 190. 371.
  • Sounds, 176.
  • South Sea, 157.
  • Southworth, 280.
  • Spain, 283.
  • Spaniards, 142. 148. 149. 153. 154.
  • Spaniſh Tongue, 160.
  • Species, 365.
  • Speech, 291. 372.
  • Speede, 233. 288.
  • Spells, 39.
  • Spelman, 171. 362. 364.
  • Spenſer, Sir Hugh, 72. 73. Edm. 51. 86. 87. 90.
  • Spheres, 28. 29. 43.
  • Spicery, 25.
  • Spinning, 48.
  • Spirits, 84. 224. 227. 228. 339.
  • Spitting, 183.
  • Spots, 24.
  • Sprats, 25.
  • [398]Springs, 177.
  • Stafford, 76. 321. 348. 351. 355.
  • Staffordſhire, 175.
  • Stage, 62.
  • Stanley, 272. 276. 278. 285. 327.
  • Staple, 352.
  • Stapuldon, 313. 317.
  • Stars, 28. 56. 336. 341.
  • Stature, 182. 370.
  • Stepdames, 212.
  • Stephen, K. 84. 350.
  • Stigandus, 82.
  • Stiklebow, 219.
  • Stone, 285.
  • Stone-Eater, 368.
  • Stones, 177.
  • Stradling, 135.
  • Streights, 156. 157.
  • Strength, 182.
  • Stuarts, 135. 200.
  • Stubbes, 117.
  • Students, 243. 318. 322.
  • Stukeley, 147.
  • Subſcription, 187.
  • Succeſſion, 211.
  • Succubus, 218.
  • Sudbury, 348. 362.
  • Sufficiency, 38.
  • Suffolk, E. of, 165.
  • Suliard, 86. 362.
  • Sultan, 24. 143.
  • Sun, 28. 32. 176.
  • Sun-Dials, 42.
  • Supremacy, 346. 357.
  • Surnames, 310. 311.
  • Surgeons, 38.
  • Surrey, 283.
  • Surrey, Earl of, 88. 91.
  • Sutton, 315.
  • Swanus, 82.
  • Sweicker, Tho. 45.
  • Swimming, 264.
  • Sword, 108. 292.
  • Sylvanus, 217.
  • Sylveſter, Pope, 81.
  • Symmetry, 370.
  • Syriac, 160.
  • Synod, 82. 83.
T.
  • Tails, 369.
  • Tablot, 189. 291. 297. 328. 330. 354. 363.
  • Talieſſin, 133.
  • Taliſmanics, 45.
  • Tartars, 161.
  • Tartary, 138. 143.
  • Tate, 34. 189. 190.
  • Taxes, 253.
  • Tecla, St. 94.
  • Teeth, 36. 367.
  • Teleſcopes, 53. 117. 118.
  • Temple, 170. 296. 356.
  • Temporalities, 7. 8. 25.
  • Temptation, 21.
  • Tenants, 24. 290. 293.
  • Tenures, 289. 290.
  • Teonville, Jean de, 64.
  • Terms, 170. 190.
  • Teſtament, New, 61. 196.
  • Teutonic, 300. 309.
  • Thanes, 108. 109.
  • Theology, 113. 115.
  • Thermometer, 53. 118.
  • Theurgy, 225.
  • Thompſon, 374.
  • Thoughts, 65.
  • Thorne, Rob. 139. 150. 156.
  • Thorne, Nicholas, 153.
  • Thorp, 355. 362.
  • Thunder, 176.
  • Thurſtinus, 82.
  • Thynne, Fran. 189. 190.
  • Tides, 32.
  • Tiles, 184.
  • Tileſon, 105.
  • [399] Tilney, Sir Fred. 143. 362.
  • Time, 42. 303.
  • Tims, Tho. 43.
  • Tin, 102.
  • Tiptoft, 258. 260.
  • Title-Pages, 63.
  • Titles of Honour, 106. 253. 311. 355.
  • Titles of Right, 289.
  • Tippet Men, 83.
  • Tobacco, 102. 103.
  • Tongues, 367.
  • Tonnage, 24.
  • Tonſtal, 1.
  • Topiary Works, 184.
  • Toſtius, Earl, 83.
  • Tournaments, 189.
  • Towns, 190.
  • Trade, 96. 100. 138.
  • Tradeſcant, 59.
  • Transformations, 218. 226. 364. 369.
  • Tranſlations, 129.
  • Tranſmigration, 371.
  • Tranſportation, 304. 335.
  • Tranſubſtantiation, 371.
  • Travels, 136.
  • Trees, 23. 24. 52. 179. 184. 235.
  • Trial, 170.
  • Tribute, 9.
  • Trinidad, 154.
  • Tripoly, 145.
  • Trivet, 76.
  • Trojans, 305.
  • Tropics, 29.
  • Troutbeck, 234.
  • Truce, 75. 77.
  • Tryvylyan, 76.
  • Tuiſco, 301. 312.
  • Tundalus, 84.
  • Turbevile, 140.
  • Turianus, 44.
  • Turkiſh Language, 160.
  • Turks, 42. 61. 144.
  • Turnham, 351.
  • Tuſſer, 88. 90.
  • Tutbury, 186.
  • Tutors, 263.
  • Twyne, 88. 198. 199.
  • Tyler, Wat. 75. 355. 361.
  • Tyndale, 195. 196.
  • Tyrell, 360.
  • Tyrone, Earl of, 99.
  • Tyſdale, 78. 317.
V.
  • Valence, W. de, 356.
  • Valereſſo, 166.
  • Vale Royal, 231.
  • Vain-glory, 22.
  • Van Drebble, 43. 44. 53.
  • Vandyck, 48.
  • Van Meteran, 142.
  • Vaſilivich, 139. 141. 142.
  • Vatican, 209.
  • Vaughan, 173.
  • Vaulting, 264.
  • Vaux, Ld. 88. 329. 330.
  • Vaz, Lopez, 154. 156. 157.
  • Vele, Abr. 78.
  • Velvet, 102.
  • Ventriloquy, 219.
  • Verdun, 295.
  • Verdungus, 343.
  • Vere, 198. 247. 355. 359.
  • Verſe, Engliſh, 86. 91. &c.
  • Verſtegan, 299.
  • Vertue, 22. 120.
  • Vic, Sir Henry, 120.
  • Vigils, 124.
  • Villeins, 293.
  • Villiers, 287. 291.
  • Vincent, 288. 296. 297. 345.
  • Virgil, 127.
  • Virgil, Polydore, 1. 4. 122. 133. 200. 201. 350.
  • Virginia, 151.
  • [400]Virginity, 80. 369.
  • Viſcount, 108.
  • Viſions, 84. 85. 225. 278.
  • Vites, 306. 311.
  • St. Vitus Dance, 51.
  • Vortiger, 306. 307.
  • Vortimer, 306.
  • Vortiper, 3.
  • Voſſius, Ger. 2. Iſa. 72.
  • Votaries, Engliſh, 78.
  • Voyages, 136.
  • Udal, 246.
  • Ufford, 348. 362.
  • Ugolin, 52.
  • Ulla, St. John de, 152. 153.
  • Union, 309. 330.
  • Univerſal Character, 113.
  • Univerſities, 118. 189.
  • Unthriftineſs, 212.
  • Upton, 273.
  • Urban, Pope, 75. 276.
  • Urine, 41.
  • Urrey, 245.
  • Urſula, St. 80.
  • Urſwick, 357.
  • Uſcomb, 141.
  • Uſe of Sarum, 83.
  • Uſury, 104. 347.
W.
  • Wadham, 317.
  • Wainfleet, 315. 318.
  • Wake, 290.
  • Walburg, St. 92.
  • Waldenſes, 84.
  • Wales, 76. 83. 131. 200.
  • Wales, Prince of, 266.
  • Wales, Princeſs of, 76.
  • Walle, 277.
  • Walpole, 364.
  • Walſingham, 98. 131. 151. 331. 349. 362.
  • Walſtane, St. 82.
  • Walter, Bp. of Hereford, 82.
  • Walworth, 349. 355.
  • War, 74. 100. Holy, 85.
  • Ward, Dr. Sam. 204. Seth, 117. Luke, 157.
  • Wardmote, 24.
  • Wares, 25.
  • Warham, 348.
  • Warwick, Earl of, 326. 327. 329.
  • Waſſail, 306.
  • Watches, 42.
  • Water, Holy, 81. 82.
  • Waters, 32. 176. 291.
  • Water Glaſſes, 42.
  • Water Motions, 44.
  • Watſon, 92.
  • Ways, Roman, 185.
  • Weapons, 301.
  • Weaving, 48.
  • Webbe, Wm. 86. 91. 229. 233.
  • Webbe, Dr, 113.
  • Webſter, 111.
  • Weever, 344.
  • Weights, 25. 139. 146.
  • Weiſman, 168.
  • Welſhmen, 308.
  • Welſted, 175.
  • Wenceſlaus, 70.
  • Wenefride, 201.
  • Werberg, St. 233.
  • Weſt Indies, 149. 154. 301.
  • Weſtminſter, 82. 356.
  • Weſton, Eliz. 47.
  • Weſton, Sir Wm. 144.
  • Wethemſted, 358.
  • Whale, 161.
  • Whale-fiſhing, 141. 151.
  • Whear, 190.
  • Whetſtone, Geo. 89.
  • White, 173. 316. 317. 364.
  • Whitehead, Geo. 43. 59.
  • Whitlock, 190.
  • Whittington, 139. 355.
  • [401]Whores, 80. 81.
  • Wiche, 292.
  • Wicelius, 93.
  • Wickham, 314.
  • Wicliffe, 22. 249. 294. 295. 374.
  • Wier, John, 219. 227. 294.
  • Wightman, 298.
  • Wightwick, 317.
  • Wilfhilda, 82.
  • Wilfride, 80.
  • Wilfrith, 81.
  • Wilibald, St. 93. 94.
  • Wilkes, 279. 280.
  • Will, 21.
  • William, St. 84. 351.
  • William Conqueror, 82. 87. 308, 309. 353. 359.
  • William II. 83.
  • William III. 187.
  • Willoughby, 139. 272. 352.
  • Wilſon, 197.
  • Wincheſter, Cardinal of, 26.
  • Windham, 147.
  • Wind Motions, 44.
  • Winds, 32. 146. 176.
  • Windſor, 122.
  • Wine, 25.
  • Winfred, 94.
  • Wingfield, 148. 352. 362
  • Winibald, 94.
  • Winter, Capt. 157.
  • Winwood, 165.
  • Wircker, 347.
  • Wiſards, 40.
  • Witchcraft, 39. 213. 371.
  • Witch-Elm, 179.
  • Withernam, 252.
  • Woden, 304.
  • Wolfhard, 93.
  • Wolley, 280.
  • Wolſey, 25. 103. 294. 316. 343
  • Wolves, 81. 306.
  • Women, 37. 66. 81. 83. 181. 217. 218. 343.
  • Women, Religious, 95.
  • Women, Scolding, 185.
  • Wonders, 38. 222.
  • Woodlark, Dr. 320.
  • Woods, 24. 282. 283.
  • Wool, 49. 101.
  • Words, 65. 265.
  • Words, Saxon, 252. 253. 310.
  • World, 24. 28.
  • Worldlineſs, 22.
  • Worſeley, 247.
  • Worſhip, 268.
  • Wotton, 47. 165. 249. 350.
  • Wrath, 195.
  • Wren, Sir Chriſt. 177.
  • Wreſtling, 264.
  • Wright, Edw. 148.
  • Wriotheſley, 323. 324. 325. 360.
  • Writers, Theological, 60.
  • Writers, Law, 169. Popiſh, 93.
  • Writers, Wanton, 264.
  • Writing, 45.
  • Wrongs, 268.
  • Wulfrick, St. 84.
  • Wulſtane, 83.
  • Wyat, 363.
  • Wydeville, Ant. 63. 326. 357.
  • Wymington, 285.
X.
  • Xantonge, 278.
Y.
  • Yale, Dr. 135. 198.
  • Yaxley, 362.
  • Year, 253.
  • Year Book, 173.
  • Yelverton, 362.
  • Yeoman, 311.
  • [402] York, Sir J. 147. 156.
  • York, Rowland, 273.
  • York, Duke of, 358.
  • York, City, 307.
  • Young, 249.
  • Younger Brother, 210. 297.
  • Younger Sons, 181.
  • Youth, 371.
Z.
  • Zenith, 28.
  • Zodiac, 28. 336.
  • Zomoiſci, 165.
  • Zones, 29. 295.
  • Zuegara, 158.
FINIS.
Notes
*
De Augment. Scientiarum, Lib. 3. cap. 5.
*
We ſhall not here trouble our Reader with diſtinguiſhing two other Perſons of the ſame Name with our Author, ſince none of their genuine Works remain, at leaſt in Hiſtory. 'Tis enough to obſerve that this GILDAS, called Badonicus, becauſe ſaid to be born at Bath, for his ſingular Prudence and the Severity of his Morals, was ſurnamed the WISE; that he was Monk of Bangor; flouriſh'd in the middle of the ſixth Century, and lived to about the end of the third part thereof, as may appear by this Treatiſe De Excidio Britanniae, the only one of his writing extant, as Arch-bp Uſher aſſures it to be. He wrote it in Latin, in a Stile according to that Age, harſh and perplexed enough; and the firſt Edition of it, publiſhed by Polydore Virgil in 8vo. London, 1525. and dedicated to Cuthbert Tonſtal Bp. of Durham, was from an incorrect Copy; re-printed at Baſil 1541. and at London 1568. This laſt Edition, or another much about the ſame time, which John Joſſeline gave of it from another MS. is but little more perfect than that firſt, which was remitted into the Bibliotheca Patrum: But the lateſt and beſt is in Dr. Gale's Collection of ancient Engliſh Hiſtorians, 3 vol. Fol. Oxon. 1684. who had the advantage of a more ancient and better Copy, as Bp. Nicholſon obſerves. The Life of Gildas is written at large by Caradoc of Lancarvan, and by an Anonymous Author, publiſh'd by John a Boſco in Biblioth. Florent. alſo more briefly in Bale, Pits, and Fuller's Worthies; which laſt wonders, not without Reaſon, that Gerard Voſſius ſhould attribute a Comedy in Plautus to this our Gildas, upon ſuch ſlender Grounds as he there mentions. As to his Character, Milton tells us, That Gildas is every way preferable, in ſpeaking of the Britiſh Wars, to the Saxon Writers, and a good Reaſon he gives for it: becauſe Gildas was nothing conceited of the Britiſh Valour, whereas the Saxons ever magnified their own Deeds. Vide Mils. Hiſt. of Brit. Lib. 3.
*
Tho' this Tranſlation of Gildas was made at the Beginning of K. James's Reign, we meet with no earlier Edition of it in Print than that publiſh'd 8vo. 1638, and it was not improbably re-publiſhed now again in 1652, on account of the ſharp and Chriſtian Reproofs therein of Kings and Prieſts. The Editor ſays, That in rendering this into Engliſh, much Faith has been obſerved; by which you may diſcover the Author ſtill the ſame, though in his Apparel faſhioned to the Time; in peruſing of whom, the Reader ſhall find that, Impiety is the great Deſtroyer of Empires, and that Kingdom which remains moſt immaculate from Sin, ſtands ſafeſt from Ruin.
*
Altho' this Dialogue is undated, it may appear to have been printed at the Beginning of our Reformation; and tho' the Author's Name was not yet publiſh'd to it, it is well known to have been written by that famous Clerk and Schoolman WILLIAM of OCCHAM, ſo called from being born in a Village of that Name in Surrey, as Camden and others have obſerv'd. It was written by our Author ſo early as the Year 1305, if the MS. Note on the Copy before me is right. There was another Edition of it afterwards in 1540, wherein it is ſaid to be written by William of Occham, the great Philoſopher, in Engliſh and Latin. [Extat. Lat. in Goldaſt. Monarch. T. Ed.] The Author was Scholar to John Duns Scotus, and afterwards, his Antagoniſt. In their grand Scholaſtic Controverſy, Scotus was diſtinguiſhed Father of the Reals, and Occham of the Nominals. Occham, fluſhed with his Succeſs, undertook Pope John the 23d, and gave a mortal Wound to his Temporal Power over Princes. He got a good Guardian, Lewis of Bavaria the Emperor, whoſe Court was his Sanctuary, but he was excommunicated by the Pope; and the Maſters of Paris condemned him for an Heretic, and burnt his Books; which Fuller conceives to be the Cauſe why Luther was ſo vers'd in his Works, which he had at his Fingers ends; being the ſole Schoolman in his Library whom he eſteem'd. The Pope being afterwards, it ſeems, reconciled to him, he was reſtored to his State with the Repute of an Acute Schoolman. Fox, in his Book of Martyrs, Ed. 1576. fol. 376. ſays, that in the Time of K. Edward II. ‘"Gulielmus Occham was a worthy Divine, and of a right ſincere Judgment, as the Times wou'd then either give or ſuffer."’ The ſame Hiſtorian further, fol. 393. mentions this Dialogue, as of Occham's Writing, tho' it appeared without the Name of its Author. He there alſo mentions another of his Books, called his Queſtions and Diſtinctions; and quotes John Sleidan's Hiſtory in his Commendation; who, telling us the ſaid Occham flouriſhed in the Year 1326. gives us an Abſtract of another of his Books, on the Authority of the Biſhop of Rome. Theſe two laſt, with two more of his writing, were printed abroad, between the Years 1491 and 1496, as appears in Corn. à Beughem's Incunab. Typographiae, 12mo. Amſt. 1688. p. 100. As for the Author's Death, ſome place it in 1330, others ſeventeen Years later. See Leland, Bale, Pits, Fuller, Dr. Cave, Du Pin, &c.
*
This laſt Volume of Mr. Prynne's ſaid Records was deſign'd, by him, to have borne the ſame Title with the two former, as may appear in the Book itſelf; but the Author dying juſt before it was publiſh'd, thoſe who were concern'd in the Edition call'd it The Hiſtory of King John, &c. in hopes that appearing (under that more general Title,) in the Shape and Diſguiſe of an entire Work, it would go off the more readily, as Biſhop Nicholſon has ſuggeſted; but with what Propriety, or Regard to the Subject, is left for others to conſider. 'Tis certain that neither of the three Volumes have been ſo ſufficiently uſed by, or even known to ſucceeding Writers of, or upon our Engliſh Hiſtory, as ſuch copious Materials, ſo carefully collected, do deſerve. One Reaſon, no doubt, is, the Scarcity of the two former Volumes; which are advanced to ſuch an extraordinary Price, that it is well known, the Complete Set has been ſold for Thirty Pounds. Another reaſon for their having lain ſo much in Obſcurity, might be, ſome publick Puniſhment the Author once underwent, for writing another [21] Book, but in the former Reign, and long before he was Keeper of the Records; for which he yet had a handſome Recompence aſſign'd him by the Parliament, however it might leave ſome Diſtaſte to his Name upon the Minds of many; as we may elſewhere obſerve. The laſt cauſe of their Neglect may be, that artful Diſregard which has been inſinuated of theſe Collections, to abate the Curioſity of the Laity, and diſſuade their looking into them. The Right Reverend Author laſt quoted, ſpeaking of thoſe two Tomes which periſh'd in the Fire of London, adds, ‘"And no Man has hitherto thought it worth his Expence and While to give us a new Edition from any of the few that eſcaped: His Third has enough, in all Conſcience, to ſatisfy any reaſonable Reader, and ſuperſede his Enquiry into the State of the Caſe, in either former, or following Ages." Engl. Hiſtor. Library, laſt Edit. Fol. 165.
*
This Book, in the Poſſeſſion of a Perſon not more curious in collecting ſuch Antiquities than willing to impart them for the Service of the Publick, is written in double Columns very fairly, in the old Hand uſed above three Hundred Years ſince, and in many Places beautifully illuminated. 'Tis in its original Binding, with ſilk Claſp-Bands; on the braſs Part of one whereof, is engraved the uſual Abbreviation of Jeſus Chriſt. We find not that it ever was printed, but that ſingular Care has been taken to preſerve it in MS. It has been conſtantly attributed to the famous JOHN WICLIFFE, who died in 1384: See the Reverend Mr. Lewis's Life and Sufferings of him, 8vo. 1723. p. 163. where, in the Catalogue of Wicliffe's Works, he mentions a Copy of it, or ſome Parts of it, to be in the Lambeth Library; and in the ſame Life, Page 356, that there is one Copy of it in the publick Library at Cambridge, bound the firſt in ſeveral Volumes of Wicliffe's Tracts, and another in 12mo. entitled The Poor Caitif's Treatiſe; and that another Copy of it, or Part of it, in St. John's College, is entitled Wicliffe's Expoſition on the Catechiſm.
This is the only Title, which appears in two fair Copies of this very ſcarce old Book, which I have ſeen; and the ſaid Title is at the Head of the Kalendar or Table of Contents, which is printed in double Columns, as moſt of the Book alſo is. But it ſeems to want the firſt Leaf, which might contain a more general Title, and poſſibly the Name alſo of its Author. For the firſt Signature in both thoſe Copies is A 2, the Book not being numerically paged at top, nor has it any Printer's Name, or Date when printed. The late Mr. Hearne in his Copy has entitled it, The Cuſtomes of London, or ARNOLDE's Chronicle: And in ſome Catalogue I have ſeen it is call'd, after the Title of the ſecond Chapter, The Articles of the Charter and Liberties of the City of London, by one Arnold a Citizen of London, who liv'd 1519: Whence probably that Copy might want the whole firſt Chapter; at the End whereof (which gives it the Name of a Chronicle) it appears plainly to be continued down to the 12th, or rather, one Year being miſ-printed twice over, the 13th of Henry the 8th, which was 1521; in which Year this ſmall Folio was probably printed. There is the Name of R. A. and Richard Arnolde mention'd in many Forms of his Inſtruments, as a Citizen Haberdaſher and Merchant of London; who might be the Author of this Collection; which has (among ſome few Matters of Digreſſion) ſeveral notable old Inſtruments and Memorials in it: And tho' it may have been ſeen by ſome few Antiquaries who have written of this Metropolis, yet is a Work, for the generality, ſo little known, that Biſhop Nicholſon and others, who have attempted to give Accounts of our Hiſtorical Writers, are utterly ſilent hereof.
*
Tho' this Dr. Cuningham of Norwich had been a Traveller, yet being bred a Phyſician, it may be look'd upon as ſomewhat extraordinary, that he ſhould ſet forth a Book upon this Subject, ſo much more copious and elegant than had hitherto been publiſh'd; and alſo write ſo many others as he here mentions; the Names whereof are, An Apology; A New Quadrat, by no Man ever publiſh'd; The Aſtronomical Ring; Organographia; Gazophilacion Aſtronomicum; Chronographia; and Commentaries in Hippocrates de Aëre, Aquis & Regionibus: The Author being now no more than twenty-eight Years of Age.
*
Where our Author mentioning Heydelberg, ſays he was genteelly entertain'd at that Univerſity by D. Joan. Langius, T. Eraſtus, Phyſicians; and D. Balduinus, Reader of the Civil Law, beſides divers others, at the time of his Commencement.
*
Our Author, Dr. Cotta, (who was educated at Cambridge) here reflects upon Dr. Fra Anthonie, who at this time was noted for his Univerſal Medicine called Aurum Potabile, whereof he publiſh'd a Book about four Years after, and our Author an Anſwer to it, as may be ſeen in Athen. Oxon.
*
Anthony Wood aſcribes it to Dr. Tho. Powell, Canon of St. David's, who was, ſays he, an able Philoſopher, a curious Critic, and well vers'd in various Languages. He died in London, Dec. 31, 1660.
*
Of this Art ſee Marcil Ficinus de Vitâ coelitus comparanda, Joſ. Scaliger Epiſt. and Gregory's Opuſcula.
*
The learned Dr. Will. Cuningham, who was in theſe parts of Germany, in or before the Year 1559, and converſant with the moſt learned Men there, ſays in his foregoing Treatiſe, fol. 181. ‘"That at this City of Mentz was the Art of Printing firſt found by John Fauſtus, in the Year of Chriſt our Saviour 1453."’
*
‘Vir tam vaſtae doctrinae, ut Anglia imo Orbis, ea re nihil haberet ſimile aut secundum. Voſſius de Artibus popular. Artis Magnae, Lib. 10.
*
This is a Title gather'd from what the Tranſlator mentions in his Preface, and the Printer, in his Concluſion of the Book; for the Art of Printing had not yet arrived at the Diſtinction of Title-pages in Form. Further, we may remark of this antique Specimen of that, then, new Art in England, that if it is not our firſt Book printed here, it may be the ſecond, tho' printed ſo late in the Year above-mention'd as November; and tho' ſome other ſmaller Work might be printed by Caxton the ſame Year. For tho' the Knowledge of two, printed before it, by him, is deſcended to us; yet one is expreſsly ſaid to be printed abroad, and the other has no place mention'd where it was printed. Dr. Conyers Middleton obſerves, ‘"It has been generally aſſerted and believ'd, that all Caxton's Books were printed in the Abbey of Westminſter; yet we have no Aſſurance of it from himſelf, nor any mention of the place before 1477."’ Which Obſervation is plainly drawn from the Date of this Book, and it appears thereby to be the firſt, at leaſt now in being, which was printed at Weſtminſter; ‘"So that he had been printing ſeveral Years without telling us where."’ See the ſaid Doctor's Origin of Printing in England, 4to. Cambr. 1735. p. 20. We are inform'd there is in being a fair MS of this Tranſlation, and, what ſome may think yet a greater Curioſity, an Illumination in it, repreſenting King Edward IV. his Queen, and the Prince, with the Picture alſo of this Antony Wydeville Earl Rivers, preſenting Caxton to the King. But more particularly of the printed Book, we obſerve, it is perform'd on a good thick Paper, in which may be diſcern'd its Maker's Mark to be ſomewhat like a Pair of Horns, with a Flower over them. The Pages have no Numbers at top, nor Signatures, or Catch-words at bottom; theſe being more modern Improvements in Printing, at leaſt in England. The Diviſion of the Chapters is ſeldom by any larger Space than the other lines; only the three firſt lines of every Chapter being ſhorter than the reſt, leave room, towards the Margin, for the initial Letter, which is always a ſmall one; and the ſecond Letter of the Word which begins every Chapter, is always a Capital. As to Orthography, the ſame Words are not always ſpell'd alike, and ſeveral of the Proper Names are much obſcur'd by the old Manner of ſpelling them, eſpecially after the French Copy: and as to Pointing, there are but two ſorts of Stops uſed; the one, a little Daſh, the other, a little Croſs; and ſeldom either uſed as a Period at the End of a complete Sentence, it being thought ſufficient Diſtinction to allow a little longer Space there than between other Words, and to begin the next Sentence with a Capital. More Obſervations might hence be made on the Rudiments of Printing in England; but to thoſe who are not curious after ſuch Inquiries, poſſibly the greater Number, theſe may be enough. Of the noble Earl Rivers, who tranſlated this Book, much might be written: therefore we ſhall only obſerve here, that he publiſh'd one or more Books after this, and refer thoſe who would know more of him to the Chronicles, and eſpecially to Dugdale's Baronage; where it may appear what a Man of ſuperior. Merit and Dignity he was among many eminent of his Name; alſo how he was barbarouſly put to death in June 1483, at Pontefract in Yorkſhire, by the Procurement of Richard Duke of Glouceſter, then Protector, being aged about 41 Years, as we compute from the Account of his Age at the Death of his Mother Jacquett Dutcheſs of Bedford in 1472, as it ſtands upon Record in the Eſcheats.
*
My Lord's Words are, under the Chapter of Socrates‘"And the ſaid Socrates had many Seyinges ayenſt Women whiche is not tranſlated."’
*

Further of this Author, Sir JOHN FROISSART, and his CHRONICLE, we have taken the pains to give our Reader the following more perfect Account, chiefly from his own Words, than has hitherto been drawn together by any other Writer.

He was born at Valenciennes, as himſelf tells us, Vol. II. (of this Edition) fol. 29. and in the Year 1337, as we gather alſo from his own Words. For he came firſt over into England when Edward Prince of Wales and his Princeſs were going to their Government of Aquitain, Vol. II. fol. 319. b. Which by his own Account (in the French Copies) was in 1361 (but according to our Engliſh Tranſlation, Vol. II. fol. 305. the Year following) being then aged 24 Years. The Intereſt thro' which he came recommended to the Engliſh Court, and his laudable Undertaking to enlarge and continue John le Bel's Hiſtory, chiefly, of the Engliſh Conqueſts in France, ſoon brought him into familiar Converſation with Perſons of the greateſt Diſtinction. He was made one of the Clerks of the Chamber to Queen Philippa, Wife of King Edward III. as he tells us himſelf; was afterwards knighted; and, being an Eccleſiaſtic, well beneficed in the Church. After he had been here about five Years, in which Time he had travell'd almoſt all over Scotland, and was well known in King David's Court, Vol. II. fol. 158, 161. b. we meet with him at Burdeaux, when the Prince of Wales's Son, afterwards King Richard II. was born there, Anno 1366. He intended to have waited on the Prince in his Expedition to Spain, but was ſent back by him to continue his Attendance on the Queen his Mother, Vol. II. Cap. 200. He ſeems to have ſtaid not above two Years in England, before he left this Kingdom for a long Time, being abſent about Twenty Eight Years. In which ſpace he probably obtained his Eccleſiaſtical Preferments abroad, being Canon and Treaſurer of Chimay in Heynault, and of Liſle in Flanders, alſo Chaplain to Guy of Caſtellon, Earl of Blois, as he mentions, Vol. II. fol 242. And Rector of Leſcines on the Mount, near Mons in Heynault, according to Le Laboureur's Introd. a L'Hiſt. de Cha. VI. p. 69. In all this Time he continu'd his Chronicle, from the Reports of the moſt credible and intelligent Perſons, he met with in every Prince's Court to which he remov'd, and he ſeems to have given Copies of the ſeveral Parts as he finiſh'd them, to his Patrons; for many Quires thereof finely illuminated, were in the Cuſtody of Louis Duke of Anjou, in 1381, intended by the Author to be ſent to the King of England. Le Laboureur Hiſt. de Cha. VI. en la Vie de Louis Duc d' Anjou. But our Author admires none of thoſe Courts, ſo much as that of Gaſton Earl of Foix, at Ortaiſe in Bearn, which was the grandeſt Market in Europe for Tydings or News, eſpecially of all Martial Adventures. Here he was courteouſly entertain'd in 1388, for twelve Weeks, and to that Earl he preſented his Collection of Wenceſlaus of Bohemia, Duke of Luxemburgh's Book, called Meliader or Songs, Ballads, Rondeaux and Virelays, which that Duke had compoſed, Vol. II. fol. 30. He returned not into England, till King Richard was arrived from his Expedition in Ireland, ib. fol. 252, and the Peace was concluded for four Years between England and France, ib. fol. 251. b. which was in 1396; when he deliver'd Letters of Recommendation to the ſaid King, from the Earl of Heynault and other Foreign Nobles; and was welcom'd by his Majeſty, As one who had been, and is of the Engliſh Court, ib. fol. 252. b. Then he preſented the King with a Book, fairly illuminated, which he had engroſſed, and bound in Crimſon Velvet, with Silver Buttons and Claſps gilt, and golden Roſes, containing all the Matters of Amours and Moralities, which in Four and Twenty Years before, he had compiled, ib. fol. 255. b. & 251. b. One Copy of this Book, finiſh'd two Years before, Paſquier ſaw in the Royal Library at Fontainbleau, as Monſieur Bayle has remark'd. He continued moving about with the Court, ſometimes to Eltham, Kingſton, [...]hene, Windſor, &c. ib. fol. 258. And was in this Court more than a Quarter of a Year together; and the King received him kindly, becauſe he was Clerk and Servant in his Youth to King Edward and his Queen. And when he departed out of England, which ſeems to be the ſame Year, King Richard ſent him a Goblet of Silver gilt, and in it a Hundred Nobles, ib. fol. 319. We may preſume he ended his Life when he left off his Chronicle, from his expreſſing himſelf, upon the Delight he conceived in contemplating the Merits of his Subject, in theſe Words. ‘"The which excellent Matter, as long as I live, by the help of God, I ſhall continue; for the more I follow and labour it, the more it pleaſeth me."’ Thus much of the Hiſtorian; as to his Tranſlator, with his other Writings and Actions, we refer to them in Bale, Dugdale's Baronage, and Wood's Athen. Oxon. Now a Word or two of the Hiſtory, and we have done.

And firſt we obſerve, That though the whole Chronicle from the beginning of King Edward III. to King Henry IV. paſſes currently under the Name of Sir John Froiſſart; yet that there is a fine old MSS of it in England, beautifully illuminated with Hiſtorical Figures, particularly of Sir John Froiſſart, preſenting his Book to the Kings of England, France, &c. which, in the very Title, diſtinguiſhes the Work to have been begun by John le Bel, and continued to the Battle of Poictou, and that then after his Death, it was compiled and finiſhed by the Venerable Sir John Froiſſart, which is agreeable to what he ſays in his Preface. So that though Froiſſart might here and there correct or augment that firſt Part, as he alſo intimates; yet what he compoſed begins but at the Year 1356. This Obſervation, with that above from his own Words, of his not coming ſo early into England, as ſome have ſuggeſted, who wou'd from his Authority advance the Order of the Garter up to the Year 1344, may clear him from diſagreeing with our Authentic Records, and antedating the Inſtitution five Years, as Mr. Aſhmole has objected; the Error, if any there is in the ſaid Account, being more probably John le Bel's, and, perhaps, the Printer's rather than his. But here that we are ſpeaking of MSS, we muſt not forget one among thoſe of Iſaac Voſſius, Canon of Windſor, entitled, L'Hiſ toire de Froiſſart, plus ample, & plus correcte que les Imprimez, 2 Vol. Folio. From theſe, or others ſtill preſerved both in England and France, it has been long and much deſir'd, that we might have a more accurate Edition in French, or Tranſlation in Engliſh, than we have yet had. 'Tis true, the Author himſelf might not be always exact in the naming of ſo many Perſons and Places as he has introduced; ſeeing he received his Intelligence from ſuch Variety of Informers, in ſuch diſtant Parts, and ſo much from the Speech rather than the Writings of Men: Yet ſurely his Copies owe little Correction to the Preſs, having undergone the ſame Corruptions, which Books ſo much treating of Engliſh Affairs, have uſually ſuffer'd by being printed in France, eſpecially in the Names of Families, Towns and Lordſhips: And Mr. Selden has obſerved in his Tit. of Hon. p. 635. That the Numerals in Froiſſart are alſo lamentably corrupted and miſprinted. Yet whoever will have the Patience to compare his Work, ſays Mr. Anſtis, Ord. of the Gart. Vol. II. p. 98. with the Coaevous Records publiſh'd by Mr. Rymer, will from that Eſſay only, be ſo far ſatisfied of his Integrity, as may induce him paſſionately to wiſh for a New Correct Edition: And if this Author has not hitherto received the Honour of being printed at the Louvre with ſome other Hiſtorians, according to the Propoſal of the learned Monſieur du Freſne, in Le Long, Bibl. Hiſt. p. 235. upon the National Motive of praiſing his own Country too little, and ours too much, ſee La Popeliniere, Hiſt. des Hiſt. lib. 8. and Bodin Meth. Hiſt. c. 4. Theſe Reaſons, with the extraordinary Dearneſs of the printed Copies, ſhould excite ſome learned Perſon of this Kingdom, for the Reputation of our own Country, to collate the MS Copies, compare the Facts with Records, and contemporary Writers, and correct the miſerable Miſ-ſpellings, in the ſeveral Impreſſions, of their Surnames, who abundantly ſignaliz'd their Valour, in Juſtice to the Merits of theſe celebrated Perſons, and in Honour to their Poſterity. The moſt Ancient of theſe Impreſſions in French, ſeems to be that printed by Ant. Verard a Bookſeller of Paris, Folio, without Date. The next was that printed alſo at Paris by three ſeveral Perſons, that is, The firſt Volume by Fra. Regnauld, the ſecond and third by Michael le Noir, 1505. The fourth by John Petit, 1518. The Copy of which Edition, now before us, bound in Two Tomes, Folio, has the Arms of many of the Nobility, mentioned therein, drawn with a Pen in the Margin. There was another Impreſſion at Paris, by Ant. Couteau, alſo bound in Two Volumes Fol. 1530. This was that chiefly uſed by Denis Sauvage, Hiſtoriographer to King Henry II. of France, in the Edition he reviſed and corrected from many Copies and Abridgments; which was printed at Lyons, by John de Tournes, Fol. 1559. and again, at Paris, in Folio 1574. with Marginal Remarks, and Annotations at the End of every Book. He finds fault with the preceding Editors, ſeveral Parts of whom he may have rightly corrected, but is himſelf liable in many Places to Correction; notwithſtanding he has been ſo preferr'd, that a Copy of his Edition, has been ſometimes ſold in England for Ten Guineas. We cou'd wiſh that moſt of the Errors in theſe French Editions, were as truly corrected in the Engliſh one, as Biſhop Nicholſon imagin'd they were. In three of the Editions we have ſeen, neither the Books nor the Chapters are divided alike; ſo that it is very tedious and confuſing to find, in one of them, the References of the other. Though Froiſſart's Method is ſomewhat diffuſe and interrupted, yet the Epitome we have of him in Print, is ſcarce worth mentioning, however drawn up by Sleidan, ſuch a Skeleton he has made of it, 12o Franc. 1584, &c. and with ſuch Partiality, to the prejudice of the Engliſh, has he ſo diminiſh'd it; according to the Cenſure of our Learned Humphrey Lhuid in Comment. Brit. Deſcrip. fol. 27. And yet it has been tranſlated into Engliſh, by P. Golding, and printed in a Quarto Pamphlet 1608. But, we ſhall now leave it, with our Wiſhes of better Treatment, in the Character and Recommendation of Montaigne; who, in his Eſſay upon Books, deſcribing the Sincere Hiſtorian, who has nothing of his own intermix'd, but only diligently collects and impartially records all Things without Choice or Prejudice, leaving intirely to his Reader's Judgment the diſtinguiſhment of Truth, ſays, ‘"Such, for Example, was honeſt Froiſſart; who has proceeded, in his Undertaking, with ſo frank a Plainneſs, that having committed an Error, he is not aſhamed to confeſs and correct it, whereſoever it has been pointed out; and who repreſents to us, even the variety of Rumours which were then ſpread abroad, and the different Reports made to him; which is the naked and unaffected Matter of Hiſtory, and of which every one may make his Profit, according to the Proportion of his Underſtanding."’

*
Tho' the firſt Part of theſe Engliſh Votaries, was Collected by our Author John Bale, in the Year 1546, and the Second Part, in 1550, as appears in his Concluſions of them: yet neither of them were printed till the Year 1551, which was the Year before he was made Biſhop of Oſſory. In this Edition was probably publiſh'd the Author's Dedication to King Edward VI. however wanting in our Copy, which is otherwiſe a very fair and perfect one: becauſe, in the Edition printed on a larger Black Letter, by John Tyſdale, Anno 1560, which was after that King's Death; we find ſuch a Dedication of Bale's to his ſaid Majeſty, and alſo becauſe we ſee, at the End of the Epiſtle to the Second Part, even of the firſt Edition, there is a Wooden Print of our Author, preſenting his Book to the ſaid King Edward. In this Dedication we obſerve, that Bale deſign'd to publiſh Two Parts more of theſe Engliſh Votaries, or Hiſtorical Examples of the abominable Corruptions among our Biſhops, Monks, Nuns, &c. which wou'd have deduced the ſaid Collections down to his own Time: For his Words to the King diſplaying the Scheme of the whole, by ſhewing what theſe two Parts already publiſh'd do, and what thoſe to be publiſh'd were to treat of, are as follows. ‘"How the great Adverſary of God, Antichriſt, hath ſens Chriſtes Aſcention, wrought in his wicked Courſe, to deprave theſe two Miniſtrations (the Explanation of God's Word, and Government of the People) and to cauſe them to ſerve his moſte blaſphemous and filthy Affectes; the Firſt Two Partes of my Engliſh Votaries, here preſent, doth plentiouſly ſhew; and my hope is, that the Two Lattre Partes which will, God willing, moſt ſpedily follow, ſhal declare it yet much more at large. I have therein decreed, for difference of the Bookes; and apt Arguments of the Matters contained in them, to give them Four ſeveral Titles; of Riſing, Building, Holding and Falling. For the Firſt Part treateth of their Upriſing to Miſchief by th' old Idolaters in the Reign of Perdicion: The Second Part ſheweth of their haſty Building by the hipocritiſhe Monks to eſtabliſh the wicked Kingdom of Antichriſte: The Third Part will declare the crafty upholding of their proud Degrees and Poſſeſſions, by the wily and ſubtil ſlaightes of the Four Orders of Friers: And the Fourth Part ſhall manifeſt their horrible Fall in this latter Age, by the grounded Doctrines of the true Preachers and Writers."’
*
But this Project, tho' we find it was propoſed and attempted by other prime Wits of theſe Times before, ſuch as Sir Philip Sidney, Sir Edward Dyer, Spenſer, Dr. Gabriel Harvey, and others, not ſucceeding; our end of reviving here, or reviewing this Diſcourſe, is chiefly for the ſake of thoſe Characters, which our Author has given in it, of the antient, and more eſpecially the Engliſh Poets, from Chaucer and Gower, down to the moſt conſiderable of thoſe who flouriſh'd at the Time of this Publication; that the critical Reader may better know, whether the Opinions held of them in thoſe Days, and ours, correſpond; and better judge, from the Concluſions we form upon the Writings of our Anceſtors, what liberty Poſterity will take with our own.
*
The knowing and ingenious Author of this ſcarce and curious Tract, who thus ſpent Forty Years in the Study of Means to enrich his Country by Traffic, was a Perſon of ſuch conſiderable Note for his Abilities, that he was often called to the Council Table, both in Queen Elizabeth's Reign, and King James's, for his Opinion in Mercantile Affairs. He was appointed one of the Commiſſioners of Trade in the Low Countries, for ſettling the Value of Monies about the Year 1586. He was afterwards a Commiſſioner alſo at Home in the Year 1600, for eſtabliſhing the true Par of Exchange; and upon the Laws, enacted in the fourth Year of King James, for the making of good and true Cloth, he exhibited a Demonſtration to the Lords of the Privy Council, ſhewing the Weight, Length and Bredth of all ſorts of Cloths; and that Weight and Meaſure do controul each other; whereby the Merchant, who buys the Cloth, may be enabled to find out the Fraud and Deceit of the Clothier: We find alſo that he publiſh'd ſeveral other Books, beſides this above abſtracted; as, near Thirty Years before it, The Canker of England's Commonwealth; alſo England's View; and that he now had under the Preſs, a Volume entitled Lex Mercatoria, or The Ancient Law Merchant, wherein the dangerous Rocks to be avoided in the Courſe of Traffic, and the Means thereunto conducing, are manifeſted, for the Preſervation and Augmentation of the Wealth of theſe Kingdoms, according to Jus Gentium; the Knowledge whereof is of ſuch Moment, that all other Temporal Laws, without it are not complete. He writ alſo, The Royal Merchant of Great Britain, which he had now in MS. and, perhaps, others, which we have not leiſure at preſent to enquire after.
*
This ſpacious and beautiful MS. bound in Blue Turkey Leather, with the Leaves gilt, Writing very fair, and Arms of our Kings, with near ſeven hundred of our Nobility from the Conqueſt, all blazon'd in their proper Colours; is to be ſeen among the MS. Collections, in the Hands of Mr. Thomas Oſborne, for whom this Britiſh Librarian is printed. The Author's Name was firſt written Tilſon, but, by Correction, as it is above. We find that his particular Friend, or Patron, was John Lord Byron, whoſe ſingular Favours to him, has, ſays he, fol 299. for ever oblig'd me to himſelf and Family. Tho' he mentions none of the Nobility, created later than the Year 1645, and the Date in the Title-Page of the Volume, is but two Years later; we obſerve, by his mentioning the Death of Francis Lord Cottington, fol. 288, That he muſt have writ the Concluſion of this Book, at leaſt, ſo late as the Year 1652. If ſome few Miſtakes have eſcaped in the Blazonry, or in the Hiſtorical Account of the Alliances and Iſſue, they are not greater, perhaps, than what might be reaſonably expected in any other Heraldical Work, where ſuch Diſtinctions are undertaken; eſpecially in ſuch Extent of Time, and, conſequently, ſuch Variety of Families.
*
His Name was as we find elſewhere, Dr. Robert Croſs, Rector of Chue in Somerſetſhire, in which Country, our Author Glanvill was Rector of Bath, afterwards Chaplain in Ordinary to King Charles II. and Prebendary of Worceſter. A. Wood ſays of him, ‘"That he was a Perſon of more than ordinary Parts, of a quick, warm, ſpruce and gay Fancy, and was more lucky, at leaſt in his own Judgment, in his firſt Hints and Thoughts of Things, than in his after Notions. He had a very tenacious Memory, and was a great Maſter of the Engliſh Language, expreſſing himſelf therein with eaſy Fluency, and in a manly, yet withal a ſmooth Style."’ Tho' the ſaid Dr. Croſs wrote a Book againſt this Plus Ultra, he cou'd not get it printed; and tho' Dr. Stubbes alſo wrote another againſt it, the ſame was not much regarded. See a further Account of this Plus Ultra in the Philoſ. Tranſactions. No. 36.
*

His Words in Print are theſe. ‘"We once intended a full and entire Hiſtory of the Lives of theſe Noble Founders, and to that purpoſe made a large and chargeable Collection out of the Records in the Tower of London, and elſewhere, of all that we could find worthy to be remember'd in them; in which we ſpent moſt part of the Years 1657, 1658, 1659. But this our Deſign being afterwards repreſented (20 Feb. Anno 14 Car. II.) to the preſent Sovereign and Knights Companions, by the late Chancellor of the Order, through the wrong End of the Perſpective; we thereby received ſo great Diſcouragement, as cauſed us to wave it, and indeed reſolved wholly to lay it aſide. Nevertheleſs, upon other Thoughts, we are content to let in a glimpſe, of what may be improved to a far greater Light; and from that Stock of Collections have drawn out ſome few Things relating to the Founder, and firſt 25 Knights Companions; particularly, their Honours, Martial Employments, famous Exploits, Matches, Iſſues and Deaths; therein laying down only Matter of Fact, and Materials for Hiſtory, without Deductions or Obſervations: All which we ſhall deliver with the plainneſs there found, being unwilling to add other Rhetorical Flouriſhes, leſt we might withal caſt ſome blemiſh upon the native Beauty of Truth." Order of the Garter, fol. 643.

But from a MS. of his own Writing, we find Mr. Aſhmole firſt took this Work of the Garter into Conſideration about the Year 1655: That the Charges of his Collections for it, amounted to 500l. before the Reſtoration, and to no inconſiderable Sum after it: Yet obſerving how meagre the Memorials were, which had been preſerved of the Ancient Companions; he petition'd the King in Auguſt 1660, that his Majeſty wou'd add to the other Officers of the Order, a particular Hiſtoriographer and a Remembrancer, with the Salary of only 100 l. per Ann. as neceſſary to tranſmit their Noble Companions for the future more ſuitably to Poſterity; and modeſtly hoped to have the ſame beſtow'd upon himſelf, as what might bring ſome Authority to his Performance, lighten his Charges, and raiſe him above the detriment of Cenſure. King Charles, having been inform'd of his Reaſons, Labour, Expences and Qualifications, ſigned a Warrant for the ſame, directed to Sir Henry de Vic, Chancellor of the Order, authorizing the Patent to be paſs'd under the Seal thereof. But the ſaid Chancellor refuſed to paſs it, under pretence of Mr. Aſhmole's Irregularity in procuring it, and not only alledg'd he ought to have obtained his firſt Grant by the Hand of the ſaid Chancellor, and the Chapter, that is, (as Mr. Aſhmole himſelf words it) have ſought it of thoſe who wou'd obſtruct it; but in Feb. 1661, laid an Information thereof before the Chapter then held, and Mr. Aſhmole was not admitted either to make a Defence of himſelf, or ſhew the Advantages of the Office propoſed, ſo it was laid aſide; and he preſented a Draught in Writing of the Objections there made againſt ſuch an Inſtitution, and his Anſwers thereto, which he dedicated in Dec. 1662, to the Lord Chancellor of England. From which MS. Of his Arguments for an Hiſtoriographer and Remembrancer to the Order of the Garter, we have extracted thus much of this Paragraph; and ſhall only obſerve, that ſuch a diſcouragement of an Attempt to write Hiſtories and Lives of ſuch Great Men, in the complete Circuite of their Stories, ſeems no ways wonderful. For this is Biography in its ſtrict Senſe; which is of a ſearching Nature; and, however uſeful or acceptable to the generality, as irkſome to ſome Thoughts, as Light to ſome Eyes; yea, may be as terrible to ſome among the Living, as to others, the Expectation of being anatomiz'd when they are dead. However King Charles rewarded this Author, who thus ennobled even the moſt Noble Order like a Prince, who deſerved to be, as he was, the Sovereign thereof, with Places of above a Thouſand Pounds a Year; and not long after the Book was publiſh'd, and inſcrib'd to his Majeſty, Mr. Aſhmole further received, a Privy Seal out of the Cuſtom of Paper, for Four Hundred Pounds, as we find in the Diary, he left behind him, of his own Life.

*
And firſt, of the French Author; who as he begins his Work ſo high as the Building of Troy by Priamus, ſo he continues it beyond the Slaughter of Turnus by Aeneas, to the Succeſſion of his Son Aſcanius, and two or three Suceſſions beyond. Moreover, towards the beginning of his Work, that is, in Chapter 6, he has a Digreſſion upon Bocace, for relating the Story of Dido in his Fall of Princes, differently from Virgil, and recites his Account as well as that of his Author. And in Cap. 33. he paſſes over Aeneas his Deſcent into Hell, becauſe 'tis feign'd, and not to be believed; as if ſeveral other Parts of this Story, which he has repeated, were not as incredible as that. But to paſs to the Tranſlator and Printer, we obſerve his Style to be more ornate (as he calls it) or dreſs'd up in ſuperfine Words, eſpecially of the French Extract, than we believe it would have been, had he not ſubmitted it to the Correction. It is more regularly printed than that former of his, deſcribed in our laſt Number; as not running out, but having the Lines all even at the Ends; and large Initials at the beginning of every Chapter: It has alſo Signatures at the Bottom of the Pages, and beſides Commas and Periods, Colons and Semicolons, or what might be deſigned as ſuch, tho' not always placed perhaps to anſwer the Purpoſe of them.
*
This elaborate and excellent Collection, which redounds as much to the Glory of the Engliſh Nation, as any Book that ever was publiſhed in it; having already had ſufficient Complaints made in its behalf, againſt our ſuffering it to become ſo ſcarce and obſcure, by neglecting to tranſlate it into the Univerſal Language, or at leaſt to republiſh it in a fair Impreſſion, with proper Illuſtrations, and eſpecially an Index, wherewith the Author himſelf ſupply'd the firſt Edition, printed in one Volume, Folio, 1589; we ſhall not here repeat thoſe Complaints; becauſe we muſt neceſſarily wait for the Return of that Spirit, which animated the gallant Adventurers recorded therein to ſo many heroic Exploits, before we can expect ſuch a true Taſte of Delight will prevail to do them ſo much Juſtice; or that Envy of tranſcendent Worth, will permit a noble Emulation of it ſo far to perpetuate the Renown of our ſaid Anceſtors, as to render, by this means, their Memory no leſs durable and extenſive, than their Merits have demanded. For it may, perhaps, be thought impolitic, thus to diſplay the moſt hazardous and the moſt generous Enterpriſes which appear in this Book, for the Honour and Advantage of our Country, till the Vertues of our Predeceſſors will not reflect diſadvantageous Compariſons upon the Poſterity who ſhall revive them. But there may be ſtill room left for a more favourable Conſtruction of ſuch Neglect, and to hope that nothing but the caſual Scarcity or Obſcurity of a Work, ſo long ſince out of Print, may have prevented its falling into thoſe able and happy Hands, as might, by ſuch an Edition, reward the eminent Examples preſerved therein, the Collector thereof, and Themſelves, according to all their Deſerts.
*
And firſt, As it has been ſo uſeful to many of our Authors, not only in Coſmography and Navigation, but in Hiſtory, eſpecially that of the glorious Reign in which ſo many brave Exploits were atchieved: As it has been ſuch a leading Star to the Naval Hiſtories ſince compiled; and ſaved from the Wreck of Oblivion many exemplary Incidents in the Lives of our moſt renowned Navigators; it has therefore been unworthily omitted in the Engliſh Hiſtorical Library. And laſtly, Tho' the firſt Volume of this Collection does frequently appear, by the Date, in the Title Page, to be printed in 1599. the Reader is not thence to conclude the ſaid Volume was then reprinted, but only the Title Page, as upon collating the Books we have obſerved; and further, that in the ſaid laſt printed Title Page, there is no mention made of the Cadiz Voyage; to omit which, might be one Reaſon of reprinting that Page: For it being one of the moſt proſperous and honourable Enterprizes that ever the Earl of Eſſex was ingaged in, and he falling into the Queen's unpardonable Diſpleaſure at this time, our Author, Mr. Hakluyt, might probably receive Command or Direction, even from one of the Patrons to whom theſe Voyages are dedicated, who was of the contrary Faction, not only to ſuppreſs all Memorial of that Action in the Front of this Book, but even cancel the whole Narrative thereof at the End of it, in all the Copies (far the greateſt Part of the Impreſſion) which remained unpubliſhed. And in that caſtrated Manner the Volume has deſcended to Poſterity; not but if the Caſtration was intended to have been concealed from us, the laſt Leaf of the Preface would have been reprinted alſo, with the like Omiſſion of what is there mentioned concerning the Inſertion of this Voyage. But at laſt, about the middle of the late King's Reign, an uncaſtrated Copy did ariſe, and the ſaid Voyage was reprinted from it; whereby many imperfect Books have been made complete.
*
We may further add, The Author was, by King James I. about the Middle of his Reign, made Aſſiſtant to Sir Lewis Lewkner, Maſter of the Ceremonies, in which Service he acquitted himſelf with great Honour and Fidelity: whereupon King Charles, after his Father's Death, not only continued him in hi [...] Place, but gave him a reverſionary Grant of the Office of Maſter of the Ceremonies; which came to his Poſſeſſion by the Death of Sir Lewis, 10th of March 1626. During his whole Service, he applied himſelf with great Aſſiduity; retiring only when Occaſion would ſerve, to his Country-houſe at Twittenham. It was his conſtant Maxim to give the leaſt Occaſion to, and avoid as much as poſſible, the too nice Punctillios of Procedence between Ambaſſadors; which ſeldom fail to breed Animoſities in their Sovereigns: And, by this means, he was not only much eſteemed by the Ambaſſadors, which turned greatly to his Advantage, with regard to their uſual Preſents; but he likewiſe prevented the Trouble that wou'd have enſued to his Majeſty, of hearing their frivolous Complaints. As to this Work, it was the Author's Method, as appears by the Editor's Dedication, to couch in Writing, what things paſſed in his Province, not only for his own, but for the Information of others; and his Notes were more than once, as appears by his own Words, produced to the Lord Chamberlain to regulate by Precedents the Differences which happened between Ambaſſadors: And in one of his Obſervations, page 129. he ſays he does it, ‘"for future Occaſions and Uſe to the Maſter of the Ceremonies;"’ which plainly ſhews his Intention, that theſe Obſervations ſhou'd be made publick; and to every one in that Province, they may, no doubt, be of great Uſe and Inſtruction. And they may be of further and ſtill greater Uſe, as well in illuſtrating ſome Parts of Monſ. Wiquefort, as the Engliſh Hiſtory in that Period, well known to have ſo much abounded in Embaſſies, and in the Particulars whereof our Hiſtorians of thoſe Times are very deficient, not having had the Light of theſe Obſervations. Anthony Wood, who informs us, that he lived to the Age of 70 Years, and died in 1641, yet gives us no Account how long he remained in his Office, nor why he ſo abruptly diſcontinued his Obſervations. But we have heard there now is an original or authentick MS. of them in being, which might give further Intelligence in this Particular.
*
Of theſe Editions we ſhall only add, That the firſt was publiſhed in 1666, that the hiſtorical Part conſiſts of 332 Pages, and the Chronology of 117, when the Figures of the Pages are rightly corrected, ending at the Year 1665. The ſecond Edition was printed 1671, has in the hiſtorical Part, like this laſt, 336 Pages; and in the chronological, 117, ending at the Year 1671. Ant. Wood ſays, ‘"That of the firſt Impreſſion, many Copies were burnt by the Fire of London:"’ And that, ‘"in the Chronica Series are many Faults;"’ which will not ſo much be wondered at, by thoſe who have read how much of it was now firſt calculated, and in a manner gueſſed at, thro' the Defect of Regiſters, as that, for ſuch a Space of Time, the Author ſhould be able to ſettle ſo many Perſons in their reſpective Places. Biſhop Nicholſon is of Opinion, ‘"That our firſt Enquiries after the Hiſtory of the Laws of this Kingdom, ought to begin with the careful reading of this Book; which we ſhall find ſo accurately penn'd, and with ſo good a Mixture of Learning and Judgment, that it will almoſt do the Work alone: That he cannot give a better View of this moſt elaborate Treatiſe, than by telling the Reader, it fully anſwers its Title-Page; giving as compleat a Hiſtory, as it was poſſible for one Man to furniſh us with, of the Particulars therein mentioned: That under all theſe Heads, the Collections are many, and the Method exact; ſo that we have abundance without Superfluity; and all we can wiſh for, without the hazard of being cloy'd: That in the Chronology, if any thing hath eſcaped the Search of ſo diligent and curious a Writer, the Tables are ſo ordered, that every Reader's additional Diſcoveries are quickly marſhall'd and tribed under their proper Columns: And laſtly, That out of theſe, and Raſtal's Table of Years, were ſtoln the Chronica Juridicialia;"’ which is printed in 8o. 1685.
*
The whole, tho' two or three Leaves may be wanting at the end of ſome of the Reigns, is a very uſeful Collection; giving great Intelligence in a little Compaſs; as it reſpects the Properties and Privileges of ſo many hundred Perſons, to whom the ſaid Grants of Lands, Tenements, Leaſes, &c. were made, with the particular Times when, and the Places where they lay; to what Abbeys, Priories, &c. they belonged; for what Conſideration, and by what Rents, or Rights they were held; and into what Court thoſe Rents were payable. All which Particulars, muſt render the Collection moſt readily inſtructive, as in divers other Enquiries, ſo in the Pedigrees of many Families of Diſtinction, and the Aera of many Tenures: the Authority of Titles, Right of Conveyances, Valuation of Eſtates; and to all Writers of particular Hiſtory in the ſaid Periods, as well Perſonal as Topographical, or the Antiquities of the ſeveral Counties of England. It is preſerved in the ſame Hands with that MS. which we deſcribed in our laſt Number.
*
In the Copy of this Book now before us, which had been the late Mr. Hearne's of Oxford, he has written as follows: ‘"This is a very rare Book and the Tranſlation is done admirably well; and therefore the Encomiaſtick Verſes are deſervedly put before it. I have ſeen a very imperfect and miſerably ſhatter'd one, go at a conſiderable Price in an Auction."’
*
Before we part with this Subject, we ſhall here take the Opportunity we have, of referring to a couple of ſcarce Tracts, more ancient than this above recapitulated, which have ſome Parts or Chapters in them relating thereunto. The firſt is called Newnam's Nightcrow, a Bird that breedeth Braules in many Families and Houſholds: Wherein is remember'd that kindly and provident Regard which Fathers ought to have towards their Sons; together with a Diſciphering of the injurious Dealings of ſome younger ſort of Stepdames. Quarto. 1590. Pages 50. This Pamphlet is dedicated to Thomas Owen. Eſq Serjeant at Law, by the Author John Newnam: Is divided into Two Parts, and each into five Chapters, The firſt Part is concerning Fathers; ſhewing chiefly how the Virtues or Vices of their Children proceed moſtly from their Examples. And the ſecond Part, upon Step-mothers, ends with two Chapters under theſe Titles, That diſinheriting of the eldeſt Son, without very great lawful Cauſe, is an Act very wrongful and ungodly. That Procurers and Counſellors of Diſinheriſon, and all wrong doing, ought to make or procure Reſtitution. But as ſtrong Arguments as there are herein, againſt the diſinheriting of Heirs, tho' ſeveral Crimes are produced, which they being convicted of, it is allowed; yet they ſeem match'd in that other Pamphlet we mention'd, which is a Dialogue, entitled, A Work worth the Reading: containing five Queſtions very expedient, as well for Parents to perceive how to beſtow their Children in Marriage, and to diſpoſe their Goods at their Death, as for all other Perſons to receive great Profit by the reſt of the Matters herein expreſſed: Newly publiſhed by Charles Gibbon, and dedicated to the Right Worſhipful Sir Nicholas Bacon. Qo. 1591. Pages 60. The ſecond Chapter of this Tract is upon the Queſtion, Whether the Father may lawfully diſinherit his Firſt-born; where, tho' there are Arguments produced on both ſides of the Queſtion, yet we are induced to diſcard a leud laviſh Reprobate of an eldeſt Son, a riotous Spend-thrift, which is a Character leſs criminal than thoſe produced by the former Author, for a younger that is dutiful, virtuous, and prudent. For that ‘"a wiſe Man will alter Cuſtom after Diſcretion, and diſpoſe his Wealth according to Wiſdom."’ And a little further, ‘"Goods are the Gift of God; and he hath appointed us not to do as we liſt with them, like Lords, but to diſpoſe them well as his Stewards: Therefore we ought to beſtow them on ſuch, where he that gave them may be glorified;"’ according to the Apoſtle's Command, which is here cited. Thus much may ſuffice in this Place, if not to ſatisfy the Reader, yet to inform him where he may meet with further Satisfaction upon a Subject of this important and univerſal Concern.
*
Thus the common printed Title; but there is alſo a Title-Page printed from a Copper Plate bound before it, which entitles the Book more briefly, A Deſcription Hiſtorical and Geographical of the County Palatine of Cheſter, illuſtrated with divers Figures cut in Copper, and publiſh'd by Daniel King of Cheſter, 1656. 'Tis inviron'd with Branches forming an Oval, containing the Arms of all the Earls of Cheſter, from Hugh Lupus to Henry, eldeſt Son of King James I. and on the Sides thereof, are two Standards ſupported by Wolves, and bearing the Arms of the County; which are in one of them, 3 Wheat-Sheaves; and in the other, a Wolf's Head eraz'd. As for this Publiſher, Daniel King, tho' Ant. Wood might receive a private Character of him from a noted Author, in a Letter, intimating he was an ignorant and knaviſh Fellow, we ſee not, with what Juſtice the ſame is publiſhed, in relation to this Book. It is plain, that he commendably procured theſe Accounts of Cheſter, which might never have ſeen the Light but for him; and has faithfully publiſhed them, juſtly aſcribing every Part to its due Owner; that he hath induſtriouſly adorned them with many Sculptures; has aſſumed no part to himſelf but what was viſibly his own, and was in ſo much Credit with the Gentry of the County, that many of them were evidently his Patrons, and Encouragers: wherefore we cannot but think rather with Dr. Fuller, That ſeeing this Daniel King had, in his Travels, got the Myſtery both of Surveying and Engraving, and uſed the ſame to enliven the Deſcriptions above, which he ſet forth, with ſo many Cuts of Heraldry and Topography, ‘"That Cheſhire is chiefly beholden to his Pains."’ Nay, he further acknowledges himſelf ſo much beholden to the particular Courteſy of the Man, through his many Communications, as to have verefied his Anagram, and been even a kind Angel to him.
*
The MS. from which this Book was publiſhed, and which is the faireſt and moſt perfect, remains among the MSS. of Mr. Selden in the Bodleian Library, and appears to have been tranſcribed by Sir Adrian Forteſcue, who was a Deſcendant from the Author, and lived in the Reign of King Henry VIII. for at the End, it is thus written: Explicit Liber compilatus & factus per JOHANNEM FORTESCUE, Militem, quondam Capitalem Juſticiarum ANGLIAE, & hic Scriptus manu propriâ mei ADRIANI FORTESCUE Militis, 1532. Of the MSS. with which the Editor collated this Work, two are among the MSS. of Archbiſhop Laud, and Sir Kenelm Digby in the ſame Library; and the third in the Cotton Library: But all the material Variances are noted in the Margin of the Book.
*
By this word Witkernam, Sir Thomas More once gain'd no ſmall Honour; for being at Bruges in Flanders, an arrogant Fellow ſet up a Theſis, that he would anſwer any Queſtion that ſhould be propounded to him in what Art ſoever: Sir Thomas made this Queſtion to be put to him, whether Averia capta in Withernamia ſunt irreplegibilia? adding, that there was one of the Engliſh Ambaſſador's Retinue that would diſpute it with him. The Thraſo not ſo much as underſtanding thoſe Terms of our Common Law, knew not what Anſwer to make, and ſo became ridiculous to the whole City. Life of Sir Thomas More, 8vo. 1652.
*
This John Lord Tiptoft, Earl of Worceſter, thus praiſed and lamented by his Editor, was born at Everton in Cambridgeſhire, educated in Baliol-College, Oxon. travelled to the Holy-Land, and, after his Pilgrimage, was three Years in Italy, where Pope Pius II. ſhed Tears for Joy at his eloquent Oration. He was twice Lord High Treaſurer of England; and in 1467 Deputy to George Duke of Clarence, Lord Lieutenant of Ireland. He wrote ſome Orations and Epiſtles, beſides theſe Tranſlations above-mentioned: Being attainted by Parliament, he was beheaded Anno 1470, and buried in the Dominicans Convent at London, according to Leland. See alſo Bale, Camden, Brook, Ware de Script Brit. Fuller and Dugdale. As for Sir John Faſtolf, before-mention'd, and the unjuſtifiable Liberties which have been taken with his Name and Character, enough has been lately ſpoken thereof, in the Account we have elſewhere given of him.
*
Sir Thomas Elyot quotes no Authority for this curious Story; and I recollect not any more ancient than his own, in this Book. John Speed, in his Chronicle, quotes it from this Place. And Dr. Fuller, tho' he miſquotes our Author, as if it were from Sir T. Elyot's Chronicle (for no ſuch Book did he ever publiſh) yet ſeems rightly to add, ‘"from whom our modern Hiſtorians have tranſcribed it."’ Shakeſpear, in the ſecond Part of his Henry IV. has made a lively Scene of it for the Stage, and enlarged it with Circumſtances, as a Dramatiſt has a Licenſe to do. But Stow's Computation of the time which the Chief Juſtice concerned in this Story ſat on the Bench, is obſerved to have been too much contracted; and John Truſſel's Account of King Henry the V. his Acknowledgment of the ſaid Judge's Juſtice, as if he were alive, after the Coronation of that King, is obſerved not to agree with the time of the ſaid Chief Juſtice's Death. For Sir William Gaſcoigne was this Judge, who committed Prince Henry to Priſon, and he was made Chief Juſtice of the King's-Bench, in the firſt of Henry IV. according to Fuller, as he aſſures us from our authentic Records, or 15 of November 1401, which was 3 of that King, according to Dugdale; and died on the 17th of December, in the 14th or laſt Year of that King, which was in 1412, according to the Date on his Monument in Harwood Church in Yorkſhire, and the Pedigree of his Family, ſtill in being. What confirms the Truth of this Story here above-mention'd is, That there is a Medal ſtruck in Commemoration thereof, an Impreſſion of which I have ſeen. It is not ſo broad as a Guinea, has his Name written round it in the old Engliſh Characters, with the Image of himſelf, I ſuppoſe, ſitting on a Bench by another Perſon, and reading to three Auditors before him. Mr. J. Hopkinſon, in his MS. Volume of the Pedigrees of the Yorkſhire Gentry, has given us a Specimen of this Name's being ſpell'd more variouſly than any other I ever met with. It is upon the ſaid Medal Sir Wylliam de Gaſquone, as I remember, but has ſince been moſt generally written Gaſcoigne; tho' Fuller, who was acquainted with an accompliſhed Antiquary in Record-heraldry, of the ſame Family, and Surname, writes him Gaſcoinge.
*
As this Miſcellany contains ſome Particulars relating to Cheſhire, we cannot take our Leave of it, without being reminded thereby, to acknowledge ourſelves, for this Liberty of imparting it's Contents to the Publick, obliged to a Gentleman of an antient and honourable Family in that County, Nathaniel Booth Eſq of Gray's-Inn; among whoſe courteous Communications of other curious Memorials, alſo, partly, relating to the Antiquities of the ſaid County, we cannot forbear mentioning one Letter concerning the ſaid Family, which was written on the Day that King Edward the VI. was born, viz. 12 of October, 1537, from Hampton-Court, by the Queen his Mother, Lady Jane Seymore, to George Booth, Eſq then not above 22 Years of Age; informing him, that, ‘"by the ineſtimable Goodneſs and Grace of Almighty God, wee be delivered and brought in Childbed of a Prince, conceyved in moſt lawful Matrimony, between my Lord the King's Majeſtye and Us. Doubting not, but that, for the Love and Affection which ye beare unto us, and to the Commyn-wealth of this Realme, the Knowledge thereof ſhuld bee joyous and glad Tydings unto Yone; we have thought good to certitye yone of the ſame, &c"’ This George died the 35 of Henry VIII. Aetat. 28, and was the Grandfather of Sir George Booth, Knight and Baronet, who died at Dunham, Octob. 1652, aged 86 Years.
*
There is a Tranſcript of it above 300 Years old in the Cotton Library.
*
He is not reckon'd in the Catalogue of Abbots in Bibl. Cotton. Vitell. F. 17. Fol. 38. but he was Abbot of Glouceſter. Vide Annal. Winton. et Annul. Wigorn. in Anglia Sacra.
Nor is he reckon'd among them, in that Catalogue in the Cotton Library.
*
Vide Weever's Fun. Mon. fol. 660. who ſays Sir Thomas Wall ſucceeded him that Year.
*
In Nich. Upton de Studio Milit. &c. Fol. Lond. 1654.
*
But the Reaſon why we had not the Author's ſaid Continuation of this Work, was, that he died the next Year after this firſt Part was printed, as Anthony Wood informs us.
But there are yet left ſeveral, which are very material; eſpecially in the Numerical Letters and Figures of the ſaid Inſcriptions, which are, as to thoſe Particulars, often erroneous, as Mr. Wharton in Angl. Sacra, Part I. Page 668 has obſerved: Whether chargeable upon our Author's own Tranſcripts, or thoſe of his Friends, tho' not diſtinguiſhable, ſo as to fix the Imputation of Ignorance or Negligence upon him; yet, be the Defect in one, or the other, the Chronological Readers are equally liable to be miſled: To appriſe thoſe Readers whereof, was one Reaſon for our preſent Review of this Book; as another Reaſon is, to oblige hiſtorical Readers with the Notice of many eminent Perſons characteriſed therein, from ancient and credible Authorities.
See The Account of the Euniture of the Inthronization of W. Warham Archbiſhop of Canterbury; with the Entertainment of the Emperor Charles V. Henry VIII. Cardinal Wolſey, and many of the Nobility, &c. by the ſaid Archbiſhop: Alſo the Bills of Fare for the ſeveral Days. Imprinted on a Paper Roll above three Yards long. Lond. 1560. 1561.
*
Williem, King, grets Williem, Biſceop, and Godfred, Portereſan, and ea [...] ya Burghwarn binnen London, Frenciſce and Engliſe, frendlice. And ickiden eoy, yeet ic wille yeet git ben ealra weera lagay weore, ye get weeran on Eadwards daege Kings: And ic will yeet aelc child by his fader yrfnume. aefter his faders daege: And ic nelle ge wolian yeet aenig Man coy aenis wrang beode, God coy heald.’
*
Dr. Fuller, in his Worthies of England, has rightly obſerv'd (tho' he gives us no Authority for it) That Chaucer was living in 1402. for in that Year I find he wrote and dated one of his Poems entitled, The Letter of Cupid. However Mr. Brigham, by his Date upon the Monument he erected in honour of this Poet at Weſtminſter, Anno 1555. puts a Period to his Life even two Years before that Date of Chaucer's; in which Error many others beſides our Author have implicitly follow'd him.
*
We think it not improper to take Notice of a Catalogue of the Author's Works ſubjoin'd to this Treatiſe; which are as follow: Works already publiſhed; 1. The natural Language of the Hand. 2. The Art of manual Rhetorick. 3. The deaf and dumb Man's Friend. 4. A Diſſection of the Muſcles of the Affections of the Mind. 5. The Artificial Changeling. Works accompliſhed by him, not then publiſhed. 6. The national Expreſſions of the Hand. 7. The natural Language of the Head, or the Notions of Phyſiognomy. 8. The Art of Cephalical Rhetorick. 9. The moral Anatomy of the Body. 10. The Academy of the Deaf and Dumb, teaching them to hear with their Eyes, and to learn to ſpeak. 11. Phyſiognomia Medici. 12 Tractatus de removendis Loquelae Impedimentis. 13. Tractatus de removendis Auditionis Impedimentis. And at the End of this Catalogue, the Author notes, in a ſhort Latin Advertiſement, the great Fatigue of writing and reading many Books, and that he muſt for the future wholly employ himſelf in the Buſineſs of his Profeſſion.
Distributed by the University of Oxford under a Creative Commons Attribution-ShareAlike 3.0 Unported License

Citation Suggestion for this Object
TextGrid Repository (2020). TEI. 5389 The British librarian exhibiting a compendious review or abstract of our most scarce useful and valuable books in all sciences as well in manuscript as in print With a complete index. University of Oxford Text Archive. . https://hdl.handle.net/21.T11991/0000-001A-5EDB-5